



Produced by Douglas L. Alley, III, Delphine Lettau and the
Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
(This file was produced from images generously made
available by The Internet Archive/American Libraries.)








[Illustration]




                         THE FAIRY MYTHOLOGY,


                         ILLUSTRATIVE OF THE


           Romance and Superstition of Various Countries;




                                  BY


                          THOMAS KEIGHTLEY,

   Author of the Mythology of Ancient Greece and Italy; Histories of
       Greece, Rome, England, and India, The Crusaders, &c., &c.





                 Another sort there be, that will
                 Be talking of the Fairies still;
                 Nor never can they have their fill,
                   As they were wedded to them
                                             DRAYTON.





             A NEW EDITION, REVISED AND GREATLY ENLARGED





                               LONDON:
             GEORGE BELL & SONS, YORK ST., COVENT GARDEN,
                            AND NEW YORK.

                                1892.




                               LONDON:
REPRINTED FROM STEREOTYPE PLATES BY WILLIAM CLOWES AND SONS, LIMITED.
                  STAMFORD STREET AND CHARING CROSS.




                                  TO

                         THE RIGHT HONOURABLE

                      FRANCIS EARL OF ELLESMERE,

                           IN TESTIMONY OF

          ESTEEM AND RESPECT FOR PUBLIC AND PRIVATE VIRTUE,

              LITERARY TASTE, TALENT, AND ACQUIREMENTS,

              AND PATRONAGE OF LITERATURE AND THE ARTS.


                      This Volume is Inscribed

                                  BY

                                        THE AUTHOR.




                               PREFACE.


A preface is to a book what a prologue is to a play--a usual, often
agreeable, but by no means necessary precursor. It may therefore be
altered or omitted at pleasure. I have at times exercised this right,
and this is the third I have written for the present work.

In the first, after briefly stating what had given occasion to it, I
gave the germs of the theory which I afterwards developed in the Tales
and Popular Fictions. The second contained the following paragraph:--

"I never heard of any one who read it that was not pleased with it. It
was translated into German as soon as it appeared, and was very
favourably received. Goethe thought well of it. Dr. Jacob Grimm--perhaps
the first authority on these matters in Europe--wrote me a letter
commending it, and assuring me that even to _him_ it offered something
new; and I was one Christmas most agreeably surprised by the receipt of
a letter from Vienna, from the celebrated orientalist, Jos Von Hammer,
informing me that it had been the companion of a journey he had lately
made to his native province of Styria, and had afforded much pleasure
and information to himself and to some ladies of high rank and
cultivated minds in that country. The initials at the end of the
preface, he said, led him to suppose it was a work of mine. So far for
the Continent. In this country, when I mention the name of Robert
Southey as that of one who has more than once expressed his decided
approbation of this performance, I am sure I shall have said quite
enough to satisfy any one that the work is not devoid of merit."

I could now add many names of distinguished persons who have been
pleased with this work and its pendent, the Tales and Popular Fictions.
I shall only mention that of the late Mr. Douce, who, very shortly
before his death, on the occasion of the publication of this last work,
called on me to assure me that "it was many, many years indeed, since he
had read a book which had yielded him so much delight."

The contents of the work which gave such pleasure to this learned
antiquary are as follows:--

    I. Introduction--Similarity of Arts and Customs--Similarity of
    Names--Origin of the Work--Imitation--Casual
    Coincidence--Milton--Dante. II. The Thousand and One
    Nights--Bedoween Audience around a Story-teller--Cleomades and
    Claremond--Enchanted Horses--Peter of Provence and the fair
    Maguelone. III. The Pleasant Nights--The Dancing Water, the Singing
    Apple, and the Beautiful Green Bird--The Three Little
    Birds--Lactantius--Ulysses and Sindbad. IV. The Shâh-Nâmeh--Roostem
    and Soohrâb--Conloch and Cuchullin--Macpherson's Ossian--Irish
    Antiquities. V. The Pentamerone--Tale of the Serpent--Hindoo Legend.
    VI. Jack the Giant-killer--The Brave Tailoring--Thor's Journey to
    Utgard--Ameen of Isfahan and the Ghool--The Lion and the Goat--The
    Lion and the Ass. VII. Whittington and his Cat--Danish
    Legends--Italian Stories--Persian Legend. VIII. The Edda--Sigurd and
    Brynhilda--Völund--Helgi--Holger Danske--Ogier le
    Danois--Toko--William Tell. IX. Peruonto--Peter the Fool--Emelyan
    the Fool--Conclusion. Appendix.

Never, I am convinced, did any one enter on a literary career with
more reluctance than I did when I found it to be my only
resource--fortune being gone, ill health and delicacy of constitution
excluding me from the learned professions, want of interest from
every thing else. As I journeyed to the metropolis, I might have sung
with the page whom Don Quixote met going a-soldiering:

      A la guerra me lleva--mi necesidad,
      Si tuviera dineros--no fuera en verdad

for of all arts and professions in this country, that of literature is
the least respected and the worst remunerated. There is something
actually degrading in the expression "an author by trade," which I have
seen used even of Southey, and that by one who did not mean to disparage
him in the slightest degree. My advice to those who may read these pages
is to shun literature, if not already blest with competence.

One of my earliest literary friends in London was T. Crofton Croker,
who was then engaged in collecting materials for the Fairy Legends of
the South of Ireland. He of course applied to his friends for aid and
information; and I, having most leisure, and, I may add, most
knowledge, was able to give him the greatest amount of assistance. My
inquiries on the subject led to the writing of the present work, which
was succeeded by the Mythology of Ancient Greece and Italy, and the
Tales and Popular Fictions; so that, in effect, if Mr. Croker had not
planned the Fairy Legends, these works, be their value what it may,
would in all probability never have been written.

Writing and reading about Fairies some may deem to be the mark of a
trifling turn of mind. On this subject I have given my ideas in the
Conclusion; here I will only remind such critics, that as soon as this
work was completed, I commenced, and wrote in the space of a few
weeks, my Outlines of History; and whatever the faults of that work
may be, no one has ever reckoned among them want of vigour in either
thought or expression. It was also necessary, in order to write this
work and its pendent, to be able to read, perhaps, as many as eighteen
or twenty different languages, dialects, and modes of orthography,
and to employ different styles both in prose and verse. At all events,
even if it were trifling, _dulce est desipere in loco_; and I shall
never forget the happy hours it caused me, especially those spent over
the black-letter pages of the French romances of chivalry, in the old
reading-room of the British Museum.

Many years have elapsed since this work was first published. In that
period much new matter has appeared in various works, especially in the
valuable Deutsche Mythologie of Dr. Grimm. Hence it will be found to be
greatly enlarged, particularly in the sections of England and France. I
have also inserted much which want of space obliged me to omit in the
former edition. In its present form, I am presumptuous enough to expect
that it may live for many years, and be an authority on the subject of
popular lore. The active industry of the Grimms, of Thiele, and others,
had collected the popular traditions of various countries. I came then
and gathered in the harvest, leaving little, I apprehend, but gleanings
for future writers on this subject. The legends will probably fade fast
away from the popular memory; it is not likely that any one will relate
those which I have given over again; and it therefore seems more
probable that this volume may in future be reprinted, with notes and
additions. For human nature will ever remain unchanged; the love of gain
and of material enjoyments, omnipotent as it appears to be at present,
will never totally extinguish the higher and purer aspirations of mind;
and there will always be those, however limited in number, who will
desire to know how the former dwellers of earth thought, felt, and
acted. For these mythology, as connected with religion and history, will
always have attractions.

  October, 1850.

Whatever errors have been discovered are corrected in this impression.

  January, 1870.      T. K.




                               CONTENTS

  INTRODUCTION.                                          Page
    Origin of the Belief in Fairies                         1
    Origin of the Word Fairy                                4

  ORIENTAL ROMANCE.
    PERSIAN ROMANCE                                        14
      The Peri-Wife                                        20
    ARABIAN ROMANCE                                        24

  MIDDLE-AGE ROMANCE.

  FAIRY-LAND                                               44

  SPENSER'S FAERIE QUEENE                                  55

  EDDAS AND SAGAS                                          60
    THE ALFAR                                              64
    THE DUERGAR                                            66
      Loki and the Dwarf                                   68
      Thorston and the Dwarf                               70
      The Dwarf-Sword Tirfing                              72

  SCANDINAVIA.
    ELVES                                                  78
      Sir Olof in the Elve-Dance                           82
      The Elf-Woman and Sir Olof                           84
      The Young Swain and the Elves                        86
      Svend Faelling and the Elle-Maid                     88
      The Elle-Maids                                       89
      Maid Væ                                              89
      The Elle-Maid near Ebeltoft                          90
      Hans Puntleder                                       91
    DWARFS OR TROLLS                                       94
      Sir Thynnè                                           97
      Proud Margaret                                      103
      The Troll Wife                                      108
      The Altar-Cup in Aagerup                            109
      Origin of Tiis Lake                                 111
      A Farmer tricks a Troll                             113
      Skotte in the Fire                                  113
      The Legend of Bodedys                               115
      Kallundborg Church                                  116
      The Hill-Man invited to the Christening             118
      The Troll turned Cat                                120
      Kirsten's Hill                                      121
      The Troll-Labour                                    122
      The Hill-Smith                                      123
      The Girl at the Troll-Dance                         125
      The Changeling                                      125
      The Tile-Stove jumping over the Brook               127
      Departure of the Trolls From Vendsyssel             127
      Svend Faelling                                      128
      The Dwarfs' Banquet                                 130
    NISSES                                                139
      The Nis Removing                                    140
      The Penitent Nis                                    141
      The Nis and the Boy                                 142
      The Nis Stealing Corn                               143
      The Nis and the Mare                                144
      The Nis Riding                                      145
      The Nisses in Vosborg                               146
    NECKS, MERMEN, AND MERMAIDS                           147
      The Power of the Harp                               150
      Duke Magnus and the Mermaid                         154

  NORTHERN ISLANDS.
    ICELAND                                               157
    FEROES                                                162
    SHETLAND                                              164
      Gioga's Son                                         167
      The Mermaid Wife                                    169
    ORKNEYS                                               171
    ISLE OF RÜGEN                                         174
      Adventures of John Dietrich                         178
      The Little Glass Shoe                               194
      The Wonderful Plough                                197
      The Lost Bell                                       200
      The Black Dwarfs of Granitz                         204

  GERMANY.
    DWARFS                                                216
      The Hill-Man at the Dance                           217
      The Dwarf's Feast                                   218
      The Friendly Dwarfs                                 220
      Wedding-Feast of the Little People                  220
      Smith Riechert                                      221
      Dwarfs stealing Corn                                222
      Journey of Dwarfs over the Mountain                 223
      The Dwarfs borrowing Bread                          226
      The Changeling                                      227
      The Dwarf-Husband                                   232
      Inge of Rantum                                      232
    THE WILD-WOMEN                                        234
      The Oldenburg Horn                                  237
    KOBOLDS                                               239
      Hinzelmann                                          240
      Hödeken                                             255
      King Goldemar                                       256
      The Heinzelmänchen                                  257
    NIXES                                                 258
      The Peasant and the Waterman                        259
      The Water-Smith                                     260
      The Working Waterman                                261
      The Nix-Labour                                      261

  SWITZERLAND.
    DWARFS                                                264
      Gertrude and Rosy                                   266
      The Chamois-Hunter                                  271
      The Dwarfs on the Tree                              273
      Curiosity punished                                  273
      The Rejected Gift                                   275
      The Wonderful Little Pouch                          276
      Aid and Punishment                                  277
      The Dwarf in search of Lodging                      278

  GREAT BRITAIN.
    ENGLAND.
      The Green Children                                  281
      The Fairy-Banquet                                   283
      The Fairy-Horn                                      284
      The Portunes                                        285
      The Grant                                           286
      The Luck of Eden Hall                               292
      The Fairy-Fair                                      294
      The Fairies' Caldron                                295
      The Cauld Lad of Hilton                             296
      The Pixy-Labour                                     301
      Pixy-Vengeance                                      303
      Pixy-Gratitude                                      304
      The Fairy-Thieves                                   305
      The Boggart                                         307
      Addlers and Menters                                 308
      The Fary-Nurseling                                  310
      The Fary-Labour                                     311
      Ainsel                                              313
      Puck                                                314
    SCOTTISH LOWLANDS.
      The Fairies' Nurse                                  353
      The Fairy-Rade                                      354
      The Changeling                                      355
      Departure of the Fairies                            356
      The Brownie                                         357

  CELTS AND CYMRY.
    IRELAND.
      Clever Tom and the Leprechaun                       373
      The Leprechaun in the Garden                        376
      The Three Leprechauns                               379
      The Little Shoe                                     382
    SCOTTISH HIGHLANDS.
      The Fairy's Inquiry                                 385
      The Young Man in the Shian                          386
      The two Fiddlers                                    387
      The Fairy-Labour                                    388
      The Fairy borrowing Oatmeal                         389
      The Fairy-Gift                                      389
      The Stolen Ox                                       390
      The Stolen Lady                                     391
      The Changeling                                      393
      The Wounded Seal                                    394
      The Brownies                                        395
      The Urisk                                           396
    ISLE OF MAN.
      The Fairy-Chapman                                   398
      The Fairy-Banquet                                   399
      The Fairies' Christening                            400
      The Fairy-Whipping                                  400
      The Fairy-Hunt                                      401
      The Fiddler and the Fairy                           402
      The Phynnodderee                                    402
    WALES.
      Tale of Elidurus                                    404
      The Tylwyth Têg                                     408
      The Spirit of the Van                               409
      Rhys at the Fairy-Dance                             415
      Gitto Bach                                          416
      The Fairies banished                                417
    BRITTANY.
      Lai D'Ywenec                                        422
      Lord Nann and the Korrigan                          433
      The Dance and Song of the Korred                    438

  SOUTHERN EUROPE.
    GREECE                                                443
    ITALY                                                 447
    SPAIN                                                 456
      The Daughter of Peter do Cabinam                    456
      Origin of the House of Haro                         458
      La Infantina                                        459
      Pepito el Corcovado                                 461
    FRANCE.
      Legend of Melusina                                  480

  EASTERN EUROPE.
    FINNS                                                 487
    SLAVES                                                490
      Vilas                                               492
      Deer and Vila                                       493

  AFRICANS, JEWS,
    AFRICANS                                              495
    JEWS                                                  497
      The Broken Oaths                                    498
      The Moohel                                          506
      The Mazik-Ass                                       510

  APPENDIX                                                513

  INDEX                                                   557



                         THE FAIRY MYTHOLOGY




                            INTRODUCTION.

      In oldè dayès of the King Artoúr,
      Of which that Bretons spoken gret honoúr,
      All was this lond fulfilled of faërie;
      The elf-qrene with hir jolie companie
      Danced full oft in many a grenè mede.
                                        CHAUCER.


                   ORIGIN OF THE BELIEF IN FAIRIES.


According to a well-known law of our nature, effects suggest causes;
and another law, perhaps equally general, impels us to ascribe to the
actual and efficient cause the attribute of intelligence. The mind of
the deepest philosopher is thus acted upon equally with that of the
peasant or the savage; the only difference lies in the nature of the
intelligent cause at which they respectively stop. The one pursues the
chain of cause and effect, and traces out its various links till he
arrives at the great intelligent cause of all, however he may
designate him; the other, when unusual phenomena excite his attention,
ascribes their production to the immediate agency of some of the
inferior beings recognised by his legendary creed.

The action of this latter principle must forcibly strike the minds of
those who disdain not to bestow a portion of their attention on the
popular legends and traditions of different countries. Every
extraordinary appearance is found to have its extraordinary cause
assigned; a cause always connected with the history or religion,
ancient or modern, of the country, and not unfrequently varying with a
change of faith.[1]

The noises and eruptions of Ætna and Stromboli were, in ancient times,
ascribed to Typhon or Vulcan, and at this day the popular belief
connects them with the infernal regions. The sounds resembling the
clanking of chains, hammering of iron, and blowing of bellows, once to
be heard in the island of Barrie, were made by the fiends whom Merlin
had set to work to frame the wall of brass to surround Caermarthen.[2]
The marks which natural causes have impressed on the solid and
unyielding granite rock were produced, according to the popular creed,
by the contact of the hero, the saint, or the god: masses of stone,
resembling domestic implements in form, were the toys, or the
corresponding implements of the heroes and giants of old. Grecian
imagination ascribed to the galaxy or milky way an origin in the teeming
breast of the queen of heaven: marks appeared in the petals of flowers
on the occasion of a youth's or a hero's untimely death: the rose
derived its present hue from the blood of Venus, as she hurried barefoot
through the woods and lawns; while the professors of Islâm, less
fancifully, refer the origin of this flower to the moisture that exuded
from the sacred person of their prophet. Under a purer form of religion,
the cruciform stripes which mark the back and shoulders of the patient
ass first appeared, according to the popular tradition, when the Son of
God condescended to enter the Holy City, mounted on that animal; and a
fish only to be found in the sea[3] stills bears the impress of the
finger and thumb of the apostle, who drew him out of the waters of Lake
Tiberias to take the tribute-money that lay in his mouth. The repetition
of the voice among the hills is, in Norway and Sweden, ascribed to the
Dwarfs mocking the human speaker, while the more elegant fancy of Greece
gave birth to Echo, a nymph who pined for love, and who still fondly
repeats the accents that she hears. The magic scenery occasionally
presented on the waters of the Straits of Messina is produced by the
power of the Fata Morgana; the gossamers that float through the haze of
an autumnal morning, are woven by the ingenious dwarfs; the verdant
circlets in the mead are traced beneath the light steps of the dancing
elves; and St. Cuthbert forges and fashions the beads that bear his
name, and lie scattered along the shore of Lindisfarne.[4]

In accordance with these laws, we find in most countries a popular
belief in different classes of beings distinct from men, and from the
higher orders of divinities. These beings are usually believed to
inhabit, in the caverns of earth, or the depths of the waters, a
region of their own. They generally excel mankind in power and in
knowledge, and like them are subject to the inevitable laws of death,
though after a more prolonged period of existence.

How these classes were first called into existence it is not easy to
say; but if, as some assert, all the ancient systems of heathen
religion were devised by philosophers for the instruction of rude
tribes by appeals to their senses, we might suppose that the minds
which peopled the skies with their thousands and tens of thousands of
divinities gave birth also to the inhabitants of the field and flood,
and that the numerous tales of their exploits and adventures are the
production of poetic fiction or rude invention. It may further be
observed, that not unfrequently a change of religious faith has
invested with dark and malignant attributes beings once the objects of
love, confidence, and veneration.[5]

It is not our intention in the following pages to treat of the awful
or lovely deities of Olympus, Valhalla, or Merû. Our subject is less
aspiring; and we confine ourselves to those beings who are our
fellow-inhabitants of earth, whose manners we aim to describe, and
whose deeds we propose to record. We write of FAIRIES, FAYS, ELVES,
_aut alio quo nomine gaudent_.


                      ORIGIN OF THE WORD FAIRY.

Like every other word in extensive use, whose derivation is not
historically certain, the word Fairy has obtained various and opposite
etymons. Meyric Casaubon, and those who like him deduce everything
from a classic source, however unlikely, derive Fairy from Φηρ, a
Homeric name of the Centaurs;[6] or think that _fée_, whence Fairy, is
the last syllable of _nympha_. Sir W. Ouseley derives it from the
Hebrew פאר (_peër_), _to adorn_; Skinner, from the Anglo-Saxon [Old
English: faran], _to fare_, _to go_; others from Feres, companions, or
think that Fairy-folk is _quasi_ Fair-folk. Finally, it has been
queried if it be not Celtic.[7]

But no theory is so plausible, or is supported by such names, as that
which deduces the English Fairy from the Persian Peri. It is said that
the Paynim foe, whom the warriors of the Cross encountered in
Palestine, spoke only Arabic; the alphabet of which language, it is
well known, possesses no _p_, and therefore organically substitutes an
_f_ in such foreign words as contain the former letter; consequently
Peri became, in the mouth of an Arab, Feri, whence the crusaders and
pilgrims, who carried back to Europe the marvellous tales of Asia,
introduced into the West the Arabo-Persian word _Fairy_. It is further
added, that the Morgain or Morgana, so celebrated in old romance, is
Merjan Peri, equally celebrated all over the East.

All that is wanting to this so very plausible theory is something like
proof, and some slight agreement with the ordinary rules of etymology.
Had Feërie, or Fairy, originally signified the individual in the
French and English, the only languages in which the word occurs, we
might feel disposed to acquiesce in it. But they do not: and even if
they did, how should we deduce from them the Italian Fata, and the
Spanish Fada or Hada, (words which unquestionably stand for the same
imaginary being,) unless on the principle by which Menage must have
deduced Lutin from Lemur--the first letter being the same in both? As
to the fair Merjan Peri (D'Herbelot calls her Merjan Banou[8]), we
fancy a little too much importance has been attached to her. Her name,
as far as we can learn, only occurs in the Cahermân Nâmeh, a Turkish
romance, though perhaps translated from the Persian.

The foregoing etymologies, it is to be observed, are all the
conjectures of English scholars; for the English is the only language
in which the name of the individual, Fairy, has the canine letter to
afford any foundation for them.

Leaving, then, these sports of fancy, we will discuss the true origin
of the words used in the Romanic languages to express the being which
we name Fairy of Romance. These are _Faée_, _Fée_, French; _Fada_,
Provençal (whence _Hada_, Spanish); and _Fata_, Italian.

The root is evidently, we think, the Latin _fatum_. In the fourth
century of our æra we find this word made plural, and even feminine, and
used as the equivalent of Parcæ. On the reverse of a gold medal of the
Emperor Diocletian are three female figures, with the legend _Fatis
victricibus_; a _cippus_, found at Valencia in Spain, has on one of its
sides _Fatis Q. Fabius ex voto_, and on the other, three female
figures, with the attributes of the Mœræ or Parcæ.[9] In this last place
the gender is uncertain, but the figures would lead us to suppose it
feminine. On the other hand, Ausonius[10] has _tres Charites_, _tria
Fata_; and Procopius[11] names a building at the Roman Forum τα τρια
φατα, adding ουτω γαρ ῥωμαιοι τας μοιρας νενομικασι καλειν. The Fatæ or
Fata, then, being persons, and their name coinciding so exactly with the
modern terms, and it being observed that the Mœræ were, at the birth of
Meleager, just as the Fées were at that of Ogier le Danois, and other
heroes of romance and tale, their identity has been at once asserted,
and this is now, we believe, the most prevalent theory. To this it may
be added, that in Gervase of Tilbury, and other writers of the
thirteenth century, the Fada or Fée seems to be regarded as a being
different from human kind.[12]

On the other hand, in a passage presently to be quoted from a
celebrated old romance, we shall meet a definition of the word _Fée_,
which expressly asserts that such a being was nothing more than a
woman skilled in magic; and such, on examination, we shall find to
have been all the Fées of the romances of chivalry and of the popular
tales; in effect, that _fée_ is a participle, and the words _dame_ or
_femme_ is to be understood.

In the middle ages there was in use a Latin verb, _fatare_,[13] derived
from _fatum_ or _fata_, and signifying to enchant. This verb was
adopted by the Italian, Provençal[14] and Spanish languages; in French
it became, according to the analogy of that tongue, _faer_, _féer_. Of
this verb the past participle _faé_, _fé_; hence in the romances we
continually meet with _les chevaliers faés_, _les dames faées_, _Oberon
la faé_, _le cheval étoit faé_, _la clef était fée_, and such like. We
have further, we think, demonstrated[15] that it was the practice of the
Latin language to elide accented syllables, especially in the past
participle of verbs of the first conjugation, and that this practice had
been transmitted to the Italian, whence _fatato-a_ would form _fato-a_,
and _una donna fatata_ might thus become _una fata_. Whether the same
was the case in the Provençal we cannot affirm, as our knowledge of that
dialect is very slight; but, judging from analogy, we would say it was,
for in Spanish _Hadada_ and _Hada_ are synonymous. In the Neapolitan
Pentamerone _Fata_ and _Maga_ are the same, and a Fata sends the heroine
of it to a sister of hers, _pure fatata_.

Ariosto says of Medea--

      E perchè per virtù d' erbe e d'incanti
      Delle Fate una ed immortal fatta era.
                  _I Cinque Canti_, ii. 106.

The same poet, however, elsewhere says--

      Queste che or Fate e dagli antichi foro
      Già dette Ninfe e Dee con più bel nome.--_Ibid._ i. 9.

and,

      Nascemmo ad un punto che d'ogni altro male
      Siamo capaci fuorchè della morte.--_Orl. Fur._ xliii. 48.

which last, however, is not decisive. Bojardo also calls the
water-nymphs Fate; and our old translators of the Classics named them
_fairies_. From all this can only, we apprehend, be collected, that
the ideas of the Italian poets, and others, were somewhat vague on the
subject.

From the verb _faer_, _féer_, to enchant, illude, the French made a
substantive _faerie_, _féerie_,[16] illusion, enchantment, the meaning
of which was afterwards extended, particularly after it had been
adopted into the English language.

We find the word Faerie, in fact, to be employed in four different
senses, which we will now arrange and exemplify.

1. Illusion, enchantment.

      Plusieurs parlent de Guenart,
      Du Loup, de l'Asne, de Renart,
      De _faeries_ et de songes,
      De phantosmes et de mensonges.
                   _Gul. Giar. ap. Ducange._

Where we must observe, as Sir Walter Scott seems not to have been
aware of it, that the four last substantives bear the same relation to
each other as those in the two first verses do.

                             Me bifel a ferly
                             Of _faërie_, me thought.
                                       _Vision of Piers Plowman_, v. 11.

                 Maius that sit with so benigne a chere,
                 Hire to behold it seemed _faërie_.
                                     _Chaucer, Marchante's Tale._

      It (_the horse of brass_) was of _faërie_, as the peple semed,
      Diversè folk diversëly han demed.--_Squier's Tale._

                    The Emperor said on high,
                    Certes it is a _faërie_,
                      Or elles a vanité.--_Emare._

                    With phantasme and _faërie_,
                    Thus she bleredè his eye.--_Libeaus Disconus._

                The God of her has made an end,
                And fro this worldès _faërie_
                Hath taken her into companie.--_Gower, Constance._


Mr. Ritson professes not to understand the meaning of _faerie_ in this
last passage. Mr. Ritson should, as Sir Hugh Evans says, have 'prayed
his pible petter;' where, among other things that might have been of
service to him, he would have learned that 'man walketh in a _vain_
shew,' that 'all is _vanity_,' and that 'the fashion of this world
passeth away;' and then he would have found no difficulty in
comprehending the pious language of 'moral Gower,' in his allusion to
the transitory and deceptive vanities of the world.

2. From the sense of illusion simply, the transition was easy to that
of the land of illusions, the abode of the Faés, who produced them;
and Faerie next came to signify the country of the Fays. Analogy also
was here aiding; for as a Nonnerie was a place inhabited by Nonnes, a
Jewerie a place inhabited by Jews, so a Faerie was naturally a place
inhabited by Fays. Its termination, too, corresponded with a usual one
in the names of countries: Tartarie, for instance, and 'the regne of
Feminie.'

                 Here beside an elfish knight
                 Hath taken my lord in fight,
                 And hath him led with him away
                 Into the _Faërie_, sir, parmafay.--_Sir Guy._

      La puissance qu'il avoit sur toutes _faeries_ du monde.
                                                     _Huon de Bordeaux._

    En effect, s'il me falloit retourner en _faerie_, je ne sçauroye
    ou prendre mon chemin.--_Ogier le Dannoys._

        That Gawain with his oldè curtesie,
        Though he were come agen out of _faërie_.
                                     _Squier's Tale._

        He (Arthur) is a king y-crowned in _Faërie_,
      With sceptre and pall, and with his regalty
      Shallè resort, as lord and sovereigne,
      Out of _Faerie_, and reignè in Bretaine,
      And repair again the ouldè Roundè Table.
                 _Lydgate, Fall of Princes_, bk. viii. c. 24.

3. From the country the appellation passed to the inhabitants in their
collective capacity, and the Faerie now signified the people of
Fairy-land.[17]

         Of the fourth kind of Spritis called the Phairie.
                                   _K. James, Demonologie_, 1. 3.

             Full often time he, Pluto, and his quene
             Proserpina, and alle hir _faërie_,
             Disporten hem, and maken melodie
             About that well.--_Marchante's Tale._

      The feasts that underground the _Faërie_ did him make,
      And there how he enjoyed the Lady of the Lake.
                                   _Drayton, Poly-Olb., Song IV._

4. Lastly, the word came to signify the individual denizen of
Fairy-land, and was equally applied to the full-sized fairy knights
and ladies of romance, and to the pygmy elves that haunt the woods and
dells. At what precise period it got this its last, and subsequently
most usual sense, we are unable to say positively; but it was probably
posterior to Chaucer, in whom it never occurs, and certainly anterior
to Spenser, to whom, however, it seems chiefly indebted for its future
general currency.[18] It was employed during the sixteenth century[19]
for the Fays of romance, and also, especially by translators, for the
Elves, as corresponding to the Latin Nympha.

    They believed that king Arthur was not dead, but carried awaie by
    the _Fairies_ into some pleasant place, where he should remaine
    for a time, and then returne again and reign in as great authority
    as ever.

  _Hollingshed_, bk. v. c. 14. Printed 1577.

                                        Semicaper Pan
      Nunc tenet, at quodam tenuerunt tempore nymphæ.
                                           _Ovid, Met._ xiv. 520.

                               The halfe-goate Pan that howre
      Possessed it, but heretofore it was the _Faries'_ bower.
                                                 _Golding_, 1567.

               Hæc nemora indigenæ fauni nymphæque tenebant,
               Gensque virum truncis et duro robore nata.
                                            _Virgil, Æneis_, viii. 314.

                   With nymphis and faunis apoun every side,
                   Qwhilk _Farefolkis_ or than _Elfis_ clepen we.
                                                        _Gawin Dowglas._

      The woods (quoth he) sometime both fauns and nymphs, and gods of
               ground,
      And _Fairy-queens_ did keep, and under them a nation rough.
                                                          _Phaer_, 1562.

                   Inter Hamadryadas celeberrima Nonacrinas
                   Naïas una fuit.--_Ovid, Met._ l. i. 690.

            Of all the nymphes of Nonacris and _Fairie_ ferre and neere,
            In beautie and in personage this ladie had no peere.
                                                             _Golding._

                 Pan ibi dum teneris jactat sua carmina nymphis.
                                                     _Ov. Ib._ xi. 153.

           There Pan among the _Fairie-elves_, that daunced round
                     togither.
                                                             _Golding._

              Solaque Naïadum celeri non nota Dianæ.--_Ov. Ib._ iv. 304.

                 Of all the _water-fayries_, she alonely was unknowne
                 To swift Diana.--_Golding._

                            Nymphis latura coronas.--_Ov. Ib._ ix. 337.

            Was to the _fairies_ of the lake fresh garlands for to bear.
                                                              _Golding._

Thus we have endeavoured to trace out the origin, and mark the progress
of the word Fairy, through its varying significations, and trust that
the subject will now appear placed in a clear and intelligible light.

After the appearance of the Faerie Queene, all distinctions were
confounded, the name and attributes of the real Fays or Fairies of
romance were completely transferred to the little beings who,
according to the popular belief, made 'the green sour ringlets whereof
the ewe not bites.' The change thus operated by the poets established
itself firmly among the people; a strong proof, if this idea be
correct, of the power of the poetry of a nation in altering the
phraseology of even the lowest classes[20] of its society.

Shakspeare must be regarded as a principal agent in this revolution;
yet even he uses Fairy once in the proper sense of Fay; a sense it
seems to have nearly lost, till it was again brought into use by the
translators of the French Contes des Fées in the last century.

      To this great Fairy I'll commend thy acts.
                       _Antony and Cleopatra_, act iv. sc. 8.

And Milton speaks

      Of Faery damsels met in forests wide
      By knights of Logres or of Lyones,
      Lancelot, or Pelleas, or Pellinore.

Yet he elsewhere mentions the

                           Faery elves,
      Whose midnight revels by a forest side
      Or fountain some belated peasant sees.

Finally, Randolph, in his Amyntas, employs it, for perhaps the last
time, in its second sense, Fairy-land:

                                I do think
      There will be of Jocastus' brood in Fairy.
                                           Act i. sc. 3.

We must not here omit to mention that the Germans, along with the
French romances, early adopted the name of the Fées. They called them
Feen and Feinen.[21] In the Tristram of Gottfried von Strazburg we are
told that Duke Gylan had a syren-like little dog,

  Dez wart dem Herzoge gesandt        'Twas sent unto the duke, pardé,
  Uz Avalun, der _Feinen_ land,       From Avalun, the Fays' countrie,
      Von einer Gottinne.--V. 1673.       By a gentle goddess.

In the old German romance of Isotte and Blanscheflur, the hunter who
sees Isotte asleep says, I doubt

  Dez sie menschlich sei,                   If she human be,
  Sie ist schöner denn eine _Feine_,        She is fairer than a Fay.
  Von Fleische noch von Beine               Of flesh or bone, I say,
  Kunte nit gewerden                        Never could have birth
  So schönes auf der erden.                 A thing so fair on earth.

Our subject naturally divides itself into two principal branches,
corresponding to the different classes of beings to which the name
Fairy has been applied. The first, beings of the human race, but
endowed with powers beyond those usually allotted to men, whom we
shall term FAYS, or FAIRIES OF ROMANCE. The second, those little
beings of the popular creeds, whose descent we propose to trace from
the cunning and ingenious Duergar or dwarfs of northern mythology, and
whom we shall denominate ELVES or POPULAR FAIRIES.

It cannot be expected that our classifications should vie in accuracy
and determinateness with those of natural science. The human
imagination, of which these beings are the offspring, works not, at
least that we can discover, like nature, by fixed and invariable laws;
and it would be hard indeed to exact from the Fairy historian the
rigid distinction of classes and orders which we expect from the
botanist or chemist. The various species so run into and are
confounded with one another; the actions and attributes of one kind
are so frequently ascribed to another, that scarcely have we begun to
erect our system, when we find the foundation crumbling under our
feet. Indeed it could not well be otherwise, when we recollect that
all these beings once formed parts of ancient and exploded systems of
religion, and that it is chiefly in the traditions of the peasantry
that their memorial has been preserved.

We will now proceed to consider the Fairies of romance; and as they
are indebted, though not for their name, yet perhaps for some of their
attributes, to the Peries of Persia, we will commence with that
country. We will thence pursue our course through Arabia, till we
arrive at the middle-age romance of Europe, and the gorgeous realms of
Fairy-land; and thence, casting a glance at the Faerie Queene, advance
to the mountains and forests of the North, there to trace the origin
of the light-hearted, night-tripping elves.

FOOTNOTES:

[1] The mark on Adam's Peak in Ceylon is, by the Buddhists, ascribed to
Buddha; by the Mohammedans, to Adam. It reminds one of the story of the
lady and the vicar, viewing the moon through a telescope; they saw in
it, as they thought, two figures inclined toward each other: "Methinks,"
says the lady, "they are two fond lovers, meeting to pour forth their
vows by earth-light." "Not at all," says the vicar, taking his turn at
the glass; "they are the steeples of two neighbouring churches."

[2] Faerie Queene, III. c. iii. st. 8, 9, 10, 11. Drayton,
Poly-Olbion, Song VI. We fear, however, that there is only poetic
authority for this belief. Mr. Todd merely quotes Warton, who says
that Spenser borrowed it from Giraldus Cambrensis, who picked it up
among the romantic traditions propagated by the Welsh bards. The
reader will be, perhaps, surprised to hear that Giraldus says nothing
of the demons. He mentions the sounds, and endeavours to explain them
by natural causes. Hollingshed indeed (l. i. c. 24.) says, "whereof
the superstitious sort do gather many toys."

[3] The Haddock.

[4] For a well-chosen collection of examples, see the very learned and
philosophical preface of the late Mr. Price to his edition of Warton's
History of English Poetry, p. 28 _et seq._

[5] In the Middle Ages the gods of the heathens were all held to be
devils.

[6] Φηρ is the Ionic form of θηρ, and is nearly related to the German
_thier_, beast, animal. The Scandinavian _dyr_, and the Anglo-Saxon
[Old English: deor], have the same signification; and it is curious to
observe the restricted sense which this last has gotten in the English
_deer_.

[7] Preface to Warton, p. 44; and Breton philologists furnish us with
an etymon; not, indeed, of Fairy, but of Fada. "Fada, fata, etc.,"
says M. de Cambry (Monumens Celtiques), "come from the Breton _mat_ or
_mad_, in construction _fat_, good; whence the English, _maid_."

[8] D'Herbelot _titre_ Mergian says, "C'est du nom de cette Fée que
nos anciens romans ont formé celui de _Morgante la Déconnue_." He here
confounds Morgana with Urganda, and he has been followed in his
mistake. D'Herbelot also thinks it possible that _Féerie_ may come
from _Peri_; but he regards the common derivation from _Fata_ as much
more probable. Cambrian etymologists, by the way, say that Morgain is
Mor Gwynn, the _White Maid_.

[9] These two instances are given by Mdlle. Amélie Bosquet (La
Normandie Romanesque, etc. p. 91.) from Dom Martin, _Rel. des
Gaulois_, ii. ch. 23 and 24.

[10] Gryphus ternarii numeri.

[11] De Bell. Got. i. 25.

[12] See below, _France_. It is also remarked that in some of the
tales of the Pentamerone, the number of the _Fate_ is three; but to
this it may be replied, that in Italy every thing took a classic
tinge, and that the Fate of those tales are only Maghe; so in the
Amadigi of Bernardo Tasso we meet with La _Fata_ Urganda. In Spain and
France the number would rather seem to have been seven. Cervantes
speaks of "los siete castillos de las _siete_ fadas;" in the Rom. de
la Infantina it is said, "_siete_ fadas me _fadaron_, en brazos de una
ama mia," and the _Fées_ are _seven_ in La Belle au Bois dormant. In
the romance, however, of Guillaume au Court-nez, the _Fées_ who carry
the sleeping Renoart out of the boat are _three_ in number.--See Grimm
Deutsche Mythologie, p. 383.

[13] A MS. of the 13th century, quoted by Grimm (_ut sup._ p. 405),
thus relates the origin of Aquisgrani (Aix la Chapelle): Aquisgrani
dicitur Ays, et dicitur eo, quod Karolus tenebat ibi quandam _mulierem
fatatam_, sive quandam _fatam_, quæ alio nomine _nimpha_ vel _dea_ vel
_adriades_ (l. _dryas_) appellatur, et ad hanc consuetudinem habebat,
et eam cognoscebat; et ita erat, quod ipso accedente ad eam vivebat
ipsa, ipso Karolo recedente moriebatur. Contigit dum quadam vice ad
ipsam accessisset ut cum ea delectaretur, radius solis intravit os
ejus, et tunc Karolus vidit _granum auri_ lingue ejus affixum, quod
fecit abscindi et contingenti (l. in continenti) mortua est, nec
postea revixit.

[14]

      "Aissim _fadaro_ tres serors
       En aquella ora qu' ieu sui natz
       Que totz temps fos enamoratz."--_Folquet de Romans._

(Thus three sisters _fated_, in the hour that I was born, that I
should be at all times in love.)

"Aissi fuy de nueitz _fadatz_ sobr' un puegau."--_Guilh. de Poitou._
(Thus was I _fated_ by night on a hill.)--Grimm, _ut sup._ p. 383.

[15] See our Virgil, Excurs. ix.

[16] Following the analogy of the Gotho-German tongues, _zauberei_,
Germ. _trylleri_, Dan. _trolleri_, Swed. illusion, enchantment. The
Italian word is _fattucchieria_.

[17] Here too there is _perhaps_ an analogy with _cavalry_,
_infantry_, _squierie_, and similar collective terms.

[18] The Faerie Queene was published some years before the Midsummer
Night's Dream. Warton (Obs. on the Faerie Queene) observes: "It appears
from Marston's Satires, printed 1598, that the Faerie Queene occasioned
many publications in which Fairies were the principal actors.

      Go buy some ballad of the FAERY KING.--_Ad Lectorem._

      Out steps some Faery with quick motion,
      And tells him wonders of some flowerie vale--
      Awakes, straight rubs his eyes, and prints his tale.
                                                 B. III. Sat. 6."


[19] It is in this century that we first meet with _Fairy_ as a
dissyllable, and with a plural. It is then used in its fourth and last
sense.

[20] The Fata Morgana of the Straits of Messina is an example; for the
name of Morgana, whencesoever derived, was probably brought into Italy
by the poets.

[21] Dobenek, des deutschen Mittelalters und Volksglauben. Berlin, 1816.




                         ORIENTAL ROMANCE.[22]

[Illustration: SADEE.]

      All human beings must in beauty yield
      To you; a PERI I have ne'er beheld.


                           PERSIAN ROMANCE.

The pure and simple religion of ancient Persia, originating, it is
said, with a pastoral and hunting race among the lofty hills of
Aderbijân, or, as others think, in the elevated plains of Bactria, in
a region where light appears in all its splendour, took as its
fundamental principle the opposition between light and darkness, and
viewed that opposition as a conflict. Light was happiness; and the
people of Irân, the land of light, were the favourites of Heaven;
while those of Turân, the gloomy region beyond the mountains to the
north, were its enemies. In the realms of supernal light sits
enthroned Ormuzd, the first-born of beings; around him are the six
Amshaspands, the twenty-eight Izeds, and the countless myriads of
Ferohers.[23] In the opposite kingdom of darkness Aherman is supreme,
and his throne is encompassed by the six Arch-Deevs, and the numerous
hosts of inferior Deevs. Between these rival powers ceaseless warfare
prevails; but at the end the prince of darkness will be subdued, and
peace and happiness prevail beneath the righteous sway of Ormuzd.

From this sublime system of religion probably arose the Peri-[24] or
Fairy-system of modern Persia; and thus what was once taught by sages,
and believed by monarchs, has shared the fate of everything human, and
has sunk from its pristine rank to become the material and the
machinery of poets and romancers. The wars waged by the fanatical
successors of the Prophet, in which literature was confounded with
idolatry, have deprived us of the means of judging of this system in
its perfect form; and in what has been written respecting the Peries
and their country since Persia has received the law of Mohammed, the
admixture of the tenets and ideas of Islam is evidently perceptible.
If, however, Orientalists be right in their interpretation of the name
of Artaxerxes' queen, Parisatis, as Pari-zadeh[25] (_Peri-born_), the
Peri must be coeval with the religion of Zoroaster.

The Peries and Deevs of the modern Persians answer to the good and
evil Jinn of the Arabs, of whose origin and nature we shall presently
give an account. The same Suleymans ruled over them as over the Jinn,
and both alike were punished for disobedience. It is difficult to say
which is the original; but when we recollect in how much higher a
state of culture the Persians were than the Arabs, and how well this
view accords with their ancient system of religion, we shall feel
inclined to believe that the Arabs were the borrowers, and that by
mingling with the Persian system ideas derived from the Jews, that one
was formed by them which is now the common property of all Moslems.

In like manner we regard the mountains of Kâf, the abode alike of Jinn
and of Peries and Deevs, as having belonged originally to Persian
geography. The fullest account of it appears in the Persian romance of
Hatim Taï,[26] the hero of which often visited its regions. From this it
would seem that this mountain-range was regarded as, like that of the
ancient Greek cosmology, surrounding the flat circular earth like a
ring, or rather like the bulwarks of a ship, outside of which flowed the
ocean; while some Arab authorities make it to lie beyond, and to enclose
the ocean as well as the earth.[27] It is said to be composed of green
chrysolite, the reflection of which gives its greenish tint to the sky.
According to some, its height is two thousand English miles.

Jinnestân is the common appellation of the whole of this ideal region.
Its respective empires were divided into many kingdoms, containing
numerous provinces and cities. Thus in the Peri-realms we meet with
the luxuriant province of Shad-u-kâm (_Pleasure and Delight_), with
its magnificent capital Juherabâd (_Jewel-city_), whose two kings
solicited the aid of Cahermân against the Deevs,[28] and also the
stately Amberabâd (_Amber-city_), and others equally splendid. The
metropolis of the Deev-empire is named Ahermanabâd (_Aherman's city_);
and imagination has lavished its stores in the description of the
enchanted castle, palace, and gallery of the Deev monarch, Arzshenk.

The Deevs and Peries wage incessant war with each other. Like mankind,
they are subject to death, but after a much longer period of
existence; and, though far superior to man in power, they partake of
his sentiments and passions.

We are told that when the Deevs in their wars make prisoners of the
Peries, they shut them up in iron cages, and hang them from the tops
of the highest trees, exposed to every gaze and to every chilling
blast. Here their companions visit them, and bring them the choicest
odours to feed on; for the ethereal Peri lives on perfume, which has
moreover the property of repelling the cruel Deevs, whose malignant
nature is impatient of fragrance.[29]

When the Peries are unable to withstand their foes, they solicit the
aid of some mortal hero. Enchanted arms and talismans enable him to cope
with the gigantic Deevs, and he is conveyed to Jinnestân on the back of
some strange and wonderful animal. His adventures in that country
usually furnish a wide field for poetry and romance to expatiate in.

The most celebrated adventurer in Jinnestân was Tahmuras, surnamed
Deev-bend (_Deev-binder_),[30] one of the ancient kings of Persia. The
Peries sent him a splendid embassy, and the Deevs, who dreaded him,
despatched another. Tahmuras, in doubt how to act, consults the
wonderful bird Seemurgh,[31] who speaks all languages, and whose
knowledge embraces futurity. She advises him to aid the Peries, warns
him of the dangers he has to encounter, and discloses his proper line
of action. She further offers to convey him to Jinnestân, and plucks
some feathers from her breast, with which the Persian monarch adorns
his helmet.

Mounted on the Seemurgh, and bracing on his arm the potent buckler of
Jân-ibn-Jân,[32] Tahmuras crosses the abyss impassable to unaided
mortality. The vizier Imlân, who had headed the Deev embassy,
deserting his original friends, had gone over to Tahmuras, and through
the magic arts of the Deev, and his own daring valour, the Persian
hero defeats the Deev-king Arzshenk. He next vanquishes a Deev still
more fierce, named Demrush, who dwelt in a gloomy cavern, surrounded
by piles of wealth plundered from the neighbouring realms of Persia
and India. Here Tahmuras finds a fair captive, the Peri Merjân,[33]
whom Demrush had carried off, and whom her brothers, Dâl Peri and
Milân Shâh Peri, had long sought in vain. He chains the Deev in the
centre of the mountain, and at the suit of Merjân hastens to attack
another powerful Deev named Houndkonz; but here, alas! fortune deserts
him, and, maugre his talismans and enchanted arms, the gallant
Tahmuras falls beneath his foe.

The great Deev-bend, or conqueror of Deevs, of the Shâh-Nâmeh[34] is the
illustrious Roostem. In the third of his Seven Tables or adventures, on
his way to relieve the Shâh Ky-Caoos, whom the artifice of a Deev had
led to Mazenderân, where he was in danger of perishing, he encounters in
the dark of the night a Deev named Asdeev, who stole on him in a
dragon's form as he slept. Twice the hero's steed, Reksh, awoke him, but
each time the Deev vanished, and Roostem was near slaying his good steed
for giving him a false alarm. The third time he saw the Deev and slew
him after a fearful combat. He then pursued his way to the cleft in the
mountain in which abode the great Deev Sefeed, or White Deev. The
seventh Table brought him to where lay an army of the Deev Sefeed's
Deevs, commanded by Arzshenk, whose head he struck off, and put his
troops to flight. At length he reached the gloomy cavern of the Deev
Sefeed himself, whom he found asleep, and scorning the advantage he
awoke him, and after a terrific combat deprived him also of life.

Many years after, when Ky-Khosroo sat on the throne, a wild ass of
huge size, his skin like the sun, and a black stripe along his back,
appeared among the royal herds and destroyed the horses. It was
supposed to be the Deev Akvân, who was known to haunt an adjacent
spring. Roostem went in quest of him; on the fourth day he found him
and cast his noose at him, but the Deev vanished. He re-appeared; the
hero shot at him, but he became again invisible. Roostem then let
Reksh graze, and laid him to sleep by the fount. As he slept, Akvân
came and flew up into the air with him; and when he awoke, he gave him
his choice of being let fall on the mountains or the sea. Roostem
secretly chose the latter, and to obtain it he pretended to have heard
that he who was drowned never entered paradise. Akvân thereupon let
him fall into the sea, from which he escaped, and returning to the
fount, he there met and slew the Deev. Roostem's last encounter with
Deevs was with Akvân's son, Berkhyas, and his army, when he went to
deliver Peshen from the dry well in which he was confined by Afrasiâb.
He slew him and two-thirds of his troops. Berkhyas is described as
being a mountain in size, his face black, his body covered with hair,
his neck like that of a dragon, two boar's tusks from his mouth, his
eyes wells of blood, his hair bristling like needles, his height 140
ells, his breadth 17, pigeons nestling in his snaky locks. Akvân had
had a head like an elephant.

In the Hindoo-Persian Bahar Danush (_Garden of Knowledge_) of
Ynâyet-ûllah, written in India A.D. 1650,[35] we find the following
tale of the Peries, which has a surprising resemblance to European
legends hereafter to be noticed.[36]



                           _The Peri-Wife._

The son of a merchant in a city of Hindostan, having been driven from
his father's house on account of his undutiful conduct, assumed the
garb of a Kalenderee or wandering Derweesh, and left his native town.
On the first day of his travels, being overcome with fatigue before he
reached any place of rest, he went off the high road and sat down at
the foot of a tree by a piece of water: while he sat there, he saw at
sunset four doves alight from a tree on the edge of the pond, and
resuming their natural form (for they were Peries) take off their
clothes and amuse themselves by bathing in the water. He immediately
advanced softly, took up their garments, without being seen, and
concealed them in the hollow of a tree, behind which he placed
himself. The Peries when they came out of the water and missed their
clothes were distressed beyond measure. They ran about on all sides
looking for them, but in vain. At length, finding the young man and
judging that he had possessed himself of them, they implored him to
restore them. He would only consent on one condition, which was that
one of them should become his wife. The Peries asserted that such a
union was impossible between them whose bodies were formed of fire and
a mortal who was composed of clay and water; but he persisted, and
selected the one which was the youngest and handsomest. They were at
last obliged to consent, and having endeavoured to console their
sister, who shed copious floods of tears at the idea of parting with
them and spending her days with one of the sons of Adam; and having
received their garments, they took leave of her and flew away.

The young merchant then led home his fair bride and clad her
magnificently; but he took care to bury her Peri-raiment in a secret
place, that she might not be able to leave him. He made every effort
to gain her affections, and at length succeeded in his object "she
placed her foot in the path of regard, and her head on the carpet of
affection." She bore him children, and gradually began to take
pleasure in the society of his female relatives and neighbours. All
doubts of her affection now vanished from his mind, and he became
assured of her love and attachment.

At the end of ten years the merchant became embarrassed in his
circumstances, and he found it necessary to undertake a long voyage.
He committed the Peri to the care of an aged matron in whom he had the
greatest confidence, and to whom he revealed the secret of her real
nature, and showed the spot where he had concealed her raiment. He
then "placed the foot of departure in the stirrup of travel," and set
out on his journey. The Peri was now overwhelmed with sorrow for his
absence, or for some more secret cause, and continually uttered
expressions of regret. The old woman sought to console her, assuring
her that "the dark night of absence would soon come to an end, and the
bright dawn of interview gleam from the horizon of divine bounty." One
day when the Peri had bathed, and was drying her amber-scented tresses
with a corner of her veil, the old woman burst out into expressions of
admiration at her dazzling beauty. "Ah, nurse," replied she, "though
you think my present charms great, yet had you seen me in my native
raiment, you would have witnessed what beauty and grace the Divine
Creator has bestowed upon Peries; for know that we are among the most
finished portraits on the tablets of existence. If then thou desirest
to behold the skill of the divine artist, and admire the wonders of
creation, bring the robes which my husband has kept concealed, that I
may wear them for an instant, and show thee my native beauty, the like
of which no human eye, but my lord's, hath gazed upon."

The simple woman assented, and fetched the robes and presented them to
the Peri. She put them on, and then, like a bird escaped from the
cage, spread her wings, and, crying Farewell, soared to the sky and
was seen no more. When the merchant returned from his voyage "and
found no signs of the rose of enjoyment on the tree of hope, but the
lamp of bliss extinguished in the chamber of felicity, he became as
one Peri-stricken,[37] a recluse in the cell of madness. Banished
from the path of understanding, he remained lost to all the bounties
of fortune and the useful purposes of life."

       *       *       *       *       *

The Peri has been styled "the fairest creation of poetical imagination."
No description can equal the beauty of the female Peri,[38] and the
highest compliment a Persian poet can pay a lady is to liken her to one
of these lovely aerial beings.[39] Thus Sâdee, in the lines prefixed to
this section, declares that only the beauty of a Peri can be compared
with that of the fair one he addresses; and more lately, Aboo Taleeb
Khân says to Lady Elgin, as he is translated by M. von Hammer,[40]

      The sun, the moon, the Peries, and mankind,
      Compared with you, do far remain behind;
      For sun and moon have never form so mild,
      The Peries have, but roam in deserts wild.

Sir W. Ouseley is at a loss what to compare them to. They do not, he
thinks, resemble the Angels, the Cherubim and Seraphim of the Hebrews,
the Dæmons of the Platonists, or the Genii of the Romans; neither do
they accord with the Houri of the Arabs. Still less do they agree with
the Fairies of Shakspeare; for though fond of fragrance, and living
on that sweet essential food, we never find them employed in

      Killing cankers in the musk-rose buds,

or obliged

      To serve the fairy queen
      To dew her orbs upon the green.

Neither is their stature ever represented so diminutive as to make
key-holes pervious to their flight, or the bells of flowers their
habitations. But Milton's sublime idea of a 'faery vision,' he thinks,
corresponds more nearly with what the Persian poets have conceived of
the Peries.

      Their port was more than human, as they stood;
      I took it for a faery vision
      Of some gay creatures of the element
      That in the colours of the rainbow live
      And play i' the plighted clouds. I was awestruck,
      And as I pass'd I worshipp'd.--_Comus._

"I can venture to affirm," concludes Sir William gallantly, "that he
will entertain a pretty just idea of a Persian Peri, who shall fix his
eyes on the charms of a beloved and beautiful mistress."

If poetic imagination exhausted itself in portraying the beauty of the
Peries, it was no less strenuous in heaping attributes of deformity on
the Deevs. They may well vie in ugliness with the devils of our
forefathers. "At Lahore, in the Mogul's palace," says William Finch,
"are pictures of Dews, or Dives, intermixed in most ugly shapes, with
long horns, staring eyes, shaggy hair, great fangs, ugly paws, long
tails, with such horrible difformity and deformity, that I wonder the
poor women are not frightened therewith."[41]

Such then is the Peri-system of the Mohammedan Persians, in which the
influence of Islâm is clearly perceptible, the very names of their
fabled country and its kings being Arabic. Had we it as it was before
the Arabs forced their law on Persia, we should doubtless find it more
consistent in all its parts, more light, fanciful, and etherial.

FOOTNOTES:

[22] See D'Herbelot, Richardson's Dissertation, Ouseley's Persian
Miscellanies, Wahl in the Mines de l'Orient, Lane, Thousand and One
Nights, Forbes, Hatim Taï, etc., etc.

[23] Ormuzd employed himself for three thousand years in making the
heavens and their celestial inhabitants, the Ferohers, which are the
angels and the unembodied souls of all intelligent beings. All nature
is filled with Ferohers, or guardian angels, who watch over its
various departments, and are occupied in performing their various
tasks for the benefit of mankind.--_Erskine on the Sacred Books and
Religion of the Parsis, in the Transactions of the Literary Society of
Bombay_, vol. ii. p. 318. The Feroher bears in fact a very strong
resemblance to the Genius of the ancient Roman religion: see our
Mythology of Greece and Italy.

[24] This word is pronounced _Perry_ or rather _Parry_.

[25] [Illustration] Hence it follows that the very plausible idea of
the Peri having been the same with the Feroher cannot be correct.

[26] Translated by Mr. Duncan Forbes. It is to be regretted that he
has employed the terms Fairies and Demons instead of Peries and Deevs.

[27] See Lane, Thousand and One Nights, i. p. 21, _seq._

[28] The Cahermân Nâmeh is a romance in Turkish. Cahermân was the
father of Sâm, the grandfather of the celebrated Roostem.

[29] It is in the Cahermân Nâmeh that this circumstance occurs.

[30] [Illustration] The Tahmuras Nâmeh is also in Turkish. It and the
Cahermân Nâmeh are probably translations from the Persian. As far as
we are aware, Richardson is the only orientalist who mentions these
two romances.

[31] [Illustration] It signifies 'thirty birds' and is thought to be
the roc of the Arabs. The poet Sâdee, to express the bounty of the
Almighty says

[Illustration]

      His liberal board he spreadeth out so wide,
      On Kâf the Seemurgh is with food supplied.

The Seemurgh probably belongs to the original mythology of Persia, for
she appears in the early part of the Shâh Nâmeh. When Zâl was born to
Sâm Nerimân, his hair proved to be white. The father regarding this as
a proof of Deev origin, resolved to expose him, and sent him for that
purpose to Mount Elburz. Here the poor babe lay crying and sucking his
fingers till he was found by the Seemurgh, who abode on the summit of
Elburz, as she was looking for food for her young ones. But God put
pity into her heart, and she took him to her nest and reared him with
her young. As he grew up, the caravans that passed by, spread the fame
of his beauty and his strength, and a vision having informed Sâm that
he was his son, he set out for Elburz to claim him from the Seemurgh.
It was with grief that Zâl quitted the maternal nest. The Seemurgh,
when parting with her foster-son, gave him one of her feathers, and
bade him, whenever he should be in trouble or danger, to cast it into
the fire, and he would have proof of her power; and she charged him at
the same time strictly never to forget his nurse.

[32] See _Arabian Romance_.

[33] [Illustration] a pearl. Life, soul also, according to Wilkins.

[34] Ferdousee's great heroic poem. It is remarkable that the Peries
are very rarely spoken of in this poem. They merely appear in it with
the birds and beasts among the subjects of the first Iranian monarchs.

[35] Chap. xx. translation of Jonathan Scott, 1799.

[36] See below, _Shetland_.

[37] _i. e._ possessed, insane. It is like the νυμφοληπτος of the
Greeks.

[38] It must be recollected that the Peries are of both sexes: we have
just spoken of Peri _kings_, and of the _brothers_ of Merjân.

[39] In the Shâh Nâmeh it is said of Prince Siyawush, that when he was
born he was _bright as a Peri_. We find the poets everywhere comparing
female beauty to that of superior beings. The Greeks and Romans
compared a lovely woman to Venus, Diana, or the nymphs; the Persians
to a Peri; the ancient Scandinavians would say she was Frith sem
Alfkone, "fair as an Alf-woman;" and an Anglo-Saxon poet says of
Judith that she was _Elf-sheen_, or fair as an Elf. In the Lay of
Gugemer it is said,

      Dedenz la Dame unt trovée
      Ki de biauté resanbloit _Fée_.

The same expression occurs in Méon (3, 412); and in the Romant de la
Rose we meet, _jure que plus belle est que fée_ (10, 425). In the
Pentamerone it is said of a king's son, _lo quale essenno bello comme
a no fato_.

[40] Mines de l'Orient, vol. iii. p. 40. To make his version
completely English, M. von Hammer uses the word Fairies; we have
ventured to change it.

[41] In Purchas' Pilgrims, vol. i., quoted by Sir W. Ouseley.




                           ARABIAN ROMANCE.

The Prophet is the centre round which every thing connected with Arabia
revolves. The period preceding his birth is regarded and designated as
the times of ignorance, and our knowledge of the ancient Arabian
mythology comprises little more than he has been pleased to transmit to
us. The Arabs, however, appear at no period of their history to have
been a people addicted to fanciful invention. Their minds are acute and
logical, and their poetry is that of the heart rather than of the fancy.
They dwell with fondness on the joys and pains of love, and with
enthusiasm describe the courage and daring deeds of warriors, or in
moving strains pour forth the plaintive elegy; but for the description
of gorgeous palaces and fragrant gardens, or for the wonders of magic,
they are indebted chiefly to their Persian neighbours.[42]

What classes of beings the popular creed may have recognised before
the establishment of Islâm we have no means of ascertaining.[43] The
Suspended Poems, and Antar, give us little or no information; we only
know that the tales of Persia were current among them, and were
listened to with such avidity as to rouse the indignation of the
Prophet. We must, therefore, quit the tents of the Bedoween, and the
valleys of 'Araby the Blest,' and accompany the khaleefehs to their
magnificent capital on the Tigris, whence emanated all that has thrown
such a halo of splendour around the genius and language of Arabia. It
is in this seat of empire that we must look to meet with the origin of
the marvels of Arabian literature.

Transplanted to a rich and fertile soil, the sons of the desert
speedily abandoned their former simple mode of life; and the court of
Bagdad equalled or surpassed in magnificence any thing that the East
has ever witnessed. Genius, whatever its direction, was encouraged and
rewarded, and the musician and the story-teller shared with the
astronomer and historian the favour of the munificent khaleefehs. The
tales which had amused the leisure of the Shahpoors and Yezdejirds
were not disdained by the Haroons and Almansoors. The expert narrators
altered them so as to accord with the new faith. And it was thus,
probably, that the delightful Thousand and One Nights[44] were
gradually produced and modified.

As the Genii or Jinn[45] are prominent actors in these tales, where
they take the place of the Persian Peries and Deevs, we will here give
some account of them.

According to Arabian writers, there is a species of beings named Jinn
or Jân (Jinnee _m._, Jinniyeh _f. sing._), which were created and
occupied the earth several thousand years before Adam. A tradition
from the Prophet says that they were formed of "smokeless fire,"
_i.e._ the fire of the wind Simoom. They were governed by a succession
of forty, or, as others say, seventy-two monarchs, named Suleyman, the
last of whom, called Jân-ibn-Jân, built the Pyramids of Egypt.
Prophets were sent from time to time to instruct and admonish them;
but on their continued disobedience, an army of angels appeared, who
drove them from the earth to the regions of the islands, making many
prisoners, and slaughtering many more. Among the prisoners, was a
young Jinnee, named 'Azâzeel, or El-Hârith (afterwards called Iblees,
from his _despair_), who grew up among the angels, and became at last
their chief. When Adam was created, God commanded the angels to
worship him; and they all obeyed except Iblees, who, for his
disobedience, was turned into a Sheytân or Devil, and he became the
father of the Sheytâns.[46]

The Jinn are not immortal; they are to survive mankind, but to die
before the general resurrection. Even at present many of them are slain
by other Jinn, or by men; but chiefly by shooting-stars hurled at them
from Heaven. The fire of which they were created, circulates in their
veins instead of blood, and when they receive a mortal wound, it bursts
forth and consumes them to ashes. They eat and drink, and propagate
their species. Sometimes they unite with human beings, and the offspring
partakes of the nature of both parents. Some of the Jinn are obedient to
the will of God, and believers in the Prophet, answering to the Peries
of the Persians; others are like the Deevs, disobedient and malignant.
Both kinds are divided into communities, and ruled over by princes. They
have the power to make themselves visible and invisible at pleasure.
They can assume the form of various animals, especially those of
serpents, cats, and dogs. When they appear in the human form, that of
the good Jinnee is usually of great beauty; that of the evil one, of
hideous deformity, and sometimes of gigantic size.

When the Zôba'ah, a whirlwind that raises the sand in the form of a
pillar of tremendous height, is seen sweeping over the desert, the
Arabs, who believe it to be caused by the flight of an evil Jinnee,
cry, Iron! Iron! (_Hadeed!_ _Hadeed!_) or Iron! thou unlucky one!
(_Hadeed! yâ meshoom!_) of which metal the Jinn are believed to have a
great dread. Or else they cry, God is most great! (_Allâhu akbar!_)
They do the same when they see a water-spout at sea; for they assign
the same cause to its origin.[47]

The chief abode of the Jinn of both kinds is the Mountains of Kâf,
already described. But they also are dispersed through the earth, and
they occasionally take up their residence in baths, wells, latrinæ,
ovens, and ruined houses.[48] They also frequent the sea and rivers,
cross-roads, and market-places. They ascend at times to the confines
of the lowest heaven, and by listening there to the conversation of
the angels, they obtain some knowledge of futurity, which they impart
to those men who, by means of talismans or magic arts, have been able
to reduce them to obedience.[49]

The following are anecdotes of the Jinn, given by historians of
eminence.[50]

It is related, says El-Kasweenee, by a certain narrator of traditions,
that he descended into a valley with his sheep, and a wolf carried off
a ewe from among them; and he arose and raised his voice, and cried,
"O inhabitant of the valley!" whereupon he heard a voice saying, "O
wolf, restore him his sheep!" and the wolf came with the ewe and left
her, and departed.

Ben Shohnah relates, that in the year 456 of the Hejra, in the reign
of Kaiem, the twenty-sixth khaleefeh of the house of Abbas, a report
was raised in Bagdad, which immediately spread throughout the whole
province of Irak, that some Turks being out hunting saw in the desert
a black tent, beneath which there was a number of people of both
sexes, who were beating their cheeks, and uttering loud cries, as is
the custom in the East when any one is dead. Amidst their cries they
heard these words--_The great king of the Jinn is dead, woe to this
country!_ and then there came out a great troop of women, followed by
a number of other rabble, who proceeded to a neighbouring cemetery,
still beating themselves in token of grief and mourning.

The celebrated historian Ebn Athir relates, that when he was at Mosul
on the Tigris, in the year 600 of the Hejra, there was in that country
an epidemic disease of the throat; and it was said that a woman, of
the race of the Jinn, having lost her son, all those who did not
condole with her on account of his death were attacked with that
disease; so that to be cured of it men and women assembled, and with
all their strength cried out, _O mother of Ankood, excuse us! Ankood
is dead, and we did not mind it!_

FOOTNOTES:

[42] Compare Antar and the Suspended Poems (translated by Sir W.
Jones) with the later Arabic works. Antar, though written by Asmai the
court-poet of Haroon-er-Rasheed, gives the manners and ideas of the
Arabs of the Desert.

[43] The Jinn are mentioned in the Kurân and also in Antar.

[44] See Tales and Popular Fictions, p. 37, _seq._ Lane, Thousand and
One Nights, _passim_.

[45] Genius and Jinn, like Fairy and Peri, is a curious coincidence.
The Arabian Jinnee bears no resemblance whatever to the Roman Genius.

[46] "When we said unto the Angels, Worship ye Adam, and they
worshiped except Iblees (who) was of the Jinn."--Kurân. chap. xviii.
v. 48. Worship is here prostration. The reply of Iblees was, "Thou
hast created _me_ of fire, and hast created _him_ of earth."--_Ib._
vii. 11; xxxviii. 77.

[47] It was the belief of the Irish peasantry, that whirlwinds of dust
on the roads were raised by the Fairies, who were then on a journey. On
such occasions, unlike the Arabs, they used to raise their hats and say,
"God speed you, gentlemen!" For the power of iron, see _Scandinavia_.

[48] The Arabs when they pour water on the ground, let down a bucket
into a well, enter a bath, etc., say, "Permission!" (_Destoor!_) or,
Permission, ye blessed! (_Destoor, yâ mubârakeen!_)

[49] For the preceding account of the Jinn, we are wholly indebted to
Lane's valuable translation of the Thousand and One Nights, i. 30,
_seq._

[50] The first is given by Lane, the other two by D'Herbelot.




                         MIDDLE-AGE ROMANCE.

      Ecco quei che le carte empion di sogni,
      Lancilotto, Tristano e gli altri erranti,
      Onde conven che il volgo errante agogni.
                                   PETRARCA.


Few will now endeavour to trace romantic and marvellous fiction to any
individual source. An extensive survey of the regions of fancy and their
productions will incline us rather to consider the mental powers of man
as having an uniform operation under every sky, and under every form of
political existence, and to acknowledge that identity of invention is
not more to be wondered at than identity of action. It is strange how
limited the powers of the imagination are. Without due consideration of
the subject, it might be imagined that her stores of materials and
powers of combination are boundless; yet reflection, however slight,
will convince us that here also 'there is nothing new,' and charges of
plagiarism will in the majority of cases be justly suspected to be
devoid of foundation. The finest poetical expressions and similes of
occidental literature meet us when we turn our attention to the East,
and a striking analogy pervades the tales and fictions of every region.
The reason is, the materials presented to the inventive faculties are
scanty. The power of combination is therefore limited to a narrow
compass, and similar combinations must hence frequently occur.

Yet still there is a high degree of probability in the supposition of
the luxuriant fictions of the East having through Spain and Syria
operated on European fancy. The poetry and romance of the middle ages
are notoriously richer in detail, and more gorgeous in invention, than
the more correct and chaste strains of Greece and Latium; the island
of Calypso, for example, is in beauty and variety left far behind by
the retreats of the fairies of romance. Whence arises this difference?
No doubt

      When ancient chivalry display'd
      The pomp of her heroic games,
      And crested knights and tissued dames
      Assembled at the clarion's call,
      In some proud castle's high-arch'd hall,

that a degree of pomp and splendour met the eye of the minstrel and
romancer on which the bards of the simple republics of ancient times had
never gazed, and this might account for the difference between the
poetry of ancient and of middle-age Europe. Yet, notwithstanding, we
discover such an Orientalism in the latter as would induce us to
acquiesce in the hypothesis of the fictions and the manner of the East
having been early transmitted to the West; and it is highly probable
that along with more splendid habits of life entered a more lavish use
of the gorgeous stores laid open to the plastic powers of fiction. The
tales of Arabia were undoubtedly known in Europe from a very early
period. The romance of Cleomades and Claremonde, which was written in
the thirteenth century,[51] not merely resembles, but actually is the
story of the Enchanted Horse in the Thousand and One Nights. Another
tale in the same collection, The two Sisters who envied their younger
Sister, may be found in Straparola, and is also a popular story in
Germany; and in the Pentamerone and other collections of tales published
long before the appearance of M. Galland's translation of the Eastern
ones, numerous traces of an oriental origin may be discerned. The
principal routes they came by may also be easily shown. The necessities
of commerce and the pilgrimage to Mecca occasioned a constant
intercourse between the Moors of Spain and their fellow-sectaries of the
East; and the Venetians, who were the owners of Candia, carried on an
extensive trade with Syria and Egypt. It is worthy of notice, that the
Notti Piacevoli of Straparola were first published in Venice, and that
Basile, the author of the Pentamerone, spent his youth in Candia, and
was afterwards a long time at Venice. Lastly, pilgrims were notorious
narrators of marvels, and each, as he visited the Holy Land, was anxious
to store his memory with those riches, the diffusal of which procured
him attention and hospitality at home.

We think, therefore, that European romance may be indebted, though not
for the name, yet for some of the attributes and exploits of its
fairies to Asia. This is more especially the case with the romances
composed or turned into prose in the fourteenth, fifteenth, and
sixteenth centuries; for in the earlier ones the Fairy Mythology is
much more sparingly introduced.

But beside the classic and oriental prototypes of its fairies, romance
may have had an additional one in the original mythology of the Celtic
tribes, of which a being very nearly allied to the fay of romance
appears to have formed a part. Such were the damoiselles who bestowed
their favours upon Lanval and Graelent. This subject shall, however,
be more fully considered under the head of Brittany.

Romances of chivalry, it is well known, may be divided into three
principal classes; those of Arthur and his Round Table, of Charlemagne
and his Paladins, and those of Amadis and Palmerin, and their
descendants and kindred. In the first, with the exception of Isaie le
Triste, which appears to be a work of the fifteenth century, the
fairies appear but seldom; the second exhibits them in all their
brilliancy and power; in the third, which all belong to the literature
of Spain, the name at least does not occur, but the enchantress
Urganda la Desconecida seems equal in power to La Dame du Lac, in the
romance of Lancelot du Lac.[52]

Among the incidents of the fine old romance just alluded to,[53] is
narrated the death of King Ban, occasioned by grief at the sight of
his castle taken and in flames through the treachery of his seneschal.
His afflicted queen had left her new-born infant on the margin of a
lake, while she went to soothe the last moments of the expiring
monarch. On her return, she finds her babe in the arms of a beautiful
lady. She entreats her pathetically to restore the orphan babe; but,
without heeding her entreaties, or even uttering a single word, she
moves to the edge of the lake, into which she plunges and disappears
with the child. The lady was the celebrated Dame du Lac: the child was
Lancelot, afterwards styled Du Lac. The name of the lady was Vivienne,
and she had dwelt "en la marche de la petite Bretaigne." Merlin the
demon-born, the renowned enchanter, became enamoured of her, and
taught her a portion of his art; and the ill-return she made is well
known in the annals of female treachery.[54] In consequence of the
knowledge thus acquired she became a fairy; for the author informs us
that "the damsel who carried Lancelot to the lake was a fay, and in
those times all those women were called fays who had to do with
enchantments and charms--and there were many of them then, principally
in Great Britain--and knew the power and virtues of words, of stones,
and of herbs, by which they were kept in youth and in beauty, and in
great riches, as they devised."[55]

The lake was a _feerie_, an illusion raised by the art which the devil
had taught Merlin, and Merlin the lady. The romance says: "The lady
who reared him conversed only in the forest, and dwelt on the summit
of a hill, which was much lower than that on which King Ban had died.
In this place, where it seemed that the wood was large and deep, the
lady had many fair houses, and very rich; and in the plain beneath
there was a gentle little river well-stored with fish; and this place
was so secret and so concealed, that right difficult was it for any
one to find, for the semblance of the said lake covered it so that it
could not be perceived."[56]

When her young _protégé_ had gone through his course of knightly
education, she took him to King Arthur's court, and presented him
there; and his subsequent history is well known.

In the romance of Maugis d'Aygremont et de Vivian son Frère, when
Tapinel and the female slave had stolen the two children of Duke Bevis
of Aygremont, the former sold to the wife of Sorgalant the child which
he had taken, whose name was Esclarmonde, and who was about fifteen
years of age, and was "plus belle et plus blanche qu'une fée." The
slave having laid herself to rest under a white-thorn (_aube-spine_),
was devoured by a lion and a leopard, who killed one another in their
dispute for the infant. "And the babe lay under the thorn, and cried
loudly, during which it came to pass that Oriande la Fée, who abode at
Rosefleur with four other fays, came straight to this thorn; for every
time she passed by there she used to repose under that white-thorn.
She got down, and hearing the child cry, she came that way and looked
at him, and said, 'By the god in whom we believe, this child here is
lying badly (_mal gist_), and this shall be his name;' and from that
time he was always called Maugis."

Oriande la Fée brought the child home with her and her damsels; and
having examined him, and found, by a precious ring that was in his ear,
that he was of noble lineage, "she prayed our Lord that he would be
pleased of his grace to make known his origin (_nation_)." When she had
finished her prayer, she sent for her nephew Espiet, "who was a dwarf,
and was not more than three feet high, and had his hair yellow as fine
gold, and looked like a child of seven years, but he was more than a
hundred; and he was one of the falsest knaves in the world, and knew
every kind of enchantment." Espiet informed her whose child he was; and
Oriande, having prayed to our Lord to preserve the child, took him with
her to her castle of Rosefleur, where she had him baptised and named
Maugis. She and her damsels reared him with great tenderness; and when
he was old enough she put him under the care of her brother Baudris,
"who knew all the arts of magic and necromancy, and was of the age of a
hundred years;" and he taught what he knew to Maugis.

When Maugis was grown a man, the Fay Oriande clad him in arms, and he
became her _ami_; and she loved him "de si grand amour qu'elle doute
fort qu'il ne se departe d'avecques elle."

Maugis shortly afterwards achieved the adventure of gaining the
enchanted horse Bayard, in the isle of Boucaut. Of Bayard it is said,
when Maugis spoke to him, "Bayard estoit _feyé_, si entendoit aussi
bien Maugis comme s'il (_Bayard_) eust parlé." On his return from the
island, Maugis conquers and slays the Saracen admiral Anthenor, who
had come to win the lands and castle of Oriande, and gains the sword
Flamberge (Floberge), which, together with Bayard, he afterwards gave
to his cousin Renaud.

In Perceforest, Sebille la Dame du Lac, whose castle was surrounded by
a river on which lay so dense a fog that no one could see across the
water, though not called so, was evidently a fay. The fortnight that
Alexander the Great and Floridas abode with her, to be cured of their
wounds, seemed to them but as one night. During that night, "la dame
demoura enceinte du roy dung filz, dont de ce lignage yssit le roi
Artus."[57]

In the same romance[58] we are told that "en lysle de Zellande jadis fut
demourante une _faee_ qui estoit appellee Morgane." This Morgane was
very intimate with "ung esperit (named Zephir) qui repairoit es lieux
acquatiques, mais jamais nestoit veu que de nuyt." Zephir had been in
the habit of repairing to Morgane la Faee from her youth up, "car elle
estoit malicieuse et subtille et tousjours avoit moult desire a
aucunement sçavoir des enchantemens et des conjurations." He had
committed to her charge the young Passelyon and his cousin Bennucq, to
be brought up, and Passelyon was detected in an intrigue with the young
Morgane, daughter of the fay. The various adventures of this amorous
youth form one of the most interesting portions of the romance.

In Tristan de Leonois,[59] king Meliadus, the father of Tristan, is
drawn to a chase _par mal engin et negromance_ of a fairy who was in
love with him, and carries him off, and from whose thraldom he was
only released by the power of the great enchanter Merlin.

In Parthenopex of Blois,[60] the beautiful fairy Melior, whose magic
bark carries the knight to her secret island, is daughter to the
emperor of Greece.

In no romance whatever is the fairy machinery more pleasingly
displayed than in Sir Launfal, a metrical romance, composed[61] by
Thomas Chestre, in the reign of Henry VI.

Before, however, we give the analysis of this poem, which will be
followed by that of another, and by our own imitations of this kind of
verse, we will take leave to offer some observations on a subject that
seems to us to be in general but little understood, namely, the
structure of our old English verse, and the proper mode of reading it.

Our forefathers, like their Gotho-German kindred, regulated their verse
by the number of accents, not of syllables. The foot, therefore, as we
term it, might consist of one, two, three, or even four syllables,
provided it had only one strongly marked accent. Further, the accent of
a word might be varied, chiefly by throwing it on the last syllable, as
_natúre_ for _náture_, _honoúr_ for _hónour_, etc. (the Italians, by the
way, throw it back when two accents come into collision, as, _Il Pástor
Fido_[62]); they also sounded what the French call the feminine e of
their words, as, _In oldè dayès of the King Artoúr_; and so well known
seems this practice to have been, that the copyists did not always write
this _e_, relying on the skill of the reader to supply it.[63] There was
only one restriction, namely, that it was never to come before a vowel,
unless where there was a pause. In this way the poetry of the middle
ages was just as regular as that of the present day; and Chaucer, when
properly read, is fully as harmonious as Pope. But the editors of our
ancient poems, with the exception of Tyrwhitt, seem to have been
ignorant or regardless of this principle; and in the Canterbury Tales
alone is the verse properly arranged.

We will now proceed to the analysis of the romance of Sir Launfal.

Sir Launfal was one of the knights of Arthur, who loved him well, and
made him his steward. But when Arthur married the beautiful but frail
Gwennere, daughter of Ryon, king of Ireland, Launfal and other
virtuous knights manifested their dissatisfaction when she came to
court. The queen was aware of this, and, at the first entertainment
given by the king,

        The queen yaf (_gave_) giftès for the nones,
        Gold and silver, precious stones,
        Her courtesy to kythe (_show_):
      Everiche knight she yaf broche other (_or_) ring,
      But Sir Launfal she yaf no thing,
        That grieved him many a sythe (_time_).

Launfal, under the feigned pretext of the illness of his father, takes
leave of the king, and retires to Karlyoun, where he lives in great
poverty. Having obtained the loan of a horse, one holyday, he rode into
a fair forest, where, overcome by the heat, he lay down under the shade
of a tree, and meditated on his wretched state. In this situation he is
attracted by the approach of two fair damsels splendidly arrayed.

      Their faces were white as snow on down,
      Their rode[64] was red, their eyne were brown;
        I saw never none swiche.
      That one bare of gold a basín,
      That other a towel white and fine,
        Of silk that was good and riche;
      Their kerchevès were welè skire (_clear_)
      Araid (_striped_) with richè goldè wire--
        Launfal began to siche--
      They comè to him over the hoth (_heath_),
      He was curteís, and against them goeth,
        And greet them mildeliche.

They greet him courteously in return, and invite him to visit their
mistress, whose pavilion is at hand. Sir Launfal complies with the
invitation, and they proceed to where the pavilion lies. Nothing could
exceed this pavilion in magnificence. It was surmounted by an _erne_
or eagle, adorned with precious stones so rich, that the poet
declares, and we believe, that neither Alexander nor Arthur possessed
"none swiche jewel."

      He foundè in the paviloun
      The kingès daughter of Oliroun,
        Dame Tryamour that hight;
      Her father was king of Faërie,
      Of occientè[65] fer and nigh,
        A man of mickle might.

The beauty of dame Tryamour was beyond conception.

      For heat her cloathès down she dede
      Almostè to her girdle stede (_place_),
        Than lay she uncover't;
      She was as white as lily in May,
      Or snow that snoweth in winter's day:
        He seigh (_saw_) never none so pert (_lively_).

      The redè rose, when she is new,
      Against her rode was naught of hew
        I dare well say in cert;
      Her hairè shone as goldè wire:
      May no man redè her attire,
        Ne naught well think in hert (_heart_).

This lovely dame bestows her heart on Sir Launfal, on condition of his
fidelity. As marks of her affection, she gives him a never-failing
purse and many other valuable presents, and dismisses him next morning
with the assurance, that whenever he wished to see her, his wish would
be gratified on withdrawing into a private room, where she would
instantly be with him. This information is accompanied with a charge
of profound secrecy on the subject of their loves.

The knight returns to court, and astonishes every one by his riches
and his munificence. He continues happy in the love of the fair
Tryamour, until an untoward adventure interrupts his bliss. One day
the queen beholds him dancing, with other knights, before her tower,
and, inspired with a sudden affection, makes amorous advances to the
knight. These passages of love are received on his part with an
indignant repulse, accompanied by a declaration more enthusiastic than
politic or courteous, that his heart was given to a dame, the foulest
of whose maidens surpassed the queen in beauty. The offence thus given
naturally effected an entire conversion in the queen's sentiments;
and, when Arthur returned from hunting, like Potiphar's wife, she
charges Launfal with attempting her honour. The charge is credited,
and the unhappy knight condemned to be burned alive, unless he shall,
against a certain day, produce that peerless beauty. The fatal day
arrives; the queen is urgent for the execution of the sentence, when
ten fair damsels, splendidly arrayed, and mounted on white palfreys,
are descried advancing toward the palace. They announce the approach
of their mistress, who soon appears, and by her beauty justifies the
assertion of her knight. Sir Launfal is instantly set at liberty, and,
vaulting on the courser his mistress had bestowed on him, and which
was held at hand by his squire, he follows her out of the town.

      The lady rode down Cardevile,
      Fer into a jolif ile,
        Oliroun that hight;[66]
      Every year upon a certain day,
      Men may heare Launfales steedè neighe,
        And him see with sight.
      He that will there axsy (_ask_) justes
      To keep his armès fro the rustes,
        In turnement other (_or_) fight,
      Dar (_need_) he never further gon;
      There he may find justès anon,
        With Sir Launfal the knight.
      Thus Launful, withouten fable,
      That noble knight of the roundè table,
        Was taken into the faërie;
      Since saw him in this land no man,
      Ne no more of him tell I ne can,
        For soothè, without lie.[67]

No romance is of more importance to the present subject than the
charming Huon de Bordeaux.[68] Generally known, as the story should
be, through Wieland's poem and Mr. Sotheby's translation, we trust
that we shall be excused for giving some passages from the original
French romance, as Le petit roy Oberon appears to form a kind of
connecting link between the fairies of romance and the Elves or Dwarfs
of the Teutonic nations. When we come to Germany it will be our
endeavour to show how the older part of Huon de Bordeaux has been
taken from the story of Otnit in the Heldenbuch, where the dwarf king
Elberich performs nearly the same services to Otnit that Oberon does
to Huon, and that, in fact, the name Oberon is only Elberich slightly
altered.[69]

Huon, our readers must know, encounters in Syria an old follower of his
family named Gerasmes; and when consulting with him on the way to
Babylon he is informed by him that there are two roads to that city, the
one long and safe, the other short and dangerous, leading through a
wood, "which is sixteen leagues long, but is so full of Fairie and
strange things that few people pass there without being lost or stopt,
because therewithin dwelleth a king, Oberon the Fay. He is but three
feet in height; he is all humpy; but he hath an angelic face; there is
no mortal man who should see him who would not take pleasure in looking
at him, he hath so fair a face. Now you will hardly have entered the
wood, if you are minded to pass that way, when he will find how to speak
to you, but of a surety if you speak to him, you are lost for evermore,
without ever returning; nor will it lie in you, for if you pass through
the wood, whether straightforwards or across it, you will always find
him before you, and it will be impossible for you to escape at all
without speaking to him, for his words are so pleasant to hear, that
there is no living man who can escape him. And if so be that he should
see that you are nowise inclined to speak to him, he will be passing
wroth with you. For before you have left the wood he will cause it so to
rain on you, to blow, to hail, and to make such right marvellous storms,
thunder and lightning, that you will think the world is going to end.
Then you will think that you see a great flowing river before you,
wondrously black and deep; but know, sire, that right easily will you be
able to go through it without wetting the feet of your horse, for it is
nothing but a phantom and enchantments that the dwarf will make for you,
because he wishes to have you with him, and if it so be that you keep
firm to your resolve, not to speak to him, you will be surely able to
escape," etc.[70]

Huon for some time followed the sage advice of Gerasmes, and avoided
Oberon le fayé. The storms of rain and thunder came on as predicted,
the magic horn set them all dancing, and at last the knight determined
to await and accost the dwarf.

"The Dwarf Fay came riding through the wood, and was clad in a robe so
exceeding fine and rich, that it would be a marvel to relate it for
the great and marvellous riches that were upon it; for so much was
there of precious stones, that the great lustre that they cast was
like unto the sun when he shineth full clear. And therewithal he bare
a right fair bow in his fist, so rich that no one could value it, so
fine it was; and the arrow that he bare was of such sort and manner,
that there was no beast in the world that he wished to have, that it
did not stop at that arrow. He had at his neck a rich horn, which was
hung by two rich strings of fine gold."[71]

This horn was wrought by four Fairies, who had endowed it with its
marvellous properties.

Oberon, on bringing Huon to speech, informed him that he was the son of
Julius Cæsar, and the lady of the Hidden Island, afterwards called
Cephalonia. This lady's first love had been Florimont of Albania, a
charming young prince, but being obliged to part from him, she married,
and had a son named Neptanebus, afterwards King of Egypt, who begot
Alexander the Great, who afterwards put him to death. Seven hundred
years later, Cæsar, on his way to Thessaly, was entertained in
Cephalonia by the lady of the isle, and he loved her, for she told him
he would defeat Pompey, and he became the father of Oberon. Many a noble
prince and noble fairy were at the birth, but one Fairy was unhappily
not invited, and the gift she gave was that he should not grow after his
third year, but repenting, she gave him to be the most beautiful of
nature's works. Other Fairies gave him the gift of penetrating the
thoughts of men, and of transporting himself and others from place to
place by a wish; and the faculty, by like easy means, of raising and
removing castles, palaces, gardens, banquets, and such like. He further
informed the knight, that he was king and lord of Mommur; and that when
he should leave this world his seat was prepared in Paradise--for
Oberon, like his prototype Elberich, was a veritable Christian.

When after a variety of adventures Oberon comes to Bordeaux to the aid
of Huon, and effects a reconciliation between him and Charlemagne, he
tells Huon that the time is at hand that he should leave this world
and take the seat prepared for him in Paradise, "en faerie ne veux
plus demeurer." He directs him to appear before him within four years
in his city of Mommur, where he will crown him as his successor.

Here the story properly ends, but an addition of considerable magnitude
has been made by a later hand, in which the story is carried on.

Many are the perils which Huon encounters before the period appointed
by Oberon arrives. At length, however, he and the fair Esclairmonde
(the Rezia of Wieland) come to Mommur. Here, in despite of Arthur
(who, with his sister Morgue la faée and a large train, arrives at
court, and sets himself in opposition to the will of the monarch, but
is reduced to order by Oberon's threat of turning him into a _Luyton
de Mer_[72]), Huon is crowned king of all Faerie "tant du pais des
Luytons comme des autres choses secretes reservées dire aux hommes."
Arthur gets the kingdom of Bouquant, and that which Sybilla held of
Oberon, and all the Faeries that were in the plains of Tartary. The
good king Oberon then gave Huon his last instructions, recommending
his officers and servants to him, and charging him to build an abbey
before the city, in the mead which the dwarf had loved, and there to
bury him. Then, falling asleep in death, a glorious troop of angels,
scattering odours as they flew, conveyed his soul to Paradise.

Isaie le Triste is probably one of the latest romances, certainly
posterior to Huon de Bordeaux, for the witty but deformed dwarf Tronc,
who is so important a personage in it, is, we are told, Oberon, whom
Destiny compelled to spend a certain period in that form. And we
shall, as we have promised, prove Oberon to be the handsome dwarf-king
Elberich. In Isaie the Faery ladies approach to the Fées of Perrault,
and Madame D'Aulnoy. Here, as at the birth of Oberon and of Ogier le
Danois, they interest themselves for the new-born child, and bestow
their gifts upon it. The description in this romance of the manner in
which the old hermit sees them occupied about the infant Isaie is very
pleasing. It was most probably Fairies of this kind, and not the
diminutive Elves, that Milton had in view when writing these lines:

      Good luck betide thee, son, for, at thy birth,
      The Faery ladies danced upon the hearth.
      Thy drowsy nurse hath sworn she did them spy
      Come tripping to the room where thou didst lie,
      And, sweetly singing round about thy bed,
      Strew all their blessings on thy sleeping head.


The description of the Vergier des Fées in Isaie le Triste, and of the
beautiful valley in which it was situated, may rival in richness and
luxuriancy similar descriptions in Spenser and the Italian poets.[73]

We have now, we trust, abundantly proved our position of the Fairies
of romance being, at least at the commencement, only 'human mortals,'
endowed with superhuman powers, though we may perceive that, as the
knowledge of Oriental fiction increased, the Fairies began more and
more to assume the character of a distinct species. Our position will
acquire additional strength when in the course of our inquiry we
arrive at France and Italy.

Closely connected with the Fairies is the place of their abode, the
region to which they convey the mortals whom they love, 'the happy
lond of Faery.'

FOOTNOTES:

[51] On the subjects mentioned in this paragraph, see Tales and
Popular Fictions, chap. ii. and iii.

[52] In the Amadigi of B. Tasso, she is La Fata Urganda.

[53] Lancelot is regarded as probably the earliest prose romance of
chivalry. It was first printed in 1494. The metrical romance called La
Charrette, of which Lancelot is the hero, was begun by Chrestien de
Troyes, who died in 1191, and finished by Geoffrey de Ligny. We may
here observe that almost all the French romances of chivalry were
written originally in verse in the twelfth and thirteenth centuries,
principally by Chrestien de Troyes and Huon de Villeneuve. The prose
romances in general were made from them in the fifteenth century.

[54]

      For while it was in hand, by loving of an elf,
      For all his wondrous skill was cozened of himself:
      For walking with his Fay, her to the rock he brought,
      In which he oft before his nigromancies wrought.
      And going in thereat, his magics to have shown,
      She stopt the cavern's mouth with an enchanted stone,
      Whose cunning strongly crossed, amazed while he did stand,
      She captive him conveyed unto the Fairy-land.
                 Drayton, _Poly-Olb._ Song IV.--See above, p. 2.


[55] La damoiselle qui Lancelot porta au lac estoit une _fée_, et en
cellui temps estoient appellées _fees_ toutes celles qui
sentremcloient denchantements et de charmes, et moult en estoit pour
lors principallement en la Grand Bretaigne, et savoient la force et la
vertu des parolles, des pierres, et des herbes, parquoi elles estoient
en jeunesse, et en beaulte, et en grandes richesses, comment elles
divisoient.

[56] La dame qui le nourissoit ne conversoit que en forest, et estoit au
plain de ung tertre plus bas assez que celui ou le roy Ban estoit mort:
en ce lieu ou il sembloit que le bois fust grant et parfont (_profond_)
avoit la dame moult de belles maisons et moult riches; et au plain
dessoubs y avoit une gente petite riviere moult plantureuse de poissons;
et estoit ce lieu si cele et secret que bien difficille estoit a homme
de le trouver, car la semblance du dit lac le couvroit si que il ne
pouvoit estre apperceu. And farther, La damoiselle nestoit mie seulle,
mais y avoit grande compaignie de chevaliers et de dames et damoiselles.

[57] Vol. i. ch. 42.

[58] Vol. iii. ch. 31.

[59] Tristan was written in verse by Chrestien de Troyes. The prose
romance was first printed in 1489.

[60] Parthenopex was written in French in the twelfth century,
according to Le Grand; in the thirteenth, according to Roquefort.

[61] _Composed_--for to call it, with Ellis, Ritson, and others, a
translation, would be absurd. How Ellis, who had at least read Le
Grand's and Way's Fabliaux, could say of Chestre, that he "seems to
have given a _faithful_ as well as spirited version of this old Breton
story," is surprising. It is in fact no translation, but a poem on the
adventures of Sir Launfal, founded chiefly on the Lais de Lanval and
de Graelent, in Marie de France, with considerable additions of
Chestre's own invention, or derived from other sources. These Lais
will be considered under Brittany.

[62] Thus we ourselves say _the Príncess Royal, éxtreme need_, etc.
This, by the way, is the cause why the Greeks put a grave and not an
acute accent on words accented on the last syllable, to show that it
is easily moveable.

[63] As this seems to be one of the lost arts, we will here and
elsewhere mark the feminine _e_ and the change of accent.

[64] Rode--complexion; from _red_.

[65] Occient--_occident_ or _océan_? The Gascon peasantry call the Bay
of Biscay _La Mer d'Occient_. The Spaniards say _Mar Oceano_.

[66] It is strange to find the English poet changing the Avalon of the
Lai de Lanval into the well-known island of Oléron. It is rather
strange too, that Mr. Ritson, who has a note on "Oliroun," did not
notice this.

[67] The Lai ends thus:

      Od (_avec_) li sen vait en Avalun,
      Ceo nus recuntent le Bretun;
      En une isle que mut est beaus,
      La fut ravi li dameiseaus,
      Nul humme nen ot plus parler,
      Ne jeo nen sai avant cunter.

In Graelent it is said that the horse of the knight used to return
annually to the river where he lost his master. The rest is Thomas
Chestre's own, taken probably from the well-known story in Gervase of
Tilbury.

[68] Huon, Hue, or Hullin (for he is called by these three names in
the poetic romance) is, there can be little doubt, the same person
with Yon king of Bordeaux in the Quatre Filz Aymon, another
composition of Huon de Villeneuve, and with Lo Re Ivone, prince or
duke of Guienne in Bojardo and Ariosto. See the Orl. Inn. l. i. c. iv.
st. 46. I Cinque Canti, c. v. st. 42.

[69] Otnit was supposed to have been written by Wolfram von
Eschembach, in the early part of the thirteenth century. It is
possibly much older. Huon de Bordeaux was, it is said, written in
French verse by Huon de Villeneuve, some time in the same century. It
does not appear in the list of Huon de Villeneuve's works given by
Mons. de Roquefort. At the end of the prose romance we are told that
it was written at the desire of Charles seigneur de Rochefort, and
completed on the 29th of January, 1454.

[70] Qui a de long seizes lieues, mais tant est plain de faerie et
chose estrange que peu de gens y passent qui n'y soient perdus ou
arrestez, pour ce que la dedans demeure un roi, Oberon le fayé. Il n'a
que trois pieds de hauteur; il est tout bossu; mais il a un visage
angelique; il n'est homme mortel que le voye que plaisir ne prengne a
le regarder tant a beau visage. Ja si tost ne serez entrez au bois se
par la voulez passer qu'il ne trouve maniere de parler a vous, si
ainsi que a luy parliez perdu estus a tousjours sans jamais plus
revenir; ne il ne sera en vous, car se par le bois passez, soit de
long ou de travers, vous le trouverez tousjours au devant de vous, et
vous sera impossible que eschappiez nullement que ne parliez a luy,
car ses parolles sont tant plaisantes a ouyr qu'il n'est homme mortel
qui de luy se puisse eschapper. Et se chose est qu'il voye que
nullement ne vueillez parler a luy, il sera moult troublé envers vous.
Car avant que du bois soyez parti vous fera pleuvoir, ventrer,
gresiller, et faire si tres-mervueilleux orages, tonnerres, et
esclairs, que advis vous sera que le monde doive finir. Puis vous sera
advis que par devant vous verrez une grande riviere courante, noire et
parfonde a grand merveilles; mais sachez, sire, que bien y pourrez
aller sans mouiller les pieds de vostre cheval, car ce n'est que
fantosme et enchantemens que le nain vous fera pour vous cuider avoir
avec lui, et se chose est que bien tenez propos en vous de non parler
a luy, bien pourrez eschapper, etc.

[71] Le Nain Fee s'en vint chevauchant par le bois, et estoit vestu
d'une robbe si tres-belle et riche, que merveilles sera ce racompter
pour la grand et merveilleuse richesse que dessus estoit, car tant y
avoit de pierres precieuses, que la grand clarté qu'elles jettoient
estoit pareille au soleil quant il luit bien clair. Et avec ce portoit
un moult bel arc en son poing, tant riche que on ne le sauroit estimer
tant estoit beau. Et la fleche qu'il portoit est it de telle sorte et
maniere, qu'il n'estoit beste au monde qu'il vousist souhaiter qu'a
ieelle fleche elle ne s'arrestast. Il avoit a son cou un riche cor,
lequel estoit pendu a deux riches attaches de fin or.

[72] This sort of transformation appears to have been a usual mode of
punishing in a Fairy land. It may have come from Circe, but the
Thousand and One Nights is full of such transformations. For _luyton_
or _lutin_, see below, _France_.

[73] We are only acquainted with this romance through Mr. Dunlop's
analysis.




                             FAIRY LAND.

      There, renewed the vital spring,
      Again he reigns a mighty king
      And many a fair and fragrant clime,
      Blooming in immortal prime,
      By gales of Eden ever fanned,
      Owns the monarch's high command.
                               T. WARTON.


Among all nations the mixture of joy and pain, of exquisite delight
and intense misery in the present state, has led the imagination to
the conception of regions of unmixed bliss destined for the repose of
the good after the toils of this life, and of climes where happiness
prevails, the abode of beings superior to man. The imagination of the
Hindoo paints his Swergas as 'profuse of bliss,' and all the joys of
sense are collected into the Paradise of the Mussulman. The Persian
lavished the riches of his fancy in raising the Cities of Jewels and
of Amber that adorn the realms of Jinnestân; the romancer erected
castles and palaces filled with knights and ladies in Avalon and in
the land of Faerie; while the Hellenic bards, unused to pomp and
glare, filled the Elysian Fields and the Island of the Blest with
tepid gales and brilliant flowers. We shall quote without apology two
beautiful passages from Homer and Pindar, that our readers may at one
view satisfy themselves of the essential difference between classic
and romantic imagination.

In Homer, Proteus tells Menelaus that, because he had had the honour
of being the son-in-law of Zeus, he should not die in "horse-feeding
Argos."

      But thee the ever-living gods will send
      Unto the Elysian plain and distant bounds
      Of Earth, where dwelleth fair-hair'd Rhadamanthus.
      There life is easiest unto men; no snow,
      Or wintry storm, or rain, at any time,
      Is there; but evermore the Ocean sends
      Soft-breathing airs of Zephyr to refresh
      The habitants.--_Od._ iv. 563.

This passage is finely imitated by Pindar, and connected with that
noble tone of pensive morality, so akin to the Oriental spirit, and by
which the 'Dircæan Swan' is distinguished from all his fellows.

                      They speed their way
      To Kronos' palace, where around
      The Island of the Blest, the airs
      Of Ocean breathe, and golden flowers
      Blaze; some on land
      From shining trees, and other kinds
      The water feeds. Of these
      Garlands and bracelets round their arms they bind,

      Beneath the righteous sway
      Of Rhadamanthus.--_Ol._ ii. 126.

Lucretius has transferred these fortunate fields to the superior
regions, to form the abode of his _fainéans_, gods; and Virgil has
placed them, with additional poetic splendour, in the bosom of the
earth.

Widely different from these calm and peaceful abodes of parted warriors
are the Faeries of the minstrels and romancers. In their eyes, and in
those of their auditors, nothing was beautiful or good divested of the
pomp and pride of chivalry; and chivalry has, accordingly, entered
deeply into the composition of their pictures of these ideal realms.

The Feeries of romance may be divided into three kinds: Avalon, placed
in the ocean, like the Island of the Blest; those that, like the palace
of Pari Banou, are within the earth; and, lastly, those that, like
Oberon's domains, are situate 'in wilderness among the holtis hairy.'

Of the castle and isle of Avalon,[74] the abode of Arthur and Oberon,
and Morgue la faye, the fullest description is to be seen in the
romance of Ogier le Danois, from which, as we know no sure quarter but
the work itself to refer to for the part connected with the present
subject, we will make some extracts.[75]

At the birth of Ogier several Fairies attended, who bestowed on him
various gifts. Among them was Morgue la Faye, who gave him that he
should be her lover and friend. Accordingly, when Ogier had long
distinguished himself in love and war, and had attained his hundredth
year, the affectionate Morgue thought it was time to withdraw him from
the toils and dangers of mortal life, and transport him to the joys
and the repose of the castle of Avalon. In pursuance of this design,
Ogier and king Caraheu are attacked by a storm on their return from
Jerusalem, and their vessels separated. The bark on which Ogier was
"floated along the sea till it came near the castle of loadstone,
which is called the castle of Avalon, which is not far on this side of
the terrestrial paradise, whither were rapt in a flame of fire Enock
and Helias; and where was Morgue la Faye, who at his birth had endowed
him with great gifts, noble and virtuous."[76]

The vessel is wrecked against the rock; the provisions are divided
among the crew, and it is agreed that every man, as his stock failed,
should be thrown into the sea. Ogier's stock holds out longest, and he
remains alone. He is nearly reduced to despair, when a voice from
heaven cries to him: "God commandeth thee that, as soon as it is
night, thou go unto a castle that thou wilt see shining, and pass from
bark to bark till thou be in an isle which thou wilt find. And when
thou wilt be in that isle thou wilt find a little path, and of what
thou mayest see within be not dismayed at anything. And then Ogier
looked, but he saw nothing."[77]

When night came, Ogier recommended himself to God, and seeing the
castle of loadstone all resplendent with light, he went from one to
the other of the vessels that were wrecked there, and so got into the
island where it was. On arriving at the gate he found it guarded by
two fierce lions. He slew them and entered; and making his way into a
hall, found a horse sitting at a table richly supplied. The courteous
animal treats him with the utmost respect, and the starving hero makes
a hearty supper. The horse then prevails on him to get on his back,
and carries him into a splendid chamber, where Ogier sleeps that
night. The name of this horse is Papillon, "who was a Luiton, and had
been a great prince, but king Arthur conquered him, so he was
condemned to be three hundred years a horse without speaking one
single word, but after the three hundred years he was to have the
crown of joy which they wore in Faerie."[78]

Next morning he cannot find Papillon, but on opening a door he meets a
huge serpent, whom he also slays, and follows a little path which
leads him into an orchard "tant bel et tant plaisant, que cestoit ung
petit paradis a veoir." He plucks an apple from one of the trees and
eats it, but is immediately afflicted by such violent sickness as to
be put in fear of speedy death. He prepares himself for his fate,
regretting "le bon pays de France, le roi Charlemaigne ... et
principallement la bonne royne dangleterre, sa bonne espouse et vraie
amie, ma dame Clarice, qui tant estoit belle et noble." While in this
dolorous state, happening to turn to the east, he perceived "une moult
belle dame, toute vestue de blanc, si bien et si richement aornee que
cestoit ung grant triumphe que de la veoir."

Ogier, thinking it is the Virgin Mary, commences an Ave; but the lady
tells him she is Morgue la Faye, who at his birth had kissed him, and
retained him for her loyal amoureux, though forgotten by him. She
places then on his finger a ring, which removes all infirmity, and
Ogier, a hundred years old, returns to the vigour and beauty of
thirty. She now leads him to the castle of Avalon, where were her
brother king Arthur, and Auberon, and Mallonbron, "ung luiton de mer."

"And when Morgue drew near to the said castle of Avalon, the Fays came
to meet Ogier, singing the most melodiously that ever could be heard, so
he entered into the hall to solace himself completely. There he saw
several Fay ladies adorned and all crowned with crowns most sumptuously
made, and very rich, and evermore they sung, danced, and led a right
joyous life, without thinking of any evil thing whatever, but of taking
their mundane pleasures."[79] Morgue here introduces the knight to
Arthur, and she places on his head a crown rich and splendid beyond
estimation, but which has the Lethean quality, that whoso wears it,

      Forthwith his former state and being forgets,
      Forgets both joy and grief, pleasure and pain;

for Ogier instantly forgot country and friends. He had no thought
whatever "ni de la dame Clarice, qui tant estoit belle et noble," nor
of Guyon his brother, nor of his nephew Gauthier, "ne de creature
vivante." His days now rolled on in never-ceasing pleasure. "Such
joyous pastime did the Fay ladies make for him, that there is no
creature in this world who could imagine or think it, for to hear them
sing so sweetly it seemed to him actually that he was in Paradise; so
the time passed from day to day, from week to week, in such sort that
a year did not last a month to him."[80]

But Avalon was still on earth, and therefore its bliss was not
unmixed. One day Arthur took Ogier aside, and informed him that
Capalus, king of the Luitons, incessantly attacked the castle of
Faerie with design to eject king Arthur from its dominion, and was
accustomed to penetrate to the basse court, calling on Arthur to come
out and engage him. Ogier asked permission to encounter this
formidable personage, which Arthur willingly granted. No sooner,
however, did Capalus see Ogier than he surrendered to him; and the
knight had the satisfaction of leading him into the castle, and
reconciling him to its inhabitants.

Two hundred years passed away in these delights, and seemed to Ogier
but twenty: Charlemagne and all his lineage had failed, and even the
race of Ogier was extinct, when the Paynims invaded France and Italy
in vast numbers; and Morgue no longer thought herself justified in
withholding Ogier from the defence of the faith. Accordingly, she one
day took the Lethean crown from off his head: immediately all his old
ideas rushed on his mind, and inflamed him with an ardent desire to
revisit his country. The Fairy gave him a brand which was to be
preserved from burning, for so long as it was unconsumed, so long
should his life extend. She adds to her gift the horse Papillon and
his comrade Benoist. "And when they were both mounted, all the ladies
of the castle came to take leave of Ogier, by the command of king
Arthur and of Morgue la Faye, and they sounded an aubade of
instruments, the most melodious thing to hear that ever was listened
to; then, when the aubade was finished, they sung with the voice so
melodiously, that it was a thing so melodious that it seemed actually
to Ogier that he was in Paradise. Again, when that was over, they sung
with the instruments in such sweet concordance that it seemed rather
to be a thing divine than mortal."[81] The knight then took leave of
all, and a cloud, enveloping him and his companion, raised them, and
set them down by a fair fountain near Montpellier. Ogier displays his
ancient prowess, routs the infidels, and on the death of the king is
on the point of espousing the queen, when Morgue appears and takes him
back to Avalon. Since then Ogier has never reappeared in this world.

Nowhere is a Faerie of the second kind so fully and circumstantially
described as in the beautiful romance of Orfeo and Heurodis. There are,
indeed, copious extracts from this poem in Sir Walter Scott's Essay on
the Fairies of Popular Superstition; and we have no excuse to offer for
repeating what is to be found in a work so universally diffused as the
Minstrelsy of the Scottish Border, but that it is of absolute necessity
for our purpose, and that romantic poetry is rarely unwelcome.

Orfeo and Heurodis were king and queen of Winchester. The queen
happening one day to sleep under an ymp[82] tree in the palace
orchard, surrounded by her attendants, had a dream, which she thus
relates to the king:

      As I lay this undertide (_afternoon_)
      To sleep under the orchard-side,
      There came to me two faire knightes
      Well arrayed allè rightes,
      And bade me come without lettíng
      To speakè with their lord the king;
      And I answér'd with wordès bolde
      That I ne durstè ne I nolde:
      Fast again they can (_did_) drive,
      Then came their kingè all so blive (_quick_)
      With a thousand knights and mo,
      And with ladies fifty also,
      And riden all on snow-white steedes,
      And also whitè were their weedes.
      I sey (_saw_) never sith I was borne
      So fairè knightès me by forne.
      The kingè had a crown on his head,
      It was not silver ne gold red;
      All it was of precious stone,
      As bright as sun forsooth it shone.
      All so soon he to me came,
      Wold I, nold I he me name (_took_),
      And madè me with him ride
      On a white palfrey by his side,
      And brought me in to his palís,
      Right well ydight over all ywis.
      He shewed me castels and toures,
      Meadows, rivers, fields and flowres,
      And his forests everiche one,
      And sith he brought me again home.

The fairy-king orders her, under a dreadful penalty, to await him next
morning under the ymp tree. Her husband and ten hundred knights stand
in arms round the tree to protect her,

      And yet amiddès them full right
      The queenè was away y-twight (_snatched_);
      With Faëry forth y-nome (_taken_);
      Men wist never where she was become.

Orfeo in despair abandons his throne, and retires to the wilderness,
where he solaces himself with his harp, charming with his melody the
wild beasts, the inhabitants of the spot. Often while here,

      He mightè see him besides
      Oft in hot undertides
      The king of Faëry with his rout
      Come to hunt him all about,
      With dim cry and blowíng,
      And houndes also with him barkíng.
      Ac (_yet_) no beastè they no nome,
      Ne never he nist whither they be come;
      And other while he might them see
      As a great hostè by him te.[83]
      Well atourned ten hundred knightes
      Each well y-armed to his rightes,
      Of countenancè stout and fierce,
      With many displayéd bannérs,
      And each his sword y-drawè hold;
      Ac never he nistè whither they wold.
      And otherwhile he seigh (_saw_) other thing,
      Knightès and levedis (_ladies_) come dauncíng
      In quaint attirè guisëly,
      Quiet pace and softëly.
      Tabours and trumpès gede (_went_) him by,
      And allè manere minstracy.
      And on a day he seigh him beside
      Sixty levedis on horse ride,
      Gentil and jolif as brid on ris (_bird on branch_),
      Nought o (_one_) man amonges hem ther nis,
      And each a faucoun on hond bare,
      And riden on hauken by o rivér.
      Of game they found well good haunt,
      Mallardes, heron, and cormeraunt.
      The fowlès of the water ariseth,
      Each faucoun them well deviseth,
      Each faucoun his preyè slough[84] (_slew_).

Among the ladies he recognises his lost queen, and he determines to
follow them, and attempt her rescue.

      In at a roche (_rock_) the levedis rideth,
      And he after and nought abideth.
      When he was in the roche y-go
      Well three milès other (_or_) mo,
      He came into a fair countráy
      As bright soonne summers day,
      Smooth and plain and allè grene,
      Hill ne dale nas none y-seen.
      Amiddle the lond a castel he seigh,
      Rich and real and wonder high.
      Allè the utmostè wall
      Was clear and shinè of cristal.
      An hundred towers there were about,
      Deguiselich and batailed stout.
      The buttras come out of the ditch,
      Of redè gold y-arched rich.
      The bousour was anowed all
      Of each manere diverse animal.
      Within there werè widè wones
      All of precious stones.
      The worstè pillar to behold
      Was all of burnished gold.
      All that lond was ever light,
      For when it should be therk (_dark_) and night,
      The richè stonès lightè gonne (_yield_[85])
      Bright as doth at nonne the sonne,
      No man may tell ne think in thought
      The richè work that there was wrought.

Orfeo makes his way into this palace, and so charms the king with his
minstrelsy, that he gives him back his wife. They return to
Winchester, and there reign, in peace and happiness.

Another instance of this kind of Feerie may be seen in Thomas the
Rymer, but, restricted by our limits, we must omit it, and pass to the
last kind.

Sir Thopas was written to ridicule the romancers; its incidents must
therefore accord with theirs, and the Feerie in it in fact resembles
those in Huon de Bordeaux. It has the farther merit of having
suggested incidents to Spenser, and perhaps of having given the idea
of a queen regnante of Fairy Land. Sir Thopas is chaste as Graelent.

      Full many a maidè bright in bour
      They mourned for him _par amour_;
        When hem were bete to slepe;
      But he was chaste and no lechour,
      And sweet as is the bramble flour
        That bereth the red hepe.

He was therefore a suitable object for the love of a gentle elf-queen.
So Sir Thopas one day "pricketh through a faire forest" till he is
weary, and he then lies down to sleep on the grass, where he dreams of
an elf-queen, and awakes, declaring

      An elf-queen wol I love, ywis.
      All other women I forsake,
      And to an elf-queen I me take
        By dale and eke by down.

He determines to set out in quest of her.

      Into his sadel he clombe anon,
      And pricked over style and stone,
        An elf-quene for to espie;
      Till he so long had ridden and gone,
      That he found in a privee wone
        The countree of Faerie,[86]

      Wherein he soughtè north and south,
      And oft he spied with his mouth
        In many a forest wilde;
      For in that countree n'as there none
      That to him dorst ride or gon,
        Neither wif ne childe.

The "gret giaunt" Sire Oliphaunt, however, informs him that

      Here is the quene of Faërie,
      With harpe and pipe and simphonie,
        Dwelling in this place.

Owing to the fastidiousness of "mine hoste," we are unable to learn
how Sir Thopas fared with the elf-queen, and we have probably lost a
copious description of Fairy Land.

From the glimmering of the morning star of English poetry, the
transition is natural to its meridian splendour, the reign of
Elizabeth, and we will now make a few remarks on the poem of Spenser.

FOOTNOTES:

[74] Avalon was perhaps the Island of the Blest, of Celtic mythology,
and then the abode of the Fees, through the Breton Korrigan. Writers,
however, seem to be unanimous in regarding it and Glastonbury as the
same place, called an isle, it is stated, as being made nearly such by
the "river's embracement." It was named Avalon, we are told, from the
British word _Aval_, an apple, as it abounded with orchards; and _Ynys
gwydrin_; Saxon [Old English: Glastn-ey], glassy isle; Latin,
Glastonia, from the green hue of the water surrounding it.

[75] See Tales and Popular Fictions, ch. ix., for a further account of
Ogier.

[76] Tant nagea en mer qu'il arriva pres du chastel daymant quon nomme
le chasteau davallon, qui nest gueres deca paradis terrestre la ou
furent ravis en une raye de feu Enoc et Helye, et la ou estoit Morgue
la faye, qui a sa naissance lui avoit donne de grands dons, nobles et
vertueux.

[77] Dieu te mande que si tost que sera nuit que tu ailles en ung
chasteau que tu verras luire, et passe de bateau en bateau tant que tu
soies en une isle que tu trouveras. Et quand tu seras en lisle tu
trouveras une petite sente, et de chose que tu voies leans ne tesbahis
de rien. Et adone Ogier regarda mais il ne vit rien.

[78] Lequel estoit luiton, et avoit este ung grant prince; mais le roi
Artus le conquist, si fust condampne a estre trois cens ans cheval
sans parler ung tou seul mot; mais apres les trois cens ans, il devoit
avoir la couronue de joye de laquelle ils usuient en faerie.

[79] Et quand Morgue approcha du dit chasteau, les Faes vindrent au
devant dogier, chantant le plus melodieusement quon scauroit jamais
ouir, si entra dedans la salle pour se deduire totallement. Adonc vist
plusieurs dames Faees aournees et toutes courronnees de couronnes
tressomptueusement faictes, et moult riches, et tout jour chantoient,
dansoient, et menoient vie tresjoyeuse, sans penser a nulle quelconque
meschante chose, fors prandre leurs mondains plaisirs.

[80] Tant de joyeulx passetemps lui faisoient les dames Faees, quil
nest creature en ce monde quil le sceust imaginer ne penser, car les
ouir si doulcement chanter il lui sembloit proprement quil fut en
Paradis, si passoit temps de jour en jour, de sepmaine en sepmaine,
tellement que ung an ne lui duroit pas ung mois.

[81] Et quand ils furent tous deux montes, toutes les dames du chasteau
vindrent a la departie dogier, par le commandement du roi Artus et de
Morgue la fae, et sonnerent une aubade dinstrumens, la plus melodieuse
chose a ouir que on entendit jamais; puis, l'aubade achevee, chanterent
de gorge si melodieusement que cestoit une chose si melodieuse que il
sembloit proprement a Ogier quil estoit en Paradis. De rechief, cela
fini, ils chanterent avecques les instrumens par si doulce concordance
quil sembloit mieulx chose divine que humaine.

[82] Imp tree is a grafted tree. Sir W. Scott queries if it be not a
tree consecrated to the imps or fiends. Had imp that sense so early? A
grafted tree had perhaps the same relation to the Fairies that the
linden in Germany and the North had to the dwarfs.

[83] _Te_ or _tew_ (Drayton, Poly-Olb. xxv.) is to draw, to march;
from A.S. [Old English: teógan, tugan, teón] (Germ. _ziehen_), whence
_tug_, _team_.

[84] Beattie probably knew nothing of Orfeo and Heurodis, and the
Fairy Vision in the Minstrel (a dream that would never have occurred
to any minstrel) was derived from the Flower and the Leaf, Dryden's,
not Chaucer's, for the personages in the latter are not called
Fairies. In neither are they Elves.

[85] _Gönnen_, Germ.

[86] The "countrie of Faerie," situated in a "privee wone," plainly
accords rather with the Feeries of Huon de Bordeaux than with Avalon,
or the region into which Dame Heurodis was taken.




                       SPENSER'S FAERIE QUEENE.

      A braver lady never tript on land,
      Except the ever-living Faerie Queene,
      Whose virtues by her swain so written been
      That time shall call her high enhanced story,
      In his rare song, the Muse's chiefest glory.
                                             BROWN.


During the sixteenth century the study of classical literature, which
opened a new field to imagination, and gave it a new impulse, was
eagerly and vigorously pursued. A classic ardour was widely and
extensively diffused. The compositions of that age incessantly imitate
and allude to the beauties and incidents of the writings of ancient
Greece and Rome.

Yet amid this diffusion of classic taste and knowledge, romance had by
no means lost its influence. The black-letter pages of Lancelot du
Lac, Perceforest, Mort d'Arthur, and the other romances of chivalry,
were still listened to with solemn attention, when on winter-evenings
the family of the good old knight or baron 'crowded round the ample
fire,' to hear them made vocal, and probably no small degree of
credence was given to the wonders they recorded. The passion for
allegory, too, remained unabated. Fine moral webs were woven from the
fragile threads of the Innamorato and the Furioso; and even Tasso was
obliged, in compliance with the reigning taste, to extract an allegory
from his divine poem; which Fairfax, when translating the Jerusalem,
was careful to preserve. Spenser, therefore, when desirous of
consecrating his genius to the celebration of the glories of the
maiden reign, and the valiant warriors and grave statesmen who adorned
it, had his materials ready prepared. Fairy-land, as described by the
romancers, gave him a scene; the knights and dames with whom it was
peopled, actors; and its court, its manners, and usages, a facility of
transferring thither whatever real events might suit his design.

It is not easy to say positively to what romance the poet was chiefly
indebted for his Faery-land. We might, perhaps, venture to conjecture
that his principal authority was Huon de Bordeaux, which had been
translated some time before by Lord Berners, and from which it is most
likely that Shakespeare took his Oberon, who was thus removed from the
realms of romance, and brought back among his real kindred, the dwarfs
or elves. Spenser, it is evident, was acquainted with this romance,
for he says of Sir Guyon,

        He was an elfin born of noble state
        And mickle worship in his native land;
        Well could he tourney and in lists debate,
        And knighthood took of good _Sir Huon's_ hand,
      When with King Oberon he came to Fairy-land.
                                            B. ii. c. 1. st. vi.

And here, if such a thing were to be heeded, the poet commits an
anachronism in making Sir Huon, who slew the son of Charlemagne, a
contemporary of Arthur.

Where "this delightful land of Faery" lies, it were as idle to seek as
for Oberon's realm of Mommur, the island of Calypso, or the kingdom of
Lilliput. Though it shadow forth England, it is distinct from it; for
Cleopolis excels Troynovant in greatness and splendour, and Elfin, the
first Fairy king, ruled over India and America. To the curious the
poet says,

      Of Faery-lond yet if he more inquire,
      By certain signes here sett in sondrie place,
      He may it fynd, ne let him then admyre,
      But yield his sence to be too blunt and bace,
      That no'te without an hound fine footing trace.

The idea of making a queen sole regnante of Fairy-land was the necessary
result of the plan of making "the fayrest princesse under sky" view her
"owne realmes in lond of faery." Yet there may have been sage authority
for this settlement of the fairy throne. Some old romancers may have
spoken only of a queen; and the gallant Sir Thopas does not seem to
apprehend that he is in pursuit of the wedded wife of another. This
doughty champion's dream was evidently the original of Arthur's.

        Forwearied with my sportes, I did alight
        From loftie steede, and downe to sleepe me layd;
        The verdant grass my couch did goodly dight,
        And pillow was my helmett fayre displayd;
        Whiles every sence the humour sweet embayd,
        Me seemed by my side a royall mayd
        Her dainty limbes full softly down did lay,
      So faire a creature yet saw never sunny day.

        Most goodly glee and lovely blandishment
        She to me made, and badd me love her deare,
        For dearly, sure, her love was to me bent,
        As, when iust time expired, should appeare:
        But whether dreames delude, or true it were,
        Was never hart so ravisht with delight,
        Ne living man such wordes did never heare
        As she to me delivered all that night,
      And at her parting said, she queen of Faries hight.

       *       *       *       *       *

        From that day forth I cast in carefull mynd
        To seek her out with labor and long tyne,
        And never vow to rest till her I fynd--
      Nyne months I seek in vain, yet n'ill that vow unbynd,
                                      B. i. c. 9. st. xiii., xiv., xv.

The names given by Spenser to these beings are Fays (_Feés_), Farys or
Fairies, Elfes and Elfins, of which last words the former had been
already employed by Chaucer, and in one passage it is difficult to say
what class of beings is intended. Spenser's account of the origin of his
Fairies is evidently mere invention, as nothing in the least resembling
it is to be found in any preceding writer. It bears, indeed, some slight
and distant analogy to that of the origin of the inhabitants of
Jinnestân, as narrated by the Orientals. According to the usual practice
of Spenser, it is mixed up with the fables of antiquity.

                      Prometheus did create
      A man of many parts from beasts deryved;

        That man so made he called Elfe, to weet,
        Quick,[87] the first author of all Elfin kynd,
        Who, wandring through the world with wearie feet,
        Did in the gardins of Adonis fynd
        A goodly creature, whom he deemed in mynd
        To be no earthly wight, but either spright
        Or angell, the authour of all woman-kynd;
        Therefore a Fay he her according hight,
      Of whom all Faryes spring, and fetch their lignage right.

        Of these a mighty people shortly grew,
        And puissant kings, which all the world warrayd,
        And to themselves all nations did subdue.
                               B. ii. c. 9. st. lxx., lxxi., lxxii.

Sir Walter Scott remarks with justice (though his memory played him
somewhat false on the occasion), that "the stealing of the Red Cross
Knight while a child, is the only incident in the poem which
approaches to the popular character of the Fairy." It is not exactly
the _only_ incident; but the only other, that of Arthegal, is a
precisely parallel one:--

        He wonneth in the land of Fayëree,
        Yet is no Fary born, ne sib at all
        To Elfes, but sprung of seed terrestriall,
        And whyleome by false Faries stolne away,
        Whyles yet in infant cradle he did crall:
        Ne other to himself is knowne this day,
      But that he by an Elfe was gotten of a Fay.
                                     B. iii. c. 3. st. xxvi.

Sir Walter has been duly animadverted on for this dangerous error by
the erudite Mr. Todd. It would be as little becoming as politic in us,
treading, as we do, on ground where error ever hovers around us, to
make any remark. Freedom from misconception and mistake,
unfortunately, forms no privilege of our nature.

We must here observe, that Spenser was extremely injudicious in his
selection of the circumstances by which he endeavoured to confound the
two classes of Fairies. It was quite incongruous to style the progeny
of the subjects of Gloriane a "base elfin brood," or themselves "false
Fairies," especially when we recollect that such a being as Belphœbe
whose

                     whole creation did her show
      Pure and unspotted from all loathly crime,
      That is ingenerate in fleshly slime,

was born of a Fairie.

Our poet seems to have forgotten himself also in the Legend of Sir
Calidore; for though the knight is a Faerie himself, and though such
we are to suppose were all the native inhabitants of Faerie-land, yet
to the "gentle flood" that tumbled down from Mount Acidale,

                        ne mote the ruder clown
      Thereto approach ne filth mote therein drown;
      But Nymphs and Faeries on the banks did sit
      In the woods shade which did the waters crown.
                                       B. vi. c. 10. st. vii.

And a little farther, when Calidore gazes on the "hundred naked
maidens lily white," that danced around the Graces, he wist not

      Whether it were the train of beauty's queen,
      Or Nymphs or Faeries, or enchanted show,
      With which his eyes mote have deluded been.--St. xvii.

The popular Elves, who dance their circlets on the green, were
evidently here in Spenser's mind.[88]

It is now, we think, if not certain, at least highly probable, that
the Fairy-land and the Fairies of Spenser are those of romance, to
which the term Fairy properly belongs, and that it is without just
reason that the title of his poem has been styled a _misnomer_.[89]
After the appearance of his Faerie Queene, all distinction between the
different species was rapidly lost, and Fairies became the established
name of the popular Elves.

Here, then, we will take our leave of the potent ladies of romance,
and join the Elves of the popular creed, tracing their descent from
the Duergar of northern mythology, till we meet them enlivening the
cottage fireside with the tales of their pranks and gambols.

FOOTNOTES:

[87] That is, _elfe_ is _alive_.

[88] These Fairies thus coupled with Nymphs remind us of the Fairies
of the old translators. Spenser, in the Shepherd's Calendar, however,
had united them before, as

      Nor elvish ghosts nor ghastly owls do flee,
      But friendly _Faeries_ met with many Graces,
      And light-foot _Nymphs_.--Æg. 6.


[89] "Spenser's _Fairy Queen_, which is one of the grossest misnomers in
romance or history, bears no features of the Fairy nation."--Gifford,
note on B. Jonson, vol. ii. p. 202.




                           EDDAS AND SAGAS.

      En sång om strålende Valhalla,
      Om Gudar och Gudinnar alla.
                               TEGNER.

      A song of Vallhall's bright abodes,
      Of all the goddesses and gods.


The ancient religion of Scandinavia, and probably of the whole
Gotho-German race, consisted, like all other systems devised by man,
in personifications of the various powers of nature and faculties of
mind. Of this system in its fulness and perfection we possess no
record. It is only from the poems of the elder or poetic Edda,[90]
from the narratives of the later or prose Edda and the various Sagas
or histories written in the Icelandic language,[91] that we can obtain
any knowledge of it.

The poetic or Sæmund's Edda was, as is generally believed, collected
about the end of the eleventh or beginning of the twelfth century by an
Icelander named Sæmund, and styled Hinns Fròda, or The Wise. It consists
of a number of mythological and historical songs, the production of the
ancient Scalds or poets, all, or the greater part, composed before the
introduction of Christianity into the north. The measure of these
venerable songs is alliterative rime, and they present not unfrequently
poetic beauties of a high and striking character.[92]

The prose Edda is supposed to have been compiled in the thirteenth
century by Snorro Sturleson, the celebrated historian of Norway. It is
a history of the gods and their actions formed from the songs of the
poetic Edda, and from other ancient poems, several stanzas of which
are incorporated in it. Beside the preface and conclusion, it consists
of two principal parts, the first consisting of the Gylfa-ginning
(_Gylfa's Deception_), or Hárs Lygi (_Hár's_ i. e. _Odin's Fiction_),
and the Braga-rædur (_Braga's Narrative_), each of which is divided
into several Dæmi-sagas or Illustrative Stories; and the second named
the Kenningar or list of poetic names and periphrases.[93]

The Gylfa-ginning narrates that Gylfa king of Sweden, struck with the
wisdom and power of the Æser,[94] as Odin and his followers were
called, journeyed in the likeness of an old man, and under the assumed
name of Ganglar, to Asgard their chief residence, to inquire into and
fathom their wisdom. Aware of his design, the Æser by their magic art
caused to arise before him a lofty and splendid palace, roofed with
golden shields. At the gate he found a man who was throwing up and
catching swords, seven of which were in the air at one time. This man
inquires the name of the stranger, whom he leads into the palace,
where Ganglar sees a number of persons drinking and playing, and three
thrones, each set higher than the other. On the thrones sat Har
(_High_), Jafnhar (_Equal-high_), and Thridi (_Third_). Ganglar asks
if there is any one there wise and learned. Har replies that he will
not depart in safety if he knows more than they.[95] Ganglar then
commences his interrogations, which embrace a variety of recondite
subjects, and extend from the creation to the end of all things. To
each he receives a satisfactory reply. At the last reply Ganglar hears
a loud rush and noise: the magic illusion suddenly vanishes, and he
finds himself alone on an extensive plain.

The Braga-rædur is the discourse of Braga to Ægir, the god of the sea,
at the banquet of the Immortals. This part contains many tales of gods
and heroes old, whose adventures had been sung by Skalds, of high
renown and lofty genius.

Though both the Eddas were compiled by Christians, there appears to be
very little reason for suspecting the compilers of having falsified or
interpolated the mythology of their forefathers. Sæmund's Edda may be
regarded as an Anthology of ancient Scandinavian poetry; and the
author of the prose Edda (who it is plain did not always understand
the true meaning of the tales he related) wrote it as a northern
Pantheon and Gradus ad Parnassum, to supply poets with incidents,
ornaments, and epithets. Fortunately they did so, or impenetrable
darkness had involved the ancient religion of the Gothic stock!

Beside the Eddas, much information is to be derived from the various
Sagas or northern histories. These Sagas, at times transmitting true
historical events, at other times containing the wildest fictions of
romance, preserve much valuable mythic lore, and the Ynglinga,
Volsunga, Hervarar, and other Sagas, will furnish many important
traits of northern mythology.

It is not intended here to attempt sounding the depths of Eddaic
mythology, a subject so obscure, and concerning which so many and
various opinions occur in the works of those who have occupied
themselves with it. Suffice it to observe that it goes back to the
most remote ages, and that two essential parts of it are the Alfar
(_Alfs_ or _Elves_) and the Duergar (_Dwarfs_), two classes of beings
whose names continue to the present day in all the languages of the
nations descended from the Gotho-German race.

"Our heathen forefathers," says Thorlacius,[96] "believed, like the
Pythagoreans, and the farther back in antiquity the more firmly, that
the whole world was filled with spirits of various kinds, to whom they
ascribed in general the same nature and properties as the Greeks did
to their Dæmons. These were divided into the Celestial and the
Terrestrial, from their places of abode. The former were, according
to the ideas of those times, of a good and elevated nature, and of a
friendly disposition toward men, whence they also received the name of
White or Light Alfs or Spirits. The latter, on the contrary, who were
classified after their abodes in air, sea, and earth, were not
regarded in so favourable a light. It was believed that they,
particularly the _land ones_, the δαιμονες επιχθονιοι of the Greeks,
constantly and on all occasions sought to torment or injure mankind,
and that they had their dwelling partly on the earth in great thick
woods, whence came the name Skovtrolde[97] (_Wood Trolls_), or in
other desert and lonely places, partly in and under the ground, or in
rocks and hills; these last were called Bjerg-Trolde (_Hill Trolls_):
to the first, on account of their different nature, was given the name
of Dverge (_Dwarfs_), and Alve, whence the word Ellefolk, which is
still in the Danish language. These Dæmons, particularly the
underground ones, were called Svartálfar, that is Black Spirits, and
inasmuch as they did mischief, Trolls."

This very nearly coincides with what is to be found in the Edda,
except that there would appear to be some foundation for a distinction
between the Dwarfs and the Dark Alfs.[98]


                              THE ALFAR.

      Ther ro meth Alfum.
                       BRYNHILDAR QUIDA.

      Those are with the Alfs.

In the prose Edda, Ganglar inquires what other cities beside that in
which the Nornir dwelt were by the Urdar fount, under the Ash
Yggdrasil.[99] Hár replies,

"There are many fair cities there. There is the city which is called
Alf-heim, where dwelleth the people that is called Liosálfar (_Light
Alfs_). But the Döckálfar (_Dark Alfs_) dwell below under ground, and
are unlike them in appearance, and still more unlike in actions. The
Liosálfar are whiter than the sun in appearance, but the Döckálfar are
blacker than pitch."[100]

The Nornir, the Parcæ, or Destinies of Scandinavian mythology, are
closely connected with the Alfar.

"Many fair cities are there in Heaven," says Hár, "and the divine
protection is over all. There standeth a city under the ash near the
spring, and out of its halls came three maids, who are thus named,
Udr, Verthandi, Skulld (_Past_, _Present_, _Future_). These maids
shape the life of man. We call them Nornir. But there are many Nornir;
those who come to each child that is born, to shape its life, are of
the race of the gods; but others are of the race of the Alfs; and the
third of the race of dwarfs. As is here expressed,

      Sundry children deem I
      The Nornir to be--the same
      Race they have not.
      Some are of Æser-kin,
      Some are of Alf-kin,
      Some are the daughters of Dualin." (_i.e._ of the Dwarfs.)

"Then," said Ganglar, "if the Nornir direct the future destiny of men,
they shape it very unequally. Some have a good life and rich, but some
have little wealth and praise, some long life, some short." "The good
Nornir, and well descended," says Hár, "shape a good life; but as to
those who meet with misfortune, it is caused by the malignant Nornir."

These Nornir bear a remarkable resemblance to the classical Parcæ and
to the fairies of romance. They are all alike represented as assisting
at the birth of eminent personages, as bestowing gifts either good or
evil, and as foretelling the future fortune of the being that has just
entered on existence.[101] This attribute of the fairies may have been
derived from either the north or the south, but certainly these did
not borrow from each other.

Of the origin of the word Alf nothing satisfactory is to be found.
Some think it is akin to the Latin _albus_, white; others, to _alpes_,
Alps, mountains. There is also supposed to be some mysterious
connexion between it and the word Elf, or Elv, signifying water in the
northern languages; an analogy which has been thought to correspond
with that between the Latin Nympha and Lympha. Both relations,
however, are perhaps rather fanciful than just. Of the derivation of
Alf, as just observed, we know nothing certain,[102] and the original
meaning of Nympha would appear to be a new-married woman,[103] and
thence a marriageable young woman; and it was applied to the supposed
inhabitants of the mountains, seas, and streams, on the same principle
that the northern nations gave them the appellation of men and women,
that is, from their imagined resemblance to the human form.

Whatever its origin, the word Alf has continued till the present day
in all the Teutonic languages. The Danes have _Elv_, pl. _Elve_; the
Swedes, _Elf_ pl. _Elfvar_ m. _Elfvor_ f.; and the words _Elf-dans_
and _Elf-blæst_, together with _Olof_ and other proper names, are
derived from them. The Germans call the nightmare _Alp_; and in their
old poems we meet with _Elbe_ and _Elbinne_, and _Elbisch_ occurs in
them in the bad sense of _elvish_ of Chaucer and our old romancers;
and a number of proper names, such as Alprecht, Alphart, Alpinc,
Alpwin,[104] were formed from it, undoubtedly before it got its
present ill sense.[105] In the Anglo-Saxon, [Old English: Ælf], or
[Old English: Ælfen], with its feminine and plural, frequently occurs.
The Oreas, Naias, and Hamodryas of the Greeks and Romans are rendered
in an Anglo-Saxon glossary by [Old English: Munt-ælfen], [Old English:
sǽ-ælfen], and [Old English: feld-ælfen].[106] [Old English: Ælf] is a
component part of the proper names Ælfred and Ælfric; and the author
of the poem of Judith says that his heroine was [Old English:
Ælf-seine] (_Elf-sheen_), bright or fair as an elf. But of the
character and acts of the elfs no traditions have been preserved in
Anglo-Saxon literature. In the English language, Elf, Elves, and their
derivatives are to be found in every period, from its first formation
down to this present time.

FOOTNOTES:

[90] _Edda_ signifies grandmother. Some regard it as the feminine of
_othr_, or _odr_, wisdom.

[91] This language is so called because still spoken in Iceland. Its
proper name is the Norræna Tunga (_northern tongue_). It was the
common language of the whole North.

[92] See Tales and Popular Fictions, chap. ix.

[93] It was first published by Resenius in 1665.

[94] By the Æser are understood the Asiatics, who with Odin brought
their arts and religion into Scandinavia. This derivation of the word,
however, is rather dubious. Though possibly the population and
religion of Scandinavia came originally from Asia there seems to be no
reason whatever for putting any faith in the legend of Odin. It is not
unlikely that the name of their gods, Æser, gave birth to the whole
theory. It is remarkable that the ancient Etrurians also should have
called the gods Æsar.

[95] So the lötunn or Giant Vafthrudnir to Odin in the
Vafthrudnismal.--Strophe vii.

[96] Thorlacius, Noget om Thor og hans Hammer, in the Skandinavisk
Museum for 1803.

[97] Thorlacius, _ut supra_, says the thundering Thor was regarded as
particularly inimical to the Skovtrolds, against whom he continually
employed his mighty weapon. He thinks that the _Bidental_ of the
Romans, and the rites connected with it, seem to suppose a similar
superstition, and that in the well-known passage of Horace,

      Tu parum castis inimica mittes
              Fulmina lucis,

the words _parum castis lucis_ may mean groves or parts of woods, the
haunt of unclean spirits or Skovtrolds, _satyri lascivi et salaces_.
The word _Trold_ will be explained below.

[98] The Dark Alfs were probably different from the Duergar, yet the
language of the prose Edda is in some places such as to lead to a
confusion of them. The following passage, however, seems to be decisive:

      Náir, Dvergar
      _Ok_ Döck-A'lfar.
                   Hrafna-Galdr Othins, xxiv. 7.

      Ghosts, Dwarfs
      _And_ Dark Alfs.

Yet the Scandinavian literati appear unanimous in regarding them as
the same. Grimm, however, agrees with us in viewing the Döck-Alfar as
distinct from the Duergar. As the abode of these last is named
Svartálfaheimr, he thinks that the Svartálfar and the Duergar were the
same.--Deutsche Mythologie, p. 413, _seq._ See below, _Isle of Rügen_.

[99] The ash-tree, Yggdrasil, is the symbol of the universe, the
Urdar-fount is the fount of light and heat, which invigorates and
sustains it. A good representation of this myth is given in Mr. Bohn's
edition of Mallet's "Northern Antiquities," which the reader is
recommended to consult.

[100] This Grimm (_ut sup._) regards as an error of the writer, who
confounded the _Döck_ and the _Svartálfar_.

[101] See Tales and Popular Fictions, p. 274.

[102] The analogy of Deev, and other words of like import, might lead
to the supposition of Spirit being the primary meaning of Alf.

[103] See Mythology of Greece and Italy, p. 248, second edition.

[104] After the introduction of Christianity, _Engel_, angel, was
employed for _Alp_ in most proper names, as Engelrich, Engelhart, etc.

[105] See MM. Grimm's learned Introduction to their translation of the
Irish Fairy Legends, and the Deutsche Mythologie of J. Grimm.

[106] MM. Grimm suppose with a good deal of probability, that these
are compounds formed to render the Greek ones, and are not expressive
of a belief in analogous classes of spirits.




                             THE DUERGAR.

      By ek fur jörth nethan,
      A ek, undir stein, stath.
                         ALVIS-MAL.

      I dwell the earth beneath,
      I possess, under the stone, my seat.


These diminutive beings, dwelling in rocks and hills, and
distinguished for their skill in metallurgy, seem to be peculiar to
the Gotho-German mythology.[107] Perhaps the most probable account of
them is, that they are personifications of the subterraneous powers
of nature; for it may be again observed, that all the parts of every
ancient mythology are but personified powers, attributes, and moral
qualities. The Edda thus describes their origin:--

"Then the gods sat on their seats, and held a council, and called to
mind how the Duergar had become animated in the clay below in the
earth, like maggots in flesh. The Duergar had been first created, and
had taken life in Ymir's[108] flesh, and were maggots in it, and by
the will of the gods they became partakers of human knowledge, and had
the likeness of men, and yet they abode in the ground and in stones.
Modsogner was the first of them, and then Dyrin."

The Duergar are described as being of low stature, with short legs and
long arms, reaching almost down to the ground when they stand
erect.[109] They are skilful and expert workmen in gold, silver, iron,
and the other metals. They form many wonderful and extraordinary
things for the Æser, and for mortal heroes, and the arms and armour
that come from their forges are not to be paralleled. Yet the gift
must be spontaneously bestowed, for misfortune attends those extorted
from them by violence.[110]

In illustration of their character we bring forward the following
narratives from the Edda and Sagas. The homely garb in which they are
habited, will not, it is hoped, be displeasing to readers of taste. We
give as exact a copy as we are able of the originals in all their
rudeness. The tales are old, their date unknown, and they therefore
demand respect. Yet it is difficult to suppress a smile at finding such
familiar, nay almost vulgar terms[111] applied to the great supernal
powers of nature, as occur in the following tale from the Edda.



                        _Loki and the Dwarf._

Loki, the son of Laufeiar, had out of mischief cut off all the hair of
Sif. When Thor found this out he seized Loki, and would have broken
every bone in his body, only that he swore to get the Suartalfar to
make for Sif hair of gold, which would grow like any other hair.

Loki then went to the Dwarfs that are called the sons of Ivallda. They
first made the hair, which as soon as it was put on the head grew like
natural hair; then the ship Skidbladni,[112] which always had the wind
with it, wherever it would sail; and, thirdly, the spear Gugner, which
always hit in battle.

Then Loki laid his head against the dwarf Brock, that his brother
Eitri could not forge three such valuable things as these were. They
went to the forge; Eitri set the swine-skin (bellows) to the fire, and
bid his brother Brock to blow, and not to quit the fire till he should
have taken out the things he had put into it.

And when he was gone out of the forge, and that Brock was blowing,
there came a fly and settled upon his hand, and bit him; but he blew
without stopping till the smith took the work out of the fire; and it
was a boar, and its bristles were of gold.

He then put gold into the fire, and bid him not to stop blowing till
he came back. He went away, and then the fly came and settled on his
neck, and bit him more severely than before; but he blew on till the
smith came back and took out of the fire the gold-ring which is called
Drupner.[113]

Then he put iron into the fire, and bid him blow, and said that if he
stopped blowing all the work would be lost. The fly now settled between
his eyes, and bit so hard that the blood ran into his eyes, so that he
could not see; so when the bellows were down he caught at the fly in all
haste, and tore off its wings; but then came the smith, and said that
all that was in the fire had nearly been spoiled. He then took out of
the fire the hammer Miölner,[114] gave all the things to his brother
Brock, and bade him go with them to Asgard and settle the wager.

Loki also produced his jewels, and they took Odin, Thor, and Frey, for
judges. Then Loki gave to Odin the spear Gugner, and to Thor the hair
that Sif was to have, and to Frey Skidbladni, and told their virtues
as they have been already related. Brock took out his jewels, and gave
to Odin the ring, and said that every ninth night there would drop
from it eight other rings as valuable as itself. To Frey he gave the
boar, and said that he would run through air and water, by night and
by day, better than any horse, and that never was there night so dark
that the way by which he went would not be light from his hide. He
gave the hammer to Thor, and said that it would never fail to hit a
Troll, and that at whatever he threw it it would never miss it; and
that he could never fling it so far that it would not of itself return
to his hand; and when he chose, it would become so small that he might
put it into his pocket. But the fault of the hammer was that its
handle was too short.

Their judgment was, that the hammer was the best, and that the Dwarf had
won the wager. Then Loki prayed hard not to lose his head, but the Dwarf
said that could not be. "Catch me then," said Loki; and when he went to
catch him he was far away, for Loki had shoes with which he could run
through air and water. Then the Dwarf prayed Thor to catch him, and Thor
did so. The Dwarf now went to cut off his head, but Loki said he was to
have the head only, and not the neck. Then the Dwarf took a knife and a
thong, and went to sew up his mouth; but the knife was bad, so the Dwarf
wished that his brother's awl were there; and as soon as he wished it it
was there, and he sewed his lips together.[115]

Northern mythologists thus explain this very ancient fable. Sif is
the earth, and the wife of Thor, the heaven or atmosphere; her hair is
the trees, bushes, and plants, that adorn the surface of the earth.
Loki is the Fire-God, that delights in mischief, _bene servit_, _male
imperat_. When by immoderate heat he has burned off the hair of Sif,
her husband compels him so by temperate heat to warm the moisture of
the earth, that its former products may spring up more beautiful than
ever. The boar is given to Freyr, to whom and his sister Freya, as the
gods of animal and vegetable fecundity, the northern people offered
that animal, as the Italian people did, to the earth. Loki's bringing
the gifts from the under-ground people seems to indicate a belief that
metals were prepared by subterranean fire, and perhaps the forging of
Thor's hammer, the mythic emblem of thunder, by a terrestrial demon,
on a subterranean anvil, may suggest that the natural cause of thunder
is to be sought in the earth.


                      _Thorston and the Dwarf._

When spring came, Thorston made ready his ship, and put twenty-four
men on board of her. When they came to Vinland, they ran her into a
harbour, and every day he went on shore to amuse himself.

He came one day to an open part of the wood, where he saw a great
rock, and out a little way from it a Dwarf, who was horridly ugly, and
was looking up over his head with his mouth wide open; and it appeared
to Thorston that it ran from ear to ear, and that the lower jaw came
down to his knees. Thorston asked him, why he was acting so foolishly.
"Do not be surprised, my good lad," replied the Dwarf; "do you not see
that great dragon that is flying up there? He has taken off my son,
and I believe that it is Odin himself that has sent the monster to do
it. But I shall burst and die if I lose my son." Then Thorston shot at
the dragon, and hit him under one of the wings, so that he fell dead
to the earth; but Thorston caught the Dwarf's child in the air, and
brought him to his father.

The Dwarf was exceeding glad, and was more rejoiced than any one could
tell; and he said, "A great benefit have I to reward you for, who are
the deliverer of my son; and now choose your recompense in gold and
silver." "Cure your son," said Thorston, "but I am not used to take
rewards for my services." "It were not becoming," said the Dwarf, "if
I did not reward you; and let not my shirt of sheeps'-wool, which I
will give you, appear a contemptible gift, for you will never be tired
when swimming, or get a wound, if you wear it next your skin."

Thorston took the shirt and put it on, and it fitted him well, though it
had appeared too short for the Dwarf. The Dwarf now took a gold ring out
of his purse and gave it to Thorston, and bid him to take good care of
it, telling him that he never should want for money while he kept that
ring. He next took a black stone and gave it to Thorston, and said, "If
you hide this stone in the palm of your hand no one will see you. I have
not many more things to offer you, or that would be of any value to you;
I will, however, give you a fire-stone for your amusement."

He then took the stone out of his purse, and with a steel point. The
stone was triangular, white on one side and red on the other, and a
yellow border ran round it. The Dwarf then said, "If you prick the
stone with the point in the white side, there will come on such a
hail-storm that no one will be able to look at it; but if you want to
stop this shower, you have only to prick on the yellow part, and there
will come so much sunshine that the whole will melt away. But if you
should like to prick the red side, then there will come out of it such
fire, with sparks and crackling, that no one will be able to look at
it. You may also get whatever you will by means of this point and
stone, and they will come of themselves back to your hand when you
call them. I can now give you no more such gifts."

Thorston then thanked the Dwarf for his presents, and returned to his
men, and it was better for him to have made this voyage than to have
stayed at home.[116]


                      _The Dwarf-Sword Tirfing._

Suaforlami, the second in descent from Odin, was king over Gardarike
(Russia). One day he rode a-hunting, and sought long after a hart, but
could not find one the whole day. When the sun was setting he found
himself immersed so deep in the forest that he knew not where he was.
There lay a hill on his right hand, and before it he saw two Dwarfs;
he drew his sword against them, and cut off their retreat by getting
between them and the rock. They proffered him ransom for their lives,
and he asked them then their names, and one of them was called Dyren,
and the other Dualin. He knew then that they were the most ingenious
and expert of all the Dwarfs, and he therefore imposed on them that
they should forge him a sword, the best that they could form; its hilt
should be of gold, and its belt of the same metal. He moreover
enjoined, that the sword should never miss a blow, and should never
rust; and should cut through iron and stone, as through a garment; and
should be always victorious in war and in single combat for him who
bare it. These were the conditions on which he gave them their lives.

On the appointed day he returned, and the Dwarfs came forth and
delivered him the sword; and when Dualin stood in the door he said,
"This sword shall be the bane of a man every time it is drawn; and
with it shall be done three of the greatest atrocities. It shall also
be thy bane." Then Suaforlami struck at the Dwarf so, that the blade
of the sword penetrated into the solid rock. Thus Suaforlami became
possessed of this sword, and he called it Tirfing, and he bare it in
war and in single combat, and he slew with it the Giant Thiasse, and
took his daughter Fridur.

Suaforlami was shortly after slain by the Berserker[117] Andgrim, who
then became master of the sword. When the twelve sons of Andgrim were
to fight with Hialmar and Oddur for Ingaborg, the beautiful daughter
of King Inges, Angantyr bore the dangerous Tirfing; but all the
brethren were slain in the combat, and were buried with their arms.

Angantyr left an only daughter, Hervor, who, when she grew up, dressed
herself in man's attire, and took the name of Hervardar, and joined a
party of Vikinger, or Pirates. Knowing that Tirfing lay buried with
her father, she determined to awaken the dead, and obtain the charmed
blade; and perhaps nothing in northern poetry equals in interest and
sublimity the description of her landing alone in the evening on the
island of Sams, where her father and uncles lay in their sepulchral
mounds, and at night ascending to the tombs, that were enveloped in
flame,[118] and by force of entreaty obtaining from the reluctant
Angantyr the formidable Tirfing.

Hervor proceeded to the court of King Gudmund, and there one day, as
she was playing at tables with the king, one of the servants chanced
to take up and draw Tirfing, which shone like a sunbeam. But Tirfing
was never to see the light but for the bane of man, and Hervor, by a
sudden impulse, sprang from her seat, snatched the sword and struck
off the head of the unfortunate man. Hervor, after this, returned to
the house of her grandfather, Jarl Biartmar, where she resumed her
female attire, and was married to Haufud, the son of King Gudmund. She
bare him two sons, Angantyr and Heidreker; the former of a mild and
gentle disposition, the latter violent and fierce. Haufud would not
permit Heidreker to remain at his court; and as he was departing, his
mother, with other gifts, presented him Tirfing. His brother
accompanied him out of the castle. Before they parted, Heidreker drew
out his sword to look at and admire it; but scarcely did the rays of
light fall on the magic blade, when the Berserker rage came on its
owner, and he slew his gentle brother.

After this he joined a body of Vikinger, and became so distinguished,
that King Harold, for the aid he lent him, gave him his daughter Helga
in marriage. But it was the destiny of Tirfing to commit crime, and
Harold fell by the hand of his son-in-law. Heidreker was afterwards in
Russia, and the son of the king was his foster-son. One day, as they
were out hunting, Heidreker and his foster-son happened to be separated
from the rest of the party, when a wild boar appeared before them;
Heidreker ran at him with his spear, but the beast caught it in his
mouth and broke it across. He then alighted and drew Tirfing, and killed
the boar; but on looking around, he could see no one but his foster-son,
and Tirfing could only be appeased with warm human blood, and he slew
the unfortunate youth. Finally, King Heidreker was murdered in his bed
by his Scottish slaves, who carried off Tirfing; but his son Angantyr,
who succeeded him, discovered and put them to death, and recovered the
magic blade. In battle against the Huns he afterwards made great
slaughter; but among the slain was found his own brother Laudur. And so
ends the history of the Dwarf-sword Tirfing.[119]

       *       *       *       *       *

Like Alf, the word Duergr has retained its place in the Teutonic
languages. Dverg[120] is the term still used in the north; the Germans
have Zwerg, and we Dwarf,[121] which, however, is never synonymous
with Fairy, as Elf is. Ihre rejects all the etymons proposed for it,
such, for example, as that of Gudmund Andreæ, θεοι εργον; and with
abundant reason.

Some have thought that by the Dwarfs were to be understood the Finns,
the original inhabitants of the country, who were driven to the
mountains by the Scandinavians, and who probably excelled the
new-comers in the art of working their mines and manufacturing their
produce. Thorlacius, on the contrary, thinks that it was Odin and his
followers, who came from the country of the Chalybes, that brought the
metallurgic arts into Scandinavia.

Perhaps the simplest account of the origin of the Dwarfs is, that
when, in the spirit of all ancient religions, the subterranean powers
of nature were to be personified, the authors of the system, from
observing that people of small stature usually excel in craft and
ingenuity, took occasion to represent the beings who formed crystals
and purified metals within the bowels of the earth as of diminutive
size, which also corresponded better with the power assigned them of
slipping through the fissures and interstices of rocks and stones.
Similar observations led to the representation of the wild and awful
powers of brute nature under the form of huge giants.

FOOTNOTES:

[107] Some think, but with little reason, they were originally a part
of the Finnish mythology, and were adopted into the Gothic system.

[108] The giant Ymir is a personification of Chaos, the undigested
primal matter. The sons of Börr (other personifications) slew him. Out
of him they formed the world; his blood made the sea, his flesh the
land, his bones the mountains; rocks and cliffs were his teeth, jaws,
and broken pieces of bones; his skull formed the heavens.

[109] Gudmund Andreas in notis ad Völuspá.

[110] That they are not insensible to kindness one of the succeeding
tales will show.

[111] The habitual reader of the northern and German writers, or even
our old English ones, will observe with surprise his gradually
diminished contempt for many expressions now become vulgar. He will
find himself imperceptibly falling into the habit of regarding them in
the light of their pristine dignity.

[112] Skidbladni, like Pari Banou's tent, could expand and contract as
required. It would carry all the Æser and their arms, and when not in
use it could be taken asunder and put in a purse. "A good ship," says
Ganglar, "is Skidbladni, but great art must have been employed in
making it." Mythologists say it is the clouds.

[113] _i. e._ The _Dripper_.

[114] _i. e._ The _Bruiser_ or _Crusher_, from _Myla_, to bruise or
crush. Little the Fancy know of the high connexions of their phrase
_Mill_.

[115] Edda Resenii, Dæmisaga 59.

[116] Thorston's Saga, c. 3, in the Kämpa Dater.

[117] The Berserkers were warriors who used to be inflamed with such
rage and fury at the thoughts of combats as to bite their shields, run
through fire, swallow burning coals, and perform such like mad feats.
"Whether the avidity for fighting or the ferocity of their nature,"
says Saxo, "brought this madness on them, is uncertain."

[118] The northern nations believed that the tombs of their heroes
emitted a kind of lambent flame, which was always visible in the
night, and served to guard the ashes of the dead; they called it
_Hauga Elldr_, or The Sepulchral Fire. It was supposed more
particularly to surround such tombs as contained hidden
treasures.--_Bartholin, de Contempt. a Dan. Morte_, p. 275.

[119] Hervarar Saga _passim_. The Tirfing Saga would be its more
proper appellation. In poetic and romantic interest it exceeds all the
northern Sagas.

[120] In Swedish Dverg also signifies a spider.

[121] In the old Swedish metrical history of Alexander, the word
_Duerf_ occurs. The progress in the English word is as follows:
Anglo-Saxon [Old English: dþeorg]; thence _dwerke_;

      A maid that is a messingere
      And a _dwerkè_ me brought here,
          Her to do socoúr.
                            _Lybeaus Disconus._

lastly, _dwarf_, as in old Swedish.




                             SCANDINAVIA.

      De vare syv og hundrede Trolde,
        De vare baade grumme og lede,
      De vilde gjöre Bonden et Gjæsterie,
        Med hannem baade drikke og æde.
                        ELINE AF VILLENSZOV.

      There were seven and a hundred Trolls,
        They were both ugly and grim,
      A visit they would the farmer make,
        Both eat and drink with him.


Under the name of Scandinavia are included the kingdoms of Sweden,
Denmark, and Norway, which once had a common religion and a common
language. Their religion is still one, and their languages differ but
little; we therefore feel that we may safely treat of their Fairy
Mythology together.

Our principal authorities are the collection of Danish popular
traditions, published by Mr. Thiele,[122] the select Danish ballads of
Nyerup and Rahbek,[123] and the Swedish ballads of Geijer and
Afzelius.[124] As most of the principal Danish ballads treating of
Elves, etc., have been already translated by Dr. Jamieson, we will not
insert them here; but translate, instead, the corresponding Swedish
ones, which are in general of greater simplicity, and often contain
additional traits of popular belief. As we prefer fidelity to polish,
the reader must not be offended at antique modes of expression and
imperfect rimes. Our rimes we can, however, safely say shall be at
least as perfect as those of our originals.

These ballads, none of which are later than the fifteenth century,
are written in a strain of the most artless simplicity; not the
slightest attempt at ornament is to be discerned in them; the same
ideas and expressions continually recur; and the rimes are the most
careless imaginable, often a mere _assonnance_ in vowels or
consonants; sometimes not possessing even that slight similarity of
sound. Every Visa or ballad has its single or double Omquæd[125] or
burden, which, like a running accompaniment in music, frequently falls
in with the most happy effect; sometimes recalling former joys or
sorrows; sometimes, by the continual mention of some attribute of one
of the seasons, especially the summer, keeping up in the mind of the
reader or hearers the forms of external nature.

It is singular to observe the strong resemblance between the
Scandinavian ballads and those of England and Scotland, not merely in
manner but in subject. The Scottish ballad first mentioned below is an
instance; it is to be met with in England, in the Feroes, in Denmark,
and in Sweden, with very slight differences. Geijer observes, that the
two last stanzas of 'William and Margaret,' in Percy's Reliques, are
nearly word for word the same as the two last in the Swedish ballad of
'Rosa Lilla,'[126] and in the corresponding Danish one. This might
perhaps lead to the supposition of many of these ballads having come
down from the time when the connexion was so intimate between this
country and Scandinavia.

We will divide the Scandinavian objects of popular belief into four
classes:--1. The Elves; 2. The Dwarfs, or Trolls, as they are usually
called; 3. The Nisses; and 4. The Necks, Mermen, and Mermaids.[127]

FOOTNOTES:

[122] Danske Folkesagn, 4 vols. 12mo. Copenh. 1818-22.

[123] Udvalgde Danske Viser fra Middelaldaren, 5 vols. 12mo. Copenh.
1812.

[124] Svenska Folk-Visor från Forntiden, 3 vols. 8vo. Stockholm,
1814-16. We have not seen the late collection of Arvidsson named
Svenska Fornsånger, in 3 vols. 8vo.

[125] The reader will find a beautiful instance of a double Omquæd in
the Scottish ballad of the Cruel Sister.

      There were two sisters sat in a bower,
                          _Binnōrie o Binnōrie_
      There came a knight to be their wooer
        _By the bonny mill-dams of Binnōrie._

And in the Cruel Brother,

      There were three ladies played at the ba',
        _With a heigh ho and a lily gay_;
      There came a knight and played o'er them a',
        _As the primrose spreads so sweetly_.

The second and fourth lines are repeated in every stanza.

[126] These are the Swedish verses:

      Det växte upp _Liljor_ på begge deres graf,
      _Med äran och med dygd_--
      De växte tilsamman med alla sina blad.
      _J vinnen väl, J vinnen väl både rosor och liljor._
      Det växte upp _Rosor_ ur båda deras mun,
      _Med äran och med dygd_--
      De växte tilsammans i fagreste lund.
      _J vinnen väl, J vinnen väl både rosor och liljor._


[127] Some readers may wish to know the proper mode of pronouncing such
Danish and Swedish words as occur in the following legends. For their
satisfaction we give the following information. J is pronounced as our
_y_; when it comes between a consonant and a vowel, it is very short,
like the y that is expressed, but not written, in many English words
after _c_ and _g_: thus _kjær_ is pronounced very nearly as _care_: _ö_
sounds like the German _ö_, or French _eu_: _d_ after another consonant
is rarely sounded, Trold is pronounced Troll: _aa_, which the Swedes
write _å_, as o in _more_, _tore_. Aarhuus is pronounced _Ore-hoos_.




                                ELVES.

      Säg, kännar du Elfvornas glada slägt?
        De bygga ved flodernas rand;
      De spinna af månsken sin högtidsdrägt,
        Med liljehvit spelande hand.
                                      STAGNELIUS.

      Say, knowest thou the Elves' gay and joyous race?
        The banks of streams are their home;
      They spin of the moonshine their holiday-dress,
        With their lily-white hands frolicsome.


The Alfar still live in the memory and traditions of the peasantry of
Scandinavia. They also, to a certain extent, retain their distinction
into White and Black. The former, or the Good Elves, dwell in the air,
dance on the grass, or sit in the leaves of trees; the latter, or Evil
Elves, are regarded as an underground people, who frequently inflict
sickness or injury on mankind; for which there is a particular kind of
doctors called _Kloka män_,[128] to be met with in all parts of the
country.

The Elves are believed to have their kings, and to celebrate their
weddings and banquets, just the same as the dwellers above ground. There
is an interesting intermediate class of them in popular tradition called
the Hill-people (_Högfolk_), who are believed to dwell in caves and
small hills: when they show themselves they have a handsome human form.
The common people seem to connect with them a deep feeling of
melancholy, as if bewailing a half-quenched hope of redemption.[129]

There are only a few old persons now who can tell any thing more about
them than of the sweet singing that may occasionally on summer nights
be heard out of their hills, when one stands still and listens, or, as
it is expressed in the ballads, "lays his ear to the Elve-hill"
(_lägger sitt öra till Elfvehögg_): but no one must be so cruel as, by
the slightest word, to destroy their hopes of salvation, for then the
spritely music will be turned into weeping and lamentation.[130]

The Norwegians call the Elves Huldrafolk, and their music Huldraslaat:
it is in the minor key, and of a dull and mournful sound. The
mountaineers sometimes play it, and pretend they have learned it by
listening to the underground people among the hills and rocks. There
is also a tune called the Elf-king's tune, which several of the good
fiddlers know right well, but never venture to play, for as soon as it
begins both old and young, and even inanimate objects, are impelled to
dance, and the player cannot stop unless he can play the air
backwards, or that some one comes behind him and cuts the strings of
his fiddle.[131]

The little underground Elves, who are believed to dwell under the
houses of mankind, are described as sportive and mischievous, and as
imitating all the actions of men. They are said to love cleanliness
about the house and place, and to reward such servants as are neat and
cleanly.

There was one time, it is said, a servant girl, who was for her cleanly,
tidy habits, greatly beloved by the Elves, particularly as she was
careful to carry away all dirt and foul water to a distance from the
house, and they once invited her to a wedding. Every thing was conducted
in the greatest order, and they made her a present of some chips, which
she took good-humouredly and put into her pocket. But when the
bride-pair was coming there was a straw unluckily lying in the way, the
bridegroom got cleverly over it, but the poor bride fell on her face. At
the sight of this the girl could not restrain herself, but burst out
a-laughing, and that instant the whole vanished from her sight. Next
day, to her utter amazement, she found that what she had taken to be
nothing but chips, were so many pieces of pure gold.[132]

A dairy-maid at a place called Skibshuset (_the Ship-house_), in Odense,
was not so fortunate. A colony of Elves had taken up their abode under
the floor of the cowhouse, or it is more likely, were there before it
was made a cowhouse. However, the dirt and filth that the cattle made
annoyed them beyond measure, and they gave the dairy-maid to understand
that if she did not remove the cows, she would have reason to repent it.
She gave little heed to their representations; and it was not very long
till they set her up on top of the hay-rick, and killed all the cows. It
is said that they were seen on the same night removing in a great hurry
from the cowhouse down to the meadow, and that they went in little
coaches; and their king was in the first coach, which was far more
stately and magnificent than the rest. They have ever since lived in the
meadow.[133]

The Elves are extremely fond of dancing in the meadows, where they form
those circles of a livelier green which from them are called Elf-dance
(_Elfdans_). When the country people see in the morning stripes along
the dewy grass in the woods and meadows, they say the Elves have been
dancing there. If any one should at midnight get within their circle,
they become visible to him, and they may then illude him. It is not
every one that can see the Elves; and one person may see them dancing
while another perceives nothing. Sunday children, as they are called,
_i. e._ those born on Sunday, are remarkable for possessing this
property of seeing Elves and similar beings. The Elves, however, have
the power to bestow this gift on whomsoever they please. People also
used to speak of Elf-books which they gave to those whom they loved, and
which enabled them to foretell future events.

The Elves often sit in little stones that are of a circular form, and
are called Elf-mills (_Elf-quärnor_); the sound of their voice is said
to be sweet and soft like the air.[134]

The Danish peasantry give the following account of their Ellefolk or
Elve-people.

The Elle-people live in the Elle-moors. The appearance of the man is
that of an old man with a low-crowned hat on his head; the Elle-woman
is young and of a fair and attractive countenance, but behind she is
hollow like a dough-trough. Young men should be especially on their
guard against her, for it is very difficult to resist her; and she
has, moreover, a stringed instrument, which, when she plays on it,
quite ravishes their hearts. The man may be often seen near the
Elle-moors, bathing himself in the sunbeams, but if any one comes too
near him, he opens his mouth wide and breathes upon them, and his
breath produces sickness and pestilence. But the women are most
frequently to be seen by moonshine; then they dance their rounds in
the high grass so lightly and so gracefully, that they seldom meet a
denial when they offer their hand to a rash young man. It is also
necessary to watch cattle, that they may not graze in any place where
the Elle-people have been; for if any animal come to a place where
the Elle-people have spit, or done what is worse, it is attacked by
some grievous disease which can only be cured by giving it to eat a
handful of St. John's wort, which had been pulled at twelve o'clock on
St. John's night. It might also happen that they might sustain some
injury by mixing with the Elle-people's cattle, which are very large,
and of a blue colour, and which may sometimes be seen in the fields
licking up the dew, on which they live. But the farmer has an easy
remedy against this evil; for he has only to go to the Elle-hill when
he is turning out his cattle and to say, "Thou little Troll! may I
graze my cows on thy hill?" And if he is not prohibited, he may set
his mind at rest.[135]

The following ballads and tales will fully justify what has been said
respecting the tone of melancholy connected with the subject of the
Elves.[136]


                    _Sir Olof in the Elve-Dance._

      Sir Olof he rode out at early day,
      And so came he unto an Elve-dance gay.
            The dance it goes well,
            So well in the grove.

      The Elve-father reached out his white hand free,
      "Come, come, Sir Olof, tread the dance with me."
            The dance it goes well,
            So well in the grove.

      "O nought I will, and nought I may,
      To-morrow will be my wedding-day."
            The dance it goes well,
            So well in the grove.

      And the Elve-mother reached out her white hand free,
      "Come, come, Sir Olof, tread the dance with me."
            The dance it goes well,
            So well in the grove.

      "O nought I will, and nought I may,
      To-morrow will be my wedding-day."
            The dance it goes well,
            So well in the grove.

      And the Elve-sister reached out her white hand free,
      "Come, come, Sir Olof, tread the dance with me."
            The dance it goes well,
            So well in the grove.

      "O nought I will, and nought I may,
      To-morrow will be my wedding-day."
            The dance it goes well,
            So well in the grove.

      And the bride she spake with her bride-maids so,
      "What may it mean that the bells thus go?"
            The dance it goes well,
            So well in the grove.

      "'Tis the custom of this our isle," they replied;
      "Each young swain ringeth home his bride."
            The dance it goes well,
            So well in the grove.

      "And the truth from you to conceal I fear,
      Sir Olof is dead, and lies on his bier."
            The dance it goes well,
            So well in the grove.

      And on the morrow, ere light was the day,
      In Sir Olof's house three corpses lay.
            The dance it goes well,
            So well in the grove.

      It was Sir Olof, his bonny bride,
      And eke his mother, of sorrow she died.
            The dance it goes well,
            So well in the grove.[137]



                    _The Elf-woman and Sir Olof._

      Sir Olof rideth out ere dawn,
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      Bright day him came on.
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.

      Sir Olof rides by Borgya,
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      Meets a dance of Elves so gay.
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.

      There danceth Elf and Elve-maid,
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      Elve-king's daughter, with her flying hair.
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.

      Elve-king's daughter reacheth her hand free,
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      "Come here, Sir Olof, tread the dance with me."
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.

      "Nought I tread the dance with thee,"
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      "My bride hath that forbidden me."
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.

      "Nought I will and nought I may,"
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      "To-morrow is my wedding-day."
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.

      "Wilt thou not tread the dance with me?"
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      "An evil shall I fix on thee."
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.

      Sir Olof turned his horse therefrom,
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      Sickness and plague follow him home.
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.

      Sir Olof to his mother's rode,
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      Out before him his mother stood.
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.

      "Welcome, welcome, my dear son,"
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      "Why is thy rosy cheek so wan?"
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.

      "My colt was swift and I tardy,"
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      "I knocked against a green oak-tree."
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.

      "My dear sister, prepare my bed,"
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      "My dear brother, take my horse to the mead."
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.

      "My dear mother, brush my hair,"
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      "My dear father, make me a bier."
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.

      "My dear son, that do not say,"
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      To-morrow is thy wedding-day."
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.

      "Be it when it will betide,"
          Breaketh day, falleth rime;
      "I ne'er shall come unto my bride."
          Sir Olof cometh home,
          When the wood it is leaf-green.[138]


                   _The Young Swain and the Elves._

      I was a handsome young swain,
      And to the court should ride.
      I rode out in the evening-hour;
      In the rosy grove I to sleep me laid.
            Since I her first saw.

      I laid me under a lind so green,
      My eyes they sunk in sleep;
      There came two maidens going along,
      They fain would with me speak.
            Since I her first saw.

      The one she tapped me on my cheek,
      The other whispered in my ear:
      "Stand up, handsome young swain,
      If thou list of love to hear."
            Since I her first saw.

      They led then forth a maiden,
      Whose hair like gold did shine:
      "Stand up, handsome young swain,
      If thou to joy incline."
            Since I her first saw.

      The third began a song to sing,
      With good will she did so;
      Thereat stood the rapid stream,
      Which before was wont to flow.
            Since I her first saw.

      Thereat stood the rapid stream,
      Which before was wont to flow;
      And the hind all with her hair so brown,
      Forgot whither she should go.
            Since I her first saw.

      I got me up from off the ground,
      And leaned my sword upon;
      The Elve-women danced in and out,
      All had they the Elve fashión.
            Since I her first saw.

      Had not fortune been to me so good,
      That the cock his wings clapped then,
      I had slept within the hill that night,
      All with the Elve-womén.
            Since I her first saw.[139]



                 _Svend Faelling and the Elle-Maid._

Svend Fælling was, while a little boy, at service in
Sjeller-wood-house in Framley; and it one time happened that he had to
ride of a message to Ristrup. It was evening before he got near home,
and as he came by the hill of Borum Es, he saw the Elle-maids, who
were dancing without ceasing round and round his horse. Then one of
the Elle-maids stept up to him, and reached him a drinking cup,
bidding him at the same time to drink. Svend took the cup, but as he
was dubious of the nature of the contents, he flung it out over his
shoulder, where it fell on the horse's back, and singed off all the
hair. While he had the horn fast in his hand, he gave his horse the
spurs and rode off full speed. The Elle-maid pursued him till he came
to Trigebrand's mill, and rode through the running water, over which
she could not follow him. She then earnestly conjured Svend to give
her back the horn, promising him in exchange twelve men's strength. On
this condition he gave back the horn, and got what she had promised
him; but it very frequently put him to great inconvenience, for he
found that along with it he had gotten an appetite for twelve.[140]


                          _The Elle-Maids._

There lived a man in Aasum, near Odense, who, as he was coming home
one night from Seden, passed by a hill that was standing on red
pillars, and underneath there was dancing and great festivity. He
hurried on past the hill as fast as he could, never venturing to cast
his eyes that way. But as he went along, two fair maidens came to meet
him, with beautiful hair floating over their shoulders, and one of
them held a cup in her hand, which she reached out to him that he
might drink of it. The other then asked him if he would come again, at
which he laughed, and answered, Yes. But when he got home he became
strangely affected in his mind, was never at ease in himself, and was
continually saying that he had promised to go back. And when they
watched him closely to prevent his doing so, he at last lost his
senses, and died shortly after.[141]


                             _Maid Vae._

There was once a wedding and a great entertainment at Œsterhæsinge.
The party did not break up till morning, and the guests took their
departure with a great deal of noise and bustle. While they were
putting their horses to their carriages, previous to setting out home,
they stood talking about their respective bridal-presents. And while
they were talking loudly, and with the utmost earnestness, there came
from a neighbouring moor a maiden clad in green, with plaited rushes
on her head; she went up to the man who was loudest, and bragging most
of his present, and said to him: "What wilt thou give to maid Væ?"
The man, who was elevated with all the ale and brandy he had been
drinking, snatched up a whip, and replied: "Ten cuts of my whip;" and
that very moment he dropt down dead on the ground.[142]


                    _The Elle-Maid near Ebeltoft._

A farmer's boy was keeping cows not far from Ebeltoft. There came to him
a very fair and pretty girl, and she asked him if he was hungry or
thirsty. But when he perceived that she guarded with the greatest
solicitude against his getting a sight of her back, he immediately
suspected that she must be an Elle-maid, for the Elle-people are hollow
behind. He accordingly would give no heed to her, and endeavoured to get
away from her; but when she perceived this, she offered him her breast
that he should suck her. And so great was the enchantment that
accompanied this action, that he was unable to resist it. But when he
had done as she desired him, he had no longer any command of himself, so
that she had now no difficulty in enticing him with her.

He was three days away, during which time his father and mother went
home, and were in great affliction, for they were well assured that he
must have been enticed away. But on the fourth day his father saw him
a long way off coming home, and he desired his wife to set a pan of
meat on the fire as quick as possible. The son then came in at the
door, and sat down at the table without saying a word. The father,
too, remained quite silent, as if every thing was as it ought to be.
His mother then set the meat before him, and his father bid him eat,
but he let the food lie untouched, and said that he knew now where he
could get much better food. The father then became highly enraged,
took a good large switch, and once more ordered him to take his food.
The boy was then obliged to eat, and as soon as he had tasted the
flesh he ate it up greedily, and instantly fell into a deep sleep. He
slept for as many days as the enchantment had lasted, but he never
after recovered the use of his reason.[143]


                          _Hans Puntleder._

There are three hills on the lands of Bubbelgaard in Funen, which are
to this day called the Dance-hills, from the following occurrence. A
lad named Hans was at service in Bubbelgaard, and as he was coming one
evening past the hills, he saw one of them raised on red pillars, and
great dancing and much merriment underneath. He was so enchanted with
the beauty and magnificence of what he saw, that he could not restrain
his curiosity, but was in a strange and wonderful manner attracted
nearer and nearer, till at last the fairest of all the fair maidens
that were there came up to him and gave him a kiss. From that moment
he lost all command of himself, and became so violent, that he used to
tear to pieces all the clothes that were put on him, so that at last
they were obliged to make him a dress of sole-leather, which he could
not pull off him; and ever after he went by the name of Hans
Puntleder, i. e. Sole-leather.[144]

       *       *       *       *       *

According to Danish tradition, the Elle-kings, under the denomination
of Promontory-kings, (_Klintekonger_), keep watch and ward over the
country. Whenever war, or any other misfortune, threatens to come on
the land, there may be seen, on the promontory, complete armies, drawn
up in array to defend the country.

One of these kings resides at Möen, on the spot which still bears the
name of King's-hill (_Kongsbjerg_). His queen is the most beautiful
of beings, and she dwells at the Queen's Chair (_Dronningstolen_).
This king is a great friend of the king of Stevns, and they are both
at enmity with Grap, the promontory-king of Rügen, who must keep at a
distance, and look out over the sea to watch their approach.

Another tradition, however, says, that there is but one king, who
rules over the headlands of Möen, Stevns, and Rügen. He has a
magnificent chariot, which is drawn by four black horses. In this he
drives over the sea, from one promontory to another. At such times the
sea grows black, and is in great commotion, and the loud snorting and
neighing of his horses may be distinctly heard.[145]

It was once believed that no mortal monarch dare come to Stevns; for
the Elle-king would not permit him to cross the stream that bounds it.
But Christian IV. passed it without opposition, and since his time
several Danish monarchs have been there.

At Skjelskör, in Zealand, reigns another of these jealous promontorial
sovereigns, named king Tolv (_Twelve_). He will not suffer a mortal
prince to pass the bridge of Kjelskör. Wo, too, betide the watchman who
should venture to cry twelve o'clock in the village, he might chance to
find himself transported to the village of Borre or to the Windmills.

Old people that have eyes for such things, declare they frequently see
Kong Tolv rolling himself on the grass in the sunshine. On New-year's
night he takes from one smith's forge or another nine new shoes for
his horses; they must be always left ready for him, and with them the
necessary complement of nails.

The Elle-king of Bornholm[146] lets himself be occasionally heard with
fife and drum, especially when war is at hand; he may then be seen in
the fields with his soldiers. This king will not suffer an earthly
monarch to pass more than three nights on his isle.

In the popular creed there is some strange connexion between the Elves
and the trees. They not only frequent them, but they make an
interchange of form with them. In the church-yard of Store
Heddinge,[147] in Zealand, there are the remains of an oak wood.
These, say the common people, are the Elle-king's soldiers; by day
they are trees, by night valiant warriors. In the wood of Rugaard, in
the same island, is a tree which by night becomes a whole Elle-people,
and goes about all alive. It has no leaves upon it, yet it would be
very unsafe to go to break or fell it, for the underground-people
frequently hold their meetings under its branches. There is, in
another place, an elder-tree growing in a farm-yard, which frequently
takes a walk in the twilight about the yard, and peeps in through the
window at the children when they are alone.

It was, perhaps, these elder-trees that gave origin to the notion. In
Danish _Hyld_ or _Hyl_--a word not far removed from Elle--is Elder,
and the peasantry believe that in or under the elder-tree dwells a
being called Hyldemoer (_Elder-mother_), or Hyldequinde
(_Elder-woman_), with her ministrant spirits.[148] A Danish peasant,
if he wanted to take any part of an elder-tree, used previously to
say, three times--"O, Hyldemoer, Hyldemoer! let me take some of thy
elder, and I will let thee take something of mine in return." If this
was omitted he would be severely punished. They tell of a man who cut
down an elder-tree, but he soon after died suddenly. It is, moreover,
not prudent to have any furniture made of elder-wood. A child was once
put to lie in a cradle made of this wood, but Hyldemoer came and
pulled it by the legs, and gave it no rest till it was put to sleep
elsewhere. Old David Monrad relates, that a shepherd, one night, heard
his three children crying, and when he inquired the cause, they said
some one had been sucking them. Their breasts were found to be
swelled, and they were removed to another room, where they were quiet.
The reason is said to have been that that room was floored with elder.

The linden or lime tree is the favourite haunt of the Elves and
cognate beings; and it is not safe to be near it after sunset.[149]

FOOTNOTES:

[128] That is, Wise People or Conjurors. They answer to the
Fairy-women of Ireland.

[129] Afzelius is of opinion that this notion respecting the
Hill-people is derived from the time of the introduction of
Christianity into the north, and expresses the sympathy of the first
converts with their forefathers, who had died without a knowledge of
the Redeemer, and lay buried in heathen earth, and whose unhappy
spirits were doomed to wander about these lower regions, or sigh
within their mounds till the great day of redemption.

[130] "About fifteen years ago," says Ödman (Bahuslän, p. 80), "people
used to hear, out of the hill under Gärun, in the parish of Tanum, the
playing, as it were, of the very best musicians. Any one there who had
a fiddle, and wished to play, was taught in an instant, provided they
promised them salvation; but whoever did not do so, might hear them
within, in the hill, breaking their violins to pieces, and weeping
bitterly." See Grimm. Deut. Myth. 461.

[131] Arndt, Reise nach Schweden, iv. 241.

[132] Svenska Folk-Visor, vol. iii. p. 159. There is a similar legend
in Germany. A servant, one time, seeing one of the little ones very
hard-set to carry a single grain of wheat, burst out laughing at him.
In a rage, he threw it on the ground, and it proved to be the purest
gold. But he and his comrades quitted the house, and it speedily went
to decay.--Strack. Beschr. v. Eilsen, p. 124, _ap._ Grimm, Introd.,
etc., p. 90.

[133] Thiele, vol. iv. p. 22. They are called Trolls in the original.
As they had a king, we think they must have been Elves. The Dwarfs
have long since abolished monarchy.

[134] The greater part of what precedes has been taken from Afzelius
in the Svenska Visor, vol. iii.

[135] Thiele, iv. 26.

[136] In the distinction which we have made between the Elves and
Dwarfs we find that we are justified by the popular creed of the
Norwegians.--Faye, p. 49, _ap._ Grimm, Deutsche Mythologie, p. 412.

[137] Svenska Visor, iii. 158, as sung in Upland and East Gothland.

[138] Svenska Visor, iii. 165, from a MS. in the Royal Library. This and
the preceding one are variations of the Danish Ballad of Elveskud, which
has been translated by Dr. Jamieson (Popular Ballads, i. 219), and by
Lewis in the Tales of Wonder. The Swedish editors give a third variation
from East Gothland. A comparison of the two ballads with each other, and
with the Danish one, will enable the reader to judge of the
modifications a subject undergoes in different parts of a country.

[139] Svenska Visor, iii. p. 170. This is the Elveshöj of the Danish
ballads, translated by Jamieson (i. 225), and by Lewis. In the different
Swedish variations, they are Hafsfruen, i. e. Mermaids, who attempt to
seduce young men to their love by the offer of costly presents.

A Danish legend (Thiele, i. 22) relates that a poor man, who was working
near Gillesbjerg, a haunted hill, lay down on it to rest himself in the
middle of the day. Suddenly there appeared before him a beautiful
maiden, with a gold cup in her hand. She made signs to him to come near,
but when the man in his fright made the sign of the cross, she was
obliged to turn round and then he saw her back that it was hollow.

[140] Thiele, ii. 67. Framley is in Jutland. Svend (i. e. _Swain_)
Fælling is a celebrated character in Danish tradition; he is regarded as
a second Holger Danske, and he is the hero of two of the Kjempe Viser.
In Sweden he is named Sven Färling or Fotling. Grimm has shown that he
and Sigurd are the same person. Deutsche Mythologie, p. 345. In the
Nibelungen Lied (st. 345) Sifret (Sigurd) gets the strength of twelve
men by wearing the _tarnkappe_ of the dwarf Albrich. Another tradition,
presently to be mentioned, says it was from a Dwarf he got his strength,
for aiding him in battle against another Dwarf. It is added, that when
Svend came home in the evening, after his adventure with the Elle-maids,
the people were drinking their Yule-beer, and they sent him down for a
fresh supply. Svend went without saying anything, and returned with a
barrel in each hand and one under each arm.

[141] Thiele, iii. 43. Odense is in Funen.

[142] Thiele, i. 109. (_communicated_). Such legends, as Mr. Thiele
learned directly from the mouths of the peasantry, he terms _oral_;
those he procured from his friends, _communicated_. Œsterhæsinge, the
scene of this legend, is in the island of Funen.

[143] Thiele, i. 118. (_communicated_). Ebeltoft is a village in North
Jutland.

[144] Thiele, iv. 32. From the circumstances, it would appear that
these were Elves and not Dwarfs; but one cannot be positive in these
matters.

[145] Möen and Stevns are in Zealand. As Rügen does not belong to the
Danish monarchy, the former tradition is probably the more correct
one. Yet the latter may be the original one.

[146] Bornholm is a _holm_, or small island, adjacent to Zealand.

[147] The Elle-king of Stevns has his bedchamber in the wall of this
church.

[148] This is evidently the Frau Holle of the Germans.

[149] The preceding particulars are all derived from M. Thiele's work.




                           DWARFS OR TROLLS

      Ther bygde folk i the bärg,
      Quinnor och män, för mycken duerf.
                     HIST. ALEX. MAC. _Suedice._

      Within the hills folk did won,
      Women and men, dwarfs many a one.


The more usual appellation of the Dwarfs is Troll or Trold,[150] a
word originally significant of any evil spirit,[151] giant monster,
magician,[152] or evil person; but now in a good measure divested of
its ill senses, for the Trolls are not in general regarded as noxious
or malignant beings.

The Trolls are represented as dwelling inside of hills, mounds, and
hillocks--whence they are also called Hill-people
(_Bjergfolk_)--sometimes in single families, sometimes in societies. In
the ballads they are described as having kings over them, but never so
in the popular legend. Their character seems gradually to have sunk down
to the level of the peasantry, in proportion as the belief in them was
consigned to the same class. They are regarded as extremely rich for
when, on great occasions of festivity, they have their hills raised up
on red pillars, people that have chanced to be passing by have seen them
shoving large chests full of money to and fro, and opening and clapping
down the lids of them. Their hill-dwellings are very magnificent inside.
"They live," said one of Mr. Arndt's guides, "in fine houses of gold and
crystal. My father saw them once in the night, when the hill was open on
St. John's night. They were dancing and drinking, and it seemed to him
as if they were making signs to him to go to them, but his horse
snorted, and carried him away, whether he would or no. There is a great
number of them in the Guldberg (_Goldhill_), and they have brought into
it all the gold and silver that people buried in the great Russian
war."[153]

They are obliging and neighbourly; freely lending and borrowing, and
elsewise keeping up a friendly intercourse with mankind. But they have
a sad propensity to thieving, not only stealing provisions, but even
women and children.

They marry, have children, bake and brew, just as the peasant himself
does. A farmer one day met a hill-man and his wife, and a whole squad
of stumpy little children, in his fields;[154] and people used often
to see the children of the man who lived in the hill of Kund, in
Jutland, climbing up the hill, and rolling down after one another,
with shouts of laughter.

The Trolls have a great dislike to noise, probably from a recollection
of the time when Thor used to be flinging his hammer after them; so
that the hanging of bells in the churches has driven them almost all
out of the country. The people of Ebeltoft were once sadly plagued by
them, as they plundered their pantries in a most unconscionable
manner; so they consulted a very wise and pious man; and his advice
was, that they should hang a bell in the steeple of the church. They
did so, and they were soon eased of the Trolls.[155]

These beings have some very extraordinary and useful properties; they
can, for instance, go about invisibly,[156] or turn themselves into
any shape; they can foresee future events; they can confer prosperity,
or the contrary, on a family; they can bestow bodily strength on any
one; and, in short, perform numerous feats beyond the power of man.

Of personal beauty they have not much to boast: the Ebeltoft Dwarfs,
mentioned above, were often seen, and they had immoderate humps on
their backs, and long crooked noses. They were dressed in gray
jackets,[157] and they wore pointed red caps. Old people in Zealand
say, that when the Trolls were in the country, they used to go from
their hill to the village of Gudmandstrup through the Stone-meadow,
and that people, when passing that way, used to meet great tall men in
long black clothes. Some have foolishly spoken to them, and wished
them good evening, but they never got any other answer than that the
Trolls hurried past them, saying, Mi! mi! mi! mi!

Thanks to the industry of Mr. Thiele, who has been indefatigable in
collecting the traditions of his native country, we are furnished with
ample accounts of the Trolls; and the following legends will fully
illustrate what we have written concerning them.[158]

We commence with the Swedish ballads of the Hill-kings, as in dignity
and antiquity they take precedence of the legends.



                            _Sir Thynne._

      And it was the knight Sir Thynnè,
        He was a knight so grave;
      Whether he were on foot or on horse,
        He was a knight so brave.[159]

      And it was the knight Sir Thynnè
        Went the hart and the hind to shoot,
      So he saw Ulva, the little Dwarf's daughter,
        At the green linden's foot.

      And it was Ulva, the little Dwarf's daughter,
        Unto her handmaid she cried,
      "Go fetch my gold harp hither to me,
        Sir Thynnè I'll draw to my side."

      The first stroke on her gold harp she struck,
        So sweetly she made it ring,
      The wild beasts in the wood and field
        They forgot whither they would spring.

      The next stroke on her gold harp she struck,
        So sweetly she made it ring,
      The little gray hawk that sat on the bough,
        He spread out both his wings.

      The third stroke on her gold harp she struck,
        So sweetly she made it ring,
      The little fish that went in the stream,
        He forgot whither he would swim.

      Then flowered the mead, then leafed all,
        'Twas caused by the runic lay;[160]
      Sir Thynnè he struck his spurs in his horse,
        He no longer could hold him away.

      And it was the knight Sir Thynnè,
        From his horse he springs hastily,
      So goeth he to Ulva, the little Dwarf's daughter,
        All under the green linden tree.

      "Here you sit, my maiden fair,
        A rose all lilies above;
      See you can never a mortal man
        Who will not seek your love."

      "Be silent, be silent, now Sir Thynnè,
        With your proffers of love, I pray;
      For I am betrothed unto a hill-king,
        A king all the Dwarfs obey.

      "My true love he sitteth the hill within,
        And at gold tables plays merrily;
      My father he setteth his champions in ring,
        And in iron arrayeth them he.

      "My mother she sitteth the hill within,
        And gold in the chest doth lay;
      And I stole out for a little while,
        Upon my gold harp to play."

      And it was the knight Sir Thynnè,
        He patted her cheek rosie:
      "Why wilt thou not give a kinder reply,
        Thou dearest of maidens, to me?"

      "I can give you no kinder reply:
        I may not myself that allow;
      I am betrothed to a hill-king,
        And to him I must keep my vow."

      And it was Thora, the little Dwarf's wife,
        She at the hill-door looked out,
      And there she saw how the knight Sir Thynnè,
        Lay at the green linden's foot.

      And it was Thora, the little Dwarf's wife,
        She was vext and angry, God wot:
      "What hast thou here in the grove to do?
        Little business, I trow, thou hast got.

      "'Twere better for thee in the hill to be,
        And gold in the chest to lay,
      Than here to sit in the rosy grove,[161]
        And on thy gold harp to play.

      "And 'twere better for thee in the hill to be,
        And thy bride-dress finish sewíng,
      Than sit under the lind, and with runic lay
        A Christian man's heart to thee win."

      And it was Ulva, the little Dwarf's daughter,
        She goeth in at the hill-door:
      And after her goeth the knight Sir Thynnè,
        Clothed in scarlet and fur.

      And it was Thora, the little Dwarf's wife,
        Forth a red-gold chair she drew:
      Then she cast Sir Thynnè into a sleep
        Until that the cock he crew.

      And it was Thora, the little Dwarf's wife,
        The five rune-books she took out;
      So she loosed him fully out of the runes,
        Her daughter had bound him about.

      "And hear thou me, Sir Thynnè,
        From the runes thou now art free;
      This to thee I will soothly say,
        My daughter shall never win thee.

      "And I was born of Christian kind,
        And to the hill stolen in;
      My sister dwelleth in Iseland,[162]
        And wears a gold crown so fine.

      "And there she wears her crown of gold,
        And beareth of queen the name;
      Her daughter was stolen away from her,
        Thereof there goeth great fame.

      "Her daughter was stolen away from her,
        And to Berner-land brought in;
      And there now dwelleth the maiden free,
        She is called Lady Hermolin.

      "And never can she into the dance go,
        But seven women follow her;
      And never can she on the gold-harp play,
        If the queen herself is not there.

      "The king he hath a sister's son,
        He hopeth the crown to possess,
      For him they intend the maiden free,
        For her little happiness.

      "And this for my honour will I do,
        And out of good-will moreover,
      To thee will I give the maiden free,
        And part her from that lover."

      Then she gave unto him a dress so new,
        With gold and pearls bedight;
      Every seam on the dress it was
        With precious stones all bright.

      Then she gave unto him a horse so good,
        And therewith a new sell;
      "And never shalt thou the way inquire,
        Thy horse will find it well."

      And it was Ulva, the little Dwarf's daughter,
        She would show her good-will to the knight;
      So she gave unto him a spear so new,
        And therewith a good sword so bright.

      "And never shalt thou fight a fight,
        Where thou shalt not the victory gain;
      And never shalt thou sail on a sea
        Where thou shalt not the land attain."

      And it was Thora, the little Dwarf's wife,
        She wine in a glass for him poured:
      "Ride away, ride away, now Sir Thynnè,
        Before the return of my lord."

      And it was the knight Sir Thynnè,
        He rideth under the green hill side,
      There then met him the hill-kings two.
        As slow to the hill they ride.

      "Well met! Good day, now Sir Thynnè!
        Thy horse can well with thee pace;
      Whither directed is thy course?
        Since thou'rt bound to a distant place."

      "Travel shall I and woo;
        Plight me shall I a flower;
      Try shall I my sword so good,
        To my weal or my woe in the stour."

      "Ride in peace, ride in peace, away, Sir Thynnè,
        From us thou hast nought to fear;
      They are coming, the champions from Iseland,
        Who with thee long to break a spear."

      And it was the knight Sir Thynnè,
        He rideth under the green hill side;
      There met him seven Bernisk champions,
        They bid him to halt and abide.

      "And whether shall we fight to-day,
        For the red gold and the silvér;
      Or shall we fight together to-day,
        For both our true loves fair?"

      And it was the king's sister's son,
        He was of mood so hastý;
      "Of silver and gold I have enow,
        If thou wilt credit me."

      "But hast thou not a fair true love,
        Who is called Lady Hermolin?
      For her it is we shall fight to-day,
        If she shall be mine or thine."

      The first charge they together rode,
        They were two champions so tall;
      He cut at the king's sister's son,
        That his head to the ground did fall.

      Back then rode the champions six,
        And dressed themselves in fur;
      Then went into the lofty hall,
        The aged king before.

      And it was then the aged king,
        He tore his gray hairs in woe.
      "Ye must avenge my sister's son's death;
        I will sables and martins bestow."[163]

      Back then rode the champions six,
        They thought the reward to gain,
      But they remained halt and limbless;
        By loss one doth wit obtain.

      And he slew wolves and bears,
        All before the high chambér;
      Then taketh he out the maiden free
        Who so long had languished there.

      And now hath Lady Hermolin
        Escaped from all harm;
      Now sleeps she sweet full many a sleep,
        On brave Sir Thynnè's arm.

      And now has brave Sir Thynnè
        Escaped all sorrow and tine;
      Now sleeps he sweet full many a sleep,
        Beside Lady Hermolin.

      Most thanketh he Ulva, the little Dwarf's daughter
        Who him with the runes had bound,
      For were he not come inside of the hill,
        The lady he never had found.[164]


                          _Proud Margaret._

      Proud Margaret's[165] father of wealth had store,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      And he was a king seven kingdoms o'er,
        But that grief is heavy I know.[166]

      To her came wooing good earls two,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      But neither of them would she hearken unto,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      To her came wooing princes five,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      Yet not one of them would the maiden have,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      To her came wooing kings then seven,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      But unto none her hand has she given,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      And the hill-king asked his mother to read,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      How to win proud Margaret he might speed,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      "And say how much thou wilt give unto me,"
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "That herself may into the hill come to thee?"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      "Thee will I give the ruddiest gold,"
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "And thy chests full of money as they can hold,"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      One Sunday morning it fell out so,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      Proud Margaret unto the church should go,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      And all as she goes, and all as she stays,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      All the nearer she comes where the high hill lay,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      So she goeth around the hill compassing,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      So there openeth a door, and thereat goes she in,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      Proud Margaret stept in at the door of the hill,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      And the hill-king salutes her with eyes joyfúl,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      So he took the maiden upon his knee,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      And took the gold rings and therewith her wed he,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      So he took the maiden his arms between,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      He gave her a gold crown and the name of queen,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      So she was in the hill for eight round years,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      There bare she two sons and a daughter so fair,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      When she had been full eight years there,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      She wished to go home to her mother so dear,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      And the hill-king spake to his footpages twain,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "Put ye the gray paeers now unto the wain,"[167]
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      And Margaret out at the hill-door stept,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      And her little children they thereat wept,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      And the hill-king her in his arms has ta'en.
        Time with me goes slow.--
      So he lifteth her into the gilded wain,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      "And hear now thou footpage what I unto thee say,"
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "Thou now shalt drive her to her mother's straightway,"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      Proud Margaret stept in o'er the door-sill,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      And her mother saluteth her with eyes joyfúl,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      "And where hast thou so long stayed?"
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "I have been in the flowery meads,"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      "What veil is that thou wearest on thy hair?"
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "Such as women and mothers use to wear,"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      "Well may I wear a veil on my head,"
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "Me hath the hill-king both wooed and wed,"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      "In the hill have I been these eight round years,"
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "There have I two sons and a daughter so fair,"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      "There have I two sons and a daughter so fair,"
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "The loveliest maiden the world doth bear,"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      "And hear thou, proud Margaret, what I say unto thee,"
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "Can I go with thee home thy children to see?"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      And the hill-king stept now in at the door,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      And Margaret thereat fell down on the floor,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      "And stayest thou now here complaining of me,"
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "Camest thou not of thyself into the hill to me?"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      "And stayest thou now here and thy fate dost deplore?"
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "Camest thou not of thyself in at my door?"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      The hill-king struck her on the cheek rosie,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "And pack to the hill to thy children wee,"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      The hill-king struck her with a twisted root,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "And pack to the hill without any dispute,"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      And the hill-king her in his arms has ta'en,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      And lifted her into the gilded wain,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      "And hear thou my footpage what I unto thee say,"
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "Thou now shalt drive her to my dwelling straightway,"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      Proud Margaret stept in at the hill door,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      And her little children rejoiced therefòre,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      "It is not worth while rejoicing for me,"
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "Christ grant that I never a mother had been,"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      The one brought out a gilded chair,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      "O rest you, my sorrow-bound mother, there,"
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      The one brought out a filled up horn,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      The other put therein a gilded corn,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      The first drink she drank out of the horn,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      She forgot straightway both heaven and earth,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      The second drink she drank out of the horn,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      She forgot straightway both God and his word,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      The third drink she drank out of the horn,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      She forgot straightway both sister and brother,
        But that grief is heavy I know.

      She forgot straightway both sister and brother,
        Time with me goes slow.--
      But she never forgot her sorrow-bound mother,
        But that grief is heavy I know.[168]


                          _The Troll Wife._

The grandfather of Reor, who dwelt at Fuglekärr (i.e. _Bird-marsh_), in
the parish of Svartsborg (_Black-castle_), lived close to a hill, and
one time, in the broad daylight, he saw sitting there on a stone a
comely maiden. He wished to intercept her, and for this purpose _he
threw steel_ between her and the hill; whereupon her father laughed
within the hill, and opening the hill-door asked him if he would have
his daughter. He replied in the affirmative and as she was _stark naked_
he took some of his own clothes and covered her with them, and he
afterwards had her christened. As he was going away, her father said to
him, "When you are going to have your wedding (_bröllup_) you must
provide twelve barrels of beer and bake a heap of bread and the flesh of
four oxen, and drive to the barrow or hill where I keep, and when the
bridal gifts are to be bestowed, depend on it I will give mine." This
also came to pass; for when others were giving he raised the cover of
the cart and cast into it so large a bag of money that the body of it
nearly broke, saying at the same time:--"This is _my_ gift!" He said,
moreover, "When you want to have your wife's portion
(_hemmagifta_),[169] you must drive to the hill with four horses, and
get your share. When he came there afterwards at his desire he got
copper-pots, the one larger than the other till the largest pot of all
was filled with the smaller ones. He also gave him other things,[170]
which were helmets, of that colour and fashion which are large and
thick, and which are still remaining in the country, being preserved at
the parsonage of Tanum. This man Reor's father surnamed I Foglekärsten,
had a number of children by this wife of his, whom he fetched out of the
hill, among whom was the aforesaid Reor. Olaf Stenson also in Stora
Rijk, who died last year, was Reor's sister's son.[171]


                     _The Altar-Cup in Aagerup._

Between the villages of Marup and Aagerup in Zealand, there is said to
have lain a great castle, the ruins of which are still to be seen near
the strand. Tradition relates that a great treasure is concealed among
them, and that a dragon there watches over three kings' ransoms.[172]
Here, too, people frequently happen to get a sight of the underground
folk, especially about festival-times, for then they have dancing and
great jollity going on down on the strand.

One Christmas-eve, a farmer's servant in the village of Aagerup went
to his master and asked him if he might take a horse and ride down to
look at the Troll-meeting. The farmer not only gave him leave but
desired him to take the best horse in the stable; so he mounted and
rode away down to the strand. When he was come to the place he stopped
his horse, and stood for some time looking at the company who were
assembled in great numbers. And while he was wondering to see how well
and how gaily the little dwarfs danced, up came a Troll to him, and
invited him to dismount, and take a share in their dancing and
merriment. Another Troll came jumping up, took his horse by the
bridle, and held him while the man got off, and went down and danced
away merrily with them the whole night long.

When it was drawing near day he returned them his very best thanks for
his entertainment, and mounted his horse to return home to Aagerup.
They now gave him an invitation to come again on New-year's night, as
they were then to have great festivity; and a maiden who held a gold
cup in her hand invited him to drink the stirrup-cup. He took the cup;
but, as he had some suspicion of them, he, while he made as if he was
raising the cup to his mouth, threw the drink out over his shoulder,
so that it fell on the horse's back, and it immediately singed off all
the hair. He then clapped spurs to his horse's sides, and rode away
with the cup in his hand over a ploughed field.

The Trolls instantly gave chase all in a body; but being hard set to
get over the deep furrows, they shouted out, without ceasing,

      "Ride on the lay,
       And not on the clay."[173]

He, however, never minded them, but kept to the ploughed field.
However, when he drew near the village he was forced to ride out on
the level road, and the Trolls now gained on him every minute. In his
distress he prayed unto God, and he made a vow that if he should be
delivered he would bestow the cup on the church.

He was now riding along just by the wall of the church-yard, and he
hastily flung the cup over it, that it at least might be secure. He
then pushed on at full speed, and at last got into the village; and
just as they were on the point of catching hold of the horse, he
sprung in through the farmer's gate, and the man clapt to the wicket
after him. He was now safe; but the Trolls were so enraged, that,
taking up a huge great stone, they flung it with such force against
the gate, that it knocked four planks out of it.

There are no traces now remaining of that house, but the stone is
still lying in the middle of the village of Aagerup. The cup was
presented to the church, and the man got in return the best farm-house
on the lands of Eriksholm.[174]


                        _Origin of Tiis Lake._

A Troll had once taken up his abode near the village of Kund, in the
high bank on which the church now stands; but when the people about
there had become pious, and went constantly to church, the Troll was
dreadfully annoyed by their almost incessant ringing of bells in the
steeple of the church. He was at last obliged, in consequence of it,
to take his departure; for nothing has more contributed to the
emigration of the Troll-folk out of the country than the increasing
piety of the people, and their taking to bell-ringing. The Troll of
Kund accordingly quitted the country, and went over to Funen, where he
lived for some time in peace and quiet.

Now it chanced that a man who had lately settled in the town of Kund,
coming to Funen on business, met on the road with this same Troll:
"Where do you live?" said the Troll to him. Now there was nothing
whatever about the Troll unlike a man, so he answered him, as was the
truth, "I am from the town of Kund." "So?" said the Troll. "I don't know
you, then! And yet I think I know every man in Kund. Will you, however,"
continued he, "just be so kind to take a letter from me back with you to
Kund?" The man said, of course, he had no objection. The Troll then
thrust the letter into his pocket, and charged him strictly not to take
it out till he came to Kund church, and then to throw it over the
churchyard wall, and the person for whom it was intended would get it.

The Troll then went away in great haste, and with him the letter went
entirely out of the man's mind. But when he was come back to Zealand
he sat down by the meadow where Tiis Lake now is, and suddenly
recollected the Troll's letter. He felt a great desire to look at it
at least. So he took it out of his pocket, and sat a while with it in
his hands, when suddenly there began to dribble a little water out of
the seal. The letter now unfolded itself, and the water came out
faster and faster, and it was with the utmost difficulty that the poor
man was enabled to save his life; for the malicious Troll had enclosed
an entire lake in the letter. The Troll, it is plain, had thought to
avenge himself on Kund church by destroying it in this manner; but God
ordered it so that the lake chanced to run out in the great meadow
where it now flows.[175]


                      _A Farmer tricks a Troll._

A farmer, on whose ground there was a little hill, resolved not to let
it lie idle, so he began at one end to plough it up. The hill-man, who
lived in it, came to him and asked him how he dared to plough on the
roof of his house. The farmer assured him that he did not know that it
was the roof of his house, but at the same time represented to him
that it was at present equally unprofitable to them both to let such a
piece of land lie idle. He therefore took the opportunity of proposing
to him that he should plough, sow, and reap it every year on these
terms: that they should take it year and year about, and the hill-man
to have one year what grew over the ground, and the farmer what grew
in the ground; and the next year the farmer to have what was over, and
the hill-man what was under.

The agreement was made accordingly; but the crafty farmer took care to
sow carrots and corn year and year about, and he gave the hill-man the
tops of the carrots and the roots of the corn for his share, with
which he was well content. They thus lived for a long time on
extremely good terms with each other.[176]


                        _Skotte in the Fire._

Near Gudmanstrup, in the district of Odd, is a hill called Hjulehöi
(_Hollow-hill_). The hill-folk that dwell in this mount are well known
in all the villages round, and no one ever omits making a cross on his
beer-barrels, for the Trolls are in the habit of slipping down from
Hjulehöi to steal beer.

One evening late a farmer was passing by the hill, and he saw that it
was raised up on red pillars, and that underneath there was music and
dancing and a splendid Troll banquet. The man stood a long time gazing
on their festivity; but while he was standing there, deeply absorbed
in admiration of what he saw, all of a sudden the dancing stopped, and
the music ceased, and he heard a Troll cry out, in a tone of the
utmost anguish, "Skotte is fallen into the fire! Come and help him
up!" The hill then sank, and all the merriment was at an end.

Meanwhile the farmer's wife was at home all alone, and while she was
sitting and spinning her tow, she never noticed a Troll who had crept
through the window into the next room, and was at the beer-barrel
drawing off the liquor into his copper kettle. The room-door was
standing open, and the Troll kept a steady eye on the woman. The husband
now came into the house full of wonder at what he had seen and heard.
"Hark ye, dame," he began, "listen now till I tell you what has happened
to me!" The Troll redoubled his attention. "As I came just now by
Hjulehöi," continued he, "I saw a great Troll-banquet there, but while
they were in the very middle of their glee they shouted out within in
the hill, 'Skotte is fallen into the fire; come and help him up!'"

At hearing this, the Troll, who was standing beside the beer-barrel,
was so frightened, that he let the tap run and the kettle of beer fall
on the ground, and tumbled himself out of the window as quickly as
might be. The people of the house hearing all this noise instantly
guessed what had been going on inside; and when they went in they saw
the beer all running about, and found the copper kettle lying on the
floor. This they seized, and kept in lieu of the beer that had been
spilled; and the same kettle is said to have been a long time to be
seen in the villages round about there.[177]


                       _The Legend of Bodedys._

There is a hill called Bodedys close to the road in the neighbourhood
of Lynge, that is near Soröe. Not far from it lived an old farmer,
whose only son was used to take long journeys on business. His father
had for a long time heard no tidings of him, and the old man became
convinced that his son was dead. This caused him much affliction, as
was natural for an old man like him, and thus some time passed over.

One evening as he was coming with a loaded cart by Bodedys, the hill
opened, and the Troll came out and desired him to drive his cart into
it. The poor man was, to be sure, greatly amazed at this, but well
knowing how little it would avail him to refuse to comply with the
Troll's request, he turned about his horses, and drove his cart
straight into the hill. The Troll now began to deal with him for his
goods, and finally bought and paid him honestly for his entire cargo.
When he had finished the unloading of his vehicle, and was about to
drive again out of the hill, the Troll said to him, "If you will now
only keep a silent tongue in your head about all that has happened to
you, I shall from this time out have an eye to your interest; and if
you come here again to-morrow morning, it may be you shall get your
son." The farmer did not well know at first what to say to all this;
but as he was, however, of opinion that the Troll was able to perform
what he had promised, he was greatly rejoiced, and failed not to come
at the appointed time to Bodedys.

He sat there waiting a long time, and at last he fell asleep, and when
he awoke from his slumber, behold! there was his son lying by his side.
Both father and son found it difficult to explain how this had come to
pass. The son related how he had been thrown into prison, and had there
suffered great hardship and distress; but that one night, while he was
lying asleep in his cell, there came a man to him, who said, "Do you
still love your father?" And when he had answered that he surely did,
his chains fell off and the wall burst open. While he was telling this
he chanced to put his hand up to his neck, and he found that he had
brought a piece of the iron chain away with him. They both were for some
time mute through excess of wonder; and they then arose and went
straightway to Lynge, where they hung up the piece of the chain in the
church, as a memorial of the wonderful event that had occurred.[178]


                        _Kallundborg Church._

When Esbern Snare was about building a church in Kallundborg, he saw
clearly that his means were not fully adequate to the task. But a
Troll came to him and offered his services; and Esbern Snare made an
agreement with him on these conditions, that he should be able to tell
the Troll's name when the church was finished; or in case he could
not, that he should give him his heart and his eyes.

The work now went on rapidly, and the Troll set the church on stone
pillars; but when all was nearly done, and there was only half a
pillar wanting in the church, Esbern began to get frightened, for the
name of the Troll was yet unknown to him.

One day he was going about the fields all alone, and in great anxiety
on account of the perilous state he was in; when, tired, and
depressed, by reason of his exceeding grief and affliction, he laid
him down on Ulshöi bank to rest himself a while. While he was lying
there, he heard a Troll-woman within the hill saying these words:--

                        "Lie still, baby mine!
                         To-morrow cometh Fin,
                         Father thine,
      And giveth thee Esbern Snare's eyes and heart to play with."[179]

When Esbern heard this, he recovered his spirits, and went back to
the church. The Troll was just then coming with the half-pillar that
was wanting for the church; but when Esbern saw him, he hailed him by
his name, and called him "Fin." The Troll was so enraged at this, that
he went off with the half-pillar through the air, and this is the
reason that the church has but three pillars and a half.[180]

       *       *       *       *       *

The same is told of a far greater than Esbern Snare. As St. Olaf, the
royal apostle of the North, was one day going over hill and dale,
thinking how he could contrive to build a splendid church without
distressing his people by taxation, he was met by a man of a strange
appearance, who asking him what he was thinking about, Olaf told him,
and the Troll, or rather Giant (_Jätte_), for such he was, undertook
to do it within a certain time, stipulating, for his reward, the sun
and moon, or else St. Olaf himself. Olaf agreed, but gave such a plan
for the church as it seemed to be impossible ever could be executed.
It was to be so large that seven priests could preach in it at the
same time without disturbing each other; the columns and other
ornaments both within and without should be of hard flintstone, and so
forth. It soon, however, was finished, all but the roof and pinnacle.
Olaf, now grown uneasy, rambled once more over hill and dale, when he
chanced to hear a child crying within a hill, and a giantess, its
mother, saying to it, "Hush, hush! Thy father, Wind-and-Weather, will
come home in the morning, and bring with him the sun and moon, or else
St. Olaf himself." Olaf was overjoyed, for the power of evil beings
ceases when their name is known. He returned home, where he saw every
thing completed--pinnacle and all. He immediately cried out,
"Wind-and-Weather, you've set the pinnacle crooked!"[181] Instantly
the Giant fell with a great crash from the ridge of the roof, and
broke into a thousand pieces, which were all flintstone.[182]


              _The Hill-Man invited to the Christening._

The hill-people are excessively frightened during thunder. When,
therefore, they see bad weather coming on, they lose no time in getting
to the shelter of their hills. This terror is also the cause of their
not being able to endure the beating of a drum, as they take it to be
the rolling of thunder. It is therefore a good receipt for banishing
them to beat a drum every day in the neighbourhood of their hills; for
they immediately pack up and depart to some more quiet residence.

A farmer lived once in great friendship and unanimity with a hill-man,
whose hill was on his lands. One time when his wife was lying-in, it
gave him some degree of perplexity to think that he could not well
avoid inviting the hill-man to the christening, which might not
improbably bring him into bad repute with the priest and the other
people of the village. He was going about pondering deeply, but in
vain, how he might get out of this dilemma, when it came into his head
to ask the advice of the boy that kept his pigs, who was a great
head-piece, and had often helped him before. The pig-boy instantly
undertook to arrange the matter with the hill-man in such a manner
that he should not only stay away without being offended, but moreover
give a good christening-present.

Accordingly, when it was night he took a sack on his shoulder, went
to the hill-man's hill, knocked, and was admitted. He delivered his
message, giving his master's compliments, and requesting the honour of
his company at the christening. The hill-man thanked him, and said, "I
think it is but right that I should give you a christening-gift." With
these words he opened his money-chests, bidding the boy to hold up his
sack while he poured money into it. "Is there enough now?" said he,
when he had put a good quantity into it. "Many give more, few give
less," replied the boy.

The hill-man then fell again to filling the sack, and again asked, "Is
there enough now?" The boy lifted up the sack a little off the ground to
try if he was able to carry any more, and then answered, "It is about
what most people give." Upon this the hill-man emptied the whole chest
into the bag, and once more asked, "Is there enough now?" The guardian
of the pigs saw that there was as much in it now as ever he was able to
carry, so he made answer, "No one gives more, most people give less."

"Come, now," said the hill-man, "let us hear who else is to be at the
christening?" "Ah," said the boy, "we are to have a great parcel of
strangers and great people. First and foremost, we are to have three
priests and a bishop!" "Hem!" muttered the hill-man; "however, these
gentlemen usually look only after the eating and drinking: they will
never take any notice of me. Well, who else?" "Then we have asked St.
Peter and St. Paul." "Hem! hem! however, there will be a by-place for me
behind the stove. Well, and then?" "Then our Lady herself is coming!"
"Hem! hem! hem! however, guests of such high rank come late and go away
early. But tell me, my lad, what sort of music is it you are to have?"
"Music!" said the boy, "why, we are to have drums." "Drums!" repeated
he, quite terrified; "no, no, thank you, I shall stay at home in that
case. Give my best respects to your master, and I thank him for the
invitation, but I cannot come. I did but once go out to take a little
walk, and some people beginning to beat a drum, I hurried home, and was
just got to my door when they flung the drum-stick after me and broke
one of my shins. I have been lame of that leg ever since, and I shall
take good care in future to avoid that sort of music." So saying, he
helped the boy to put the sack on his back, once more charging him to
give his best respects to the farmer.[183]


                       _The Troll turned Cat._

About a quarter of a mile from Soröe lies Pedersborg, and a little
farther on is the town of Lyng. Just between these towns is a hill
called Bröndhöi (_Spring-hill_), said to be inhabited by the
Troll-people.

There goes a story that there was once among these Troll-people of
Bröndhöi an old crossgrained curmudgeon of a Troll, whom the rest
nick-named Knurremurre (_Rumble-grumble_), because he was evermore the
cause of noise and uproar within the hill. This Knurremurre having
discovered what he thought to be too great a degree of intimacy
between his young wife and a young Troll of the society, took this in
such ill part, that he vowed vengeance, swearing he would have the
life of the young one. The latter, accordingly, thought it would be
his best course to be off out of the hill till better times; so,
turning himself into a noble tortoiseshell tom-cat, he one fine
morning quitted his old residence, and journeyed down to the
neighbouring town of Lyng, where he established himself in the house
of an honest poor man named Plat.

Here he lived for a long time comfortable and easy, with nothing to
annoy him, and was as happy as any tom-cat or Troll crossed in love
well could be. He got every day plenty of milk and good groute[184] to
eat, and lay the whole day long at his ease in a warm arm-chair behind
the stove.

Plat happened one evening to come home rather late, and as he entered
the room the cat was sitting in his usual place, scraping meal-groute
out of a pot, and licking the pot itself carefully. "Harkye, dame,"
said Plat, as he came in at the door, "till I tell you what happened
to me on the road. Just as I was coming past Bröndhöi, there came out
a Troll, and he called out to me, and said,

      "Harkye Plat,
       Tell your cat,
       That Knurremurre is dead."[185]

The moment the cat heard these words, he tumbled the pot down on the
floor, sprang out of the chair, and stood up on his hind-legs. Then, as
he hurried out of the door, he cried out with exultation, "What! is
Knurremurre dead? Then I may go home as fast as I please." And so saying
he scampered off to the hill, to the amazement of honest Plat; and it is
likely lost no time in making his advances to the young widow.[186]


                          _Kirsten's-Hill._

There is a hill on the lands of Skjelverod, near Ringsted, called
Kirsten's-hill (_Kirstens Bjerg_). In it there lived a Hill-troll
whose name was Skynd, who had from time to time stolen no less than
three wives from a man in the village of Englerup.

It was late one evening when this man was riding home from Ringsted, and
his way lay by the hill. When he came there he saw a great crowd of
Hill-folk who were dancing round it, and had great merriment among them.
But on looking a little closer, what should he recognise but all his
three wives among them! Now as Kirsten, the second of them, had been
his favourite, and dearer to him than either of the others, he called
out to her, and named her name. Troll Skynd then came up to the man, and
asked him why he presumed to call Kirsten. The man told him briefly how
she had been his favourite and best beloved wife, and entreated of him,
with many tears and much lamentation, to let him have her home with him
again. The Troll consented at last to grant the husband's request, with,
however, the condition, that he should never hurry (_skynde_) her.

For a long time the husband strictly kept the condition; but one day,
when the woman was above in the loft, getting something, and it
happened that she delayed a long time, he called out, Make haste,
Kirsten, make haste, (_Skynde dig Kirsten_); and scarcely had he
spoken the words, when the woman was gone, compelled to return to the
hill, which has ever since been called Kirsten's Bjerg.[187]


                         _The Troll-Labour._

"In the year 1660, when I and my wife had gone to my farm
(_fäboderne_), which is three quarters of a mile from Ragunda
parsonage, and we were sitting there and talking a while, late in the
evening, there came a little man in at the door, who begged of my wife
to go and aid his wife, who was just then in the pains of labour. The
fellow was of small size, of a dark complexion, and dressed in old
grey clothes. My wife and I sat a while, and wondered at the man; for
we were aware that he was a Troll, and we had heard tell that such
like, called by the peasantry Vettar (_spirits_), always used to keep
in the farmhouses, when people left them in harvest-time. But when he
had urged his request four or five times, and we thought on what evil
the country folk say that they have at times suffered from the Vettar,
when they have chanced to swear at them, or with uncivil words bid
them go to hell, I took the resolution to read some prayers over my
wife, and to bless her, and bid her in God's name go with him. She
took in haste some old linen with her, and went along with him, and I
remained sitting there. When she returned, she told me, that when she
went with the man out at the gate, it seemed to her as if she was
carried for a time along in the wind, and so she came to a room, on
one side of which was a little dark chamber, in which his wife lay in
bed in great agony. My wife went up to her, and, after a little while,
aided her till she brought forth the child after the same manner as
other human beings. The man then offered her food, and when she
refused it, he thanked her, and accompanied her out, and then she was
carried along, in the same way in the wind, and after a while came
again to the gate, just at ten o'clock. Meanwhile, a quantity of old
pieces and clippings of silver were laid on a shelf, in the
sitting-room, and my wife found them next day, when she was putting
the room in order. It is to be supposed that they were laid there by
the _Vettr_. That it in truth so happened, I witness, by inscribing my
name. Ragunda, the 12th of April, 1671.

  "PET. RAHM."[188]


                          _The Hill-Smith._

Biörn Martinsson went out shooting, one day, with a gamekeeper, on the
wooded hill of Ormkulla. They there found a hill-smith (_bergsmed_)
lying fast asleep. Biörn directed the gamekeeper to secure him, but he
refused, saying "Pray to God to protect you! The hill-smith will fling
you down to the bottom of the hill." He was, however, bold and
determined, and he went up and seized the sleeping hill-smith, who
gave a cry, and implored him to let him go, as he had a wife and seven
little children. He said he would also do any iron work that should be
required; it would only be necessary to leave iron and steel on the
side of the hill, and the work would be found lying finished in the
same place. Biörn asked him for whom he worked; he replied, "For my
companions." When Biörn would not let him go, he said, "If I had my
mist-cap (_uddehat_) you should not carry me away. But if you do not
let me go, not one of your posterity will attain to the importance
which you possess, but continually decline;" which certainly came to
pass. Biörn would not, however, let him go, but brought him captive to
Bahus. On the third day, however, he effected his escape out of the
place in which he was confined.[189]

       *       *       *       *       *

The following legend is related in Denmark:--

On the lands of Nyegaard lie three large hills, one of which is the
abode of a Troll, who is by trade a blacksmith. If any one is passing
that hill by night, he will see the fire issuing from the top, and
going in again at the side. Should you wish to have any piece of
iron-work executed in a masterly manner, you have only to go to the
hill, and saying aloud what you want to have made, leave there the
iron and a silver shilling. On revisiting the hill next morning, you
will find the shilling gone, and the required piece of work lying
there finished, and ready for use.[190]


                    _The Girl at the Troll-Dance._

A girl, belonging to a village in the isle of Funen, went out, one
evening, into the fields, and as she was passing by a small hill, she
saw that it was raised upon red pillars, and a Troll-banquet going on
beneath it. She was invited in, and such was the gaiety and festivity
that prevailed, that she never perceived the flight of time. At
length, however, she took her departure, after having spent, as she
thought, a few hours among the joyous hill-people. But when she came
to the village she no longer found it the place she had left. All was
changed; and when she entered the house in which she had lived with
her family, she learned that her father and mother had long been dead,
and the house had come into the hands of strangers. She now perceived
that for every hour that she had been among the Trolls, a year had
elapsed in the external world. The effect on her mind was such that
she lost her reason, which she never after recovered.[191]


                          _The Changeling._

There lived once, near Tiis lake, two lonely people, who were sadly
plagued with a changeling, given them by the underground-people
instead of their own child, which had not been baptised in time. This
changeling behaved in a very strange and uncommon manner, for when
there was no one in the place, he was in great spirits, ran up the
walls like a cat, sat under the roof, and shouted and bawled away
lustily; but sat dozing at the end of the table when any one was in
the room with him. He was able to eat as much as any four, and never
cared what it was that was set before him; but though he regarded not
the quality of his food, in quantity he was never satisfied, and gave
excessive annoyance to every one in the house.

When they had tried for a long time in vain how they could best get
rid of him, since there was no living in the house with him, a smart
girl pledged herself that she would banish him from the house. She
accordingly, while he was out in the fields, took a pig and killed it,
and put it, hide, hair, and all, into a black pudding, and set it
before him when he came home. He began, as was his custom, to gobble
it up, but when he had eaten for some time, he began to relax a little
in his efforts, and at last he sat quite still, with his knife in his
hand, looking at the pudding.

At length, after sitting for some time in this manner, he began--"A
pudding with hide!--and a pudding with hair! a pudding with eyes!--and
a pudding with legs in it! Well, three times have I seen a young wood
by Tiis lake, but never yet did I see such a pudding! The devil
himself may stay here now for me!" So saying, he ran off with himself,
and never more came back again.[192]

       *       *       *       *       *

Another changeling was got rid of in the following manner. The mother,
suspecting it to be such from its refusing food, and being so
ill-thriven, heated the oven as hot as possible. The maid, as
instructed, asked her why she did it. "To burn my child in it to death,"
was the reply. When the question had been put and answered three times,
she placed the child on the peel, and was shoving it into the oven, when
the Troll-woman came in a great fright with the real child, and took
away her own, saying. "There's your child for you. I have treated it
better than you treated mine," and in truth it was fat and hearty.


               _The Tile-Stove jumping over the Brook._

Near Hellested, in Zealand, lived a man, who from time to time
remarked that he was continually plundered. All his suspicions fell on
the Troll-folk, who lived in the neighbouring hill of Ildshöi
(_Fire-hill_), and once hid himself to try and get a sight of the
thief. He had waited there but a very short time when he saw, as he
thought, his tile-stove jumping across the brook. The good farmer was
all astonishment at this strange sight, and he shouted out "Hurra!
there's a jump for a tile-stove!" At this exclamation the Troll, who
was wading through the water with the stove on his head, was so
frightened that he threw it down, and ran off as hard as he could to
Ildshöi. But in the place where the stove fell, the ground got the
shape of it, and the place is called Krogbek (_Hook-brook_), and it
was this that gave rise to the common saying, "That was a jump for a
tile-stove!" "_Det var et Spring af en Leerovn!_"[193]


              _Departure of the Trolls from Vendsyssel._

One evening, after sunset, there came a strange man to the ferry of
Sund. He engaged all the ferry-boats there to go backwards and
forwards the whole night long between that place and Vendsyssel,
without the people's knowing what lading they had. He told them that
they should take their freight on board half a mile to the east of
Sund, near the alehouse at the bridge of Lange.

At the appointed time the man was at that place, and the ferrymen,
though unable to see anything, perceived very clearly that the boats
sunk deeper and deeper, so that they easily concluded that they had
gotten a very heavy freight on board. The ferry-boats passed in this
manner to and fro the whole night long; and though they got every
trip a fresh cargo, the strange man never left them, but staid to have
everything regulated by his directions.

When morning was breaking they received the payment they had agreed
for, and they then ventured to inquire what it was they had been
bringing over, but on that head their employer would give them no
satisfaction.

But there happened to be among the ferrymen a smart fellow who knew
more about these matters than the others. He jumped on shore, took the
clay from under his right foot, and put it into his cap, and when he
had set it on his head he perceived that all the sand-hills east of
Aalborg were completely covered with little Troll-people, who had all
pointed red caps on their heads. Ever since that time there have been
no Dwarfs seen in Vendsyssel.[194]


                          _Svend Faelling._

Svend Fælling was a valiant champion. He was born in Fælling, and was
a long time at service in Aakjær house, Aarhuus, and as the roads were
at that time greatly infested by Trolls and underground-people, who
bore great enmity to all Christians, Svend undertook the office of
letter-carrier.

As he was one time going along the road, he saw approaching him the
Troll of Jels-hill, on the lands of Holm. The Troll came up to him,
begging him to stand his friend in a combat with the Troll of
Borum-es-hill. When Svend Fælling had promised to do so, saying that
he thought himself strong and active enough for the encounter, the
Troll reached him a heavy iron bar, and bade him show his strength on
that. But not all Svend's efforts availed to lift it: whereupon the
Troll handed him a horn, telling him to drink out of it. No sooner had
he drunk a little out of it than his strength increased. He was now
able to lift the bar, which, when he had drunk again, became still
lighter; but when again renewing his draught he emptied the horn, he
was able to swing the bar with ease, and he then learned from the
Troll that he had now gotten the strength of twelve men. He then
promised to prepare himself for combat with the Troll of Bergmond. As
a token he was told that he should meet on the road a black ox and a
red ox, and that he should fall with all his might on the black ox,
and drive him from the red one.

This all came to pass just as he was told, and he found, after his work
was done, that the black ox was the Troll from Borum-es-hill, and the
red ox was the Troll himself of Jels-hill, who, as a reward for the
assistance he had given him, allowed him to retain for his own use the
twelve men's strength with which he had endowed him. This grant was,
however, on this condition--that if ever he should reveal the secret of
his strength, he should be punished by getting the appetite of twelve.

The fame of the prodigious strength of Svend soon spread through the
country, as he distinguished himself by various exploits, such, for
instance, as throwing a dairy-maid, who had offended him, up on the
gable of the house, and similar feats. So when this report came to the
ears of his master, he had Svend called before him, and inquired of him
whence his great strength came. Svend recollected the words of his
friend the Troll, so he told him if he would promise him as much food as
would satisfy twelve men, he would tell him. The master promised, and
Svend told his story; but the word of the Troll was accomplished, for
from that day forth Svend ate and drank as much as any twelve.[195]


                        _The Dwarfs' Banquet._

                         A NORWEGIAN TALE.[196]

There lived in Norway, not far from the city of Drontheim, a powerful
man, who was blessed with all the goods of fortune. A part of the
surrounding country was his property; numerous herds fed on his
pastures, and a great retinue and a crowd of servants adorned his
mansion. He had an only daughter, called Aslog,[197] the fame of whose
beauty spread far and wide. The greatest men of the country sought
her, but all were alike unsuccessful in their suit, and he who had
come full of confidence and joy, rode away home silent and melancholy.
Her father, who thought his daughter delayed her choice only to
select, forbore to interfere, and exulted in her prudence. But when,
at length, the richest and noblest had tried their fortune with as
little success as the rest, he grew angry, and called his daughter,
and said to her, "Hitherto I have left you to your free choice, but
since I see that you reject all without any distinction, and the very
best of your suitors seem not good enough for you, I will keep
measures no longer with you. What! shall my family be extinct, and my
inheritance pass away into the hands of strangers? I will break your
stubborn spirit. I give you now till the festival of the great
Winter-night; make your choice by that time, or prepare to accept him
whom I shall fix on."

Aslog loved a youth called Orm, handsome as he was brave and noble. She
loved him with her whole soul, and she would sooner die than bestow her
hand on another. But Orm was poor, and poverty compelled him to serve in
the mansion of her father. Aslog's partiality for him was kept a secret;
for her father's pride of power and wealth was such that he would never
have given his consent to an union with so humble a man.

When Aslog saw the darkness of his countenance, and heard his angry
words, she turned pale as death, for she knew his temper, and doubted
not but that he would put his threats into execution. Without uttering a
word in reply, she retired to her silent chamber, and thought deeply but
in vain how to avert the dark storm that hung over her. The great
festival approached nearer and nearer, and her anguish increased every
day.

At last the lovers resolved on flight. "I know," says Orm, "a secure
place where we may remain undiscovered until we find an opportunity of
quitting the country." At night, when all were asleep, Orm led the
trembling Aslog over the snow and ice-fields away to the mountains.
The moon and the stars sparkling still brighter in the cold winter's
night lighted them on their way. They had under their arms a few
articles of dress and some skins of animals, which were all they could
carry. They ascended the mountains the whole night long till they
reached a lonely spot inclosed with lofty rocks. Here Orm conducted
the weary Aslog into a cave, the low and narrow entrance to which was
hardly perceptible, but it soon enlarged to a great hall, reaching
deep into the mountain. He kindled a fire, and they now, reposing on
their skins, sat in the deepest solitude far away from all the world.

Orm was the first who had discovered this cave, which is shown to this
very day, and as no one knew any thing of it, they were safe from the
pursuit of Aslog's father. They passed the whole winter in this
retirement. Orm used to go a hunting, and Aslog stayed at home in the
cave, minded the fire, and prepared the necessary food. Frequently did
she mount the points of the rocks, but her eyes wandered as far as
they could reach only over glittering snow-fields.

The spring now came on--the woods were green--the meads put on their
various colours, and Aslog could but rarely and with circumspection
venture to leave the cave. One evening Orm came in with the
intelligence that he had recognised her father's servants in the
distance, and that he could hardly have been unobserved by them, whose
eyes were as good as his own. "They will surround this place,"
continued he, "and never rest till they have found us; we must quit
our retreat, then, without a moment's delay."

They accordingly descended on the other side of the mountain, and
reached the strand, where they fortunately found a boat. Orm shoved
off, and the boat drove into the open sea. They had escaped their
pursuers, but they were now exposed to dangers of another kind:
whither should they turn themselves? They could not venture to land,
for Aslog's father was lord of the whole coast, and they would
infallibly fall into his hands. Nothing then remained for them but to
commit their bark to the wind and waves. They drove along the entire
night. At break of day the coast had disappeared, and they saw nothing
but the sky above, the sea beneath, and the waves that rose and fell.
They had not brought one morsel of food with them, and thirst and
hunger began now to torment them. Three days did they toss about in
this state of misery, and Aslog, faint and exhausted, saw nothing but
certain death before her.

At length, on the evening of the third day, they discovered an island
of tolerable magnitude, and surrounded by a number of smaller ones.
Orm immediately steered for it, but just as he came near it there
suddenly rose a violent wind, and the sea rolled every moment higher
and higher against him. He turned about with a view of approaching it
on another side, but with no better success; his vessel, as oft as it
approached the island, was driven back as if by an invisible power.
"Lord God!" cried he, and blessed himself and looked on poor Aslog,
who seemed to be dying of weakness before his eyes. But scarcely had
the exclamation passed his lips when the storm ceased, the waves
subsided, and the vessel came to the shore, without encountering any
hindrance. Orm jumped out on the beach; some mussels that he found on
the strand strengthened and revived the exhausted Aslog, so that she
was soon able to leave the boat.

The island was overgrown with low dwarf shrubs, and seemed to be
uninhabited; but when they had gotten about to the middle of it, they
discovered a house reaching but a little above the ground, and
appearing to be half under the surface of the earth. In the hope of
meeting human beings and assistance, the wanderers approached it. They
listened if they could hear any noise, but the most perfect silence
reigned there. Orm at length opened the door, and with his companion
walked in; but what was their surprise, to find everything regulated
and arranged as if for inhabitants, yet not a single living creature
visible. The fire was burning on the hearth, in the middle of the
room, and a pot with fish hung on it apparently only waiting for some
one to take it up and eat it. The beds were made and ready to receive
their wearied tenants. Orm and Aslog stood for some time dubious, and
looked on with a certain degree of awe, but at last, overcome by
hunger, they took up the food and ate. When they had satisfied their
appetites, and still in the last beams of the setting sun, which now
streamed over the island far and wide, discovered no human being, they
gave way to weariness, and laid themselves in the beds to which they
had been so long strangers.

They had expected to be awakened in the night by the owners of the
house on their return home, but their expectation was not fulfilled;
they slept undisturbed till the morning sun shone in upon them. No one
appeared on any of the following days, and it seemed as if some
invisible power had made ready the house for their reception. They
spent the whole summer in perfect happiness--they were, to be sure,
solitary, yet they did not miss mankind. The wild birds' eggs, and the
fish they caught, yielded them provisions in abundance.

When autumn came, Aslog brought forth a son. In the midst of their joy
at his appearance, they were surprised by a wonderful apparition. The
door opened on a sudden, and an old woman stepped in. She had on her a
handsome blue dress: there was something proud, but at the same time
something strange and surprising in her appearance.

"Do not be afraid," said she, "at my unexpected appearance--I am the
owner of this house, and I thank you for the clean and neat state in
which you have kept it, and for the good order in which I find
everything with you. I would willingly have come sooner, but I had no
power to do so till this little heathen (pointing to the new
born-babe) was come to the light. Now I have free access. Only fetch
no priest from the main-land to christen it, or I must depart again.
If you will in this matter comply with my wishes, you may not only
continue to live here, but all the good that ever you can wish for I
will do you. Whatever you take in hand shall prosper; good luck shall
follow you wherever you go. But break this condition, and depend upon
it that misfortune after misfortune will come on you, and even on this
child will I avenge myself. If you want anything, or are in danger,
you have only to pronounce my name three times and I will appear and
lend you assistance. I am of the race of the old Giants, and my name
is Guru. But beware of uttering in my presence the name of him whom no
Giant may hear of, and never venture to make the sign of the cross, or
to cut it on beam or board in the house. You may dwell in this house
the whole year long, only be so good as to give it up to me on Yule
evening, when the sun is at the lowest, as then we celebrate our great
festival, and then only are we permitted to be merry. At least, if you
should not be willing to go out of the house, keep yourselves up in
the loft as quiet as possible the whole day long, and as you value
your lives do not look down into the room until midnight is past.
After that you may take possession of everything again."

When the old woman had thus spoken she vanished, and Aslog and Orm,
now at ease respecting their situation, lived without any disturbance
contented and happy. Orm never made a cast of his net without getting
a plentiful draught; he never shot an arrow from his bow that it was
not sure to hit; in short, whatever they took in hand, were it ever so
trifling, evidently prospered.

When Christmas came, they cleaned up the house in the best manner, set
everything in order, kindled a fire on the hearth, and as the twilight
approached, they went up to the loft, where they remained quite still
and quiet. At length it grew dark; they thought they heard a sound of
whizzing and snorting in the air, such as the swans use to make in the
winter time. There was a hole in the roof over the fireplace which
might be opened and shut either to let in the light from above, or to
afford a free passage for the smoke. Orm lifted up the lid, which was
covered with a skin, and put out his head. But what a wonderful sight
then presented itself to his eyes! The little islands around were all
lit up with countless blue lights, which moved about without ceasing,
jumped up and down, then skipped down to the shore, assembled
together, and came nearer and nearer to the large island where Orm and
Aslog lived. At last they reached it and arranged themselves in a
circle around a large stone not far from the shore, and which Orm well
knew. But what was his surprise, when he saw that the stone had now
completely assumed the form of a man, though of a monstrous and
gigantic one! He could clearly perceive that the little blue lights
were borne by Dwarfs, whose pale clay-<DW52> faces, with their huge
noses and red eyes, disfigured too by birds' bills and owls' eyes,
were supported by misshapen bodies; and they tottered and wabbled
about here and there, so that they seemed to be at the same time merry
and in pain. Suddenly, the circle opened; the little ones retired on
each side, and Guru, who was now much enlarged and of as immense a
size as the stone, advanced with gigantic steps. She threw both her
arms round the stone image, which immediately began to receive life
and motion. As soon as the first symptom of motion showed itself, the
little ones began, with wonderful capers and grimaces, a song, or to
speak more properly, a howl, with which the whole island resounded and
seemed to tremble at the noise. Orm, quite terrified, drew in his
head, and he and Aslog remained in the dark, so still, that they
hardly ventured to draw their breath.

The procession moved on toward the house, as might be clearly
perceived by the nearer approach of the shouting and crying. They were
now all come in, and, light and active, the Dwarfs jumped about on the
benches; and heavy and loud sounded at intervals the steps of the
giants. Orm and his wife heard them covering the table, and the
clattering of the plates, and the shouts of joy with which they
celebrated their banquet. When it was over and it drew near to
midnight, they began to dance to that ravishing fairy-air which charms
the mind into such sweet confusion, and which some have heard in the
rocky glens, and learned by listening to the underground musicians. As
soon as Aslog caught the sound of this air, she felt an irresistible
longing to see the dance. Nor was Orm able to keep her back. "Let me
look," said she, "or my heart will burst." She took her child and
placed herself at the extreme end of the loft, whence, without being
observed, she could see all that passed. Long did she gaze, without
taking off her eyes for an instant, on the dance, on the bold and
wonderful springs of the little creatures who seemed to float in the
air, and not so much as to touch the ground, while the ravishing
melody of the elves filled her whole soul. The child meanwhile, which
lay in her arms, grew sleepy and drew its breath heavily, and without
ever thinking on the promise she had given the old woman, she made, as
is usual, the sign of the cross over the mouth of the child, and said,
"Christ bless you, my babe!"

The instant she had spoken the word there was raised a horrible
piercing cry. The spirits tumbled heads over heels out at the door
with terrible crushing and crowding, their lights went out, and in a
few minutes the whole house was clear of them, and left desolate. Orm
and Aslog frightened to death, hid themselves in the most retired nook
in the house. They did not venture to stir till daybreak, and not till
the sun shone through the hole in the roof down on the fire-place did
they feel courage enough to descend from the loft.

The table remained still covered as the underground-people had left
it; all their vessels, which were of silver, and manufactured in the
most beautiful manner, were upon it. In the middle of the room, there
stood upon the ground a huge copper vessel half full of sweet mead,
and by the side of it, a drinking-horn of pure gold. In the corner lay
against the wall a stringed instrument, not unlike a dulcimer, which,
as people believe, the Giantesses used to play on. They gazed on what
was before them, full of admiration, but without venturing to lay
their hands on anything: but great and fearful was their amazement,
when, on turning about, they saw sitting at the table an immense
figure, which Orm instantly recognised as the Giant whom Guru had
animated by her embrace. He was now a cold and hard stone. While they
were standing gazing on it, Guru herself entered the room in her
giant-form. She wept so bitterly, that her tears trickled down on the
ground. It was long ere her sobbing permitted her to utter a single
word: at last she spoke:--

"Great affliction have you brought on me, and henceforth I must weep
while I live; yet as I know that you have not done this with evil
intentions, I forgive you, though it were a trifle for me to crush the
whole house like an egg-shell over your heads."

"Alas!" cried she, "my husband, whom I love more than myself, there he
sits, petrified for ever; never again will he open his eyes! Three
hundred years lived I with my father on the island of Kunnan, happy in
the innocence of youth, as the fairest among the Giant-maidens. Mighty
heroes sued for my hand; the sea around that island is still filled
with the rocky fragments which they hurled against each other in their
combats. Andfind won the victory, and I plighted myself to him. But
ere I was married came the detestable Odin into the country, who
overcame my father, and drove us all from the island. My father and
sisters fled to the mountains, and since that time my eyes have beheld
them no more. Andfind and I saved ourselves on this island, where we
for a long time lived in peace and quiet, and thought it would never
be interrupted. But destiny, which no one escapes, had determined it
otherwise. Oluf[198] came from Britain. They called him the Holy, and
Andfind instantly found that his voyage would be inauspicious to the
giants. When he heard how Oluf's ship rushed through the waves, he
went down to the strand and blew the sea against him with all his
strength. The waves swelled up like mountains. But Oluf was still more
mighty than he; his ship flew unchecked through the billows like an
arrow from a bow: He steered direct for our island. When the ship was
so near that Andfind thought he could reach it with his hands, he
grasped at the forepart with his right hand, and was about to drag it
down to the bottom, as he had often done with other ships. But Oluf,
the terrible Oluf, stepped forward, and crossing his hands over each
other, he cried with a loud voice, 'Stand there as a stone, till the
last day,' and in the same instant my unhappy husband became a mass of
rock. The ship sailed on unimpeded, and ran direct against the
mountain, which it cut through, and separated from it the little
island which lies out yonder.[199]

"Ever since my happiness has been annihilated, and lonely and melancholy
have I passed my life. On Yule-eve alone can petrified Giants receive
back their life for the space of seven hours, if one of their race
embraces them, and is, at the same time, willing to sacrifice a hundred
years of their own life. But seldom does a Giant do that. I loved my
husband too well not to bring him back cheerfully to life every time
that I could do it, even at the highest price, and never would I reckon
how often I had done it, that I might not know when the time came when I
myself should share his fate, and at the moment that I threw my arms
around him become one with him. But alas! even this comfort is taken
from me; I can never more by any embrace awake him, since he has heard
the name which I dare not utter; and never again will he see the light
until the dawn of the last day shall bring it.

"I now go hence! You will never again behold me! All that is here in
the house I give you! My dulcimer alone will I keep! But let no one
venture to fix his habitation on the little islands that lie around
here! There dwell the little underground ones whom you saw at the
festival, and I will protect them as long as I live!"

With these words Guru vanished. The next spring Orm took the golden
horn and the silver ware to Drontheim, where no one knew him. The
value of these precious metals was so great, that he was able to
purchase everything requisite for a wealthy man. He laded his ship
with his purchases, and returned back to the island, where he spent
many years in unalloyed happiness, and Aslog's father was soon
reconciled to his wealthy son-in-law.

The stone image remained sitting in the house; no human power was able
to move it. So hard was the stone, that hammer and axe flew in pieces
without making the slightest impression upon it. The Giant sat there
till a holy man same to the island, who with one single word removed
him back to his former station, where he stands to this hour. The
copper vessel, which the underground people left behind them, was
preserved as a memorial upon the island, which bears the name of House
Island to the present day.

FOOTNOTES:

[150] There is no etymon of this word. It is to be found in both the
Icelandic and the Finnish languages; whether the latter borrowed or
communicated it is uncertain. Ihre derives the name of the celebrated
waterfall of Trollhæta, near Göttenburg, from Troll, and Haute
_Lapponice_, an abyss. It therefore answers to the Irish
_Poul-a-Phooka_. See _Ireland_.

[151] In the following lines quoted in the Heimskringla, it would seem
to signify the Dii Manes.

      Tha gaf hann Trescegg Tröllum,
      Torf-Einarr drap Scurfo.

      Then gave he Trescegg to the Trolls,
      Turf-Einarr slew Scurfo.


[152] The ancient Gothic nation was called Troll by their Vandal
neighbours (Junii Batavia, c. 27); according to Sir J. Malcolm, the
Tartars call the Chinese Deevs. It was formerly believed, says Ihre,
that the noble family of Troll, in Sweden, derived their name from
having killed a Troll, that is, probably, a Dwarf.

[153] Arndt, Reise nach Schweden, vol. iii. p. 8.

[154] Like our Fairies the Trolls are sometimes of marvellously small
dimensions: in the Danish ballad of Eline af Villenskov we read--

      _Del da meldte den mindste Trold,
      Han var ikke större end en myre,
      Her er kommet en Christen mand,
      Den maa jag visseligen styre._

      Out then spake the tinyest Troll,
      No bigger than an emmet was he,
      Hither is come a Christian man,
      And manage him will I surelie.


[155] Thiele, i. 36.

[156] For this they seem to be indebted to their hat or cap. Eske Brok
being one day in the fields, knocked off, without knowing it, the hat
of a Dwarf who instantly became visible, and had, in order to recover
it, to grant him every thing he asked. Thiele iii. 49. This hat
answers to the Tarnkappe or Hel-kaplein of the German Dwarfs; who also
become visible when their caps are struck off.

[157] In the Danish ballad of Eline af Villenskov the hero is called
_Trolden graae_, the Gray Trold, probably from the colour of his
habiliments.

[158] We deem it needless in future to refer to volume and page of Mr.
Thiele's work. Those acquainted with the original will easily find the
legends.

[159] We have ventured to omit the Omquæd. _I styren väll de Runor!_
(Manage well the runes!) The final _e_ in Thynnè is marked merely to
indicate that it is to be sounded.

[160] _Runeslag_, literally Rune-stroke. Runes originally signified
letters, and then songs. They were of two kinds, Maalrunor
(_Speech-runes_), and Troll-runor (_Magic-runes_). These last were
again divided into Skaderunor (_Mischief-runes_) and Hjelprunor
(_Help-runes_), of each of which there were five kinds. See Verelius'
notes to the Hervarar Saga, cap. 7.

The power of music over all nature is a subject of frequent recurrence
in northern poetry. Here all the wild animals are entranced by the
magic tones of the harp; the meads flower, the trees put forth leaves;
the knight, though grave and silent, is attracted, and even if
inclined to stay away, he cannot restrain his horse.

[161] _Rosendelund._ The word _Lund_ signifies any kind of grove,
thicket, &c.

[162] Not the island of Iceland, but a district in Norway of that
name. By Berner-land, Geijer thinks is meant the land of Bern
(_Verona_), the country of Dietrich, so celebrated in German romance.

[163] _Sabel och Mård._ These furs are always mentioned in the
northern ballads, as the royal rewards of distinguished actions.

[164] This fine ancient Visa was taken down from recitation in West
Gothland. The corresponding Danish one of Herr Tönne is much later.

[165] Niebuhr, speaking of the Celsi Ramnes, says, "With us the
salutation of blood relations was _Willkommen stolze Vetter_ (Welcome,
proud cousins) and in the Danish ballads, proud (_stolt_) is a noble
appellation of a maiden."--Römische Geschichte, 2d edit. vol. i. p. 316.

It may be added, that in English, _proud_ and the synonymous term
_stout_ (_stolz_, _stolt_) had also the sense of noble, high-born.

      Do now your devoir, yonge knightes _proud_.
                                     _Knight's Tale._

      Up stood the queen and ladies _stout_.
                                     _Launfal._


[166] _Men jag vet at sorge är tung._

[167] Wain, our readers hardly need be informed, originally signified
any kind of carriage: see Faerie Queene, _passim_. It is the Ang. Sax.
þǽn, and not a contraction of _waggon_.

[168] From Vermland and Upland.

[169] This we suppose to be the meaning of _hemmagifta_, as it is that
of _hemgift_, the only word approaching to it that we have met in our
dictionary.

[170] _Brandcreatur_, a word of which we cannot ascertain the exact
meaning. We doubt greatly if the following _hielmeta_ be helmets.

[171] Grimm (Deut. Mythol. p. 435) has extracted this legend from the
Bahuslän of Ödman, who, as he observes, and as we may see, relates it
quite seriously, and with the real names of persons. It is we believe
the only legend of the union of a _man_ with one of the hill-folk.

[172] "Three kings' ransoms" is a common maximum with a Danish peasant
when speaking of treasure.

[173]

      "Rid paa det Bolde,
       Og ikke paa det Knolde."


[174] _Oral._ This is an adventure common to many countries. The
church of Vigersted in Zealand has a cup obtained in the same way. The
man, in this case, took refuge in the church, and was there besieged
by the Trolls till morning. The bridge of Hagbro in Jutland got its
name from a similar event. When the man rode off with the silver jug
from the beautiful maiden who presented it to him, an old crone set
off in pursuit of him with such velocity, that she would surely have
caught him, but that providentially he came to a running water. The
pursuer, however, like Nannie with Tam o' Shanter, caught the horse's
hind leg, but was only able to keep one of the cocks of his shoe:
hence the bridge was called Hagbro, _i. e._ Cock Bridge.

[175] _Oral._ Tiis Lake is in Zealand. It is the general belief of the
peasantry that there are now very few Trolls in the country, for the
ringing of bells has driven them all away, they, like the Stille-folk
of the Germans, delighting in quiet and silence. It is said that a
farmer having found a Troll sitting very disconsolate on a stone near
Tiis Lake, and taking him at first for a decent Christian man,
accosted him with--"Well! where are you going, friend?" "Ah!" said he,
in a melancholy tone, "I am going off out of the country. I cannot
live here any longer, they keep such eternal ringing and dinging!"

"There is a high hill," says Kalm (Resa, &c. p. 136), "near Botna in
Sweden, in which formerly dwelt a Troll. When they got up bells in Botna
church, and he heard the ringing of them, he is related to have said:

      "_Det är så godt i det Botnaberg at bo,
      Vore ikke den leda Bjälleko._"

      "Pleasant it were in Botnahill to dwell,
      Were it not for the sound of that plaguey bell."


[176] This story is told by Rabelais with his characteristic humour
and extravagance. As there are no Trolls in France, it is the devil
who is deceived in the French version. A legend similar to this is
told of the district of Lujhmân in Afghanistân (Masson, Narrative,
etc., iii. 297); but there it was the Shâitan (_Satan_) that cheated
the farmers. The legends are surely independent fictions.

[177] _Oral._ Gudmanstrup is in Zealand. In Ouröe, a little island
close to Zealand, there is a hill whence the Trolls used to come down
and supply themselves with provisions out of the farmers' pantries.
Niel Jensen, who lived close to the hill, finding that they were
making, as he thought, over free with his provisions, took the liberty
of putting a lock on the door through which they had access. But he
had better have left it alone, for his daughter grew stone blind, and
never recovered her sight till the lock was removed.--_Resenii Atlas_,
i. 10. There is a similar story in Grimm's Deutsche Sagen, i. p. 55.

[178] This legend is oral.

[179]

                    _Tie stille, barn min!
                    Imorgen kommer Fin,
                    Fa'er din,
      Og gi'er dig Esbern Snares öine og hjerte at lege med._


[180] _Oral._ Kallundborg is in Zealand. Mr. Thiele says he saw four
pillars at the church. The same story is told of the cathedral of Lund
in Funen, which was built by the Troll Finn at the desire of St.
Laurentius.

Of Esbern Snare, Holberg says, "The common people tell wonderful
stories of him, and how the devil carried him off; which, with other
things, will serve to prove that he was an able man."

The German story of Rumpelstilzchen (Kinder and Haus-Märchen, No. 55)
is similar to this legend. MM. Grimm, in their note on this story,
notice the unexpected manner in which, in the Thousand and One Days,
or Persian Tales, the princess Turandot learns the name of Calaf.

[181]

      _Wind och Veder!
      Du har satt spiran spedar!_

Others say it was

      _Blaster! sätt spiran väster!_
      Blester! set the pinnacle westwards!

Or,

      _Slät! sätt spiran rätt!_
      Slätt! set the pinnacle straight!


[182] Afzelius Sago-häfder, iii. 83. Grimm, Deut. Mythol. p. 515.

[183] This event happened in Jutland. The Troll's dread of thunder
seems to be founded in the mythologic narratives of Thor's enmity to
the Trolls.

[184] Groute, Danish _Gröd_, is a species of food like furmety, made
of shelled oats or barley. It is boiled and eaten with milk or butter.

[185]

      _Hör du Plat,
      Siig til din Kat,
      At Knurremurre er död._


[186] The scene of this story is in Zealand. The same is related of a
hill called Ornehöi in the same island. The writer has heard it in
Ireland, but they were cats who addressed the man as he passed by the
churchyard where they were assembled.

[187] This legend was orally related to Mr. Thiele.

[188] Hülpher, Samlingen om Jämtland. Westeras, 1775. p. 210 _ap._
Grimm, Deut. Mythol., p. 425.

[189] Ödmans Bahuslän, _ap._ Grimm. Deut. Mythol. p. 426. Ödman also
tells of a man who, as he was going along one day with his dog, came
on a hill-smith at his work, using a stone as an anvil. He had on him
a light grey coat and a black woollen hat. The dog began to bark at
him, but he put on so menacing an attitude that they both deemed it
advisable to go away.

[190] Thiele, iv. 120. In both these legends we find the tradition of
the artistic skill of the Duergar and of Völundr still retained by the
peasantry: see Tales and Popular Fictions, p. 270.

[191] Thiele, iv. 21. In Otmar's Volksagen, there is a German legend
of Peter Klaus, who slept a sleep of twenty years in the bowling green
of the Kyffhäuser, from which Washington Irving made his Ripp van
Winkle. We shall also find it in the Highlands of Scotland. It is the
Irish legend of Clough na Cuddy, so extremely well told by Mr. C.
Croker (to which, by the way, we contributed a Latin song), in the
notes to which further information will be found. The Seven Sleepers
seems to be the original.

[192] _Oral._ See the Young Piper and the Brewery of Egg-shells in the
Irish Fairy Legends, with the notes. The same story is also to be
found in Germany where the object is to make the changeling laugh. The
mother breaks an egg in two and sets water down to boil in each half
shell. The imp then cries out: "Well! I'm as old as the Westerwald,
but never before saw I any one cooking in egg-shells," and burst out
laughing at it. Instantly the true child was returned.--Kinder and
Haus-Märchen, iii. 39. Grose also tells the story in his Provincial
Glossary. The mother there breaks a dozen of eggs and sets the shells
before the child, who says, "I was seven years old when I came to
nurse, and I have lived four since, and yet I never saw so many
milkpans." See also Minstrelsy of the Scottish Border, and below,
_Wales_, _Brittany_, _France_.

[193] This legend is taken from Resenn Atlas, i. 36.

[194] Vendsyssel and Aalborg are both in North Jutland.--The story is
told by the ferrymen to travellers: see Mythology of Greece and Italy,
p. 68.

[195] See above p. 89. According to what Mr. Thiele was told in
Zealand, Svend Fælling must have been of prodigious size, for there is
a hill near Steenstrup on which he used to sit while he washed his
feet and hands in the sea, about half a quarter of a mile distant. The
people of Holmstrup dressed a dinner for him, and brought it to him in
large brewing vessels, much as the good people of Lilliput did with
Gulliver. This reminds us of Holger Danske, who once wanted a new suit
of clothes. Twelve tailors were employed: they set ladders to his back
and shoulders, as was done to Gulliver, and they measured away; but
the man that was highest on the right side ladder chanced, as he was
cutting a mark in the measure, to clip Holger's ear. Holger,
forgetting what it was, hastily put up his hand to his head, caught
the poor tailor, and crushed him to death between his fingers.

[196] This tale was taken from oral recitation by Dr. Grimm, and
inserted in Hauff's Märchenalmanach for 1827. Dr. Grimm's fidelity to
tradition is too well known to leave any doubt of its genuineness.

[197] Aslög (_Light of the Aser_) is the name of the lovely daughter
of Sigurd and Brynhilda, who became the wife of Ragnar Lodbrok. How
beautiful and romantic is the account in the Volsunga Saga of old
Heimer taking her, when an infant, and carrying her about with him in
his harp, to save her from those who sought her life as the last of
Sigurd's race; his retiring to remote streams and waterfalls to wash
her, and his stilling her cries by the music of his harp!

[198] This is Saint Oluf or Olave, the warlike apostle of the North.

[199] A legend similar to this is told of Saint Oluf in various parts
of Scandinavia. The following is an example:--As he was sailing by the
high strand-hills in Hornsherred, in which a giantess abode, she cried
out to him,

      Saint Oluf with the red beard hear!
      My cellar-wall thou'rt sailing too near!

Oluf was incensed, and instead of guiding the ship through the rocks,
he turned it toward the hill, replying:

      Hearken thou witch with thy spindle and rock!
      There shalt thou sit and be a stone-block!

and scarcely had he spoken when the hill burst and the giantess was
turned into stone. She is still seen sitting on the east side with her
rock and spindle; out of the opposite mass sprang a holy well. Grimm.
Deutsche Mythologie, p. 516.




                              NISSES.[200]

      Og Trolde, Hexer, Nisser i hver Vraae.
                                  FINN MAGNUSEN

      And Witches, Trolls, and Nisses in each nook.


The Nis is the same being that is called Kobold in Germany, Brownie in
Scotland, and whom we shall meet in various other places under
different appellations. He is in Denmark and Norway also called Nisse
god-dreng (_Nissè good lad_), and in Sweden Tomtgubbe (_Old Man of the
House_), or briefly Tomte.

He is evidently of the Dwarf family, as he resembles them in appearance,
and, like them, has the command of money, and the same dislike to noise
and tumult. He is of the size of a year-old child, but has the face of
an old man. His usual dress is grey, with a pointed red cap; but on
Michaelmas-day he wears a round hat like those of the peasants.

No farm-house goes on well unless there is a Nis in it, and well is it
for the maids and the men when they are in favour with him. They may
go to their beds and give themselves no trouble about their work, and
yet in the morning the maids will find the kitchen swept up, and water
brought in, and the men will find the horses in the stable well
cleaned and curried, and perhaps a supply of corn cribbed for them
from the neighbours' barns. But he punishes them for any irregularity
that takes place.

The Nisses of Norway, we are told, are fond of the moon-light, and in
the winter time they may be seen jumping over the yard, or driving in
sledges. They are also skilled in music and dancing, and will, it is
said, give instructions on the fiddle for a _grey sheep_, like the
Swedish Strömkarl.[201]

Every church, too, has its Nis, who looks to order, and chastises
those who misbehave themselves. He is called the Kirkegrim.


                        _The Nis Removing._[202]

It is very difficult, they say, to get rid of a Nis when one wishes
it. A man who lived in a house in which a Nis carried his pranks to
great lengths resolved to quit the tenement, and leave him there
alone. Several cart-loads of furniture and other articles were already
gone, and the man was come to take away the last, which consisted
chiefly of empty tubs, barrels, and things of that sort. The load was
now all ready, and the man had just bidden farewell to his house and
to the Nis, hoping for comfort in his new habitation, when happening,
from some cause or other, to go to the back of the cart, there he saw
the Nis sitting in one of the tubs in the cart, plainly with the
intention of going along with him wherever he went. The good man was
surprised and disconcerted beyond measure at seeing that all his
labour was to no purpose; but the Nis began to laugh heartily, popped
his head up out of the tub, and cried to the bewildered farmer, "Ha!
we're moving to-day, you see."[203]


                         _The Penitent Nis._

It is related of a Nis, who had established himself in a house in
Jutland, that he used every evening, after the maid was gone to bed,
to go into the kitchen to take his groute, which they used to leave
for him in a wooden bowl.

One evening he sat down as usual to eat his supper with a good
appetite, drew over the bowl to him, and was just beginning, as he
thought, to make a comfortable meal, when he found that the maid had
forgotten to put any butter into it for him. At this he fell into a
furious rage, got up in the height of his passion, and went out into
the cow-house, and twisted the neck of the best cow that was in it.
But as he felt himself still very hungry, he stole back again to the
kitchen to take some of the groute, such as it was, and when he had
eaten a little of it he perceived that there was butter in it, but
that it had sunk to the bottom under the groute. He was now so vexed
at his injustice toward the maid, that, to make good the damage he had
done, he went back to the cow-house and set a chest full of money by
the side of the dead cow, where the family found it nest morning, and
by means of it got into flourishing circumstances.


                        _The Nis and the Boy._

There was a Nis in a house in Jutland; he every evening got his groute
at the regular time, and he, in return, used to help both the men and
the maids, and looked to the interest of the master of the house in
every respect.

There came one time an arch mischievous boy to live at service in this
house, and his great delight was, whenever he got an opportunity, to
give the Nis all the annoyance in his power. One evening, late, when
everything was quiet in the place, the Nis took his little wooden dish,
and was just going to eat his supper, when he perceived that the boy had
put the butter at the bottom, and concealed it, in hopes that he might
eat the groute first, and then find the butter when all the groute was
gone. He accordingly set about thinking how he might repay the boy in
kind; so, after pondering a little, he went up to the loft, where the
man and the boy were lying asleep in the same bed. When he had taken the
bed-clothes off them, and saw the little boy by the side of the tall
man, he said, "Short and long don't match;" and with this word he took
the boy by the legs and dragged him down to the man's legs. He then went
up to the head of the bed, and "Short and long don't match," said he
again, and then he dragged the boy up once more. When, do what he would,
he could not succeed in making the boy as long as the man, he still
persisted in dragging him up and down in the bed, and continued at this
work the whole night long, till it was broad daylight.

By this time he was well tired, so he crept up on the window-stool,
and sat with his legs hanging down into the yard. But the
house-dog--for all dogs have a great enmity to the Nis--as soon as he
saw him, began to bark at him, which afforded such amusement to Nis,
as the dog could not get up to him, that he put down first one leg and
then the other to him, and teazed him, and kept saying, "Look at my
little leg! look at my little leg!" In the meantime the boy had
wakened, and had stolen up close behind him, and while Nis was least
thinking of it, and was going on with his "Look at my little leg!" the
boy tumbled him down into the yard to the dog, crying out at the same
time, "Look at the whole of him now!"


                       _The Nis Stealing Corn._

There lived a man at Thyrsting, in Jutland, who had a Nis in his barn.
This Nis used to attend to the cattle, and at night he would steal
fodder for them from the neighbours, so that this farmer had the best
fed and most thriving cattle in the country.

One time the boy went along with the Nis to Fugleriis to steal corn.
The Nis took as much as he thought he could well carry, but the boy
was more covetous, and said, "Oh, take more; sure we can rest now and
then?" "Rest!" said the Nis; "rest! and what is rest?" "Do what I tell
you," replied the boy; "take more, and we shall find rest when we get
out of this."--The Nis then took more, and they went away with it. But
when they were come to the lands of Thyrsting, the Nis grew tired, and
then the boy said to him, "Here now is rest;" and they both sat down
on the side of a little hill. "If I had known," said the Nis, as they
were sitting there, "if I had known that rest was so good, I'd have
carried off all that was in the barn."

It happened some time after that the boy and the Nis were no longer
friends, and as the Nis was sitting one day in the granary-window,
with his legs hanging out into the yard, the boy ran at him and
tumbled him back into the granary. But the Nis took his satisfaction
of him that very same night; for when the boy was gone to bed, he
stole down to where he was lying, and carried him naked as he was out
into the yard, and then laid two pieces of wood across the well, and
put him lying on them, expecting that, when he awoke, he would fall
from the fright down into the well and be drowned. But he was
disappointed, for the boy came off without injury.


                       _The Nis and the Mare._

There was a man who lived in the town of Tirup, who had a very
handsome white mare. This mare had for many years gone, like an
heirloom, from father to son, because there was a Nis attached to her,
which brought luck to the place.

This Nis was so fond of the mare, that he could hardly endure to let
them put her to any kind of work, and he used to come himself every
night and feed her of the best; and as for this purpose he usually
brought a superfluity of corn, both threshed and in the straw, from
the neighbours' barns, all the rest of the cattle enjoyed the
advantage of it, and they were all kept in exceeding good case.

It happened at last that the farm-house passed into the hands of a new
owner, who refused to put any faith in what they told him about the
mare, so the luck speedily left the place, and went after the mare to
his poor neighbour who had bought her; and within five days after his
purchase, the poor farmer who had bought the mare began to find his
circumstances gradually improving, while the income of the other, day
after day, fell away and diminished at such a rate, that he was hard
set to make both ends meet.

If now the man who had gotten the mare had only known how to be quiet,
and enjoy the good times that were come upon him, he and his children,
and his children's children after him, would have been in flourishing
circumstances till this very day. But when he saw the quantity of corn
that came every night to his barn, he could not resist his desire to
get a sight of the Nis. So he concealed himself one evening, at
nightfall, in the stable; and as soon as it was midnight, he saw how
the Nis came from his neighbour's barn and brought a sackful of corn
with him. It was now unavoidable that the Nis should get a sight of
the man who was watching; so he, with evident marks of grief, gave the
mare her food for the last time, cleaned, and dressed her to the best
of his abilities, and when he had done, turned round to where the man
was lying and bid him farewell.

From that day forward the circumstances of both the neighbours were on
an equality, for each now kept his own.


                          _The Nis Riding._

There was a Nis in a farm-house, who was for ever tormenting the
maids, and playing all manner of roguish tricks on them, and they in
return were continually planning how to be even with him. There came
one time to the farm-house a Juttish drover and put up there for the
night. Among his cattle, there was one very large Juttish ox; and when
Nis saw him in the stable he took a prodigious fancy to get up and
ride on his back. He accordingly mounted the ox, and immediately began
to torment the beast in such a manner that he broke loose from his
halter and ran out into the yard with the Nis on his back. Poor Nis
was now terrified in earnest, and began to shout and bawl most
lustily. His cries awakened the maids, but instead of coming to his
assistance they laughed at him till they were ready to break their
hearts. And when the ox ran against a piece of timber, so that the
unfortunate Nis had his hood all torn by it, the maids shouted out and
called him "Lame leg, Lame leg," and he made off with himself in most
miserable plight. But the Nis did not forget it to the maids; for the
following Sunday when they were going to the dance, he contrived,
unknown to them, to smut their faces all over, so that when they got
up to dance, every one that was there burst out a laughing at them.


                       _The Nisses in Vosborg._

There was once an exceeding great number of Nisses in Jutland. Those in
Vosborg in particular were treated with so much liberality, that they
were careful and solicitous beyond measure for their master's interest.
They got every evening in their sweet-groute a large lump of butter, and
in return for this, they once showed great zeal and gratitude.

One very severe winter, a lonely house in which there were six calves
was so completely covered by the snow, that for the space of fourteen
days no one could get into it. When the snow was gone, the people
naturally thought that the calves were all dead of hunger; but far
from it, they found them all in excellent condition; the place cleaned
up, and the cribs full of beautiful corn, so that it was quite evident
the Nisses had attended to them.

But the Nis, though thus grateful when well treated, is sure to avenge
himself when any one does anything to annoy and vex him. As a Nis was
one day amusing himself by running on the loft over the cow-house, one
of the boards gave way and his leg went through. The boy happened to be
in the cow-house when this happened, and when he saw the Nis's leg
hanging down, he took up a dung fork, and gave him with it a smart rap
on the leg. At noon, when the people were sitting round the table in the
hall, the boy sat continually laughing to himself. The bailiff asked him
what he was laughing at; and the boy replied, "Oh! a got such a blow at
Nis to-day, and a gave him such a hell of a rap with my fork, when he
put his leg down through the loft." "No," cried Nis, outside of the
window, "it was not one, but three blows you gave me, for there were
three prongs on the fork; but I shall pay you for it, my lad."

Next night, while the boy was lying fast asleep, Nis came and took him
up and brought him out into the yard, then flung him over the house,
and was so expeditious in getting to the other side of the house, that
he caught him before he came to the ground, and instantly pitched him
over again, and kept going on with this sport till the boy had been
eight times backwards and forwards over the roof, and the ninth time
he let him fall into a great pool of water, and then set up such a
shout of laughter at him, that it wakened up all the people that were
in the place.

       *       *       *       *       *

In Sweden the Tomte is sometimes seen at noon, in summer, slowly and
stealthily dragging a straw or an ear of corn. A farmer, seeing him
thus engaged, laughed, and said, "What difference does it make if you
bring away that or nothing?" The Tomte in displeasure left his farm,
and went to that of his neighbour; and with him went all prosperity
from him who had made light of him, and passed over to the other
farmer. Any one who treated the industrious Tomte with respect, and
set store by the smallest straw, became rich, and neatness and
regularity prevailed in his household.[204]

FOOTNOTES:

[200] Nisse, Grimm thinks (Deut. Mythol. p. 472) is Niels, Nielsen,
_i. e._ Nicolaus, Niclas, a common name in Germany and the North,
which is also contracted to Klas, Claas.

[201] Wilse _ap_ Grimm, Deut. Mythol., p. 479, who thinks he may have
confounded the Nis with the Nöck.

[202] The places mentioned in the following stories are all in
Jutland. It is remarkable that we seem to have scarcely any Nis
stories from Sweden.

[203] This story is current in Germany, England, and Ireland. In the
German story the farmer set fire to his barn to burn the Kobold in it.
As he was driving off, he turned round to look at the blaze, and, to his
no small mortification, saw the Kobold behind him in the cart, crying
"It was time for us to come out--it was time for us to come out!"

[204] Afzelius, Sago Häfdar., ii. 169. On Christmas-morning, he says,
the peasantry gives the Tomte, his wages, _i. e._ a piece of grey
cloth, tobacco, and a _shovelful of clay_.




                     NECKS, MERMEN, AND MERMAIDS.

      Ei Necken mer i flodens vågor quäder,
      Och ingen Hafsfru bleker sina kläder
        Paa böljans rygg i milda solars glans.
                                 STAGNELIUS.

      The Neck no more upon the river sings,
      And no Mermaid to bleach her linen flings
        Upon the waves in the mild solar ray.

It is a prevalent opinion in the North that all the various beings of
the popular creed were once worsted in a conflict with superior powers,
and condemned to remain till doomsday in certain assigned abodes. The
Dwarfs, or Hill (_Berg_) trolls, were appointed the hills; the Elves the
groves and leafy trees; the Hill-people (_Högfolk_[205]) the caves and
caverns; the Mermen, Mermaids, and Necks, the sea, lakes, and rivers;
the River-man (_Strömkarl_) the small waterfalls. Both the Catholic and
Protestant clergy have endeavoured to excite an aversion to these
beings, but in vain. They are regarded as possessing considerable power
over man and nature, and it is believed that though now unhappy, they
will be eventually saved, or _faa förlossning_ (get salvation), as it is
expressed.

The NECK (in Danish Nökke[206]) is the river-spirit. The ideas
respecting him are various. Sometimes he is represented as sitting, of
summer nights, on the surface of the water, like a pretty little boy,
with golden hair hanging in ringlets, and a red cap on his head;
sometimes as above the water, like a handsome young man, but beneath
like a horse;[207] at other times, as an old man with a long beard,
out of which he wrings the water as he sits on the cliffs. In this
last form, Odin, according to the Icelandic sagas, has sometimes
revealed himself.

The Neck is very severe against any haughty maiden who makes an ill
return to the love of her wooer; but should he himself fall in love
with a maid of human kind, he is the most polite and attentive suitor
in the world.

Though he is thus severe only against those who deserve it, yet country
people when they are upon the water use certain precautions against his
power. Metals, particularly steel, are believed "_to bind the Neck_,"
(_binda Necken_); and when going on the open sea, they usually put a
knife in the bottom of the boat, or set a nail in a reed. In Norway the
following charm is considered effectual against the Neck:--

      Nyk, nyk, naal i vatn!
      Jomfru Maria kastet staal i vatn!
      Du sök, äk flyt!

      Neck, neck, nail in water!
      The virgin Mary casteth steel in water!
      Do you sink, I flit!

The Neck is a great musician. He sits on the water and plays on his
gold harp, the harmony of which operates on all nature. To learn music
of him, a person must present him with a black lamb, and also promise
him resurrection and redemption.

The following story is told in all parts of Sweden:--

"Two boys were one time playing near a river that ran by their father's
house. The Neck rose and sat on the surface of the water, and played on
his harp; but one of the children said to him, 'What is the use, Neck,
of your sitting there and playing? you will never be saved.' The Neck
then began to weep bitterly, flung away his harp, and sank down to the
bottom. The children went home, and told the whole story to their
father, who was the parish priest. He said they were wrong to say so to
the Neck, and desired them to go immediately back to the river, and
console him with the promise of salvation. They did so: and when they
came down to the river the Neck was sitting on the water, weeping and
lamenting. They then said to him, 'Neck, do not grieve so; our father
says that your Redeemer liveth also.' The Neck then took his harp and
played most sweetly, until long after the sun was gone down."

This legend is also found in Denmark, but in a less agreeable form. A
clergyman, it is said, was journeying one night to Roeskilde in
Zealand. His way led by a hill in which there was music and dancing
and great merriment going forward. Some dwarfs jumped suddenly out of
it, stopped the carriage, and asked him whither he was going. He
replied to the synod of the church. They asked him if he thought they
could be saved. To that, he replied, he could not give an immediate
answer. They then begged that he would give them a reply by next
year. When he next passed, and they made the same demand, he replied,
"No, you are all damned." Scarcely had he spoken the word, when the
whole hill appeared in flames.

In another form of this legend, a priest says to the Neck, "Sooner will
this cane which I hold in my hand grow green flowers than thou shalt
attain salvation." The Neck in grief flung away his harp and wept, and
the priest rode on. But soon his cane began to put forth leaves and
blossoms, and he then went back to communicate the glad tidings to the
Neck who now joyously played on all the entire night.[208]


                       _The Power of the Harp._

      Little Kerstin she weeps in her bower all the day;
      Sir Peter in his courtyard is playing so gay.
          My heart's own dear!
          Tell me wherefore you grieve?

      "Grieve you for saddle, or grieve you for steed?
      Or grieve you for that I have you wed?"
          My heart's, &c.

      "And grieve do I not for saddle or for steed:
      And grieve do I not for that I have you wed.
          My heart's, &c.

      "Much more do I grieve for my fair gold hair,
      Which in the blue waves shall be stained to-day.
          My heart's, &c.

      "Much more do I grieve for Ringfalla flood,
      In which have been drowned my two sisters proud.
          My heart's, &c.

      "It was laid out for me in my infancy,
      That my wedding-day should prove heavy to me."
          My heart's, &c.

      "And I shall make them the horse round shoe,
      He shall not stumble on his four gold shoes.
          My heart's, &c.

      "Twelve of my courtiers shall before thee ride,
      Twelve of my courtiers upon each side."
          My heart's, &c.

      But when they were come to Ringfalla wood,
      There sported a hart with gilded horns proud.
          My heart's, &c.

      And all the courtiers after the hart are gone;
      Little Kerstin, she must proceed alone.
          My heart's, &c.

      And when on Ringfalla bridge she goes,
      Her steed he stumbled on his four gold shoes.
          My heart's, &c.

      Four gold shoes, and thirty gold nails,
      And the maiden into the swift stream falls.
          My heart's, &c.

      Sir Peter he spake to his footpage so--
      "Thou must for my gold harp instantly go."
          My heart's, &c.

      The first stroke on his gold harp he gave
      The foul ugly Neck sat and laughed on the wave.
          My heart's, &c.

      The second time the gold harp he swept,
      The foul ugly Neck on the wave sat and wept.
          My heart's, &c.

      The third stroke on the gold harp rang,
      Little Kerstin reached up her snow-white arm.
          My heart's, &c.[209]

      He played the bark from off the high trees;
      He played Little Kerstin back on his knees.
          My heart's, &c.

      And the Neck he out of the waves came there,
      And a proud maiden on each arm he bare.
          My heart's own dear!
          Tell me wherefore you grieve?[210]

The STRÖMKARL, called in Norway Grim or Fosse-Grim[211]
(_Waterfall-Grim_) is a musical genius like the Neck. Like him too,
when properly propitiated, he communicates his art. The sacrifice also
is a black lamb,[212] which the offerer must present with averted
head, and on Thursday evening. If it is poor the pupil gets no further
than to the tuning of the instruments; if it is fat the Strömkarl
seizes the votary by the right hand, and swings it backwards and
forwards till the blood runs out at the finger-ends. The aspirant is
then enabled to play in such a masterly manner that the trees dance
and waterfalls stop at his music.[213]

The Havmand, or Merman, is described as of a handsome form, with green
or black hair and beard. He dwells either in the bottom of the sea, or
in the cliffs and hills near the sea shore, and is regarded as rather
a good and beneficent kind of being.[214]

The Havfrue, or Mermaid, is represented in the popular tradition
sometimes as a good, at other times as an evil and treacherous being.
She is beautiful in her appearance. Fishermen sometimes see her in the
bright summer's sun, when a thin mist hangs over the sea, sitting on the
surface of the water, and combing her long golden hair with a golden
comb, or driving up her snow-white cattle to feed on the strands and
small islands. At other times she comes as a beautiful maiden, chilled
and shivering with the cold of the night, to the fires the fishers have
kindled, hoping by this means to entice them to her love.[215] Her
appearance prognosticates both storm and ill success in their fishing.
People that are drowned, and whose bodies are not found, are believed to
be taken into the dwellings of the Mermaids. These beings are also
supposed to have the power of foretelling future events. A Mermaid, we
are told, prophesied the birth of Christian IV. of Denmark, and

      En Havfrue op af Vandet steg,
      Og spaade Herr Sinklar ilde.
                        SINCLAR'S VISA.

      A mermaid from the water rose,
      And spaed Sir Sinclar ill.

Fortune-telling has been in all countries a gift of the sea-people. We
need hardly mention the prophecies of Nereus and Proteus.

A girl one time fell into the power of a Havfrue and passed fifteen
years in her submarine abode without ever seeing the sun. At length
her brother went down in quest of her, and succeeded in bringing her
back to the upper world. The Havfrue waited for seven years expecting
her return, but when she did not come back, she struck the water with
her staff and made it boil up and cried--

      Hade jag trott att du varit så falsk,
      Så skulle jag kreckt dig din tiufvehals!

      Had I but known thee so false to be,
      Thy thieving neck I'd have cracked for thee.[216]



                    _Duke Magnus and the Mermaid._

      Duke Magnus looked out through the castle windów,
      How the stream ran so rapidly;
      And there he saw how upon the stream sat
      A woman most fair and lovelie,
          Duke Magnus, Duke Magnus, plight thee to me,
          I pray you still so freely;
          Say me not nay, but yes, yes!

      "O, to you I will give a travelling ship,
      The best that a knight would guide;
      It goeth as well on water as on firm land,
      And through the fields all so wide.
          Duke Magnus, &c.

      "O, to you will I give a courser gray,
      The best that a knight would ride;
      He goeth as well on water as on firm land,
      And through the groves all so wide."
          Duke Magnus, &c.

      "O, how should I plight me to you?
      I never any quiet get;
      I serve the king and my native land,
      But with woman I match me not yet."
          Duke Magnus, &c.

      "To you will I give as much of gold
      As for more than your life will endure;
      And of pearls and precious stones handfùls;
      And all shall be so pure."
          Duke Magnus, &c.

      "O gladly would I plight me to thee,
      If thou wert of Christian kind;
      But now thou art a vile sea-troll,
      My love thou canst never win."
          Duke Magnus, &c.

      "Duke Magnus, Duke Magnus, bethink thee well,
      And answer not so haughtily;
      For if thou wilt not plight thee to me,
      Thou shalt ever crazy be."
          Duke Magnus, &c.

      "I am a king's son so good,
      How can I let you gain me?
      You dwell not on land, but in the flood,
      Which would not with me agree."
          Duke Magnus, Duke Magnus, plight thee to me,
          I offer you still so freely;
          Say me not nay, but yes, yes![217]


FOOTNOTES:

[205] _Berg_ signifies a larger eminence, mountain, hill; _Hög_, a
height, hillock. The _Hög-folk_ are Elves and musicians.

[206] The Danish peasantry in Wormius' time described the Nökke
(Nikke) as a monster with a human head, that dwells both in fresh and
salt water. When any one was drowned, they said, _Nökken tog ham bort_
(the Nökke took him away); and when any drowned person was found with
the nose red, they said the Nikke has sucked him: _Nikken har suet
ham._--Magnusen, Eddalære. Denmark being a country without any streams
of magnitude, we meet in the Danske Folkesagn no legends of the Nökke;
and in ballads, such as "The Power of the Harp," what in Sweden is
ascribed to the Neck, is in Denmark imputed to the Havmand or Merman.

[207] The Neck is also believed to appear in the form of a complete
horse, and can be made to work at the plough, if a bridle of a
particular description be employed.--_Kalm's Vestgötha Resa_.

[208] Afzelius, Sago-häfdar, ii. 156.

[209]

      _Det tredje slag på gullharpan klang,
      Liten Kerstin räckta upp sin snöhvita arm.
            Min hjerteliga kär!
            J sägen mig hvarfor J sörjen!_


[210] As sung in West Gothland and Vermland.

[211] _Fosse_ is the North of England _force_.

[212] Or a white kid, Faye _ap._ Grimm, Deut. Mythol., p. 461.

[213] The Strömkarl has eleven different measures, to ten of which
alone people may dance; the eleventh belongs to the night spirit his
host. If any one plays it, tables and benches, cans and cups, old men
and women, blind and lame, even the children in the cradle, begin to
dance.--Arndt. _ut sup._, see above p. 80.

[214] In the Danske Viser and Folkesagn there are a few stories of
Mermen, such as Rosmer Havmand and Marstig's Daughter, both translated
by Dr. Jamieson, and Agnete and the Merman, which resembles Proud
Margaret. It was natural, says Afzelius, that what in Sweden was
related of a Hill King, should, in Denmark, be ascribed to a Merman.

[215] The appearance of the Wood-woman (_Skogsfru_) or Elve-woman, is
equally unlucky for hunters. She also approaches the fires, and seeks
to seduce young men.

[216] Arvidsson, ii. 320, _ap._ Grimm, p. 463.

[217] This is a ballad from Småland. Magnus was the youngest son of
Gustavus Vasa. He died out of his mind. It is well known that insanity
pervaded the Vasa family for centuries.




                          NORTHERN ISLANDS.

      Här Necken sin Harpa i Glasborgen slår,
      Och Hafsfruar kamma sitt grönskande hår,
        Och bleka den skinande drägten.
                                    STAGNELIUS.

      The Neck here his harp in the glass-castle plays,
      And Mermaidens comb out their green hair always,
        And bleach here their shining white clothes.


Under the title of Northern Islands we include all those lying in the
ocean to the north of Scotland, to wit Iceland, the Feroes, Shetland,
and the Orkneys.

These islands were all peopled from Norway and Denmark during the
ninth century. Till that time many of them, particularly Iceland and
the Feroes, though, perhaps, occasionally visited by stray Vikings, or
by ships driven out of their course by tempests, had lain waste and
desert from the creation, the abode alone of wild beasts and birds.

But at that period the proud nobles of Norway and Denmark, who scorned
to be the vassals of Harold Fairhair and Gorm the Old, the founders of
the Norwegian and Danish monarchies, set forth in quest of new
settlements, where, at a distance from these haughty potentates, they
might live in the full enjoyment of their beloved independence. Followed
by numerous vassals, they embarked on the wide Atlantic. A portion fixed
themselves on the distant shores of Iceland; others took possession of
the vacant Feroes; and more dispossessed the Peti and Papæ, the ancient
inhabitants of Shetland and the Orkneys, and seized on their country.

As the Scandinavians were at that time still worshipers of Thor and
Odin, the belief in Alfs and Dwarfs accompanied them to their new
abodes, and there, as elsewhere, survived the introduction of
Christianity. We now proceed to examine the vestiges of the old
religion still to be traced.




                               ICELAND.

                        Hvad mon da ei
      Og her lyksalig leves kan? Jeg troer
      Det mueligt, som för i Heden-Old
      For raske Skander mueligt det var,
      Paa denne kolde Öe.
                        ISLANDSKE LANDLEVNET.

                        What! cannot one
      Here, too, live happy? I believe it now
      As possible, as in the heathen age,
      For the bold Scandinavians it was,
      On this cold isle.

It is in vain that we look into the works of travellers for information
on the subject of popular belief in Iceland. Their attention was too
much occupied by Geysers, volcanoes, agriculture, and religion, to allow
them to devote any part of it to this, in their eyes, unimportant
subject. So that, were it not for some short but curious notices given
by natives of the island, we should be quite ignorant of the fate of the
subordinate classes of the old religion in Iceland.

Torfæus, who wrote in the latter end of the seventeenth century, gives,
in his preface to his edition of Hrolf Krakas Saga, the opinion of a
venerable Icelandic pastor, named Einar Gudmund, respecting the Dwarfs.
This opinion Torfæus heard when a boy from the lips of the old man.

"I believe, and am fully persuaded," said he, "that this people are the
creatures of God, consisting of a body and a rational spirit; that they
are of both sexes; marry, and have children; and that all human acts
take place among them as with us: that they are possessed of cattle, and
of many other kinds of property; have poverty and riches, weeping and
laughter, sleep and wake, and have all other affections belonging to
human nature; and that they enjoy a longer or a shorter term of life
according to the will and pleasure of God. Their power of having
children," he adds, "appears from this, that some of their women have
had children by men, and were very anxious to have their offspring
dipped in the sacred font, and initiated into Christianity; but they, in
general, sought in vain. Thorkatla Mari, the wife of Kari, was pregnant
by a Hill-man, but she did not bring the child Aresus into the world, as
appears from the poems made on this fatal occasion.

"There was formerly on the lands of Haga a nobleman named Sigvard
Fostre, who had to do with a Hill-woman. He promised her faithfully
that he would take care to have the child received into the bosom of
the church. In due time the woman came with her child and laid it on
the churchyard wall, and along with it a gilded cup and a holy robe
(presents she intended making to the church for the baptism of her
child), and then retired a little way. The pastor inquired who
acknowledged himself the father of the child. Sigvard, perhaps, out of
shame, did not venture to acknowledge himself. The clerk now asked him
if it should be baptised or not. Sigvard said 'No,' lest by assenting
he should be proved to be the father. The infant then was left where
it was, untouched and unbaptised. The mother, filled with rage,
snatched up her babe and the cup, but left the vestment, the remains
of which may still be seen in Haga. That woman foretold and inflicted
a singular disease on Sigvard and his posterity till the ninth
generation, and several of his descendants are to this day afflicted
with it. Andrew Gudmund (from which I am the seventh in descent) had
an affair of the same kind. He also refused to have the child
baptised, and he and his posterity have suffered a remarkable disease,
of which very many of them have died; but some, by the interposition
of good men, have escaped the deserved punishment."

The fullest account we have of the Icelandic Elves or Dwarfs is
contained in the following passage of the Ecclesiastical History of
Iceland of the learned Finnus Johannæus.

"As we have not as yet," says he, "spoken a single word about the very
ancient, and I know not whether more ridiculous or perverse,
persuasion of our forefathers about semigods, this seems the proper
place for saying a few words about this so celebrated figment, as it
was chiefly in this period it attained its acmè, and it was believed
as a true and necessary article of faith, that there are genii or
semigods, called in our language Alfa and Alfa-folk.

"Authors vary respecting their essence and origin. Some hold that they
have been created by God immediately and without the intervention of
parents, like some kinds of spirits: others maintain that they are
sprung from Adam, but before the creation of Eve:[218] lastly, some
refer them to another race of men, or to a stock of præ-Adamites. Some
bestow on them not merely a human body, but an immortal soul: others
assign them merely mortal breath (_spiritum_) instead of a soul,
whence a certain blockhead,[219] in an essay written by him respecting
them, calls them our half-kin (_half-kyn_).

"According to the old wives' tales that are related about this race of
genii who inhabit Iceland and its vicinity, they have a political form
of government modelled after the same pattern as that which the
inhabitants themselves are under. Two viceroys rule over them, who in
turn every second year, attended by some of the subjects, sail to
Norway, to present themselves before the monarch of the whole race,
who resides there, and to give him a true report concerning the
fidelity, good conduct, and obedience of the subjects; and those who
accompany them are to accuse the government or viceroys if they have
transgressed the bounds of justice or of good morals. If these are
convicted of crime or injustice, they are forthwith stript of their
office, and others are appointed in their place.

"This nation is reported to cultivate justice and equity above all
other virtues, and hence, though they are very potent, especially with
words and imprecations, they very rarely, unless provoked or injured,
do any mischief to man; but when irritated they avenge themselves on
their enemies with dreadful curses and punishments.

"The new-born infants of Christians are, before baptism, believed to
be exposed to great peril of being stolen by them, and their own,
which they foresee likely to be feeble in mind, in body, in beauty, or
other gifts, being substituted for them. These supposititious children
of the semigods are called Umskiptingar; whence nurses and midwives
were strictly enjoined to watch constantly, and to hold the infant
firmly in their arms, till it had had the benefit of baptism, lest
they should furnish any opportunity for such a change. Hence it comes,
that the vulgar use to call fools, deformed people, and those who act
rudely and uncivilly, _Umskiptinga eins og hann sie ko minnaf Alfum_,
_i.e._ changelings, and come of the Alfs.

"They use rocks, hills, and even the seas, for their habitations,
which withinside are neat, and all their domestic utensils extremely
clean and orderly. They sometimes invite men home, and take especial
delight in the converse of Christians, some of whom have had
intercourse with their daughters or sisters, who are no less wanton
than beautiful, and have had children by them, who must by all means
be washed in holy water, that they may receive an immortal soul, and
one that can be saved. Nay, they have not been ashamed to feign that
certain women of them have been joined in lawful marriage with men,
and continued for a long time with them, happily at first, but, for
the most part, with an ill or tragical conclusion.

"Their cattle, if not very numerous, are at least very profitable.
They are invisible as their owners are, unless when it pleases them
to appear, which usually takes place when the weather is serene and
the sun shining very bright; for as they do not see the sun within
their dwellings, they frequently walk out in the sunshine that they
may be cheered by his radiance.[220] Hence, even the coffins of dead
kings and nobles, such as are the oblong stones which are to be seen
here and there, in wildernesses and rough places, always lie in the
open air and exposed to the sun.

"They change their abodes and habitations occasionally like mankind;
this they do on new-year's night; whence certain dreamers and
mountebanks used on that night to watch in the roads, that, by the means
of various forms of conjurations appointed for that purpose, they might
extort from them as they passed along the knowledge of future
events.[221] But people in general, who were not acquainted with such
things, especially the heads of families, used on this evening strictly
to charge their children and servants to be sure to be serious and
modest in their actions and language, lest their invisible guests, and
mayhap future neighbours, should be aggrieved or any way offended.
Hence, when going to bed they did not shut the outer doors of their
houses, nor even the door of the sitting-room, but having kindled a
light, and laid out a table, they desired the invisible personages who
had arrived, or were to arrive, to partake, if it was their pleasure, of
the food that was laid out for them; and hoped that if it pleased them
to dwell within the limits of their lands, they would live safe and
sound, and be propitious to them. As this superstitious belief is
extremely ancient, so it long continued in full vigour, and was held by
some even within the memory of our fathers."[222]

The Icelandic Neck, Kelpie, or Water-Spirit, is called Nickur,
Ninnir, and Hnikur, one of the Eddaic names of Odin. He appears always
in the form of a fine _apple-grey_ horse on the sea-shore; but he may
be distinguished from ordinary horses by the circumstance of his hoofs
being reversed. If any one is so foolish as to mount him, he gallops
off, and plunges into the sea with his burden. He can, however, be
caught in a particular manner, tamed, and made to work.[223]

       *       *       *       *       *

The Icelanders have the same notions respecting the seals which we
shall find in the Feroes and Shetland. It is a common opinion with
them that King Pharaoh and his army were changed into these animals.

FOOTNOTES:

[218] This was plainly a theory of the monks. It greatly resembles the
Rabbinical account of the origin of the Mazckeen, which the reader
will meet in the sequel.

Some Icelanders of the present day say, that one day, when Eve was
washing her children at the running water, God suddenly called her.
She was frightened, and thrust aside such of them as were not clean.
God asked her if all her children were there, and she said, Yes; but
got for answer, that what she tried to hide from God should be hidden
from man. These children became instantly invisible and distinct from
the rest. Before the flood came on, God put them into a cave and
closed up the entrance. From them are descended all the
underground-people.--Magnussen, _Eddalære_.

[219] This was one Janus Gudmund, who wrote several treatises on this
and similar subjects, particularly one "De Alfis et Alfheimum," which
the learned bishop characterises as a work "nullins pretii, et meras
nugas continens." We might, if we were to see it, be of a different
opinion. Of Janus Gudmund Brynj Svenonius thus expresses himself to
Wormius: _Janus Gudmundius, ære dirutus verius quam rude donatus, sibi
et aliis inutilis in angulo consenuit_. Worm., Epist., 970.

[220] The Icelandic dwarfs, it would appear, wore red clothes. In
Nial's Saga (p. 70), a person gaily dressed (_i litklædum_) is
jocularly called Red-elf (_raud-álfr_).

[221] There was a book of prophecies called the _Kruckspá_, or
Prophecy of Kruck, a man who was said to have lived in the 15th
century. It treated of the change of religion and other matters said
to have been revealed to him by the Dwarfs. Johannæus says it was
forged by Brynjalf Svenonius in or about the year 1660.

[222] Finni Johannæi Historia Ecclesiastica Islandiæ, tom. ii. p. 368.
Havniæ, 1774. We believe we might safely add, is held at the present
day, for the superstition is no more extinct in Iceland than elsewhere.

[223] Svenska Visor, iii. 128. Grimm, Deut. Mythol., p. 458. At Bahus,
in Sweden, a clever man contrived to throw on him an ingeniously made
bridle so that he could not get away, and he ploughed all his land
with him. One time the bridle fell off and the Neck, like a flash of
fire, sprang into the lake and dragged the harrow down with him.
Grimm, _ut sup._, see p. 148.




                               FEROES.

      Sjûrur touk teâ besta svör
      Sum Dvörgurin heji smuja.
                      QVÖRFINS THAATTUR.

      Sigurd took the very best sword
      That the Dwarfs had ever smithed.


The people of the Feroes believe in the same classes of beings as the
inhabitants of the countries whence their ancestors came.

They call the Trolls Underground-people, Hollow-men, Foddenskkmænd,
and Huldefolk. These Trolls used frequently to carry people into their
hills, and detain them there. Among several other instances,
Debes[224] gives the following one of this practice:

"Whilst Mr. Taale was priest in Osteröe, it happened that one of his
hearers was carried away and returned again. At last the said young man
being to be married, and every thing prepared, and the priest being
arrived the Saturday before at the parish, the bridegroom was carried
away; wherefore they sent folks to look after him, but he could not be
found. The priest desired his friends to have good courage, and that he
would come again; which he did at last, and related that the spirit that
led him away was in the shape of a most beautiful woman, and very richly
dressed, who desired him to forsake her whom he was now to marry, and
consider how ugly his mistress was in comparison of her, and what fine
apparel she had. He said also that he saw the men that sought after him,
and that they went close by him but could not see him, and that he heard
their calling, and yet could not answer them; but that when he would not
be persuaded he was again left at liberty."

       *       *       *       *       *

The people of the Feroes call the Nisses or Brownies Niägruisar, and
describe them as little creatures with red caps on their heads, that
bring luck to any place where they take up their abode.

       *       *       *       *       *

It is the belief of the people of these islands that every ninth-night
the seals put off their skins and assume the human form, and dance and
sport about on the land. After some time, they resume their skins and
return to the water. The following adventure, it is said, once
occurred:[225]

"A man happening to pass by where a female seal was disporting herself
in the form of a woman, found her skin, and took and hid it. When she
could not find her skin to creep into, she was forced to remain in the
human form; and as she was fair to look upon, that same man took her
to wife, had children by her, and lived right happily with her. After
a long time, the wife found the skin that had been stolen, and could
not resist the temptation to creep into it, and so she became a seal
again, and returned to the sea."

       *       *       *       *       *

The Neck called Nikar is also an object of popular faith in the
Feroes. He inhabits the streams and lakes, and takes a delight in
drowning people.

FOOTNOTES:

[224] Færoæ et Færoa reserata. Lond. 1676.

[225] Thiele, iii. 51, from the MS. Travels of Svaboe in the Feroes.




                              SHETLAND.

      Well, since we are welcome to Yule,
      Up wi't Lightfoot, link it awa', boys!
      Send for a fiddler, play up Foula reel,
      The Shaalds will pay for a', boys.
                                  SHETLAND SONG.


Dr. Hibbert's valuable work on the Shetland Islands[226] fortunately
enables us to give a tolerably complete account of the fairy system of
these islands.

The Shetlanders, he informs us, believe in two kinds of Trows, as they
call the Scandinavian Trolls, those of the land and those of the sea.

The former, whom, like the Scots, they also term the _guid folk_ and
_guid neighbours_, they conceive to inhabit the interior of green
hills. Persons who have been brought into their habitations have been
dazzled with the splendour of what they saw there. All the interior
walls are adorned with gold and silver, and the domestic utensils
resemble the strange things that are found sometimes lying on the
hills. These persons have always entered the hill on one side and gone
out at the other.

They marry and have children, like their northern kindred. A woman of
the island of Yell, who died not long since, at the advanced age of
more than a hundred years, said, that she once met some fairy
children, accompanied by a little dog, playing like other boys and
girls, on the top of a hill. Another time she happened one night to
raise herself up in the bed, when she saw a little boy with a white
nightcap on his head, sitting at the fire. She asked him who he was.
"I am Trippa's son," said he. When she heard this, she instantly
_sained_, i. e. blessed herself, and Trippa's son vanished.

_Saining_ is the grand protection against them; a Shetlander always
sains himself when passing by their hills.

The Trows are of a diminutive stature, and they are usually dressed in
gay green garments. When travelling from one place to another they may
be seen mounted on bulrushes, and riding through the air. If a person
should happen to meet them when on these journeys, he should, if he has
not a bible in his pocket, draw a circle round him on the ground, and in
God's name forbid their approach. They then generally disappear.[227]

They are fond of music and dancing, and it is their dancing that forms
the fairy rings. A Shetlander lying awake in bed before day one
morning, heard the noise of a party of Trows passing by his door. They
were preceded by a piper, who was playing away lustily. The man
happened to have a good ear for music, so he picked up the tune he
heard played, and used often after to repeat it for his friends under
the name of the Fairy-tune.

The Trows are not free from disease, but they are possessed of
infallible remedies, which they sometimes bestow on their favourites.
A man in the island of Unst had an earthen pot that contained an
ointment of marvellous power. This he said he got from the hills, and,
like the widow's cruise, its contents never failed.

They have all the picking and stealing propensities of the
Scandinavian Trolls. The dairy-maid sometimes detects a Trow-woman
secretly milking the cows in the byre. She sains herself, and the
thief takes to flight so precipitately as to leave behind her a copper
pan of a form never seen before.

When they want beef or mutton on any festal occasion, they betake
themselves to the Shetlanders' _scatholds_ or town-mails, and with
elf-arrows bring down their game. On these occasions they delude the
eyes of the owner with the appearance of something exactly resembling
the animal whom they have carried off, and by its apparent violent death
by some accident. It is on this account that the flesh of such animals
as have met a sudden or violent death is regarded as improper food.

A Shetlander, who is probably still alive, affirmed that he was once
taken into a hill by the Trows. Here one of the first objects that met
his view was one of his own cows, that was brought in to furnish
materials for a banquet. He regarded himself as being in rather a
ticklish situation if it were not for the protection of the
Trow-women, by whose favour he had been admitted within the hill. On
returning home, he learned, to his great surprise, that at the very
moment he saw the cow brought into the hill, others had seen her
falling over the rocks.

Lying-in-women and "unchristened bairns" they regard as lawful prize.
The former they employ as wet-nurses, the latter they of course rear
up as their own. Nothing will induce parents to show any attention to
a child that they suspect of being a changeling. But there are persons
who undertake to enter the hills and regain the lost child.

A tailor, not long since, related the following story. He was employed
to work at a farm-house where there was a child that was an idiot, and
who was supposed to have been left there by the Trows instead of some
proper child, whom they had taken into the hills. One night, after he
had retired to his bed, leaving the idiot asleep by the fire, he was
suddenly waked out of his sleep by the sound of music, and on looking
about him he saw the whole room full of fairies, who were dancing away
their rounds most joyously. Suddenly the idiot jumped up and joined in
the dance, and showed such a degree of acquaintance with the various
steps and movements as plainly testified that it must have been a long
time since he first went under the hands of the dancing-master. The
tailor looked on for some time with admiration, but at last he grew
alarmed and _sained_ himself. On hearing this, the Trows all fled in
the utmost disorder, but one of them, a woman, was so incensed at this
interruption of their revels, that as she went out she touched the big
toe of the tailor, and he lost the power of ever after moving it.[228]

In these cases of paralysis they believe that the Trows have taken
away the sound member and left a log behind. They even sometimes sear
the part, and from the want of sensation in it boast of the
correctness of this opinion.[229]

With respect to the Sea-Trows, it is the belief of the Shetlanders
that they inhabit a region of their own at the bottom of the sea.[230]
They here respire a peculiar atmosphere, and live in habitations
constructed of the choicest submarine productions. When they visit the
upper world on occasions of business or curiosity, they are obliged to
enter the skin of some animal capable of respiring in the water. One
of the shapes they assume is that of what is commonly called a merman
or mermaid, human from the waist upwards, terminating below in the
tail of a fish. But their most favourite vehicle is the skin of the
larger seal or Haaf fish, for as this animal is amphibious they can
land on some rock, and there cast off their sea-dress and assume their
own shape, and amuse themselves as they will in the upper world. They
must, however, take especial care of their skins, as each has but one,
and if that should be lost, the owner can never re-descend, but must
become an inhabitant of the supramarine world.

The following Shetland tales will illustrate this:--


                            _Gioga's Son._

A boat's-crew landed one time upon one of the stacks[231] with the
intention of attacking the seals. They had considerable success;
stunned several of them, and while they lay stupefied, stripped them
of their skins, with the fat attached to them. They left the naked
carcases lying on the rocks, and were about to get into their boat
with their spoils and return to Papa Stour, whence they had come. But
just as they were embarking, there rose such a tremendous swell that
they saw there was not a moment to be lost, and every one flew as
quickly as he could to get on board the boat. They were all successful
but one man, who had imprudently loitered behind. His companions were
very unwilling to leave him on the skerries, perhaps to perish, but
the surge increased so fast, that after many unsuccessful attempts to
bring the boat in close to the stacks, they were obliged to depart,
and leave the unfortunate man to his fate.

A dark stormy night came on, the sea dashed most furiously against the
rocks, and the poor deserted Shetlander saw no prospect before him but
that of dying of the cold and hunger, or of being washed into the sea by
the breakers, which now threatened every moment to run over the stack.

At length he perceived several of the seals, who had escaped from the
boatmen, approaching the skerry. When they landed they stripped off
their seal-skin dresses and appeared in their proper forms of Sea-Trows.
Their first object was to endeavour to recover their friends, who lay
stunned and skinless. When they had succeeded in bringing them to
themselves, they also resumed their proper form, and appeared in the
shape of the sub-marine people. But in mournful tones, wildly
accompanied by the raging storm, they lamented the loss of their
sea-vestures, the want of which would for ever prevent them from
returning to their native abodes beneath the deep waters of the
Atlantic. Most of all did they lament for Ollavitinus, the son of Gioga,
who, stripped of his seal-skin, must abide for ever in the upper world.

Their song was at length broken off by their perceiving the
unfortunate boatman, who, with shivering limbs and despairing looks,
was gazing on the furious waves that now dashed over the stack. Gioga,
when she saw him, instantly conceived the design of rendering the
perilous situation of the man of advantage to her son. She went up to
him, and mildly addressed him, proposing to carry him on her back
through the sea to Papa Stour, on condition of his getting her the
seal-skin of her son.

The bargain was soon made, and Gioga equipped herself in her phocine
garb; but when the Shetlander gazed on the stormy sea he was to ride
through, his courage nearly failed him, and he begged of the old lady
to have the kindness to allow him to cut a few holes in her shoulders
and flanks, that he might obtain a better fastening for his hands
between the skin and the flesh.

This, too, her maternal tenderness induced Gioga to consent to. The man,
having prepared everything, now mounted, and she plunged into the waves
with him, gallantly ploughed the deep, and landed him safe and sound at
Acres Gio, in Papa Stour. He thence set out for Skeo, at Hamna Voe,
where the skin was, and honourably fulfilled his agreement by restoring
to Gioga the means of bringing back her son to his dear native land.


                         _The Mermaid Wife._

On a fine summer's evening, an inhabitant of Unst happened to be
walking along the sandy margin of a voe.[232] The moon was risen, and
by her light he discerned at some distance before him a number of the
sea-people, who were dancing with great vigour on the smooth sand.
Near them he saw lying on the ground several seal-skins.

As the man approached the dancers, all gave over their merriment, and
flew like lightning to secure their garments; then clothing
themselves, plunged in the form of seals into the sea. But the
Shetlander, on coming up to the spot where they had been, and casting
his eyes down on the ground, saw that they had left one skin behind
them, which was lying just at his feet. He snatched it up, carried it
swiftly away, and placed it in security.

On returning to the shore, he met the fairest maiden that eye ever
gazed upon: she was walking backwards and forwards, lamenting in most
piteous tones the loss of her seal-skin robe, without which she never
could hope to rejoin her family and friends below the waters, but must
remain an unwilling inhabitant of the region enlightened by the sun.

The man approached and endeavoured to console her, but she would not
be comforted. She implored him in the most moving accents to restore
her dress; but the view of her lovely face, more beautiful in tears,
had steeled his heart. He represented to her the impossibility of her
return, and that her friends would soon give her up; and finally,
made an offer to her of his heart, hand, and fortune.

The sea-maiden, finding she had no alternative, at length consented to
become his wife. They were married, and lived together for many years,
during which time they had several children, who retained no vestiges of
their marine origin, saving a thin web between their fingers, and a bend
of their hands, resembling that of the fore paws of a seal; distinctions
which characterise the descendants of the family to the present day.

The Shetlander's love for his beautiful wife was unbounded, but she
made but a cold return to his affection. Often would she steal out
alone and hasten down to the lonely strand, and there at a given
signal, a seal of large size would make his appearance, and they would
converse for hours together in an unknown language; and she would
return home from this meeting pensive and melancholy.

Thus glided away years, and her hopes of leaving the upper world had
nearly vanished, when it chanced one day, that one of the children,
playing behind a stack of corn, found a seal-skin. Delighted with his
prize, he ran with breathless eagerness to display it before his mother.
Her eyes glistened with delight at the view of it; for in it she saw her
own dress, the loss of which had cost her so many tears. She now
regarded herself as completely emancipated from thraldom; and in idea
she was already with her friends beneath the waves. One thing alone was
a drawback on her raptures. She loved her children, and she was now
about to leave them for ever. Yet they weighed not against the pleasures
she had in prospect: so after kissing and embracing them several times,
she took up the skin, went out, and proceeded down to the beach.

In a few minutes after the husband came in, and the children told him
what had occurred. The truth instantly flashed across his mind, and he
hurried down to the shore with all the speed that love and anxiety
could give. But he only arrived in time to see his wife take the form
of a seal, and from the ledge of a rock plunge into the sea.

The large seal, with whom she used to hold her conversations,
immediately joined her, and congratulated her on her escape, and they
quitted the shore together. But ere she went she turned round to her
husband, who stood in mute despair on the rock, and whose misery
excited feelings of compassion in her breast. "Farewell," said she to
him, "and may all good fortune attend you. I loved you well while I
was with you, but I always loved my first husband better."[233]

       *       *       *       *       *

The water-spirit is in Shetland called Shoopiltee; he appears in the
form of a pretty little horse, and endeavours to entice persons to
ride on him, and then gallops with them into the sea.

FOOTNOTES:

[226] Description of the Shetland Islands. Edinburgh, 1822.

[227] Edmonston's View, &c., of Zetland Islands. Edin. 1809.

[228] We need hardly to remind the reader that in what precedes Dr.
Hibbert is to be regarded as the narrator in 1822.

[229] Edmonston, _ut supra_.

[230] Dr. Hibbert says he could get but little satisfaction from the
Shetlanders respecting this submarine country.

[231] _Stacks_ or _skerries_ are bare rocks out in the sea.

[232] A _voe_ is a small bay.

[233] See below, _Germany_.




                               ORKNEYS.

      Harold was born where restless seas
      Howl round the storm-swept Orcades.
                                      SCOTT.


Of the Orcadian Fairies we have very little information. Brand[234]
merely tells us, they were, in his time, frequently seen in several of
the isles dancing and making merry; so that we may fairly conclude
they differed little from their Scottish and Shetland neighbours. One
thing he adds, which is of some importance, that they were frequently
seen in armour.

Brownie seems to have been the principal Orkney Fairy, where he
possessed a degree of importance rather beyond what was allotted to
him in the neighbouring realm of Scotland.

"Not above forty or fifty years ago," says Brand, "almost every family
had a Brownie, or evil spirit, so called, which served them, to whom
they gave a sacrifice for its service; as, when they churned their milk,
they took a part thereof and sprinkled every corner of the house with it
for Brownie's use; likewise, when they brewed, they had a stone which
they called Brownie's stone, wherein there was a little hole, into which
they poured some wort for a sacrifice to Brownie. My informer, a
minister of the country, told me that he had conversed with an old man,
who, when young, used to brew and sometimes read upon his bible; to whom
an old woman in the house said that Brownie was displeased with that
book he read upon, which, if he continued to do, they would get no more
service of Brownie. But he being better instructed from that book which
was Brownie's eyesore, and the object of his wrath, when he brewed, he
would not suffer any sacrifice to be given to Brownie; whereupon, the
first and second brewings were spilt and for no use, though the wort
wrought well, yet in a little time it left off working and grew cold;
but of the third browst or brewing, he had ale very good, though he
would not give any sacrifice to Brownie, with whom afterwards they were
no more troubled. I had also from the same informer, that a lady in
Unst, now deceased, told him that when she first took up house, she
refused to give a sacrifice to Brownie, upon which, the first and second
brewings misgave, but the third was good; and Brownie, not being
regarded and rewarded as formerly he had been, abandoned his wonted
service: which cleareth the Scripture, 'Resist the devil and he will
flee from you.' They also had stacks of corn which they called Brownie's
stacks, which, though they were not bound with straw ropes, or any way
fenced as other stacks use to be, yet the greatest storm of wind was not
able to blow anything off them."

A very important personage once, we are told, inhabited the Orkneys in
the character of Brownie.

"Luridan," says Reginald Scot, "a familiar of this kind, did for many
years inhabit the island of Pomonia, the largest of the Orkades in
Scotland, supplying the place of manservant and maid-servant with
wonderful diligence to those families whom he did haunt, sweeping
their rooms and washing their dishes, and making their fires before
any were up in the morning. This Luridan affirmed, that he was the
_genius Astral_ of that island; that his place or residence in the
days of Solomon and David was at Jerusalem; that then he was called by
the Jews Belelah; after that, he remained long in the dominion of
Wales, instructing their bards in British poesy and prophecies, being
called Wrthin, Wadd, Elgin; 'and now,' said he, 'I have removed
hither, and, alas! my continuance is but short, for in seventy years I
must resign my place to Balkin, lord of the Northern Mountains.'

"Many wonderful and incredible things did he also relate of this Balkin,
affirming that he was shaped like a satyr, and fed upon the air, having
wife and children to the number of twelve thousand, which were the brood
of the Northern Fairies, inhabiting Southerland and Catenes, with the
adjacent islands. And that these were the companies of spirits that hold
continual wars with the fiery spirits in the mountain Heckla, that
vomits fire in Islandia. That their speech was ancient Irish, and their
dwelling the caverns of the rocks and mountains, which relation is
recorded in the antiquities of Pomonia."[235]

Concerning Luridan, we are farther informed from the Book of
Vanagastus, the Norwegian, that it is his nature to be always at
enmity with fire; that he wages war with the fiery spirits of Hecla;
and that in this contest they do often anticipate and destroy one
another, killing and crushing when they meet in mighty and violent
troops in the air upon the sea. And at such times, many of the fiery
spirits are destroyed when the enemy hath brought them off the
mountains to fight upon the water. On the contrary, when the battle is
upon the mountain itself, the spirits of the air are often worsted,
and then great moanings and doleful noises are heard in Iceland, and
Russia, and Norway, for many days after.[236]

       *       *       *       *       *

The Water-spirit called Tangie, from Tang, the sea-weed with which he
is covered, appears sometimes as a little horse, other times as a man.

FOOTNOTES:

[234] Description of Orkney, Zetland, &c. Edin. 1703.

[235] Reg. Scot. Discoverie of Witchcraft, b. 2. c. 4. Lond. 1665.

[236] Quarterly Review, vol. xxii. p. 367.




                            ISLE OF RÜGEN.

      Des Tagscheins Blendung drückt,
      Nur Finsterniss beglückt;
      Drum hausen wir so gern
      Tief in des Erdballs Kern.
                             MATTHISSON.

      Day's dazzling light annoys
      Us, darkness only joys;
      We therefore love to dwell
      Deep underneath earth's shell.


We now return to the Baltic, to the Isle of Rügen, once a chief seat
of the Vendish religion; but its priests were massacred by the
Scandinavians, and all traces of their system effaced. Its fairy
mythology now agrees with that of its Gothic neighbours, and Mr.
Arndt,[237] a native of the island, has enabled us to give the
following tolerably full account of it:--

The inhabitants of Rügen believe in three kinds of Dwarfs, or
underground people, the White, the Brown, and the Black; so named from
the colour of their several habiliments.[238]

The White are the most delicate and beautiful of all, and are of an
innocent and gentle disposition. During the winter, when the face of
nature is cold, raw, and cheerless, they remain still and quiet in
their hills, solely engaged in the fashioning of the finest works in
silver and gold, of too delicate a texture for mortal eyes to discern.
Thus they pass the winter; but no sooner does the spring return than
they abandon their recesses, and live through all the summer above
ground, in sunshine and starlight, in uninterrupted revelry and
enjoyment. The moment the trees and flowers begin to sprout and bud in
the early days of spring, they emerge from their hills, and get among
the stalks and branches, and thence to the blossoms and flowers, where
they sit and gaze around them. In the night, when mortals sleep, the
White Dwarfs come forth, and dance their joyous roundels in the green
grass, about the hills, and brooks, and springs, making the sweetest
and most delicate music, bewildering travellers, who hear and wonder
at the strains of the invisible musicians. They may, if they will, go
out by day, but never in company; these daylight rambles being allowed
them only when alone and under some assumed form. They therefore
frequently fly about in the shape of party- little birds, or
butterflies, or snow-white doves, showing kindness and benevolence to
the good who merit their favour.

The Brown Dwarfs, the next in order, are less than eighteen inches high.
They wear little brown coats and jackets, and a brown cap on their head,
with a little silver bell in it. Some of them wear black shoes with red
strings in them; in general, however, they wear fine glass ones; at
their dances none of them wear any other. They are very handsome in
their persons, with clear light- eyes, and small and most
beautiful hands and feet. They are on the whole of a cheerful,
good-natured disposition, mingled with some roguish traits. Like the
White Dwarfs, they are great artists in gold and silver, working so
curiously as to astonish those who happen to see their performances. At
night they come out of their hills and dance by the light of the moon
and stars. They also glide invisibly into people's houses, their caps
rendering them imperceptible by all who have not similar caps. They are
said to play all kinds of tricks, to change the children in the cradles,
and take them away. This charge is perhaps unfounded, but certainly,
children who fall into their hands must serve them for fifty years. They
possess an unlimited power of transformation, and can pass through the
smallest keyholes. Frequently they bring with them presents for
children, or lay gold rings and ducats, and the like, in their way, and
often are invisibly present, and save them from the perils of fire and
water. They plague and annoy lazy men-servants and untidy maids with
frightful dreams; oppress them as the nightmare; bite them as fleas; and
scratch and tear them like cats and dogs; and often in the night
frighten, in the shape of owls, thieves and lovers, or, like
Will-'o-the-wisps, lead them astray into bogs and marshes, and perhaps
up to those who are in pursuit of them.

The Black Dwarfs wear black jackets and caps, are not handsome like the
others, but on the contrary are horridly ugly, with weeping eyes, like
blacksmiths and colliers. They are most expert workmen, especially in
steel, to which they can give a degree at once of hardness and
flexibility which no human smith can imitate; for the swords they make
will bend like rushes, and are as hard as diamonds. In old times arms
and armour made by them were in great request: shirts of mail
manufactured by them were as fine as cobwebs, and yet no bullet would
penetrate them, and no helm or corslet could resist the swords they
fashioned; but all these things are now gone out of use.

These Dwarfs are of a malicious, ill disposition, and delight in doing
mischief to mankind; they are unsocial, and there are seldom more than
two or three of them seen together; they keep mostly in their hills,
and seldom come out in the daytime, nor do they ever go far from home.
People say that in the summer they are fond of sitting under the elder
trees, the smell of which is very grateful to them, and that any one
that wants anything of them must go there and call them. Some say they
have no music and dancing, only howling and whimpering; and that when
a screaming is heard in the woods and marshes, like that of crying
children, and a mewing and screeching like that of a multitude of cats
or owls, the sounds proceed from their midnight assemblies, and are
made by the vociferous Dwarfs.

The principal residence of the two first classes of the
underground-people in Rügen is what are called the Nine-hills, near
Rambin. These hills lie on the west point of the island, about a
quarter of a mile from the village of Rambin in the open country. They
are small mounds, or Giants' graves (_Hünengräber_), as such are
called, and are the subject of many a tale and legend among the
people. The account of their origin is as follows:--

"A long, long time ago there lived in Rügen a mighty Giant named
Balderich. He was vexed that the country was an island, and that he had
always to wade through the sea when he wanted to go to Pomerania and the
main land. He accordingly got an immense apron made, and he tied it
round his waist and filled it with earth, for he wanted to make a dam of
earth for himself from the island to the main-land. As he was going with
his load over Rodenkirchen, a hole tore in the apron, and the clay that
fell out formed the Nine-hills. He stopped the hole and went on; but
when he he had gotten to Gustau, another hole tore in the apron, and
thirteen little hills fell out. He proceeded to the sea with what he had
now remaining, and pouring the earth into the waters, formed the hook of
Prosnitz, and the pretty little peninsula of Drigge. But there still
remained a small space between Rügen and Pomerania, which so incensed
the Giant that he fell down in a fit and died, from which unfortunate
accident his dam was never finished."[239]

A Giant-maiden commenced a similar operation on the Pomeranian side
"in order," said she, "that I may be able to go over the bit of water
without wetting my little slippers." So she filled her apron with sand
and hurried down to the sea-side. But there was a hole in the apron
and just behind Sagard a part of the sand ran out and formed a little
hill named Dubbleworth. "Ah!" said she, "now my mother will scold me."
She stopped the hole with her hand and ran on as fast as she could.
But her mother looked over the wood and cried, "You nasty child, what
are you about? Come here and you shall get a good whipping." The
daughter in a fright let go the apron, and all the sand ran out and
formed the barren hills near Litzow.[240]

The Dwarfs took up their abode in the Nine-hills. The White ones own
two of them, and the Brown ones seven, for there are no Black ones
there. These dwell chiefly on the coast-hills, along the shore between
the Ahlbeck and Mönchgut, where they hold their assemblies, and
plunder the ships that are wrecked on the coast.

       *       *       *       *       *

The Neck is called in Rügen Nickel. Some fishers once launched their
boat on a lonely lake. Next day when they came they saw it in a high
beech-tree. "Who the devil has put the boat in the tree?" cried one. A
voice replied, but they saw no one, "'Twas no devil at all, but I and
my brother Nickel."[241]

       *       *       *       *       *

The following stories Mr. Arndt, who, as we have observed, is a native
of Rügen, says he heard in his boyhood from Hinrich Vieck, the
Statthalter or Bailiff of Grabitz, who abounded in these legends; "so
that it is, properly speaking," says he, "Hinrich Vieck, and not I,
that relates." we therefore see no reason to doubt of their
genuineness, though they may be a little embellished.[242]


                    _Adventures of John Dietrich._

There once lived in Rambin an honest, industrious man, named James
Dietrich. He had several children, all of a good disposition,
especially the youngest, whose name was John. John Dietrich was a
handsome, smart boy, diligent at school, and obedient at home. His
great passion was for hearing stories, and whenever he met any one who
was well stored, he never let them go till he had heard them all.

When John was about eight years old he was sent to spend a summer with
his uncle, a farmer in Rodenkirchen. Here John had to keep cows with
other boys, and they used to drive them to graze about the Nine-hills.
There was an old cowherd, one Klas (_i. e._ Nick) Starkwolt, who used
frequently to join the boys, and then they would sit down together and
tell stories. Klas abounded in these, and he became John Dietrich's
dearest friend. In particular, he knew a number of stories of the
Nine-hills and the undergroundpeople in the old times, when the Giants
disappeared from the country, and the little ones came into the hills.
These tales John swallowed so eagerly that he thought of nothing else,
and was for ever talking of golden cups, and crowns, and glass shoes,
and pockets full of ducats, and gold rings, and diamond coronets, and
snow-white brides, and such like. Old Klas used often to shake his
head at him and say, "John! John! what are you about? The spade and
sithe will be your sceptre and crown, and your bride will wear a
garland of rosemary and a gown of striped drill." Still John almost
longed to get into the Nine-hills; for Klas had told him that any one
who by luck or cunning should get the cap of one of the little ones
might go down with safety, and, instead of their making a servant of
him, he would be their master. The person whose cap he got would be
his servant, and obey all his commands.[243]

St. John's day, when the days are longest and the nights shortest, was
now come. Old and young kept the holiday, had all sorts of plays, and
told all kinds of stories. John could now no longer contain himself,
but the day after the festival he slipt away to the Nine-hills, and
when it grew dark laid himself down on the top of the highest of them,
where Klas had told him the undergroundpeople had their principal
dance-place. John lay quite still from ten till twelve at night. At
last it struck twelve. Immediately there was a ringing and a singing
in the hills, and then a whispering and a lisping and a whiz and a
buzz all about him; for the little people were now some whirling round
and round in the dance, and others sporting and tumbling about in the
moonshine, and playing a thousand merry pranks and tricks. He felt a
secret dread come over him at this whispering and buzzing, for he
could see nothing of them, as the caps they wore made them invisible;
but he lay quite still, with his face in the grass and his eyes fast
shut, snoring a little, just as if he was asleep. Yet now and then he
ventured to open his eyes a little and peep out, but not the slightest
trace of them could he see, though it was bright moonlight.

It was not long before three of the underground-people came jumping up
to where he was lying; but they took no heed of him, and flung their
brown caps up into the air, and caught them from one another. At
length one snatched the cap out of the hand of another and flung it
away. It flew direct, and fell upon John's head. The moment he felt it
he caught hold of it, and, standing up, bid farewell to sleep. He
swung his cap about for joy, and made the little silver bell of it
tingle, and then set it upon his head, and--O wonderful!--that instant
he saw the countless and merry swarm of the little people.

The three little men came slily up to him, and thought by their
nimbleness to get back the cap; but he held his prize fast, and they
saw clearly that nothing was to be done in this way with him; for in
size and strength John was a giant in comparison of these little
fellows, who hardly came up to his knee. The owner of the cap now came
up very humbly to the finder, and begged, in as supplicating a tone as
if his life depended upon it, that he would give him back his cap. But
"No," said John, "you sly little rogue, you'll get the cap no more.
That's not the sort of thing that one gives away for buttered cake: I
should be in a nice way with you if I had not something of yours; but
now you have no power over me, but must do what I please. And I will
go down with you, and see how you live below, and you shall be my
servant.--Nay, no grumbling, you know you must. I know that just as
well as you do, for Klas Starkwolt told it to me often and often."

The little man looked as if he had not heard or understood one word of
all this; he began all his crying and whining over again, and wept,
and screamed, and howled most piteously for his little cap. But John
cut the matter short by saying to him, "Have done; you are my
servant, and I intend to take a trip with you." So he gave up,
especially as the others told him that there was no remedy.

John now flung away his old hat, and put on the cap, and set it firm on
his head, lest it should slip off or fly away, for all his power lay in
the cap. He lost no time in trying its virtues, and commanded his new
servant to fetch him food and drink. And the servant ran away like the
wind, and in a second was there again with bottles of wine, and bread,
and rich fruits. So John ate and drank, and looked on at the sports and
the dancing of the little ones, and it pleased him right well, and he
behaved himself stoutly and wisely, as if he was a born master.

When the cock had now crowed for the third time, and the little larks
had made their first twirl in the sky, and the infant light appeared
in solitary white streaks in the east, then it went hush, hush, hush,
through the bushes, and flowers, and stalks; and the hills rang again,
and opened up, and the little men went down. John gave close attention
to everything, and found that it was exactly as he had been told. And
behold! on the top of the hill, where they had just been dancing, and
where all was full of grass and flowers, as people see it by day,
there rose of a sudden, when the retreat was sounded, a bright glass
point. Whoever wanted to go in stepped upon this; it opened, and he
glided gently in, the glass closing again after him; and when they had
all entered it vanished, and there was no farther trace of it to be
seen. Those who descended through the glass point sank quite gently
into a wide silver tun, which held them all, and could have easily
harboured a thousand such little people. John and his man went down
into such a one along with several others, all of whom screamed out
and prayed him not to tread on them, for if his weight came on them
they were dead men. He was, however, careful, and acted in a very
friendly way toward them. Several tuns of this kind went up and down
after each other, until all were in. They hung by long silver chains,
which were drawn and held below.

In his descent John was amazed at the wonderful brilliancy of the
walls between which the tun glided down. They were all, as it were,
beset with pearls and diamonds, glittering and sparkling brightly, and
below him he heard the most beautiful music tinkling at a distance,
so that he did not know what was become of him, and from excess of
pleasure he fell fast asleep.

He slept a long time, and when he awoke he found himself in the most
beautiful bed that could be, such as he had never seen the like of in
his father's house, and it was in the prettiest little chamber in the
world, and his servant was beside him with a fan to keep away the
flies and gnats. He had hardly opened his eyes when his little servant
brought him a basin and towel, and held him the nicest new clothes of
brown silk to put on, most beautifully made; with these was a pair of
new black shoes with red ribbons, such as John had never beheld in
Rambin or in Rodenkirchen either. There were also there several pairs
of beautiful shining glass shoes, such as are only used on great
occasions. John was, we may well suppose, delighted to have such
clothes to wear, and he put them upon him joyfully. His servant then
flew like lightning and returned with a fine breakfast of wine and
milk, and beautiful white bread and fruits, and such other things as
little boys are fond of. He now perceived, every moment, more and
more, that Klas Starkwolt, the old cowherd, knew what he was talking
about, for the splendour and magnificence he saw here surpassed
anything he had ever dreamt of. His servant, too, was the most
obedient one possible: a nod or a sign was enough for him, for he was
as wise as a bee, as all these little people are by nature.

John's bed-chamber was all covered with emeralds and other precious
stones, and in the ceiling was a diamond as big as a nine-pin bowl,
that gave light to the whole chamber. In this place they have neither
sun, nor moon, nor stars to give them light; neither do they use lamps
or candles of any kind; but they live in the midst of precious stones,
and have the purest of gold and silver in abundance, and the skill to
make it light both by day and by night, though, indeed, properly
speaking, as there is no sun here, there is no distinction of day and
night, and they reckon only by weeks. They set the brightest and
clearest precious stones in their dwellings, and in the ways and
passages leading under the ground, and in the places where they have
their large halls, and their dances and feasts, where they sparkle so
as to make it eternal day.

When John had finished his breakfast, his servant opened a little door
in the wall, where was a closet with the most beautiful silver and
gold cups and dishes and other vessels, and baskets filled with
ducats, and boxes of jewels and precious stones. There were also
charming pictures, and the most delightful story-books he had seen in
the whole course of his life.

John spent the morning looking at these things; and, when it was
mid-day, a bell rang, and his servant said, "Will you dine alone, sir,
or with the large company?"--"With the large company, to be sure,"
replied John. So his servant led him out. John, however, saw nothing
but solitary halls, lighted up with precious stones, and here and
there little men and women, who appeared to him to glide out of the
clefts and fissures of the rocks. Wondering what it was the bells rang
for, he said to his servant, "But where is the company?" And scarcely
had he spoken when the hall they were in opened out to a great extent,
and a canopy set with diamonds and precious stones was drawn over it.
At the same moment he saw an immense throng of nicely-dressed little
men and women pouring in through several open doors: the floor opened
in several places, and tables, covered with the most beautiful ware,
and the most luscious meats, and fruits, and wines, placed themselves
beside each other, and the chairs arranged themselves along the
tables, and then the men and women took their seats.

The principal persons now came forward, bowed to John, and led him to
their table, where they placed him among their most beautiful
maidens,--a distinction which pleased John well. The party, too, was
very merry, for the underground people are extremely lively and
cheerful, and can never stay long quiet. Then the most charming music
sounded over their heads; and beautiful birds, flying about, sung most
sweetly; and these were not real birds but artificial ones, which the
little men make so ingeniously that they can fly about and sing like
natural ones.

The servants, of both sexes, who waited at table, and handed about the
gold cups, and the silver and crystal baskets with fruit, were
children belonging to this world, whom some casualty or other had
thrown among the undergroundpeople, and who, having come down without
securing any pledge, were fallen into the power of the little ones.
These were differently clad from them. The boys and girls were dressed
in snow-white coats and jackets, and wore glass shoes, so fine that
their steps could never be heard, with blue caps on their heads, and
silver belts round their waists.

John at first pitied them, seeing how they were forced to run about
and wait on the little people; but as they looked cheerful and happy,
and were handsomely dressed, and had such rosy cheeks, he said to
himself, "After all, they are not so badly off, and I was myself much
worse when I had to be running after the cows and bullocks. To be
sure, I am now a master here, and they are servants; but there is no
help for it: why were they so foolish as to let themselves be taken
and not get some pledge beforehand? At any rate, the time must come
when they shall be set at liberty, and they will certainly not be
longer than fifty years here." With these thoughts he consoled
himself, and sported and played away with his little play-fellows, and
ate, and drank, and made his servant and the others tell him stories,
for he would know every thing exactly.

They sat at table about two hours; the principal person then rang a
little bell, and the tables and chairs all vanished in a whiff,
leaving the company all on their feet. The birds now struck up a most
lively air, and the little people danced their rounds most merrily.
When they were done, the joyous sets jumped, and leaped, and whirled
themselves round and round, as if the world was grown dizzy. And the
pretty little girls that sat next John caught hold of him and whirled
him about; and, without making any resistance, he danced round and
round with them for two good hours. Every afternoon while he remained
there, he used to dance thus merrily with them; and, to the last hour
of his life, he used to speak of it with the greatest glee. His
language was--that the joys of heaven, and the songs and music of the
angels, which the righteous hoped to enjoy there, might be excessively
beautiful, but that he could conceive nothing to equal the music and
the dancing under the earth, the beautiful and lively little men, the
wonderful birds in the branches, and the tinkling silver bells on
their caps. "No one," said he, "who has not seen and heard it, can
form any idea whatever of it."

When the music and dancing were over, it might be about four o'clock.
The little people then disappeared, and went each about their work or
their pleasure. After supper they sported and danced in the same way;
and at midnight, especially on starlight nights, they slipped out of
their hills to dance in the open air. John used then, like a good boy,
to say his prayers and go to sleep, a duty he never neglected either
in the evening or in the morning.

For the first week that John was in the glass-hill, he only went from
his chamber to the great hall and back again. After the first week,
however, he began to walk about, making his servant show and explain
everything to him. He found that there were in that place the most
beautiful walks, in which he might ramble along for miles, in all
directions, without ever finding an end of them, so immensely large
was the hill that the little people lived in, and yet outwardly it
seemed but a little hill, with a few bushes and trees growing on it.

It was extraordinary that, between the meads and fields, which were
thick sown with hills, and lakes, and islands, and ornamented with
trees and flowers in the greatest variety, there ran, as it were,
small lanes, through which, as through crystal rocks, one was obliged
to pass to come to any new place; and the single meads and fields were
often a mile long, and the flowers were so brilliant and so fragrant,
and the song of the numerous birds so sweet, that John had never seen
anything on earth at all like it. There was a breeze, and yet one did
not feel the wind; it was quite clear and bright, and yet there was no
heat; the waves were dashing, still there was no danger; and the most
beautiful little barks and canoes came, like white swans, when one
wanted to cross the water, and went backwards and forwards of
themselves. Whence all this came no one knew, nor could his servant
tell anything about it; but one thing John saw plainly, which was,
that the large carbuncles and diamonds that were set in the roof and
walls gave light instead of the sun, moon, and stars.

These lovely meads and plains were, for the most part, quite lonesome.
Few of the undergroundpeople were to be seen upon them, and those that
were, just glided across them, as if in the greatest hurry. It very
rarely happened that any of them danced out here in the open air;
sometimes about three of them did so; at the most half a dozen: John
never saw a greater number together. The meads were never cheerful,
except when the corps of servants, of whom there might be some
hundreds, were let out to wait. This, however, happened but twice
a-week, for they were mostly kept employed in the great hall and
adjoining apartments, or at school.

For John soon found they had schools there also; he had been there about
ten months, when one day he saw something snow-white gliding into a
rock, and disappearing. "What!" said he to his servant, "are there some
of you too that wear white, like the servants?" He was informed that
there were; but they were few in number, and never appeared at the large
tables or the dances, except once a year, on the birthday of the great
Hill-king, who dwelt many thousand miles below in the great deep. These
were the oldest men among them, some of them many thousand years old,
who knew all things, and could tell of the beginning of the world, and
were called the Wise. They lived all alone, and only left their chambers
to instruct the underground children and the attendants of both sexes,
for whom there was a great school.

John was greatly pleased with this intelligence, and he determined to
take advantage of it: so next morning he made his servant conduct him
to the school, and was so well pleased with it that he never missed a
day going there. They were taught there reading, writing, and
accounts, to compose and relate histories and stories, and many
elegant kinds of work; so that many came out of the hills, both men
and women, very prudent and knowing people, in consequence of what
they were taught there. The biggest, and those of best capacity,
received instruction in natural science and astronomy, and in poetry
and riddle-making, arts highly esteemed by the little people. John was
very diligent, and soon became extremely clever at painting and
drawing; he wrought, too, most ingeniously in gold, and silver, and
stones, and in verse and riddle-making he had no fellow.

John had spent many a happy year here without ever thinking of the
upper world, or of those he had left behind, so pleasantly passed the
time--so many an agreeable play-fellow he had among the children.

Of all his playfellows there was none of whom he was so fond as of a
little fair-haired girl, named Elizabeth Krabbin. She was from his own
village, and was the daughter of Frederick Krabbe, the minister of
Rambin. She was but four years old when she was taken away, and John
had often heard tell of her. She was not, however, stolen by the
little people, but came into their power in this manner. One day in
summer, she, with other children, ran out into the fields: in their
rambles they went to the Nine-hills, where little Elizabeth fell
asleep, and was forgotten by the rest. At night, when she awoke, she
found herself under the ground among the little people. It was not
merely because she was from his own village that John was so fond of
Elizabeth, but she was a most beautiful child, with clear blue eyes
and ringlets of fair hair, and a most angelic smile.

Time flew away unperceived: John was now eighteen, and Elizabeth
sixteen. Their childish fondness had become love, and the little
people were pleased to see it, thinking that by means of her they
might get John to renounce his power, and become their servant; for
they were fond of him, and would willingly have had him to wait upon
them; for the love of dominion is their vice. But they were mistaken.
John had learned too much from his servant to be caught in that way.

John's chief delight was in walking about alone with Elizabeth; for he
now knew every place so well that he could dispense with the attendance
of his servant. In these rambles he was always gay and lively, but his
companion was frequently sad and melancholy, thinking on the land above,
where men lived, and where the sun, moon, and stars, shine. Now it
happened in one of their walks, that as they talked of their love, and
it was after midnight, they passed under the place where the tops of the
glass-hills used to open and let the undergroundpeople in and out. As
they went along they heard of a sudden the crowing of several cocks
above. At this sound, which she had not heard for twelve years, little
Elizabeth felt her heart so affected that she could contain herself no
longer, but throwing her arms about John's neck, she bathed his cheeks
with her tears. At length she spake--

"Dearest John," said she, "everything down here is very beautiful, and
the little people are kind, and do nothing to injure me, but still I
have always been uneasy, nor ever felt any pleasure till I began to love
you; and yet that is not pure pleasure, for this is not a right way of
living, such as it should be for human beings. Every night I dream of my
dear father and mother, and of our church-yard, where the people stand
so piously at the church-door waiting for my father, and I could weep
tears of blood that I cannot go into the church with them, and worship
God as a human being should; for this is no Christian life we lead down
here, but a delusive half heathen one. And only think, dear John, that
we can never marry, as there is no priest to join us. Do, then, plan
some way for us to leave this place; for I cannot tell you how I long to
get once more to my father, and among pious Christians."

John, too, had not been unaffected by the crowing of the cocks, and he
felt what he had never felt here before, a longing after the land
where the sun shines, and he replied,

"Dear Elizabeth, all you say is true, and I now feel that it is a sin
for Christians to stay here; and it seems to me as if our Lord said to
us in that cry of the cocks, 'Come up, ye Christian children, out of
those abodes of illusion and magic; come to the light of the stars,
and act as children of light.' I now feel that it was a great sin for
me to come down here, but I trust I shall be forgiven on account of my
youth; for I was a child and knew not what I did. But now I will not
stay a day longer. They cannot keep _me_ here."

At these last words, Elizabeth turned pale, for she recollected that
she was a servant, and must serve her fifty years. "And what will it
avail me," cried she, "that I shall continue young and be but as of
twenty years when I go out, for my father and mother will be dead, and
all my companions will be old and gray; and you, dearest John, will be
old and gray also," cried she, throwing herself on his bosom.

John was thunderstruck at this, for it had never before occurred to him;
he, however, comforted her as well as he could, and declared he would
never leave the place without her. He spent the whole night in forming
various plans; at last he fixed on one, and in the morning he
despatched his servant to summon to his apartment six of the principal
of the little people. When they came, John thus mildly addressed them:

"My friends, you know how I came here, not as a prisoner or servant,
but as a lord and master over one of you, and consequently, over all.
You have now for the ten years I have been with you treated me with
respect and attention, and for that I am your debtor. But you are
still more my debtors, for I might have given you every sort of
annoyance and vexation, and you must have submitted to it. I have,
however, not done so, but have behaved as your equal, and have sported
and played with you rather than ruled over you. I now have one request
to make. There is a girl among your servants whom I love, Elizabeth
Krabbin, of Rambin, where I was born. Give her to me, and let us
depart. For I will return to where the sun shines and the plough goes
through the land. I ask to take nothing with me but her, and the
ornaments and furniture of my chamber."

He spoke in a determined tone, and they hesitated and cast their eyes
to the ground; at last the oldest of them replied:

"Sir, you ask what we cannot grant. It is a fixed law, that no servant
shall leave this place before the appointed time. Were we to break
through this law, our whole subterranean empire would fall. Anything
else you desire, for we love and respect you, but we cannot give up
Elizabeth."

"You can and you shall give her up," cried John in a rage; "go think of
it till to-morrow. Return here at this hour. I will show you whether or
not I can triumph over your hypocritical and cunning stratagems."

The six retired. Next morning, on their return, John addressed them in
the kindest manner, but to no purpose; they persisted in their
refusal. He gave them till the next day, threatening them severely in
case of their still proving refractory.

Next day, when the six little people appeared before him, John looked at
them sternly, and made no return to their salutations, but said to them
shortly, "Yes, or No?" And they answered with one voice, "No." He then
ordered his servant to summon twenty-four more of the principal persons
with their wives and children. When they came, they were in all five
hundred, men, women, and children. John ordered them forthwith to go and
fetch pickaxes, spades, and bars, which they did in a second.

He now led them out to a rock in one of the fields, and ordered them
to fall to work at blasting, hewing, and dragging stones. They toiled
patiently, and made as if it were only sport to them. From morning
till night their task-master made them labour without ceasing,
standing over them constantly, to prevent their resting. Still their
obstinacy was inflexible; and at the end of some weeks his pity for
them was so great, that he was obliged to give over.

He now thought of a new species of punishment for them. He ordered
them to appear before him next morning, each provided with a new whip.
They obeyed, and John commanded them to strip and lash one another
till the blood should run down on the ground, and he stood looking on
as grim and cruel as an eastern tyrant. Still the little people cut
and slashed themselves, and mocked at John, and refused to comply with
his wishes. This he did for three or four days.

Several other courses did he try, but all in vain; his temper was too
gentle to struggle with their obstinacy, and he began now to despair
of ever accomplishing his dearest wish. He began even to hate the
little people whom he was before so fond of; he kept away from their
banquets and dances, and associated alone with Elizabeth, and ate and
drank quite solitary in his chamber. In short, he became almost a
perfect hermit, and sank into moodiness and melancholy.

While in this temper, as he was taking a solitary walk in the evening,
and, to divert his melancholy, was flinging the stones that lay in his
path against each other, he happened to break a tolerably large one,
and out of it jumped a toad. The moment John saw the ugly animal, he
caught him up in ecstasy, and put him into his pocket and ran home,
crying, "Now I have her! I have my Elizabeth! Now you shall get it,
you little mischievous rascals!" And on getting home he put the toad
into a costly silver casket, as if it was the greatest treasure.

To account for John's joy you must know that Klas Starkwolt had often
told him that the underground people could not endure any ill smell, and
that the sight or even the smell of a toad made them faint and suffer
the most dreadful tortures, and that by means of stench and these odious
ugly animals, one could compel them to anything. Hence there are no bad
smells to be found in the whole glass empire, and a toad is a thing
unheard of there; this toad must therefore have been inclosed in the
stone from the creation, as it were for the sake of John and Elizabeth.

Resolved to try the effect of his toad, John took the casket under his
arm and went out, and on the way he met two of the little people in a
lonesome place. The moment he approached them they fell to the ground,
and whimpered and howled most lamentably, as long as he was near them.

Satisfied now of his power, he next morning summoned the fifty
principal persons, with their wives and children, to his apartment.
When they came, he addressed them, reminding them once again of his
kindness and gentleness toward them, and of the good terms on which
they had hitherto lived. He reproached them with their ingratitude in
refusing him the only favour he had ever asked of them, but firmly
declared he would not give way to their obstinacy. "Wherefore," said
he, "for the last time, think for a minute, and if you then say No,
you shall feel that pain which is to you and your children the most
terrible of all pains."

They did not take long to deliberate, but unanimously replied "No;"
and they thought to themselves what new scheme has the youth hit on,
with which he thinks to frighten wise ones like us, and they smiled as
they said No. Their smiling enraged John above all, and he ran back a
few hundred paces, to where he had laid the casket with the toad,
under a bush.

He was hardly come within a hundred paces of them when they all fell to
the ground as if struck with a thunderbolt, and began to howl and
whimper, and to writhe, as if suffering the most excruciating pain. They
stretched out their hands, and cried, "Have mercy! have mercy! we feel
you have a toad, and there is no escape for us. Take the odious beast
away, and we will do all you require." He let them kick a few seconds
longer, and then took the toad away. They then stood up and felt no more
pain. John let all depart but the six chief persons, to whom he said:--

"This night between twelve and one Elizabeth and I will depart. Load
then for me three waggons, with gold, and silver, and precious stones.
I might, you know, take all that is in the hill, and you deserve it,
but I will be merciful. Farther, you must put all the furniture of my
chamber in two waggons, and get ready for me the handsomest
travelling-carriage that is in the hill, with six black horses.
Moreover, you must set at liberty all the servants who have been so
long here that on earth they would be twenty years old and upwards,
and you must give them as much silver and gold as will make them rich
for life, and make a law that no one shall be detained here longer
than his twentieth year."

The six took the oath, and went away quite melancholy, and John buried
his toad deep in the ground. The little people laboured hard and
prepared everything. At midnight everything was out of the hill, and
John and Elizabeth got into the silver tun, and were drawn up.

It was then one o'clock, and it was midsummer, the very time that
twelve years before John had gone down into the hill. Music sounded
around them, and they saw the glass hill open, and the rays of the
light of heaven shine on them after so many years; and when they got
out they saw the first streaks of dawn already in the east. Crowds of
the undergroundpeople were around them busied about the waggons. John
bid them a last farewell, waved his brown cap three times in the air,
and then flung it among them. And at the same moment he ceased to see
them; he beheld nothing but a green hill, and the well-known bushes
and fields, and heard the church clock of Rambin strike two. When all
was still, save a few larks, who were tuning their morning songs, they
all fell on their knees and worshiped God, resolving henceforth to
lead a pious and a Christian life.

When the sun rose, John arranged the procession, and they set out for
Rambin. Every well-known object that they saw awaked pleasing
recollections in the bosom of John and his bride; and as they passed
by Rodenkirchen, John recognised, among the people that gazed at and
followed them, his old friend Klas Starkwolt, the cowherd, and his dog
Speed. It was about four in the morning when they entered Rambin, and
they halted in the middle of the village, about twenty paces from the
house where John was born. The whole village poured out to gaze on
these Asiatic princes, for such the old sexton, who had in his youth
been at Moscow and Constantinople, said they were. There John saw his
father and mother, and his brother Andrew, and his sister Trine. The
old minister, Krabbe, stood there too, in his black slippers and white
night cap, gaping and staring with the rest.

John discovered himself to his parents, and Elizabeth to hers, and the
wedding-day was soon fixed, and such a wedding was never seen before
or since in the island of Rügen; for John sent to Stralsund and
Greifswald for whole boatloads of wine, and sugar, and coffee, and
whole herds of oxen, sheep, and pigs were driven to the wedding. The
quantity of harts, and roes, and hares that were shot on the occasion,
it were vain to attempt to tell, or to count the fish that was caught.
There was not a musician in Rügen and Pomerania that was not engaged,
for John was immensely rich, and he wished to display his wealth.

John did not neglect his old friend Klas Starkwolt, the cowherd. He gave
him enough to make him comfortable the rest of his days, and insisted on
his coming and staying with him as often and as long as he wished.

After his marriage, John made a progress through the country with his
beautiful Elizabeth, and they purchased towns, and villages, and
lands, until he became master of nearly half Rügen, and a very
considerable count in the country. His father, old James Dietrich, was
made a nobleman, and his brothers and sisters gentlemen and
ladies--for what cannot money do?

John and his wife spent their days in doing acts of piety and charity.
They built several churches, and they had the blessing of every one that
knew them, and died universally lamented. It was Count John Dietrich
that built and richly endowed the present church of Rambin. He built it
on the site of his father's house, and presented to it several of the
cups and plates made by the underground people, and his own and
Elizabeth's glass shoes, in memory of what had befallen them in their
youth. But they were all taken away in the time of the great Charles the
Twelfth of Sweden, when the Russians came on the island, and the
Cossacks plundered even the churches, and took away everything.


                       _The Little Glass Shoe._

A peasant, named John Wilde, who lived in Rodenkirchen, found one time
a glass shoe on one of the hills where the little people used to
dance. He clapped it instantly into his pocket and ran away with it,
keeping his hand as close on his pocket as if he had a dove in it; for
he knew that he had found a treasure which the underground people must
redeem at any price.

Others say that John Wilde lay in ambush one night for the underground
people, and gained an opportunity of pulling off one of their shoes,
by stretching himself there with a brandy-bottle beside him, and
acting like one that was dead drunk; for he was a very cunning man,
not over scrupulous in his morals, and had taken in many a one by his
craftiness, and, on this account, his name was in no good repute among
his neighbours, who, to say the truth, were willing to have as little
to do with him as possible. Many hold, too, that he was acquainted
with forbidden arts, and used to carry on an intercourse with the
fiends and old women that raised storms, and such like.

However, be this as it may, when John had gotten the shoe, he lost no
time in letting the folk that dwell under the ground know that he had
it. So at midnight he went to the Nine-hills, and cried with all his
might, "John Wilde, of Rodenkirchen, has got a beautiful glass shoe.
Who will buy it? Who will buy it?" For he knew that the little one who
had lost the shoe must go barefoot till he got it again, and that is
no trifle, for the little people have generally to walk upon very hard
and stony ground.

John's advertisement was speedily attended to. The little fellow who
had lost the shoe made no delay in setting about redeeming it. The
first free day he got, that he might come out into the daylight, he
came as a respectable merchant, and knocked at John Wilde's door, and
asked if John had not a glass shoe to sell? "For," says he, "they are
an article now in great demand, and are sought for in every market."
John replied that it was true he had a very little little, nice,
pretty little glass shoe, but it was so small that even a Dwarf's foot
would be squeezed in it; and that God Almighty must make people on
purpose for it before it could be of any use; but that, for all that,
it was an extraordinary shoe, and a valuable shoe, and a dear shoe,
and it was not every merchant that could afford to pay for it.

The merchant asked to see it, and when he had examined it, "Glass
shoes," said he, "are not by any means such rare articles, my good
friend, as you think here in Rodenkirchen, because you do not happen to
go much into the world. However," said he, after hemming a little, "I
will give you a good price for it, because I happen to have the very
fellow of it." And he bid the countryman a thousand dollars for it.

"A thousand dollars are money, my father used to say when he drove fat
oxen to market," replied John Wilde, in a mocking tone; "but it will not
leave my hands for that shabby price; and, for my own part, it may
ornament the foot of my daughter's doll. Harkye, friend: I have heard a
sort of little song sung about the glass shoe, and it is not for a
parcel of dirt that it will go out of my hands. Tell me now, my good
fellow, should you happen to know the knack of it, that in every furrow
I make when I am ploughing I should find a ducat? If not, the shoe is
still mine, and you may inquire for glass shoes at those other markets."

The merchant made still a great many attempts, and twisted and turned
in every direction to get the shoe; but when he found the farmer
inflexible, he agreed to what John desired, and swore to the
performance of it. Cunning John believed him, and gave him up the
glass shoe, for he knew right well with whom he had to do. So the
business being ended, away went the merchant with his glass shoe.

Without a moment's delay, John repaired to his stable, got ready his
horses and his plough, and drove out to the field. He selected a piece
of ground where he would have the shortest turns possible, and began
to plough. Hardly had the plough turned up the first sod, when up
sprang a ducat out of the ground, and it was the same with every fresh
furrow he made. There was now no end of his ploughing, and John Wilde
soon bought eight new horses, and put them into the stable to the
eight he already had--and their mangers were never without plenty of
oats in them--that he might be able every two hours to yoke two fresh
horses, and so be enabled to drive them the faster.

John was now insatiable in ploughing; every morning he was out before
sunrise, and many a time he ploughed on till after midnight. Summer
and winter it was plough, plough with him evermore, except when the
ground was frozen as hard as a stone. But he always ploughed by
himself, and never suffered any one to go out with him, or to come to
him when he was at work, for John understood too well the nature of
his crop to let people see what it was he ploughed so constantly for.

But it fared far worse with himself than with his horses, who ate good
oats and were regularly changed and relieved, while he grew pale and
meagre by reason of his continual working and toiling. His wife and
children had no longer any comfort of him; he never went to the
alehouse or the club; he withdrew himself from every one, and scarcely
ever spoke a single word, but went about silent and wrapped up in his
own thoughts. All the day long he toiled for his ducats, and at night
he had to count them and to plan and meditate how he might find out a
still swifter kind of plough.

His wife and the neighbours lamented over his strange conduct, his
dullness and melancholy, and began to think that he was grown foolish.
Everybody pitied his wife and children, for they imagined that the
numerous horses that he kept in his stable, and the preposterous mode
of agriculture that he pursued, with his unnecessary and superfluous
ploughing, must soon leave him without house or land.

But their anticipations were not fulfilled. True it is, the poor man
never enjoyed a happy or contented hour since he began to plough the
ducats up out of the ground. The old saying held good in his case,
that he who gives himself up to the pursuit of gold is half way in
the claws of the evil one. Flesh and blood cannot bear perpetual
labour, and John Wilde did not long hold out against this running
through the furrows day and night. He got through the first spring,
but one day in the second, he dropped down at the tail of the plough
like an exhausted November fly. Out of the pure thirst after gold he
was wasted away and dried up to nothing; whereas he had been a very
strong and hearty man the day the shoe of the little underground man
fell into his hands.

His wife, however, found after him a considerable treasure, two great
nailed up chests full of good new ducats, and his sons purchased large
estates for themselves, and became lords and noblemen. But what good
did all that do poor John Wilde?


                       _The Wonderful Plough._

There was once a farmer who was master of one of the little black
ones, that are the blacksmiths and armourers; and he got him in a very
curious way. On the road leading to this farmer's ground there stood a
stone cross, and every morning as he went to his work he used to stop
and kneel down before this cross, and pray for some minutes.

On one of these occasions he noticed on the cross a pretty bright
insect, of such a brilliant hue that he could not recollect having
ever before seen the like with an insect. He wondered greatly at this,
yet still he did not disturb it; but the insect did not remain long
quiet, but ran without ceasing backwards and forwards on the cross, as
if it was in pain, and wanted to get away. Next morning the farmer
again saw the very same insect, and again it was running to and fro,
in the same state of uneasiness. The farmer began now to have some
suspicions about it, and thought to himself, "Would this now be one of
the little black enchanters? For certain, all is not right with that
insect; it runs about just like one that had an evil conscience, as
one that would, yet cannot, go away:" and a variety of thoughts and
conjectures passed through his mind; and he called to mind what he had
often heard from his father, and other old people, that when the under
groundpeople chance to touch anything holy, they are held fast and
cannot quit the spot, and are therefore extremely careful to avoid all
such things. But he also thought it may as well be something else; and
you would perhaps be committing a sin in disturbing and taking away
the little animal; so he let it stay as it was.

But when he had found it twice more in the same place, and still
running about with the same marks of uneasiness, he said, "No, it is
not all right with it. So now, in the name of God!" and he made a
grasp at the insect, that resisted and clung fast to the stone; but he
held it tight, and tore it away by main force, and lo! then he found
he had, by the top of the head, a little ugly black chap, about six
inches long, screeching and kicking at a most furious rate.

The farmer was greatly astounded at this sudden transformation; still
he held his prize fast and kept calling to him, while he administered
to him a few smart slaps on the buttocks: "Be quiet, be quiet, my
little man! if crying was to do the business, we might look for heroes
in swaddling clothes. We'll just take you with us a bit, and see what
you are good for."

The little fellow trembled and shook in every limb, and then began to
whimper most piteously, and to beg hard of the farmer to let him go. But
"No, my lad," replied the farmer, "I will not let you go till you tell
me who you are, and how you came here, and what trade you know, that
enables you to earn your bread in the world." At this the little man
grinned and shook his head, but said not a word in reply, only begged
and prayed the more to get loose; and the farmer found that he must now
begin to entreat him if he would coax any information out of him. But it
was all to no purpose. He then adopted the contrary method, and whipped
and slashed him till the blood run down, but just to as little purpose;
the little black thing remained as dumb as the grave, for this species
is the most malicious and obstinate of all the underground race.

The farmer now got angry, and he said, "Do but be quiet, my child; I
should be a fool to put myself into a passion with such a little
brat. Never fear, I shall soon make you tame enough."

So saying, he ran home with him, and clapped him into a black, sooty,
iron pot, and put the iron lid upon it, and laid on the top of the lid
a great heavy stone, and set the pot in a dark cold room, and as he
was going out he said to him, "Stay there, now, and freeze till you
are black! I'll engage that at last you will answer me civilly."

Twice a-week the farmer went regularly into the room and asked his
little black captive if he would answer him now; but the little one
still obstinately persisted in his silence. The farmer had now,
without success, pursued this course for six weeks, at the end of
which time his prisoner at last gave up. One day as the farmer was
opening the room door, he, of his own accord, called out to him to
come and take him out of his dirty stinking dungeon, promising that he
would now cheerfully do all that was wanted of him.

The farmer first ordered him to give him his history. The black one
replied, "My dear friend you know it just as well as I, or else you
never had had me here. You see I happened by chance to come too near
the cross, a thing we little people may not do, and there I was held
fast and obliged instantly to let my body become visible; so, then,
that people might not recognise me, I turned myself into an insect.
But you found me out. For when we get fastened to holy or consecrated
things, we never can get away from them unless a man takes us off.
That, however, does not happen without plague and annoyance to us,
though, indeed, to say the truth, the staying fastened there is not
over pleasant. And so I struggled against you, too, for we have a
natural aversion to let ourselves be taken into a man's hand." "Ho,
ho! is that the tune with you?" cried the farmer: "you have a natural
aversion, have you? Believe me, my sooty friend, I have just the same
for you; and so you shall be away without a moment's delay, and we
will lose no time in making our bargain with each other. But you must
first make me some present." "What you will, you have only to ask,"
said the little one: "silver and gold, and precious stones, and costly
furniture--all shall be thine in less than an instant."--"Silver and
gold, and precious stones, and all such glittering fine things will I
none," said the farmer; "they have turned the heart and broken the
neck of many a one before now, and few are they whose lives they make
happy. I know that you are handy smiths, and have many a strange thing
with you that other smiths know nothing about. So come, now, swear to
me that you will make me an iron plough, such that the smallest foal
may be able to draw it without being tired, and then run off with you
as fast as your legs can carry you." So the black swore, and the
farmer then cried out, "Now, in the name of God; there, you are at
liberty," and the little one vanished like lightning.

Next morning, before the sun was up, there stood in the farmer's yard
a new iron plough, and he yoked his dog Water to it, and though it was
of the size of an ordinary plough, Water drew it with ease through the
heaviest clay-land, and it tore up prodigious furrows. The farmer used
this plough for many years, and the smallest foal or the leanest
little horse could draw it through the ground, to the amazement of
every one who beheld it, without turning a single hair. And this
plough made a rich man of the farmer, for it cost him no horse-flesh,
and he led a cheerful and contented life by means of it. Hereby we may
see that moderation holds out the longest, and that it is not good to
covet too much.


                           _The Lost Bell_

A shepherd's boy belonging to Patzig, about half a mile from Bergen,
where there are great numbers of the underground people in the hills,
found one morning a little silver bell on the green heath, among the
Giants'-graves, and fastened it on him. It happened to be the bell
belonging to the cap of one of the little Brown ones, who had lost it
while he was dancing, and did not immediately miss it, or observe that
it was no longer tinkling in his cap. He had gone down into the hill
without his bell, and having discovered his loss, was filled with
melancholy. For the worst thing that can befall the underground people
is to lose their cap, then their shoes; but even to lose the bell
from their caps, or the buckle from their belts, is no trifle to them.
Whoever loses his bell must pass some sleepless nights, for not a wink
of sleep can he get till he has recovered it.

The little fellow was in the greatest trouble, and searched and looked
about everywhere; but how could he learn who had the bell? For only on a
very few days in the year may they come up to the daylight; nor can they
then appear in their true form. He had turned himself into every form of
birds, beasts, and men; and he had sung and rung, and groaned and
moaned, and lamented and inquired about his bell, but not the slightest
tidings, or trace of tidings, had he been able to get. For what was
worst of all, the shepherd's boy had left Patzig the very day he found
the little bell, and was now keeping sheep at Unruh, near Gingst: so it
was not till many a day after, and then by mere chance, that the little
underground fellow recovered his bell, and with it his peace of mind.

He had thought it not unlikely that a raven, or a crow, or a jackdaw,
or a magpie, had found his bell, and from his thievish disposition,
which is caught with anything bright and shining, had carried it into
his nest; with this thought he had turned himself into a beautiful
little bird, and searched all the nests in the island, and had sung
before all kinds of birds, to see if they had found what he had lost,
and could restore him his sleep; but nothing had he been able to learn
from the birds. As he now, one evening, was flying over the waters of
Ralov and the fields of Unruh, the shepherd's boy, whose name was
Fritz Schlagenteufel (_Smite-devil_), happened to be keeping his sheep
there at the very time. Several of the sheep had bells about their
necks, and they tinkled merrily, when the boy's dog set them trotting.
The little bird, who was flying over them thought of his bell, and
sung, in a melancholy tone,

      Little bell, little bell,
      Little ram as well,
        You, too, little sheep,
      If you've my Tingletoo,
      No sheep's so rich as you
        My rest you keep.

The boy looked up and listened to this strange song which came out
of the sky, and saw the pretty bird, which seemed to him still more
strange:--"Odds bodikins!" said he to himself, "if one but had that
bird that's singing up there, so plain that one of us would hardly
match him! What can he mean by that wonderful song? The whole of it
is, it must be a feathered witch. My rams have only pinchbeck bells,
he calls them rich cattle; but I have a silver bell, and he sings
nothing about me." And with these words he began to fumble in his
pocket, took out his bell, and rang it.

The bird in the air instantly saw what it was, and was rejoiced beyond
measure. He vanished in a second--flew behind the nearest
bush--alighted and drew off his speckled feather-dress, and turned
himself into an old woman dressed in tattered clothes. The old dame,
well supplied with sighs and groans, tottered across the field to the
shepherd's boy, who was still ringing his bell, and wondering what was
become of the beautiful bird. She cleared her throat, and coughing up
from the bottom of her chest, bid him a kind good evening, and asked
him which was the way to Bergen. Pretending then that she had just
seen the little bell, she exclaimed, "Good Lord! what a charming
pretty little bell! Well! in all my life I never beheld anything more
beautiful Harkye, my son, will you sell me that bell? And what may be
the price of it? I have a little grandson at home, and such a nice
plaything as it would make for him!" "No," replied the boy, quite
short, "the bell is not for sale. It is a bell, that there is not such
another bell in the whole world. I have only to give it a little
tinkle, and my sheep run of themselves wherever I would have them go.
And what a delightful sound it has! Only listen, mother!" said he,
ringing it: "is there any weariness in the world that can hold out
against this bell? I can ring with it away the longest time, so that
it will be gone in a second."

The old woman thought to herself, "We will see if he can hold out
against bright shining money." And she took out no less than three
silver dollars, and offered them to him: but he still replied, "No, I
will not sell my bell." She then offered him five dollars. "The bell is
still mine," said he. She stretched out her hand full of ducats: he
replied, this third time, "Gold is dirt and does not ring." The old
dame then shifted her ground, and turned the discourse another way. She
grew mysterious, and began to entice him by talking of secret arts, and
of charms by which his cattle might be made to thrive prodigiously,
relating to him all kinds of wonders of them. It was then the young
shepherd began to long, and he now lent a willing ear to her tales.

The end of the matter was, that she said to him, "Harkye, my child!
give me the bell and see! here is a white stick for you," said she,
taking out a little white stick which had Adam and Eve very
ingeniously cut on it, as they were feeding the herds of Paradise,
with the fattest sheep and lambs dancing before them; and there was
the shepherd David too, as he stood with his sling against the giant
Goliath. "I will give you," said the old woman, "this stick for the
bell, and as long as you drive the cattle with it they will be sure to
thrive. With this you will become a rich shepherd: your wethers will
always be fat a month sooner than the wethers of other shepherds, and
every one of your sheep will have two pounds of wool more than others,
and yet no one will be ever able to see it on them."

The old woman handed him the stick. So mysterious was her gesture, and
so strange and bewitching her smile, that the lad was at once in her
power. He grasped eagerly at the stick, gave her his hand, and cried,
"Done! Strike hands! The bell for the stick!" And cheerfully the old
woman struck hands, and took the bell, and went like a light breeze
over the field and the heath. He saw her vanish, and she seemed to
float away before his eyes like a mist, and to go off with a slight
whiz and whistle that made the shepherd's hair stand on end.

The underground one, however, who, in the shape of an old woman, had
wheedled him out of his bell, had not deceived him. For the under
groundpeople dare not lie, but must ever keep their word; a breach of
it being followed by their sudden change into the shape of toads,
snakes, dunghill-beetles, wolves and apes; forms in which they wander
about, objects of fear and aversion for a long course of years before
they are freed. They, therefore, have naturally a great dread of
lying. Fritz Schlagenteufel gave close attention and made trial of his
new shepherd's-staff, and he soon found that the old woman had told
him the truth, for his flocks, and his work, and all the labour of his
hands prospered with him and had wonderful luck, so that there was not
a sheep-owner or head shepherd but was desirous of having Fritz
Schlagenteufel in his employment.

It was not long, however, that he remained an underling. Before he was
eighteen years of age, he had gotten his own flocks, and in the course
of a few years was the richest sheep-master in the whole island of
Rügen; until at last, he was able to purchase a knight's estate for
himself, and that estate was Grabitz, close by Rambin, which now
belongs to the lords of Sunde. My father[244] knew him there, and how
from a shepherd's boy he was become a nobleman, and he always
conducted himself like a prudent, honest and pious man, who had a good
word from every one. He brought up his sons like gentlemen, and his
daughters like ladies, some of whom are still alive and accounted
people of great consequence. And well may people who hear such stories
wish that they had met with such an adventure, and had found a little
silver bell which the underground people had lost.


                    _The Black Dwarfs of Granitz._

Not far from the Ahlbeck lies a little mansion called Granitz, just
under the great wood on the sea-coast called the wood of Granitz. In
this little seat lived, not many years ago, a nobleman named Von
Scheele. Toward the close of his life he sank into a state of
melancholy, though hitherto a very cheerful and social man, and a
great sportsman. People said that the old man took to his lonesome way
of living from the loss of his three beautiful daughters, who were
called the three fair-haired maidens, and who grew up here in the
solitude of the woods, among the herds and the birds, and who had all
three gone off in the same night and never returned. The old man took
this greatly to heart, and withdrew himself from the world, and all
cheerful society. He had great intercourse with the little black
people, and he was many a night out of the house, and no one knew
where he had been; but when he came home in the gray of the morning,
he would whisper his housekeeper, and say to her, "Ha, ha! I was at a
grand table last night."

This old gentleman used to relate to his friends, and confirm it with
many a stout trooper's and sportsman's oath, that the underground
people swarmed among the fir-trees of Granitz, about the Ahlbeck, and
along the whole shore. He used often, also, to show to those whom he
took to walk there, a great number of little foot-prints, like those
of very small children, in the sand, and he has suddenly called out to
his companions, "Hush! Listen how they are, buzzing and whispering!"

Going once with some friends along the sea-shore, he all of a sudden
stood still, as if in amazement, pointed to the sea, and cried out, "My
soul! there they are again at full work, and there are several thousands
of them employed about a few sunken casks of wine that they are rolling
to the shore; oh! what a jovial carouse there will be to-night!" He then
told his companions that he could see them both by day and by night, and
that they did nothing to him; nay, they were his most particular
friends, and one of them had once saved his house from being burnt by
waking him in the night out of a profound sleep, when a firebrand, that
had fallen out on the floor, was just on the point of setting fire to
some wood and straw that lay there. He said that almost every day some
of them were to be seen on the sea-shore, but that during high storms,
when the sea was uncommonly rough, almost all of them were there looking
after amber and shipwrecks, and for certain no ship ever went to pieces
but they got the best part of the cargo, and hid it safe under the
ground. And how grand a thing, he added, it is to live under the
sand-hills with them, and how beautiful their crystal palaces are, no
one can have any conception who has not been there.

FOOTNOTES:

[237] Arndt, Märchen und Jugenderinnerungen. Berlin, 1818.

[238] See above p. 96.

[239] A Danish legend (Thiele, i. 79) tells the same of the sand-hills
of Nestved in Zealand. A Troll who dwelt near it wished to destroy it,
and for that purpose he went down to the sea-shore and filled his
wallet with sand and threw it on his back. Fortunately there was a
hole in the wallet, and so many sand-hills fell out of it, that when
he came to Nestved there only remained enough to form one hill more.
Another Troll, to punish a farmer filled one of his gloves with sand,
which sufficed to cover his victim's house completely. With what
remained in the fingers he formed a row of hillocks near it.

[240] Grimm, Deut. Myth., p. 502.

[241] Grimm, Deutsche Sagen, i. p. 70.

[242] Grimm also appears to regard them as genuine.

[243] The population of Lusatia (_Lausatz_) is like that of Pomerania
and Rügen, Vendish. Hence, perhaps, it is that in the Lusatian tale of
the Fairy-sabbath, we meet with caps with bells, and a descent into
the interior of a mountain in a kind of boat as in this tale: Wilcomm,
Sagen und Märchen aus der Oberlausitz. Hanov. 1843. Blackwood's
Magazine for June, 1844.

[244] Hinrich Vick's of course, for he is the narrator.




                               GERMANY.

      Von wilden getwergen han ich gehöret sagen
      Si sin in holren bergen; unt daz si ze scherme tragen
      Einez heizet tarnkappen, von wunderlicher art--
      Swerz hat an sime libe, der sol vil wohl sin bewart
      Vor slegen unt vor stichen. NIBELUNGEN, LIED st. 342.

      Of wild dwarfs I oft have heard men declare
      They dwell in hollow mountains; and for defence they wear
      A thing called a Tarn-cloke, of wonderful nature--
      Who has it on his body will ever be secure
      'Gainst cutting and 'gainst thrusting.


The religion of the ancient Germans, probably the same with that of
the Scandinavians, contained, like it, Alfs, Dwarfs, and Giants. The
Alfs have fallen from the popular creed,[245] but the Dwarfs still
retain their former dominion. Unlike those of the North, they have put
off their heathen character, and, with their human neighbours, have
embraced a purer faith. With the creed they seem to have adopted the
spirit of their new religion also. In most of the traditions
respecting them we recognise benevolence as one of the principal
traits of their character.

The oldest monuments of German popular belief are the poems of the
Heldenbuch (_Hero-book_) and the spirit-stirring Nibelungen Lied.[246]
In these poems the Dwarfs are actors of importance.

In this last-named celebrated poem the Dwarf Albrich appears as the
guardian of the celebrated Hoard which Sifrit (Siegfried) won from the
Nibelungen. The Dwarf is twice vanquished by the hero who gains his
Tarn-kappe, or Mantle of Invisibility.[247]

In the Heldenbuch we meet with the Dwarf-king Laurin, whose garden
Dietrich of Bern and his warriors broke into and laid waste. To repel
the invader the Dwarf appears in magnificent array: twenty-three
stanzas are occupied with the description of his banner, helmet,
shield, and other accoutrements. A furious combat ensues, in which the
Dwarf has long the advantage, as his magic ring and girdle endow him
with the strength of twenty-four men, and his Hel Keplein[248]
(Tarnkappe) renders him invisible at pleasure. At length, by the
advice of Hildebrand, Dietrich strikes off the Dwarf's finger, breaks
his girdle, and pulls off his Hel Keplein, and thus succeeds in
vanquishing his enemy. Laurin is afterwards reconciled to the heroes,
and prevails on them to enter the mountain in which he dwelt, and
partake of a banquet. Having them now in his power, he treacherously
makes them all his prisoners. His queen, however, Ditlaub's sister,
whom he had stolen away from under a linden, releases them: their
liberation is followed by a terrific engagement between them and
Laurin, backed by a numerous host of Dwarfs. Laurin is again overcome;
he loses his queen; his hill is plundered of its treasures, and
himself led to Bern, and there reduced to the extremity of earning his
bread by becoming a buffoon.

In the poem named Hürnen Sifrit[249] the Dwarf Eugel[250] renders the
hero good service in his combat with the enchanted Dragon who had
carried off the fair Chrimhild from Worms, and enclosed her in the
Drachenstein. When Sifrit is treacherously attacked by the Giant
Kuperan, the ally of the Dragon, the Dwarf flings his Nebelkappe over
him to protect him.

       *       *       *       *       *

But the most celebrated of Dwarfs is Elberich,[251] who aided the
emperor Otnit or Ortnit to gain the daughter of the Paynim Soldan of
Syria.

Otnit ruled over Lombardy, and had subdued all the neighbouring nations.
His subjects wishing him to marry, he held a council to consider the
affair. No maiden mentioned was deemed noble enough to share his bed. At
last his uncle Elias, king of the "wild Russians," says:--

      "I know of a maiden, noble and high-born,
      Her no man yet hath wooed, his life who hath not lorn.

      "She shineth like the roses, and the gold ruddý,
      She fair is in her person, thou must credit me;
      She shines o'er other women, as bright roses do,
      So fair a child was never; they say she good is too."

The monarch's imagination is inflamed, and, regardless of the
remonstrances of his council, he determines to brave all dangers, to
sail with a powerful army to Syria, where the maiden dwelt, and to win
her or to die. He regulates his kingdom, and says to his uncle:--

      As soon as May appeareth, with her days so clear,
      Then pray thou of thy friends all, their warriors to cheer,
      To hold themselves all ready; go things as they may,
      We will, with the birds' singing, sail o'er the sea away.


The queen now endeavours to dissuade her son, but finding her efforts
vain, resolves to aid him as far as she can. She gives him a ring, and
desires him to ride toward Rome till he comes to where a linden stands
before a hill, from which runs a brook, and there he will meet with an
adventure. She farther tells him to keep the ring uncovered, and the
stone of it will direct him.

Obeying his directions, Otnit rides alone from his palace at Garda,
continually looking at his ring:

      Unto a heath he came then, close by the Garda lake,
      Where everywhere the flowers and clover out did break;
      The birds were gaily singing, their notes did loudly ring,
      He all the night had waked, he was weary with riding.

      The sun over the mountains and through the welkin shone,
      Then looked he full oft on the gold and on the stone;
      Then saw he o'er the meadow, down trodden the green grass,
      And a pathway narrow, where small feet used to pass.

      Then followed he downwards, the rocky wall boldlý,
      Till he had found the fountain, and the green linden-tree,
      And saw the heath wide spreading, and the linden branching high.
      It had upon its boughs full many a guest worthy.

      The birds were loudly singing, each other rivalling,
      "I have the right way ridden," spake Otnit the king;
      Then much his heart rejoiced, when he saw the linden spread;
      He sprang down from his courser, he held him by the head.

      And when the Lombarder had looked on the linden
      He began to laugh loud; now list what he said then:
      "There never yet from tree came so sweet breathing a wind."
      Then saw he how an infant was laid beneath the lind,

      Who had himself full firmly rolled in the grass;
      Then little the Lombarder knew who he was:
      He bore upon his body so rich and noble a dress,
      No king's child upon earth e'er did the like possess.

      His dress was rich adorned with gold and precious stone;
      When he beneath the linden the child found all alone:
      "Where now is thy mother?" king Otnit he cries;
      "Thy body unprotected beneath this tree here lies."

This child was Elberich, whom the ring rendered visible. After a hard
struggle, Otnit overcomes him. As a ransom, Elberich promises him a
magnificent suit of armour--

      "I'll give thee for my ransom the very best harnéss
      That either young or old in the world doth possess.

      "Full eighty thousand marks the harness is worth well,
      A sword too I will give thee, with the shirt of mail,
      That every corselet cuts through as if steel it were not;
      There ne'er was helm so strong yet could injure it a jot.

      "I ween in the whole world no better sword there be,
      I brought it from a mountain is called Almari;
      It is with gold adorned, and clearer is than glass;
      I wrought it in a mountain is called Göickelsass.

      "The sword I will name to thee, it is bright of hue,
      Whate'er thou with it strikest no gap will ensue,
      It is Rossè called, I tell to thee its name;
      Wherever swords are drawing it never will thee shame.

      "With all the other harness I give thee leg armoúr,
      In which there no ring is, my own hand wrought it sure;
      And when thou hast the harness thou must it precious hold,
      There's nothing false within it, it all is of pure gold.

      "With all the armour rich I give thee a helmét,
      Upon an emperor's head none a better e'er saw yet;
      Full happy is the man who doth this helmet bear,
      His head is recognised, a mile off though he were.

      "And with the helmet bright I will give to thee a shield,
      So strong and so good too, if to me thanks thou'lt yield;
      It never yet was cut through by any sword so keen,
      No sort of weapon ever may that buckler win."

Elberich persuades the king to lend him his ring; when he gets it he
becomes invisible, and amuses himself by telling him of the whipping
he will get from his mother for having lost it. At last when Otnit is
on the point of going away, Elberich returns the ring, and, to his no
small surprise, informs him that he is his father, promising him, at
the same time, if he is kind to his mother, to stand his friend, and
assist him to gain the heathen maid.

When May arrives Otnit sails from Messina with his troops. As they
approach Sunders,[252] they are a little in dread of the quantity of
shipping they see in the port, and the king regrets and bewails having
proceeded without his dwarf-sire. But Elberich has, unseen, been
sitting on the mast. He appears, and gives his advice, accompanied by
a stone, which, by being put into the mouth, endows its possessor with
the gift of all languages. On the heathens coming alongside the
vessel, Otnit assumes the character of a merchant, and is admitted to
enter the port. He forthwith proposes to murder the inhabitants in the
night, an act of treachery which is prevented by the strong and
indignant rebukes of the Dwarf.

Elberich sets off to Muntabur,[253] the royal residence, to demand the
princess. The Soldan, enraged at the insolence of the invisible envoy,
in vain orders his men to put him to death; the "little man" returns
unscathed to Otnit, and bids him prepare for war. By the aid of
Elberich, Otnit wins, after great slaughter on both sides, the city of
Sunders. He then, under the Dwarf's advice, follows up his conquest by
marching for Muntabur, the capital. Elberich, still invisible, except
to the possessor of the ring, offers to act as guide.

      "Give me now the horse here they lead by the hand,
      And I will guide thine army unto the heathens' land;
      If any one should ask thee, who on the horse doth ride?
      Thou shalt say nothing else, but--an angel is thy guide."

The army, on seeing the horse and banner advancing as it were of
themselves, blessed themselves, and asked Otnit why he did not likewise.

      "It is God's messenger!" Otnit then cried:
      "Who unto Muntabur will be our trusty guide;
      Him ye should believe in, who like Christians debate,
      Who in the fight them spare not, he leads to heaven straight."

Thus encouraged, the troops cheerfully follow the invisible
standard-bearer, and soon appear before Muntabur, where Elberich
delivers the banner to king Elias, and directs them to encamp. He
meanwhile enters the city, flings down the artillery from the walls,
and when the Soldan again refuses to give his daughter, plucks out
some of his majesty's beard[254] and hair, in the midst of his
courtiers and guards, who in vain cut and thrust at the viewless
tormentor. A furious battle ensues. The queen and princess resort to
prayers to their gods Apollo and Mahomet for the safety of the Soldan
The princess is thus described:

      Her mouth flamed like a rose, and like the ruby stone,
      And equal to the full moon her lovely eyes they shone.

      With roses she bedecked had well her head,
      And with pearls precious,--no one comforted the maid:
      She was of exact stature, slender in the waist,
      And turned like a taper was her body chaste.

      Her hands and her arms, you nought in them could blame,
      Her nails they so clear were, people saw themselves in them;
      And her hair ribbons were of silk costly,
      Which she left down hanging, the maiden fair and free.

      She set upon her head high a crown of gold red,--
      Elberich the little, he grieved for the maid;--
      In front of the crown lay a carbuncle stone,
      That in the royal palace like a taper shone.

Elberich endeavours to persuade her to become a Christian, and espouse
Otnit; and to convince her of the incapacity of her gods, he tumbles
their images into the fosse. Overcome by his representations and her
father's danger, the princess, with her mother's consent, agrees to wed
the monarch whom Elberich points out to her in the battle, and she gives
her ring to be conveyed to him. The Dwarf, unperceived, leads her out of
the city, and delivers her to her future husband, strictly forbidding
all intercourse between them, previous to the maiden's baptism.[255]
When the old heathen misses his daughter he orders out his troops to
recover her. Elberich hastens to king Elias, and brings up the
Christians. A battle ensues: the latter are victorious, and the princess
is brought to Sunders;--ere they embark Elberich and Elias baptise her,
and ere they reached Messina "the noble maiden was a wife."

As yet not intimately acquainted with Christianity, the young empress
asks Otnit about his god, giving him to understand that she knew his
deity, who had come to her father's to demand her for him. Otnit
corrects her mistake, telling her that the envoy was Elberich, whom
she then desires to see. At the request of Otnit the Dwarf reveals
himself to the queen and court.

      Long time he refused,--he showed him then a stone,
      That like unto the sun, with the gold shone;
      Ruby and carbuncle was the crown so rich,
      Which upon his head bare the little Elberich.

      The Dwarf let the people all see him then,
      They began to look upon him, both women and men;
      Many a fair woman with rosy mouth then said,
      "I ween a fairer person no eye hath e'er survey'd."

             *       *       *       *       *

      Then Elberich the little a harp laid hold upon;
      Full rapidly he touched the strings every one
      In so sweet a measure that the hall did resound;
      All that him beheld then, they felt a joy profound.

After giving Otnit abundance of riches, and counselling him to
remunerate those who had lost their relatives in his expedition,
Elberich takes leave of the king. He then vanishes, and appears no more.

Otnit is the most pleasing poem in the Heldenbuch. Nothing can be more
amiable than the character of the Dwarf, who is evidently the model of
Oberon. We say this, because the probability is much greater that a
French writer should have taken a Dwarf from a German poet, than that
the reverse should have occurred. The connexion between the two works
appears indubitable.

       *       *       *       *       *

An attempt has already been made to trace the origin of Dwarfs, and
the historical theory respecting those of the North rejected. A
similar theory has been given of those of Germany, as being a people
subdued between the fifth and tenth centuries by a nation of greater
power and size. The vanquished fled to the mountains, and concealed
themselves in caverns, only occasionally venturing to appear; and
hence, according to this theory, the origin of Dwarf stories. As we
regard them as an integrant part of Gotho-German religion, we must
reject this hypothesis in the case of Germany also.

Beside the Dwarfs, we meet in the Nibelungen Lied with beings
answering to the Nixes or Water-spirits. When[256] the Burgundians on
their fatal journey to the court of Ezel (Attila) reached the banks of
the Danube, they found that it could not be crossed without the aid of
boats. Hagene then proceeded along the bank in search of a ferry.
Suddenly he heard a plashing in the water, and on looking more closely
he saw some females who were bathing. He tried to steal on them, but
they escaped him and went hovering over the river. He succeeded,
however, in securing their clothes, and in exchange for them the
females, who were Watermaids (_Merewiper_) promised to tell him the
result of the visit to the court of the Hunnish monarch. One of them
then named Hadeburch assured him of a prosperous issue, on which he
restored the garments. But then another, named Sigelint told him that
Hadeburch had lied for the sake of the clothes; for that in reality
the event of the visit would be most disastrous, as only one of the
party would return alive. She also informed him where the ferry was,
and told him how they might outwit the ferryman and get over.

We cannot refrain from suspecting that in the original legend these were
Valkyrias and not Water-nymphs, for these last would hardly strip to go
into the water, their native element. In the prose introduction to the
Eddaic poem of Völundr we are told that he and his two elder brothers
went to Wolfdale and built themselves a house by the water named Wolfsea
or lake, and one morning early they found on the shore of the lake three
women who were spinning flax: beside them were lying their
_swan-dresses_. They were "Valkyrias, and king's daughters." The three
brothers took them home and made them their wives, but after seven years
they flew away and returned no more. It is remarkable, that in the poem
there is not the slightest allusion to the swan-dresses, though it
relates the coming and the departure of the maidens. We are then to
suppose either that there were other poems on the subject, or that these
dresses were so well known a vehicle that it was deemed needless to
mention them. We are to suppose also that it was by securing these
dresses that the brothers prevented the departure of the maidens, and
that it was by recovering them that they were enabled to effect their
escape. In effect in the German legend of Wielant (Völundr), the hero
sees three _doves_ flying to a spring, and as soon as they touch the
ground they become maidens. He then secures their clothes, and will not
return them till one of them consents to become his wife.[257]

This legend resembles the tale of the Stolen Veil in Musæus, and those
of the Peri-wife and the Mermaid-wife related above.[258] In the Breton
tale of Bisclavaret, or the Warwolf, we learn that no one who became a
wolf could resume his human form, unless he could recover the clothes
which he had put off previous to undergoing the transformation.[259]

Our readers may like to see how the preface to the old editions of the
Heldenbuch accounts for the origin of the Dwarfs.

"God," says it, "gave the Dwarfs being, because the land and the
mountains were altogether waste and uncultivated, and there was much
store of silver and gold, and precious stones and pearls still in the
mountains. Wherefore God made the Dwarfs very artful and wise, that
they might know good and evil right well, and for what everything was
good. They knew also for what stones were good. Some stones give great
strength; some make those who carry them about them invisible, that is
called a mist-cloke (_nebelkap_); and therefore did God give the
Dwarfs skill and wisdom. Therefore they built handsome hollow hills,
and God gave them riches, etc.

"God created the Giants, that they might kill the wild beasts, and the
great dragons (_würm_), that the Dwarfs might thereby be more secure.
But in a few years the Giants would too much oppress the Dwarfs, and
the Giants became altogether wicked and faithless.

"God then created the Heroes; 'and be it known that the Heroes were for
many years right true and worthy, and they then came to the aid of the
Dwarfs against the faithless Giants;'--God made them strong, and their
thoughts were of manhood, according to honour, and of combats and war."

       *       *       *       *       *

We will divide the objects of German popular belief at the present day,
into four classes:--1. Dwarfs; 2. Wild-women; 3. Kobolds; 4. Nixes.

FOOTNOTES:

[245] The only remnant is _Alp_, the nightmare; the _elfen_ of modern
writers is merely an adoption of the English _elves_.

[246] The edition of this poem which we have used, is that by
Schönhuth, Leipzig, 1841.

[247] Tarn from _taren_, to dare, says Dobenek, because it gave
courage along with invisibility. It comes more probably we think from
the old German _ternen_, to hide. Kappe is properly a cloak, though
the Tarnkappe or Nebelkappe is generally represented as a cap, or hat.

[248] From _hehlen_, to conceal.

[249] _Horny Siegfred_; for when he slew the dragon, he bathed himself
in his blood, and became horny and invulnerable everywhere except in
one spot between his shoulders, where a linden leaf stuck. In the
Nibelungen Lied, (_st. 100_), Hagene says,

      Yet still more know I of him--this to me is certaín,
      A terrible Lind-dragon the hero's hand hath slain;
      He in the blood him bathed, and horny grew his skin;
      Hence woundeth him no weapon, full oft it hath been seen.


[250] MM. Grimm thought at one time that this name was properly Engel,
and that it was connected with the chances of Alp, Alf, to Engel (see
above, p. 67). They query at what time the dim _Engelein_ first came
into use, and when the angels were first represented under the form of
children--a practice evidently derived from the idea of the Elves. In
Otfried and other writers of the ninth and tenth centuries, they say,
the angels are depicted as young men; but in the latter half of the
thirteenth, a popular preacher named Berthold, says: _Ir schet wol daz
si allesamt sint juncliche gemälet; als ein kint daz dá vünf jâr all
ist swâ man sie mâlet._

[251] Elberich, (the Albrich of the Nibelungen Lied,) as we have said
(above p. 40), is Oberon. From the usual change of _l_ into _u_ (as
_al_, _au_, _col_, _cou_, etc.), in the French language, Elberich or
Albrich (derived from Alp, Alf) becomes Auberich; and _ich_ not being
a French termination, the diminutive _on_ was substituted, and so it
became Auberon, or Oberon; a much more likely origin than the usual
one from _L'aube du jour_. For this derivation of Oberon we are
indebted to Dr. Grimm.

[252] Probably Saida, _i.e._ Sidon.

[253] _i. e._ Mount Tabor.

[254] This may have suggested the well-known circumstance in Huon de
Bordeaux.

[255] So Oberon in Huon de Bordeaux.

[256] Str. 1564, _seq._

[257] Grimm, Deut. Mythol., p. 398, _seq._

[258] See above, pp. 19, 169; below, _Ireland_; and Grimm, _ut sup._
p. 1216. The swan-dresses also occur in the Arabian tales of Jahânshâh
and Hassan of Bassora in Trebutien's Arabian Nights.

[259] Poésies de Marie de France, i. 177, _seq._




                               DWARFS.

      Fort, fort! Mich schau' die Sonne nicht,
        Ich darf nicht langer harren;
      Mich Elfenkind vor ihren Licht
        Sähst du sum Fels erstarren.
                            LA MOTTE FOUQUÉ.

      Away! let not the sun view me,
        I dare no longer stay;
      An Elfin-child thou wouldst me see,
        To stone turn at his ray.


These beings are called Zwerge (_Dwarfs_), Berg- and Erd-mänlein (_Hill_
and _Ground-mannikins_), the Stille Volk (_Still-people_), and the
Kleine Volk (_Little-people_).[260] The following account of the
Still-people at Plesse will give the popular idea respecting them.[261]

At Plesse, a castle in the mountains in Hesse, are various springs,
wells, clefts and holes in the rocks, in which, according to popular
tradition, the Dwarfs, called the Still-people, dwell. They are silent
and beneficent, and willingly serve those who have the good fortune to
please them. If injured they vent their anger, not on mankind, but on
the cattle, which they plague and torment. This subterranean race has
no proper communication with mankind, but pass their lives within the
earth, where their apartments and chambers are filled with gold and
precious stones. Should occasion require their visit to the surface of
the earth, they accomplish the business in the night, and not by day.
This Hill-people are of flesh and bone, like mankind, they bear
children and die, but in addition to the ordinary faculties of
humanity, they have the power of making themselves invisible, and of
passing through rocks and walls, with the same facility as through the
air. They sometimes appear to men, lead them with them into clifts,
and if the strangers prove agreeable to them, present them with
valuable gifts.[262]


                     _The Hill-Man at the Dance._

Old people have positively asserted that some years ago, at the
celebration of a wedding in the village of Glass, a couple of miles from
the Wunderberg, and the same distance from the city of Saltzburg, there
came toward evening a little Hill-man out of the Wunderberg. He desired
all the guests to be merry and cheerful, and begged to be permitted to
join in their dance, which request was not refused. He accordingly
danced three dances with some of the maidens of good repute, and with a
gracefulness that inspired all present with admiration and delight.
After the dance he returned them his thanks, accompanied by a present to
each of the bridal party of three pieces of money of an unknown coin,
each of which they estimated to be worth four creutzers. Moreover, he
recommended them to dwell in peace and concord, to live like Christians,
and, by a pious education, to bring up their children in goodness. He
told them to lay up these coins with their money, and constantly to
think of him, and so they would rarely come to distress; but warned them
against becoming proud, and advised them, on the contrary, to relieve
their neighbours with their superfluities.

The Hill-man remained with them till night, and took some meat and
drink from each as they offered it to him, but only very little. He
then renewed his thanks, and concluded by begging of one of the
company to put him over the river Satzach, opposite the mountain.
There was at the wedding a boatman, named John Ständl, who got ready
to comply with the dwarf's request, and they went together to the
water's-edge. As they were crossing, the man asked for his payment,
and the Hill-man humbly presented him threepence. The boatman utterly
rejected this paltry payment; but the little man gave him for answer,
that he should not let that annoy him, but keep the threepence safe,
and he would never suffer want, provided he put a restraint on
arrogance. He gave him at the same time, a little stone with these
words: "Hang this on your neck, and you will never be drowned in the
water." And of this he had a proof that very year. Finally, the
Hill-man exhorted him to lead a pious and humble life, and being
landed on the opposite bank, departed speedily from the place.[263]


                         _The Dwarf's Feast._

There appeared in the night to one of the Counts von Hoya, an
extremely small little man. The count was utterly amazed at him, but
he bid him not to be frightened; said he had a request to make of him,
and entreated that he might not be refused. The count gave a willing
assent, qualified with the provision, that the thing requested should
be a matter which lay in his power, and would not be injurious to him
or his. The little man then said, "There will come tomorrow night
some people to thy house, and make a feast, if thou will lend them thy
kitchen, and hall for as long as they want them, and order thy
servants to go to sleep, and no one to look at what they are doing or
are about; and also let no one know of it but thyself; only do this
and we shall be grateful to thee for thy courtesy: thou and thy family
will be the better of it; nor will it be in any way hurtful to thee or
thine." The count readily gave his consent, and on the following night
there came, as if they were a travelling party, over the bridge into
the house a great crowd of little people, exactly such as the
Hill-mannikins are described to be. They cooked, cut up wood, and laid
out the dishes in the kitchen, and had every appearance of being about
preparing a great entertainment.

When it drew near the morning, and they were about to take their
departure, the little man came again up to the count, and with many
thanks, presented him a sword, a salamander-cloth, and a golden ring,
in which there was inserted a red-lion, with directions for himself
and his descendants to keep these three articles safe; and so long as
they kept them together all would be at unity and well in the county,
but as soon as they were separated from each other it would be a token
that there was evil coming on the county: the red lion too would
always become pale when one of the family was to die.

They were long preserved in the family; but in the time when count Jobst
and his brothers were in their minority, and Francis von Halle was
governor of the land, two of the articles, the sword and the
salamander-cloth, were taken away, but the ring remained with the family
until they became extinct. What has become of it since is unknown.[264]


                        _The Friendly Dwarfs._

Close to the little town of Dardesheim, between Halberstadt and
Brunswick, is a spring of the finest water called the Smansborn, and
which flows out of a hill in which in old times the dwarfs dwelt. When
the former inhabitants of the country were in want of a holiday-dress,
or, at a family festival, of any rare utensils, they went and stood
before this Dwarf-hill, knocked three times, and pronounced their
petition in a distinct and audible tone, adding,

      Before the sun is up to-morrow.
      At the hill shall be the things we borrow.[265]

The Dwarfs thought themselves sufficiently compensated if there was
only some of the festive victuals set down before the hill.


                _Wedding Feast of the Little People._

The little people of the Eilenburg in Saxony had occasion to celebrate
a wedding, and with that intent passed one night through the key-hole
and the window-slits into the castle-hall, and jumped down on the
smooth level floor like peas on a barn floor. The noise awoke the old
count, who was sleeping in the hall in his high four-post bed, and on
opening his eyes, he wondered not a little at the sight of such a
number of the little fellows.

One of them appareled as a herald came up to him, and addressing him
with the utmost courtesy and in very polite terms invited him to share
in their festivity. "We, however," added he, "have one request to
make, which is, that you alone should be present, and that none of
your people should presume to look on with you, or to cast so much as
one glance." The old count answered in a friendly tone, "Since you
have disturbed my sleep, I will join your company." A little small
woman was now introduced to him; little torch-bearers took their
places; and cricket-music struck up. The count found great difficulty
to keep from losing the little woman in the dance, she jumped away
from him so lightly, and at last whirled him about at such a rate that
he could with difficulty recover his breath.

But in the very middle of their spritely dance, suddenly all became
still, the music ceased, and the whole company hurried to the slits of
the doors, mouse-holes, and everywhere else where there was a corner to
slip into. The bride-pair, the heralds, and dancers, looked upwards to a
hole that was in the ceiling of the hall, and there discovered the face
of the old countess, who overflowing with curiosity, was looking down on
the joyous assembly. They then bowed themselves before the count, and
the person who had invited him stept forward again and thanked him for
the hospitality he had shown them: "But," said he, "since our wedding
and our festivity has been thus disturbed by another eye gazing on it,
your race shall henceforward never count more than seven Eilenburgs."
They then pressed out after one another with great speed, and soon all
was silent, and the old count alone in the dark hall. The curse has
lasted till the present time, and one of six living knights of Eilenburg
has always died before the seventh was born.[266]


                          _Smith Riechert._

On the east side of the Dwarf-hill of Dardesheim there is a piece of
arable land. A smith named Riechert had sown this field with peas; but
he observed that when they were just in perfection they were pulled in
great quantities. Riechert built himself a little hut on his ground,
there to lie in wait for the thief; and there he watched day and night.
In the daytime he could see no alteration, but every morning he found
that, notwithstanding all his watchfulness, the field had been plundered
during the night. Vexed to the heart at seeing that all his labour was
in vain, he determined to thresh out on the ground what remained of the
peas. So with the daybreak Smith Riechert commenced his work. Hardly was
one half of his peas threshed when he heard a piteous wailing, and on
going to look for the cause, he found on the ground under the peas one
of the dwarfs whose skull he had rapped with his flail, and who was now
visible, having lost his mist-cap with the blow. The Dwarf ran back into
the hill as fast as his legs could carry him.

However, little tiffs like this disturbed but for a very short time
the good understanding of the Dwarf-people and the inhabitants. But
the Dwarfs emigrated at last, because the tricks and scoffs of several
of the inhabitants were become no longer bearable, as well as their
ingratitude for several services they had rendered them. Since that
time no one has ever heard or seen anything of the Dwarfs in the
neighbourhood.


                       _Dwarfs Stealing Corn._

'Tis not very long since there were Dwarfs at Jüne near Göttingen, who
used to go into the fields and steal the sheaves of corn. This they
were able to do the more easily by means of a cap they wore, which
made them invisible. They did much injury to one man in particular who
had a great deal of corn. At length he hit on a plan to catch them. At
noon one day he put a rope round the field, and when the Dwarfs went
to creep under it, it knocked off their caps. Being now visible, they
were caught. They gave him many fair words, promising if he would take
away the rope to give him a peck (_mette_) of money if he came to that
same place _before sunrise_. He agreed, but a friend whom he consulted
told him to go not at sunrise but a little before twelve at night, as
it was at that hour that the day really began. He did as directed, and
there he found the Dwarfs, who did not expect him, with the peck of
money. The name of the family that got it is Mettens.

A farmer in another part of the country being annoyed in a similar
manner, was told to get willow-rods and beat the air with them, and he
thus would knock of some of their caps and discover them. He and his
people did so, and they captured one of the Dwarfs, who told the
farmer that if he would let him go, he would give him a waggon-load of
money, but he must come for it before sunrise. At the same time he
informed him where his abode was. The farmer having enquired when the
sun really rose, and being told at twelve o'clock, yoked his waggon
and drove off, but when he came to the Dwarfs' hole, he heard them
shouting and singing within:

      It is good that the bumpkin doth not know
      That up at twelve the sun doth go.[267]

When he asked for something, they showed him a dead horse, and bade
him take it with him, as they could give him nothing else. He was very
angry at this, but as he wanted food for his dogs, he cut off a large
piece and laid it on his waggon. But when he came home, lo! it was all
pure gold. Others then went to the place, but both hole and horse had
vanished.[268]


              _Journey of the Dwarfs over the Mountain._

On the north side of the Hartz there dwelt several thousand Dwarfs in
the clefts of the rocks, and in the Dwarf-caves that still remain. It
was, however, but rarely that they appeared to the inhabitants in a
visible form; they generally went about among them protected by their
mist-caps, unseen and unnoticed.

Many of these Dwarfs were good-natured, and, on particular occasions,
very obliging to the inhabitants, who used, for instance, in case of a
wedding or a christening, to borrow various articles for the table out
of the caves of the Dwarfs, It was, however, highly imprudent to
provoke their resentment; as when injured or offended, they were
malicious and wicked, and did every possible injury to the offender.

A baker, who lived in the valley between Blenkenburg and Quedlinburg,
used to remark that a part of the loaves he baked was always missing,
though he never could find out the thief. This continual secret theft
was gradually reducing him to poverty. At last he began to suspect the
Dwarfs of being the cause of his misfortune. He accordingly got a bunch
of little twigs, and beating the air with them in all directions, at
length struck the mist-caps off some Dwarfs, who could now conceal
themselves no longer. There was a great noise made about it; several
other Dwarfs were caught in the act of committing theft, and at last the
whole of the Dwarf-people were forced to quit the country. In order, in
some degree, to indemnify the inhabitants for what had been stolen, and
at the same time to be able to estimate the number of those that
departed, a large cask was set up on what is now called Kirchberg, near
the village of Thele, into which each Dwarf was to cast a piece of
money. This cask was found, after the departure of the Dwarfs, to be
quite filled with ancient coins, so great was their number.

The Dwarf-people went by Warnstadt, a village not far from
Quedlinburg, still going toward the east. Since that time the Dwarfs
have disappeared out of this country; and it is only now and then that
a solitary one may be seen.

       *       *       *       *       *

The Dwarfs on the south side of the Hartz were, in a similar manner,
detected plundering the corn-fields. They also agreed to quit the
country, and it was settled that they should pass over a small bridge
near Neuhof, and that each, by way of transit-duty, should cast a
certain portion of his property into a cask to be set there. The
peasants, on their part, covenanted not to appear or look at them.
Some, however, had the curiosity to conceal themselves under the bridge,
that they might at least hear them departing. They succeeded in their
design, and heard during several hours, the trampling of the little men,
sounding exactly as if a large flock of sheep was going over the bridge.

       *       *       *       *       *

Other accounts of the departure of the Dwarfs relate as follows:--

The Dosenberg is a mountain in Hesse on the Schwalm, in which, not far
from the bank of the stream, are two holes by which the Dwarfs[269] used
to go in and out. One of them came frequently in a friendly way to the
grandfather of Tobi in Singlis, when he was out in his fields. As he was
one day cutting his corn he asked him if he would the next night, for a
good sum of money, take a freight over the river. The farmer agreed, and
in the evening the Dwarf brought him a sack of wheat as an earnest. Four
horses were then put to the waggon, and the farmer drove to the
Dosenberg, out of the holes of which the Dwarf brought heavy, but
invisible loads to the waggon, which the farmer then drove through the
water over to the other side. He thus kept going backwards and forwards
from ten at night till four in the morning, by which time the horses
were quite tired. Then said the Dwarf, "It is enough, now you shall see
what you have been carrying!" He bade him look over his right shoulder,
and then he saw the country far and near filled with the Dwarfs. "These
thousand years," then said the Dwarf, "have we dwelt in the Dosenberg;
our time is now up, and we must go to another land. But the hill is
still so full of money that it would suffice for the whole country." He
then loaded Tobi's waggon with money and departed. The farmer had
difficulty in bringing home so heavy a load, but he became a rich man.
His posterity are still wealthy people, but the Dwarfs have disappeared
out of the country for ever.

       *       *       *       *       *

At Offensen on the Aller in Lower Saxony, lived a great farmer, whose
name was Hövermann. He had a boat on the river; and one day two little
people came to him and asked him to put them over the water. They went
twice over the Aller to a great tract of land that is called the
Allerô,[270] which is an uncultivated plain extending so wide and far
that one can hardly see over it. When the farmer had crossed the second
time one of the Dwarfs said to him, "Will you have now a sum of money or
so much a head?" "I'd rather have a sum of money," said the farmer. One
of them took off his hat and put it on the farmer's head, and said,
"You'd have done better to have taken so much a head." The farmer, who
had as yet seen nothing and whose boat had gone as if there was nothing
in it, now beheld the whole Allerô swarming (_krimmeln un wimmeln_) with
little men. These were the Dwarfs that he had brought over. From that
time forward the Hövermanns had the greatest plenty of money, but they
are all now dead and gone, and the place is sold. But when was this? Oh!
in the old time when the Dwarfs were in the world, but now there's no
more of them, thirty or forty years ago.[271]


                    _The Dwarfs' Borrowing Bread._

Albert Steffel, aged seventy years, who died in the year 1680, and
Hans Kohmann, aged thirty-six, who died in 1679, two honest, veracious
men, frequently declared that as one time Kohmann's grandfather was
working in his ground which lay in the neighbourhood of the place
called the Dwarfs' hole, and his wife had brought out to the field to
him for his breakfast some fresh baked bread, and had laid it, tied up
in a napkin, at the end of the field, there came up soon after a
little Dwarf-woman, who spoke to him about his bread, saying, that
her own was in the oven, and that her children were hungry and could
not wait for it, but that if he would give her his, she would be
certain to replace it by noon. The man consented, and at noon she
returned, spread out a very white little cloth, and laid on it a
smoking hot loaf, and with many thanks and entreaties told him he
might eat the bread without any apprehension, and that she would
return for the cloth. He did as she desired, and when she returned she
told him that there had been so many forges erected that she was quite
annoyed, and would be obliged to depart and abandon her favourite
dwelling. She also said that the shocking cursing and swearing of the
people drove her away, as also the profanation of Sunday, as the
country people, instead of going to church, used to go look at their
fields, which was altogether sinful.[272]


                          _The Changeling._

It was the belief, in some parts of Germany, that if a child that was
not thriving were taken to a place named Cyriac's Mead, near
Neuhausen, and left lying there and given to drink out of Cyriac's
Well, at the end of nine days it would either die or recover.

The butler and cook of one of the spiritual lords of Germany, without
being married, had a child, which kept crying day and night, and
evermore craving for food and yet it never grew nor throve. It was
finally resolved to try on it the effect of Cyriac's Mead, and the
mother set out for that place with the child on her back, whose weight
was so great that she hardly could endure it. As she was toiling along
under her burden, she met a travelling student, who said to her, "My
good woman, what sort of a wild creature is that you are carrying? I
should not wonder if it were to crush in your neck." She replied that
it was her dear child which would not grow nor thrive, and that she
was taking it to Neuhausen to be rocked. "But," said he, "that is not
your child; it is the devil. Fling it into the stream." But she
refused, and maintained that it _was_ her child, and kissed it. Then
said he, "Your child is at home in the inner bedroom in a new cradle
behind the ark. Throw, I tell you, this monster into the stream." With
many tears and groans the poor woman at length did as he required and
immediately there was heard under the bridge on which they were
standing a howling and a growling as if wolves and bears were in the
place. When the woman reached home she found her own child healthy and
lively and laughing in its new cradle.

       *       *       *       *       *

A Hessian legend tells that as a woman was reaping corn at the
Dosenberg,[273] with her little child lying near her on the ground, a
Dwarf-woman (_wichtelweib_) came and took it and left her own lying in
its stead. When the mother came to look after her dear babe a great
ugly jolterhead was there gaping at her. She cried out and roared
Murder! so lustily that the thief came back with the child. But she
did not restore it till the mother had put the changeling to her
breast and given it some ennobling human milk.[274]

       *       *       *       *       *

There was, it is said, in Prussian Samland, an inn-keeper whom the
underground folk had done many good turns. It grieved him to see what
bad clothes they had, and he desired his wife to leave new little
coats for them. They took the new clothes, but cried out, "Paid off!
Paid off!" and went all away.

Another time they gave great help to a poor smith, and every night
they made bran-new pots, pans, kettles and plates for him. His wife
used to leave some milk for them, on which they fell like wolves, and
drained the vessel to the bottom, and then cleaned it and went to
their work. When the smith had grown rich by means of them, his wife
made for each of them a pretty little red coat and cap, and left them
in their way. "Paid off! Paid off!" cried they, slipped on the new
clothes, and went away without working the iron that was left for
them, and never returned.

       *       *       *       *       *

There was a being named a Scrat or Schrat, Schretel, Schretlein.[276]
This name is used in old German to translate _pilosus_ in the
narratives of those who wrote in Latin, and it seems sometimes to
denote a House- sometimes a Wood-spirit. Terms similar to it are to be
found in the cognate languages, and it is perhaps the origin of Old
Scratch, a popular English name of the devil.

       *       *       *       *       *

There is, chiefly in Southern Germany, a species of beings that
greatly resemble the Dwarfs. They are called Wichtlein (_Little
Wights_), and are about three quarters of an ell high. Their
appearance is that of old men with long beards. They haunt the mines,
and are dressed like miners, with a white hood to their shirts and
leather aprons, and are provided with lanterns, mallets, and hammers.
They amuse themselves with pelting the workmen with small stones, but
do them no injury, except when they are abused and cursed by them.

They show themselves most especially in places where there is an
abundance of ore, and the miners are always glad to see them; they
flit about in the pits and shafts, and appear to work very hard,
though they in reality do nothing. Sometimes they seem as if working a
vein, at other times putting the ore into buckets, at other times
working at the windlass, but all is mere show. They frequently call,
and when one comes there is no one to be seen.

At Kuttenburg, in Bohemia, the Wichtlein have been seen in great
numbers. They announce the death of a miner by knocking three times,
and when any misfortune is about to happen they are heard digging,
pounding, and imitating all other kinds of work. At times they make a
noise, as if they were smiths labouring very hard at the anvil, hence
the Bohemians call them Haus-Schmiedlein (_Little House-smiths_).

In Istria the miners set, every day, in a particular place, a little
pot with food in it for them. They also at certain times in each year
buy a little red coat, the size of a small boy's, and make the
Wichtlein a present of it. If they neglect this, the little people
grow very angry.[277]

       *       *       *       *       *

In Southern Germany they believe in a species of beings somewhat like
the Dwarfs, called Wild, Wood, Timber, and Moss-people. These
generally live together in society, but they sometimes appear singly.
They are small in stature, yet somewhat larger than the Elf, being the
size of children of three years, grey and old-looking, hairy and clad
in moss. The women are of a more amiable temper than the men, which
last live further back in the woods; they wear green clothes faced
with red, and cocked-hats. The women come to the wood-cutters and ask
them for something to eat; they also take it away of themselves out of
the pots; but they always make a return in some way or other, often by
giving good advice. Sometimes they help people in their cooking or
washing and haymaking, and they feed the cattle. They are fond of
coming where people are baking, and beg of them to bake for them also
a piece of dough the size of half a mill-stone, and to leave it in a
certain place. They sometimes, in return, bring some of their own
baking to the ploughman, which they lay in the furrow or on the
plough, and they are greatly offended if it is rejected. The
wood-woman sometimes comes with a broken wheel-barrow, and begs to
have the wheel repaired, and she pays by the chips which turn into
gold, or she gives to knitters a ball of thread which is never ended.
A woman who good-naturedly gave her breast to a crying Wood-child, was
rewarded by its mother by a gift of the bark on which it was lying.
She broke a splinter off it and threw it into her <DW19>, and on
reaching home she found it was pure gold. Their lives are attached,
like those of the Hamadryads, to the trees, and if any one causes by
friction the inner bark to loosen a Wood-woman dies.

Their great enemy is the Wild-Huntsman, who driving invisibly through
the air pursues and kills them. A peasant one time hearing the usual
baying and cheering in a wood, would join in the cry. Next morning he
found hanging at his stable-door a quarter of a green Moss-woman as his
share of the game. When the woodmen are felling timber they cut three
crosses in a spot of the tree that is to be hewn, and the Moss-women sit
in the middle of these and so are safe from the Wild-Huntsman.[278]

       *       *       *       *       *

The following account of the popular belief in the parts of Germany
adjacent to Jutland has been given by a late writer.[279]

In Friesland the Dwarfs are named Oennereeske, in some of the islands
Oennerbänske, and in Holstein Unnerorske.[280] The same stories are
told of them as of the Dwarfs and Fairies elsewhere. They take away,
and keep for long periods, girls with whom they have fallen in love;
they steal children and leave changelings in their stead, the remedy
against which is to lay a bible under the child's pillow; they lend
and borrow pots, plates, and such like, sometimes lending money with
or even without interest; they aid to build houses and churches; help
the peasant when his cart has stuck in the mire, and will bring him
water and pancakes to refresh him when at work in the fields.



                         _The Dwarf Husband._

A poor girl went out one day and as she was passing by a hill she
heard a Dwarf hammering away inside of it, for they are handy smiths,
and singing at his work. She was so pleased with the song, that she
could not refrain from wishing aloud that she could sing like him, and
live like him under the ground. Scarcely had she expressed the wish
when the singing ceased, and a voice came out of the hill, saying,
"Should you like to live with us?" "To be sure I should," replied the
girl, who probably had no very happy life of it above ground.
Instantly the Dwarf came out of the hill and made a declaration of
love, and a proffer of his hand and a share in his subterranean
wealth. She accepted the offer and lived very comfortably with him, as
he proved an excellent little husband.


                          _Inge of Rantum._

The Friesland girls are, however, rather shy of these matches, and if
they have unwarily been drawn into an engagement they try to get out
of it if they possibly can.

A girl named Inge of Rantum had some way or other got into an
engagement with one of the Underground people. The wedding-day was
actually fixed, and she could only be released from her bond on one
condition--that of being able, before it came, to tell the real name
of her lover. All her efforts to that effect were in vain, the dreaded
day was fast approaching and she fell into deep melancholy. On the
morning of her wedding-day she went out and strolled in sorrowful mood
through the fields, saying to herself, as she plucked some flowers,
"Far happier are these flowers than I." As she was stooping to gather
them, she thought she heard a noise under the ground. She listened and
recognised it as the voice at her lover, who, in the excess of his joy
at the arrival of his wedding-day, was frolicking and singing, "To-day
I must bake and boil and roast and broil and wash and brew; for this
is my wedding-day. My bride is the fair Inge of Rantum, and my name is
Ekke Nekkepem. Hurrah! Nobody knows _that_ but myself!" "Aye, but _I_
know it too!" said Inge softly to herself, and she placed her nosegay
in her bosom and went home. Toward evening came the Dwarf to claim his
bride. "Many thanks, dear Ekke Nekkepem," said she, "but if you please
I would rather stay where I am." The smiling face of the bridegroom
grew dark as thunder, but he recollected how he had divulged his
secret, and saw that the affair was past remedy.[281]

       *       *       *       *       *

The Nis of Jutland is called Puk[282] in Friesland. Like him he wears
a pointed red cap, with a long grey or green jacket, and slippers on
his feet. His usual abode is under the roof, and he goes in and out
either through a broken window, which is never mended, or through some
other aperture left on purpose for him. A bowl of groute must be left
on the floor for him every evening, and he is very angry if there
should be no butter in it. When well treated he makes himself very
useful by cleaning up the house, and tending the cattle. He sometimes
amuses himself by playing tricks on the servants, tickling, for
example, their noses when they are asleep, or pulling off the
bed-clothes. Stories are told of the Puk, similar to some above
related of the Juttish Nis.

FOOTNOTES:

[260] Another term is Wicht and its dim. Wichtlein, answering to the
Scandinavian Vættr and the Anglo-Saxon _wiht_, English _wight_, all of
which signify a being, a person, and also a thing in general. Thus our
words _aught_ and _naught_ were _anwiht_ and _nawiht_.

[261] See Grimm's Deutsche Sagen, vol. i. p. 38. As this work is our
chief authority for the Fairy Mythology of Germany, our materials are
to be considered as taken from it, unless when otherwise expressed.

[262] In Lusatia (Lausatz) if not in the rest of Germany, the same idea
of the Dwarfs being fallen angels, prevails as in other countries: see
the tale of the Fairies'-sabbath in the work quoted above, p. 179.

[263] This tale is given by MM. Grimm, from the Brixener Volksbuch.
1782.

[264] Related by Hammelmann in the Oldenburg Chronicle, by Prætorius,
Bräuner, and others.

[265]

      _Frühmorgens eh die Sonn aufgeht
      Schon alles vor dem Berge steht._


[266] This tale was orally related to MM. Grimm in Saxony. They do not
mention the narrator's rank in life.

[267]

      _Dat is gaut dat de büerkem dat nich weit
      Dat de sunne üm twölwe up geit._


[268] Grimm, Deut. Mythol., p. 434. Both legends are in the Low-Saxon
dialect.

[269] The terms used in the original are _Wichtelmänner_,
_Wichtelmännerchen_, and _Wichtel_.

[270] The Saxon ó seems to answer to the Anglo-Saxon [Old English:
Ig], Irish _Inis_: see below, _Ireland_.

[271] Grimm, Deut. Mythol., p. 428. The latter story is in the
Low-Saxon dialect.

[272] In Scandinavia the Dwarfs used to borrow beer, even a barrel at
a time, which one of them would carry off on his shoulders, Thiele i.
121. In the Highlands of Scotland, a firlot of meal. In all cases they
paid honestly. On one occasion, a dwarf came to a lady named Fru
(_Mrs._) Mettè of Overgaard, in Jutland, and asked her to lend her
silk gown to Fru Mettè of Undergaard, for her wedding. She gave it,
but as it was not returned as soon as she expected, she went to the
hill and demanded it aloud. The hill-man brought it out to her all
spotted with wax, and told her that if she had not been so impatient,
every spot on it would have been a diamond. Thiele iii. 48.

The Vends of Lüneburg, we are told, called the underground folk
Görzoni (from _gora_, hill), and the hills are still shown in which
they dwelt. They used to borrow bread from people; they intimated
their desire invisibly, and people used to lay it for them outside of
the door. In the evening they returned it, knocking at the window, and
leaving an additional cake to express their thankfulness. Grimm, Deut.
Mythol., p. 423.

[273] See above, p. 225.

[274] Grimm, Deut. Mythol., p. 437.

[275] Grimm, Deut. Mythol., p. 453.

[276] See Grimm, _ut sup._, p. 447 _seq._

[277] Deutsche Sagen, from Prætorius., Agricola, and others.

[278] Grimm, Deut. Mythol., pp. 451, 881.

[279] Kohl, Die Marschen und Inseln der Herzogthümer Schleswig und
Holstein.

[280] These terms all signify _Underground folk_.

[281] See above, p. 116.

[282] The Puk is also called Niss-Puk, Huis-Puk, Niske, Niske-Puk,
Nise-Bok, Niss-Kuk--all compounds or corruptions of Nisse and Puk. He
is also named from his racketing and noise Pulter-Claas, _i. e._ Nick
Knocker, (the German Poltergeist,) Claas being the abbreviation of
Nicolaus, Niclas; see above, p. 139, for this same origin of Nisse.




                           THE WILD-WOMEN.

      Ein Mägdlein kam im Abendglanz,
      Wie ich's noch nie gefunden.
                             SCHREIBER.

      A maiden came in Evening's glow,
      Such as I ne'er have met.


The Wilde Frauen or Wild-women of Germany bear a very strong
resemblance to the Elle-maids of Scandinavia. Like them they are
beautiful, have fine flowing hair, live within hills, and only appear
singly or in the society of each other. They partake of the piety of
character we find among the German Dwarfs.

The celebrated Wunderberg, or Underberg, on the great moor near
Salzburg, is the chief haunt of the Wild-women. The Wunderberg is said
to be quite hollow, and supplied with stately palaces, churches,
monasteries, gardens, and springs of gold and silver. Its inhabitants,
beside the Wild-women, are little men, who have charge of the treasures
it contains, and who at midnight repair to Salzburg to perform their
devotions in the cathedral; giants, who used to come to the church of
Grödich and exhort the people to lead a godly and pious life; and the
great emperor Charles V., with golden crown and sceptre, attended by
knights and lords. His grey beard has twice encompassed the table at
which he sits, and when it has the third time grown round it, the end of
the world and the appearance of the Anti-christ will take place.[283]

The following is the only account we have of the Wild-women.

The inhabitants of the village of Grödich and the peasantry of the
neighbourhood assert that frequently, about the year 1753, the
Wild-women used to come out of the Wunderberg to the boys and girls
that were keeping the cattle near the hole within Glanegg, and give
them bread to eat.

The Wild-women used frequently to come to where the people were
reaping. They came down early in the morning, and in the evening, when
the people left off work, they went back into the Wunderberg without
partaking of the supper.

It happened once near this hill, that a little boy was sitting on a
horse which his father had tethered on the headland of the field. Then
came the Wild-women out of the hill and wanted to take away the boy by
force. But the father, who was well acquainted with the secrets of
this hill, and what used to occur there, without any dread hasted up
to the women and took the boy from them, with these words: "What makes
you presume to come so often out of the hill, and now to take away my
child with you? What do you want to do with him?" The Wild-women
answered: "He will be better with us, and have better care taken of
him than at home. We shall be very fond of the boy, and he will meet
with no injury." But the father would not let the boy out of his
hands, and the Wild-women went away weeping bitterly.

One time the Wild-women came out of the Wunderberg, near the place
called the Kugelmill, which is prettily situated on the side of this
hill, and took away a boy who was keeping cattle. This boy, whom every
one knew, was seen about a year after by some wood-cutters, in a green
dress, and sitting on a block of this hill. Next day they took his
parents with them, intending to search the hill for him, but they all
went about it to no purpose, for the boy never appeared any more.

It frequently has happened that a Wild-woman out of the Wunderberg has
gone toward the village of Anif, which is better than a mile from the
hill. She used to make holes and beds for herself in the ground. She
had uncommonly long and beautiful hair, which reached nearly to the
soles of her feet. A peasant belonging to the village often saw this
woman going and coming, and he fell deeply in love with her,
especially on account of her beautiful hair. He could not refrain from
going up to her, and he gazed on her with delight; and at last, in his
simplicity, he laid himself, without any repugnance, down by her side.
The second night the Wild-woman asked him if he had not a wife
already? The peasant however denied his wife, and said he had not.

His wife meanwhile was greatly puzzled to think where it was that her
husband went every evening, and slept every night. She therefore watched
him and found him in the field sleeping near the Wild-woman:--"Oh, God
preserve thy beautiful hair!" said she to the Wild-woman; "what are you
doing there?"[284] With these words the peasant's wife retired and left
them, and her husband was greatly frightened at it. But the Wild-woman
upbraided him with his false denial, and said to him, "Had your wife
manifested hatred and spite against me, you would now be unfortunate,
and would never leave this place; but since your wife was not malicious,
love her from henceforth, and dwell with her faithfully, and never
venture more to come here, for it is written, 'Let every one live
faithfully with his wedded wife,' though the force of this commandment
will greatly decrease, and with it all the temporal prosperity of
married people. Take this shoefull of money from me: go home, and look
no more about you."

       *       *       *       *       *

As the fair maiden who originally possessed the famed Oldenburg Horn
was probably a Wild-woman, we will place the story of it here.


                        _The Oldenburg Horn._

In the time of count Otto of Oldenburg, who succeeded his father
Ulrich in the year 967, a wonderful transaction occurred. For as he,
being a good sportsman, and one who took great delight in the chase,
had set out early one day with his nobles and attendants, and had
hunted in the wood of Bernefeuer, and the count himself had put up a
roe, and followed him alone from the wood of Bernefeuer to the
Osenberg, and with his white horse stood on the top of the hill, and
endeavoured to trace the game, he said to himself, for it was an
excessively hot day, "Oh God! if one had now but a cool drink!"

No sooner had the count spoken the word than the Osenberg opened, and
out of the cleft there came a beautiful maiden, fairly adorned and
handsomely dressed, and with her beautiful hair divided on her
shoulders, and a garland on her head. And she had a rich silver vessel,
that was gilded and shaped like a hunter's horn, well and ingeniously
made, granulated, and fairly ornamented. It was adorned with various
kinds of arms that are now but little known, and with strange unknown
inscriptions and ingenious figures, and it was soldered together and
adorned in the same manner as the old antiques, and it was beautifully
and ingeniously wrought. This horn the maiden held in her hand, and it
was full, and she gave it into the hand of the count, and prayed that
the count would drink out of it to refresh himself therewith.

When the count had received and taken this gilded silver horn from the
maiden, and had opened it and looked into it, the drink, or whatever
it was that was in it, when he shook it, did not please him, and he
therefore refused to drink for the maiden. Whereupon the maiden said,
"My dear lord, drink of it upon my faith, for it will do you no harm,
but will be of advantage;" adding farther, that if the count would
drink out of it, it would go well with him, count Otto, and his, and
also with the whole house of Oldenburg after him, and that the whole
country would improve and flourish. But if the count would place no
faith in her, and would not drink of it, then for the future, in the
succeeding family of Oldenburg, there would remain no unity. But when
the count gave no heed to what she said, but, as was not without
reason, considered with himself a long time whether he should drink or
not, he held the silver gilded horn in his hand and swung it behind
him, and poured it out, and some of its contents sprinkled the white
horse, and where it fell and wetted him the hair all came off.

When the maiden saw this, she desired to have her horn back again, but
the count made speed down the hill with the horn, which he held in his
hand, and when he looked round he observed that the maiden was gone
into the hill again. And when terror seized on the count on account of
this, he laid spurs to his horse, and at full speed hasted to join his
attendants, and informed them of what had befallen him. He moreover
showed them the silver gilded horn, and took it with him to Oldenburg,
and the same horn, as it was obtained in so wonderful a manner, was
preserved as a costly jewel by him, and by all the succeeding reigning
princes of the house of Oldenburg.[285]

FOOTNOTES:

[283] All relating to the Wild-women and the Wunderberg is given by MM.
Grimm from the Brixener Volksbuch, 1782. For an account of the various
_Bergentrückte Helden_, see the Deutsche Mythologie, ch. xxxii.

[284] In a similar tradition (Strack, Beschr. von Eilsen, p. 120) the
wife cuts off one of her fair long tresses, and is afterwards most
earnestly conjured by her to restore it.

[285] Given by Büsching (Volks-sagen Märchen und Legenden. Leipzig,
1820), from Hammelmann's Oldenburg Chronicle, 1599. Mme. Naubert has,
in the second volume of her Volksmärchen, wrought it up into a tale of
130 pages.

The Oldenburg horn, or what is called such, is now in the King of
Denmark's collection.




                             KOBOLDS.[286]

      Von Kobolt sang die Amme mir
      Von Kobolt sing' ich wieder.
                          VON HALEM.

      Of Kobold sang my nurse to me;
      Of Kobold I too sing.


The Kobold is exactly the same being as the Danish Nis, and Scottish
Brownie, and English Hobgoblin.[287] He performs the very same
services for the family to whom he attaches himself.

When the Kobold is about coming into any place, he first makes trial
of the disposition of the family in this way. He brings chips and
saw-dust into the house, and throws dirt into the milk vessels. If the
master of the house takes care that the chips are not scattered about,
and that the dirt is left in the vessels, and the milk drunk out of
them, the Kobold comes and stays in the house as long as there is one
of the family alive.

The change of servants does not affect the Kobold, who still remains.
The maid who is going away must recommend her successor to take care
of him, and treat him well. If she does not so, things go ill with her
till she is also obliged to leave the place.

The history of the celebrated Hinzelmann will give most full and
satisfactory information respecting the nature and properties of
Kobolds; for such he was, though he used constantly to deny it. His
history was written at considerable length by a pious minister, named
Feldmann. MM. Grimm gives us the following abridgement of it.[288]


                           _Hinzelmann._[289]

A wonderful house-spirit haunted for a long time the old castle of
Hudemühlen, situated in the country of Lüneburg, not far from the Aller,
and of which there is nothing remaining but the walls. It was in the
year 1584 that he first notified his presence, by knocking and making
various noises. Soon after he began to converse with the servants in the
daylight. They were at first terrified at hearing a voice and seeing
nothing, but by degrees they became accustomed to it and thought no more
of it. At last he became quite courageous, and began to speak to the
master of the house himself, and used, in the middle of the day and in
the evening, to carry on conversations of various kinds; and at
meal-times he discoursed with those who were present, whether strangers
or belonging to the family. When all fear of him was gone he became
quite friendly and intimate: he sang, laughed, and went on with every
kind of sport, so long as no one vexed him: and his voice was on these
occasions soft and tender like that of a boy or maiden. When he was
asked whence he came, and what he had to do in that place, he said he
was come from the Bohemian mountains, and that his companions were in
the Bohemian forest--that they would not tolerate him, and that he was
in consequence obliged to retire and take refuge with good people till
his affairs should be in a better condition. He added that his name was
Hinzelmann, but that he was also called Lüring; and that he had a wife
whose name was Hille Bingels. When the time for it was come he would let
himself he seen in his real shape, but that at present it was not
convenient for him to do so. In all other respects he was, he said, as
good and honest a fellow as need be.

The master of the house, when he saw that the spirit attached himself
more and more to him, began to get frightened, and knew not how he
should get rid of him. By the advice of his friends he determined at
last to leave his castle for some time, and set out for Hanover. On
the road they observed a white feather that flew beside the carriage,
but no one knew what it signified. When he arrived at Hanover he
missed a valuable gold chain that he wore about his neck, and his
suspicions fell upon the servants of the house. But the innkeeper took
the part of his servants, and demanded satisfaction for the
discreditable charge. The nobleman, who could prove nothing against
them, sat in his chamber in bad spirits, thinking how he should manage
to get himself out of this unpleasant affair, when all of a sudden he
heard Hinzelmann's voice beside him, saying, "Why are you so sad? If
there is anything gone wrong with you tell it to me, and I shall
perhaps know how to assist you. If I were to make a guess, I should
say that you are fretting on account of a chain you have lost." "What
are you doing here?" replied the terrified nobleman; "why have you
followed me? Do you know anything about the chain?" "Yes, indeed,"
said Hinzelmann, "I have followed you, and I kept you company on the
road, and was always present: did you not see me? why, I was the white
feather that flew beside the carriage. And now I'll tell you where the
chain is:--Search under the pillow of your bed, and there you'll find
it." The chain was found where he said; but the mind of the nobleman
became still more uneasy, and he asked him in an angry tone why he had
brought him into a quarrel with the landlord on account of the chain,
since he was the cause of his leaving his own house. Hinzelmann
replied, "Why do you retire from me? I can easily follow you anywhere,
and be where you are. It is much better for you to return to your own
estate, and not be quitting it on my account. You see well that if I
wished it I could take away all you have, but I am not inclined to do
so." The nobleman thought some time of it, and at last came to the
resolution of returning home, and trusting in God not to retreat a
step from the spirit.

At home in Hudemühlen, Hinzelmann now showed himself extremely
obliging, and active and industrious at every kind of work. He used to
toil every night in the kitchen; and if the cook, in the evening after
supper, left the plates and dishes lying in a heap without being
washed, next morning they were all nice and clean, shining like
looking-glasses, and put up in proper order. She therefore might
depend upon him, and go to bed in the evening after supper without
giving herself any concern about them. In like manner nothing was ever
lost in the kitchen; and if anything was astray Hinzelmann knew
immediately where to find it, in whatever corner it was hid, and gave
it into the hands of the owner. If strangers were expected, the spirit
let himself be heard in a particular manner, and his labours were
continued the whole night long: he scoured the pots and kettles,
washed the dishes, cleaned the pails and tubs. The cook was grateful
to him for all this, and not only did what he desired, but cheerfully
got ready his sweet milk for his breakfast. He took also the charge of
superintending the other men and maids. He noticed how they got
through their business; and when they were at work he encouraged them
with good words to be industrious. But if any one was inattentive to
what he said, he caught up a stick and communicated his instructions
by laying on heartily with it. He frequently warned the maids of their
mistress's displeasure, and reminded them of some piece of work which
they should set about doing. He was equally busy in the stable: he
attended to the horses, and curried them carefully, so that they were
as smooth in their coats as an eel; they also throve and improved so
much, in next to no time, that everybody wondered at it.

His chamber was in the upper story on the right hand side, and his
furniture consisted of only three articles. Imprimis, of a settle or
arm-chair, which he plaited very neatly for himself of straw of
different colours, full of handsome figures and crosses, which no one
looked upon without admiration. Secondly, of a little round table,
which was on his repeated entreaties made and put there. Thirdly, of a
bed and bedstead, which he had also expressed a wish for. There never
was any trace found as if a man had lain in it; there could only be
perceived a very small depression, as if a cat had been there. The
servants, especially the cook, were obliged every day to prepare a
dish full of sweet milk, with crums of wheaten bread, and place it
upon his little table; and it was soon after eaten up clean. He
sometimes used to come to the table of the master of the house, and
they were obliged to put a chair and a plate for him at a particular
place. Whoever was helping, put his food on his plate, and if that was
forgotten he fell into a great passion. What was put on his plate
vanished, and a glass full of wine was taken away for some time, and
was then set again in its place empty. But the food was afterwards
found lying under the benches, or in a corner of the room.

In the society of young people Hinzelmann was extremely cheerful. He
sang and made verses: one of his most usual ones was,

      If thou here wilt let me stay,
      Good luck shalt thou have alway;
      But if hence thou wilt me chase,
      Luck will ne'er come near the place.

He used also to repeat the songs and sayings of other people by way of
amusement or to attract their attention. The minister Feldmann was
once invited to Hudemühlen, and when he came to the door he heard some
one above in the hall singing, shouting, and making every sort of
noise, which made him think that some strangers had come the evening
before, and were lodged above, and making themselves merry. He
therefore said to the steward, who was standing in the court after
having cut up some wood, "John, what guests have you above there?" The
steward answered, "We have no strangers; it is only our Hinzelmann who
is amusing himself; there is not a living soul else in the hall." When
the minister went up into the hall, Hinzelmann sang out to him

      My thumb, my thumb,
      And my elbow are two.

The minister wondered at this unusual kind of song, and he said to
Hinzelmann, "What sort of music is that you come to meet me with?"
"Why," replied Hinzelmann, "it was from yourself I learned the song,
for you have often sung it, and it is only a few days since I heard it
from you, when you were in a certain place at a christening."

Hinzelmann was fond of playing tricks, but he never hurt any one by
them. He used to set servants and workmen by the ears as they sat
drinking in the evening, and took great delight then in looking at the
sport. When any one of them was well warmed with liquor, and let
anything fall under the table and stooped to take it up, Hinzelmann
would give him a good box on the ear from behind, and at the same time
pinch his neighbour's leg. Then the two attacked each other, first
with words and then with blows; the rest joined in the scuffle, and
they dealt about their blows, and were repaid in kind; and next
morning black eyes and swelled faces bore testimony of the fray. But
Hinzelmann's very heart was delighted at it, and he used afterwards to
tell how it was he that began it, on purpose to set them fighting. He
however always took care so to order matters that no one should run
any risk of his life.

There came one time to Hudemühlen a nobleman who undertook to banish
Hinzelmann. Accordingly, when he remarked that he was in a certain room,
of which all the doors and windows were shut fast, he had this chamber
and the whole house also beset with armed men, and went himself with his
drawn sword into the room, accompanied by some others. They however saw
nothing, so they began to cut and thrust left and right in all
directions, thinking that if Hinzelmann had a body some blow or other
must certainly reach him and kill him; still they could not perceive
that their hangers met anything but mere air. When they thought they
must have accomplished their task, and were going out of the room tired
with their long fencing, just as they opened the door, they saw a figure
like that of a black marten, and heard these words, "Ha, ha! how well
you caught me!" But Hinzelmann afterwards expressed himself very
bitterly for this insult, and declared, that he would have easily had an
opportunity of revenging himself, were it not that he wished to spare
the two ladies of the house any uneasiness. When this same nobleman not
long after went into an empty room in the house, he saw a large snake
lying coiled up on an unoccupied bed. It instantly vanished, and he
heard the words of the spirit--"You were near catching me."

Another nobleman had heard a great deal about Hinzelmann, and he was
curious to get some personal knowledge of him. He came accordingly to
Hudemühlen, and his wish was not long ungratified, for the spirit let
himself be heard from a corner of the room where there was a large
cupboard, in which were standing some empty wine-jugs with long necks.
As the voice was soft and delicate, and somewhat hoarse, as if it came
out of a hollow vessel, the nobleman thought it likely that he was
sitting in one of these jugs, so he got up and ran and caught them up,
and went to stop them, thinking in this way to catch the spirit. While
he was thus engaged, Hinzelmann began to laugh aloud, and cried out,
"If I had not heard long ago from other people that you were a fool, I
might now have known it of myself, since you thought I was sitting in
an empty jug, and went to cover it up with your hand, as if you had me
caught. I don't think you worth the trouble, or I would have given
you, long since, such a lesson, that you should remember me long
enough. But before long you will get a slight ducking." He then became
silent, and did not let himself be heard any more so long as the
nobleman stayed. Whether he fell into the water, as Hinzelmann
threatened him, is not said, but it is probable he did.

There came, too, an exorcist to banish him. When he began his
conjuration with his magic words, Hinzelmann was at first quite quiet,
and did not let himself be heard at all, but when he was going to read
the most powerful sentences against him, he snatched the book out of
his hand, tore it to pieces, so that the leaves flew about the room,
caught hold of the exorcist himself, and squeezed and scratched him
till he ran away frightened out of his wits. He complained greatly of
this treatment, and said, "I am a Christian, like any other man, and I
hope to be saved." When he was asked if he knew the Kobolds and
Knocking-spirits (_Polter Geister_), he answered, "What have these to
do with me? They are the Devil's spectres, and I do not belong to
them. No one has any evil, but rather good, to expect from me. Let me
alone and you will have luck in everything; the cattle will thrive,
your substance will increase, and everything will go on well."

Profligacy and vice were quite displeasing to him; he used frequently to
scold severely one of the family for his stinginess, and told the rest
that he could not endure him on account of it. Another he upbraided with
his pride, which he said he hated from his heart. When some one once
said to him that if he would be a good Christian, he should call upon
God, and say Christian prayers, he began the Lord's Prayer, and went
through it till he came to the last petition, when he murmured "Deliver
us from the Evil one" quite low. He also repeated the Creed, but in a
broken and stammering manner, for when he came to the words, "I believe
in the forgiveness of sins, the resurrection of the body, and life
everlasting," he pronounced them in so hoarse and indistinct a voice
that no one could rightly hear and understand him. The minister of
Eicheloke, Mr. Feldmann, said that his father was invited to dinner to
Hudemühlen at Whitsuntide, where he heard Hinzelmann go through the
whole of the beautiful hymn, "_Nun bitten wir den heiligen Geist_," in a
very high but not unpleasant voice, like that of a girl or a young boy.
Nay, he sang not merely this, but several other spiritual songs also
when requested, especially by those whom he regarded as his friends, and
with whom he was on terms of intimacy.

On the other hand, he was extremely angry when he was not treated with
respect and as a Christian. A nobleman of the family of Mandelsloh once
came to Hudemühlen. This nobleman was highly respected for his learning;
he was a canon of the cathedral of Verden, and had been ambassador to
the Elector of Brandenburg and the King of Denmark. When he heard of the
house-spirit, and that he expected to be treated as a Christian, he said
he could not believe that all was right with him: he was far more
inclined to regard him as the Enemy and the Devil, for that God had
never made men of that kind and form, that angels praised God their
Lord, and guarded and protected men, with which the knocking and
pounding and strange proceedings of the House-spirit did not accord.
Hinzelmann, who had not let himself be heard since his arrival, now made
a noise and cried out, "What say you Barthold? (that was the nobleman's
name) am I the Enemy? I advise you not to say too much, or I will show
you another trick, and teach you to deliver a better judgment of me
another time." The nobleman was frightened when he heard a voice without
seeing any one, broke off the discourse, and would hear nothing more of
him, but left him in possession of his dignity.

Another time a nobleman came there, who, when he saw a chair and plate
laid for Hinzelmann at dinner, refused to pledge him. At this the
spirit was offended, and he said, "I am as honest and good a fellow as
he is; why then does he not drink to me?" To this the nobleman
replied, "Depart hence, and go drink with thy infernal companions;
thou hast nothing to do here." When Hinzelmann heard that, he became
so highly exasperated, that he seized him by the strap with which,
according to the custom of those days, his cloak was fastened under
his chin, dragged him to the ground, and choked and pressed him in
such a manner that all that were present were in pain lest he should
kill him; and the gentleman did not come to himself for some hours
after the spirit had left him.

Another time an esteemed friend of the master of Hudemühlen was
travelling that way, but he hesitated to come in on account of the
House-spirit, of whose mischievous turn he had heard a great deal, and
sent his servant to inform the family that he could not call upon
them. The master of the house sent out and pressed him very much to
come in and dine there, but the stranger politely excused himself, by
saying that it was not in his power to stop; he, however, added, that
he was too much terrified at the idea of sitting at the same table
eating and drinking with a devil. Hinzelmann, it appears, was present
at this conversation out in the road; for when the stranger had thus
refused they heard these words, "Wait, my good fellow, you shall be
well paid for this talk." Accordingly, when the traveller went on and
came to the bridge over the Meisse, the horses took fright, entangled
themselves in the harness, and horses, carriage and all, were within
an ace of tumbling down into the water. When everything had been set
to rights, and the carriage had got on about a gun-shot, it was turned
over in the sand on the level ground, without, however, those who
were in it receiving any farther injury.

Hinzelmann was fond of society, but the society he chiefly delighted
in was that of females, and he was to them very friendly and affable.
There were two young ladies at Hudemühlen, named Anne and Catherine,
to whom he was particularly attached; he used to make his complaint to
them whenever he was angry at anything, and held, besides,
conversations of every kind with them. Whenever they travelled he
would not quit them, but accompanied them everywhere in the shape of a
white feather. When they went to sleep at night, he lay beneath, at
their feet, outside the clothes, and in the morning there was a little
hole to be seen, as if a little dog had lain there.

Neither of these ladies ever married; for Hinzelmann frightened away
their wooers. Matters had frequently gone so far as the engagement,
but the spirit always contrived to have it broken off. One lover he
would make all bewildered and confused when he was about to address
the lady, so that he did not know what he should say. In another he
would excite such fear as to make him quiver and tremble. But his
usual way was to make a writing appear before their eyes on the
opposite white wall, with these words in golden letters: "Take maid
Anne, and leave me maid Catherine." But if any one came to court lady
Anne, the golden writing changed all at once, and became "Take maid
Catherine, and leave me maid Anne." If any one did not change his
course for this, but persisted in his purpose, and happened to spend
the night in the house, he terrified and tormented him so in the dark
with knocking and flinging and pounding, that he laid aside all
wedding-thoughts, and was right glad to get away with a whole skin.
Some, when they were on their way back, he tumbled, themselves and
their horses, over and over, that they thought their necks and legs
would be broken, and yet knew not how it had happened to them. In
consequence of this, the two ladies remained unmarried; they arrived
to a great age, and died within a week of each other.

One of these ladies once sent a servant from Hudemühlen to Rethem to
buy different articles; while he was away Hinzelmann began suddenly to
clapper in the ladies' chamber like a stork, and then said, "Maid
Anne, you must go look for your things to-day in the mill-stream." She
did not know what this meant; but the servant soon came in, and
related, that as he was on his way home, he had seen a stork sitting
at no great distance from him, which he shot at, and it seemed to him
as if he had hit it, but that the stork had remained sitting, and at
last began to clap its wings aloud and then flew away. It was now
plain that Hinzelmann knew this, and his prophecy also soon came to
pass. For the servant, who was a little intoxicated, wanted to wash
his horse, who was covered with sweat and dirt, and he rode him into
the mill-stream in front of the castle; but owing to his drunkenness
he missed the right place, and got into a deep hole, where, not being
able to keep his seat on the horse, he fell off and was drowned. He
had not delivered the things he had brought with him; so they and the
body together were fished up out of the stream.

Hinzelmann also informed and warned others of the future. There came
to Hudemühlen a colonel, who was greatly esteemed by Christian III.
King of Denmark, and who had done good service in the wars with the
town of Lübeck. He was a good shot and passionately fond of the chase,
and used to spend many hours in the neighbouring woods after the harts
and the wild sows. As he was getting ready one day to go to the chase
as usual, Hinzelmann came and said, "Thomas (that was his name), I
warn you to be cautious how you shoot, or you will before long meet
with a mishap." The colonel took no notice of this, and thought it
meant nothing. But a few days after, as he was firing at a roe, his
gun burst, and took the thumb off his left hand. When this occurred,
Hinzelmann was instantly by his side, and said, "See, now, you have
got what I warned you of! If you had refrained from shooting this
time, this mischance would not have befallen you."

Another time a certain lord Falkenberg, who was a soldier, was on a
visit at Hudemühlen. He was a lively, jolly man, and he began to play
tricks on Hinzelmann, and to mock and jeer him. Hinzelmann would not
long put up with this, and he began to exhibit signs of great
dissatisfaction. At last he said,--"Falkenberg, you are making very
merry now at my expense, but wait till you come to Magdeburg, and
there your cap will be burst in such a way that you will forget your
jibes and your jeers." The nobleman was awed: he was persuaded that
these words contained a hidden sense: he broke off the conversation
with Hinzelmann, and shortly after departed. Not long after the siege
of Magdeburg, under the Elector Maurice, commenced, at which this lord
Falkenberg was present, under a German prince of high rank. The
besieged made a gallant resistance, and night and day kept up a firing
of double-harquebuses, and other kinds of artillery; and it happened
that one day Falkenberg's chin was shot away by a ball from a
falconet, and three days after he died of the wound, in great agony.

Any one whom the spirit could not endure he used to plague or punish for
his vices. He accused the secretary at Hudemühlen of too much pride,
took a great dislike to him on account of it, and night and day gave him
every kind of annoyance. He once related with great glee how he had
given the haughty secretary a sound box on the ear. When the secretary
was asked about it, and whether the Spirit had been with him, he
replied, "Ay, indeed, he has been with me but too often; this very night
he tormented me in such a manner that I could not stand before him." He
had a love affair with the chamber-maid; and one night as he was in high
and confidential discourse with her, and they were sitting together in
great joy, thinking that no one could see them but the four walls, the
crafty spirit came and drove them asunder, and roughly tumbled the poor
secretary out at the door, and then took up a broomstick and laid on him
with it, that he made over head and neck for his chamber, and forgot his
love altogether. Hinzelmann is said to have made some verses on the
unfortunate lover, and to have often sung them for his amusement, and
repeated them to travellers, laughing heartily at them.

One time some one at Hudemühlen was suddenly taken in the evening with a
violent fit of the cholic, and a maid was despatched to the cellar to
fetch some wine, in which the patient was to take his medicine. As the
maid was sitting before the cask, and was just going to draw the wine,
Hinzelmann was by her side, and said, "You will be pleased to recollect
that, a few days ago, you scolded me and abused me; by way of punishment
for it, you shall spend this night sitting in the cellar. As to the
sick person, he is in no danger whatever; his pain will be all gone in
half an hour, and the wine would rather injure him. So just stay sitting
here till the cellar door is opened." The patient waited a long time,
but no wine came; another maid was sent down, and she found the cellar
door well secured on the outside with a good padlock, and the maid
sitting within, who told her that Hinzelmann had fastened her up in that
way. They wanted to open the cellar and let the maid out, but they could
not find a key for the lock, though they searched with the greatest
industry. Next morning the cellar was open, and the lock and key lying
before the door. Just as the spirit said, all his pain left the sick man
in the course of half an hour.

Hinzelmann had never shown himself to the master of the house at
Hudemühlen, and whenever he begged of him that if he was shaped like a
man, he would let himself be seen by him, he answered, "that the time
was not yet come; that he should wait till it was agreeable to him." One
night, as the master was lying awake in bed, he heard a rushing noise on
one side of the chamber, and he conjectured that the spirit must be
there. So he said "Hinzelmann, if you are there, answer me." "It is I,"
replied he; "what do you want?" As the room was quite light with the
moonshine, it seemed to the master as if there was the shadow of a form
like that of a child, perceptible in the place from which the sound
proceeded. As he observed that the spirit was in a very friendly humour,
he entered into conversation with him, and said, "Let me, for this once,
see and feel you." But Hinzelmann would not: "Will you reach me your
hand, at least, that I may know whether you are flesh and bone like a
man?" "No," said Hinzelmann; "I won't trust you; you are a knave; you
might catch hold of me, and not let me go any more." After a long demur,
however, and after he had promised, on his faith and honour, not to hold
him, but to let him go again immediately, he said, "See, there is my
hand." And as the master caught at it, it seemed to him as if he felt
the fingers of the hand of a little child; but the spirit drew it back
quickly. The master further desired that he would let him feel his face,
to which he at last consented; and when he touched it, it seemed to him
as if he had touched teeth, or a fleshless skeleton, and the face drew
back instantaneously, so that he could not ascertain its exact shape; he
only noticed that it, like the hand, was cold, and devoid of vital heat.

The cook, who was on terms of great intimacy with him, thought that
she might venture to make a request of him, though another might not,
and as she felt a strong desire to see Hinzelmann bodily, whom she
heard talking every day, and whom she supplied with meat and drink,
she prayed him earnestly to grant her that favour; but he would not,
and said that this was not the right time, but that after some time,
he would let himself be seen by any person. This refusal only
stimulated her desire, and she pressed him more and more not to deny
her request. He said she would repent of her curiosity if she would
not give up her desire; and when all his representations were to no
purpose, and she would not give over, he at last said to her, "Come
to-morrow morning before sun-rise into the cellar, and carry in each
hand a pail full of water, and your request shall be complied with."
The maid inquired what the water was for: "That you will learn,"
answered he; "without it, the sight of me might be injurious to you."

Next morning the cook was ready at peep of dawn, took in each hand a
pail of water, and went down to the cellar. She looked about her
without seeing anything; but as she cast her eyes on the ground she
perceived a tray, on which was lying a naked child apparently three
years old, and two knives sticking crosswise in his heart, and his
whole body streaming with blood. The maid was terrified at this sight
to such a degree, that she lost her senses, and fell in a swoon on the
ground. The spirit immediately took the water that she had brought
with her, and poured it all over her head, by which means she came to
herself again. She looked about for the tray, but all had vanished,
and she only heard the voice of Hinzelmann, who said. "You see now how
needful the water was; if it had not been at hand you had died here in
the cellar. I hope your burning desire to see me is now pretty well
cooled." He often afterwards illuded the cook with this trick, and
told it to strangers with great glee and laughter.

He frequently showed himself to innocent children when at play. The
minister Feldmann recollected well, that when he was about fourteen
or fifteen years old, and was not thinking particularly about him, he
saw the Spirit in the form of a little boy going up the stairs very
swiftly. When children were collected about Hudemühlen house, and were
playing with one another, he used to get among them and play with them
in the shape of a pretty little child, so that all the other children
saw him plainly, and when they went home told their parents how, while
they were engaged in play, a strange child came to them and amused
himself with them. This was confirmed by a maid, who went one time
into a room in which four or six children were playing together, and
among them she saw a strange little boy of a beautiful countenance,
with curled yellow hair hanging down his shoulders, and dressed in a
red silk coat; and while she wanted to observe him more closely, he
got out of the party, and disappeared. Hinzelmann let himself be seen
also by a fool, named Claus, who was kept there, and used to pursue
every sort of diversion with him. When the fool could not anywhere be
found, and they asked him afterwards where he had been so long, he
used to reply, "I was with the little wee man, and I was playing with
him." If he was farther asked how big the little man was, he held his
hand at a height about that of a child of four years.[290]

When the time came that the house-spirit was about to depart, he went
to the master of the house and said to him, "See, I will make you a
present; take care of it, and let it remind you of me." He then handed
him a little _cross_--it is doubtful from the author's words whether
of silk (_seide_) or strings (_saiten_)--very prettily plaited. It was
the length of a finger, was hollow within, and jingled when it was
shaken. Secondly, a _straw hat_, which he had made himself, and in
which might be seen forms and figures very ingeniously made in the
variously- straw. Thirdly, a leathern _glove_ set with
pearls, which formed wonderful figures. He then subjoined this
prophecy: "So long as these things remain unseparated in good
preservation in your family, so long will your entire race flourish,
and their good fortune continually increase; but if these presents are
divided, lost, or wasted, your race will decrease and sink." And when
he perceived that the master appeared to set no particular value on
the present, he continued: "I fear that you do not much esteem these
things, and will let them go out of your hands; I therefore counsel
you to give them in charge to your sisters Anne and Catherine, who
will take better care of them."

He accordingly gave the gifts to his sisters, who took them and kept
them carefully, and never showed them to any but most particular
friends. After their death they reverted to their brother, who took them
to himself, and with him they remained so long as he lived. He showed
them to the minister Feldmann, at his earnest request, during a
confidential conversation. When he died, they came to his only daughter
Adelaide, who was married to L. von H., along with the rest of the
inheritance, and they remained for some time in her possession. The son
of the minister Feldmann made several inquiries about what had
afterwards become of the House-spirit's presents, and he learned that
the straw-hat was given to the emperor Ferdinand II., who regarded it as
something wonderful. The leathern glove was still in his time in the
possession of a nobleman. It was short, and just exactly reached above
the hand, and there was a snail worked with pearls on the part that came
above the hand. What became of the little cross was never known.

The spirit departed of his own accord, after he had staid four years,
from 1584 to 1588, at Hudemühlen. He said, before he went away, that
he would return once more when the family would be declined, and that
it would then flourish anew and increase in consequence.[291]


                              _Hödeken._

Another Kobold or House-spirit took up his abode in the palace of the
bishop of Hildesheim. He was named Hödeken or Hütchen, that is Hatekin
or Little Hat, from his always wearing a little felt hat very much
down upon his face. He was of a kind and obliging disposition, often
told the bishop and others of what was to happen, and he took good
care that the watchmen should not go to sleep on their post.

It was, however, dangerous to affront him. One of the scullions in the
bishop's kitchen used to fling dirt on him and splash him with foul
water. Hödeken complained to the head cook, who only laughed at him, and
said, "Are you a spirit and afraid of a little boy?" "Since you won't
punish the boy," replied Hödeken, "I will, in a few days, let you see
how much afraid of him I am," and he went off in high dudgeon. But very
soon after he got the boy asleep at the fire-side, and he strangled him,
cut him up, and put him into the pot on the fire. When the cook abused
him for what he had done, he squeezed toads all over the meat that was
at the fire, and he soon after tumbled the cook from the bridge into the
deep moat. At last people grew so much afraid of his setting fire to the
town and palace, that the bishop had him exorcised and banished.

The following was one of Hödeken's principal exploits. There was a man
in Hildesheim who had a light sort of wife, and one time when he was
going on a journey he spoke to Hödeken and said, "My good fellow, just
keep an eye on my wife while I am away, and see that all goes on
right." Hödeken agreed to do so; and when the wife, after the
departure of her husband, made her gallants come to her, and was going
to make merry with them, Hödeken always threw himself in the middle
and drove them away by assuming terrific forms; or, when any one had
gone to bed, he invisibly flung him so roughly out on the floor as to
crack his ribs. Thus they fared, one after another, as the
light-o'-love dame introduced them into her chamber, so that no one
ventured to come near her. At length, when the husband had returned
home, the honest guardian of his honour presented himself before him
full of joy, and said, "Your return is most grateful to me, that I may
escape the trouble and disquiet that you had imposed upon me." "Who
are you, pray?" said the man. "I am Hödeken," replied he, "to whom, at
your departure, you gave your wife in charge. To gratify you I have
guarded her this time, and kept her from adultery, though with great
and incessant toil. But I beg of you never more to commit her to my
keeping; for I would sooner take charge of, and be accountable for,
all the swine in Saxony than for one such woman, so many were the
artifices and plots she devised to blink me."


                           _King Goldemar._

Another celebrated House-spirit was King Goldemar, who lived in great
intimacy with Neveling von Hardenberg, on the Hardenstein at the Ruhr,
and often slept in the same bed with him. He played most beautifully
on the harp, and he was in the habit of staking great sums of money at
dice. He used to call Neveling brother-in-law, and often gave him
warning of various things. He talked with all kinds of people, and
used to make the clergy blush by discovering their secret
transgressions. His hands were thin like those of a frog, cold and
soft to the feel; he let himself be felt, but no one could see him.
After remaining there for three years, he went away without offending
any one. Some call him King Vollmar, and the chamber in which he lived
is still said to be called Vollmar's Chamber. He insisted on having a
place at the table for himself, and a stall in the stable for his
horse; the food, the hay, and the oats were consumed, but of man or
horse nothing more than the shadow ever was seen. When one time a
curious person had strewed ashes and tares in his way to make him
fall, that his foot-prints might be seen, he came behind him as he was
lighting the fire and hewed him to pieces, which he put on the spit
and roasted, and he began to boil the head and legs. As soon as the
meat was ready it was brought to Vollmar's chamber, and people heard
great cries of joy as it was consumed. After this there was no trace
of King Vollmar; but over the door of his chamber was found written,
that in future the house would be as unfortunate as it had hitherto
been fortunate; the scattered property would not be brought together
again till the time when three Hardenbergs of Hardenstein should be
living at the same time. The spit and the roast meat were preserved
for a long time; but they disappeared in the Lorrain war in 1651. The
pot still remains built into the wall of the kitchen.[292]


                        _The Heinzelmänchen._

It is not over fifty years since the Heinzelmänchen, as they are called,
used to live and perform their exploits in Cologne. They were little
naked mannikins, who used to do all sorts of work; bake bread, wash, and
such like house-work. So it is said, but no one ever saw them.

In the time that the Heinzelmänchen were still there, there was in
Cologne many a baker, who kept no man, for the little people used
always to make over-night, as much black and white bread as the baker
wanted for his shop. In many houses they used to wash and do all their
work for the maids.

Now, about this time, there was an expert tailor to whom they appeared
to have taken a great fancy, for when he married he found in his house,
on the wedding day, the finest victuals and the most beautiful vessels
and utensils, which the little folk had stolen elsewhere and brought
their favourite. When, with time, his family increased, the little ones
used to give the tailor's wife considerable aid in her household
affairs; they washed for her, and on holidays and festival times they
scoured the copper and tin, and the house from the garret to the cellar.
If at any time the tailor had a press of work, he was sure to find it
all ready done for him in the morning by the Heinzelmänchen. But
curiosity began now to torment the tailor's wife, and she was dying to
get one sight of the Heinzelmänchen, but do what she would she could
never compass it. She one time strewed peas all down the stairs that
they might fall and hurt themselves, and that so she might see them next
morning. But this project missed, and since that time the Heinzelmänchen
have totally disappeared, as has been everywhere the case, owing to the
curiosity of people, which has at all times been the destruction of so
much of what was beautiful in the world. The Heinzelmänchen, in
consequence of this, went off all in a body out of the town with music
playing, but people could only hear the music, for no one could see the
mannikins themselves, who forthwith got into a boat and went away,
whither no one knows. The good times, however, are said to have
disappeared from Cologne along with the Heinzelmänchen.[293]

FOOTNOTES:

[286] This word is usually derived from the Greek κοβαλος, a knave,
which is found in Aristophanes. According to Grimm (p. 408) the German
Kobold is not mentioned by any writer anterior to the thirteenth
century, we find the French Gobelin in the eleventh; see _France_.

[287] In Hanover the Will-o'the-wisp is called the Tückebold, _i. e._
Tücke-Kobold, and is, as his name denotes, a malicious being. Voss.
Lyr. Ged., ii. p. 315.

[288] Deutsche Sagen, i. p. 103. Feldmann's work is a 12mo vol. of 379
pages.

[289] Heinze is the abbreviation of Heinrich (Henry). In the North of
Germany the Kobold is also named Chimmeken and Wolterken, from Joachim
and Walther.

[290] This is a usual measure of size for the Dwarfs, and even the
angels, in the old German poetry; see above, p. 208. In Otnit it is
said of Elberich: _nu bist in Kindes mâze des vierden jâres alt_; and
of Antilois in Ulrich's Alexander: _er war kleine und niht grôz in der
mâze als diu kint, wenn si in vier jâren sint_, Grimm, Deut. Mythol.,
p. 418. We meet with it even in Italian poetry:

      E sovra il dorso un nano si piccino
      Che sembri di quattr' anni un fanciullino.
                            B. Tasso, Amadigi, C. c. st. 78.


[291] The feats of House-spirits, it is plain, may in general be
ascribed to ventriloquism and to contrivances of servants and others.

[292] Von Steinen, Westfäl. Gesch. _ap._ Grimm, Deut. Mythol., p. 477.

[293] _Oral._ Cölns Vorzeit. Cöln. 1826.




                                NIXES.

      Kennt ihr der Nixen, munt're Schaar?
      Von Auge schwarz und grün von Haar
        Sie lauscht am Schilfgestade.
                               MATTHISSON.

      Know you the Nixes, gay and fair?
      Their eyes are black, and green their hair--
        They lurk in sedgy shores.

The Nixes, or Water-people, inhabit lakes and rivers. The man is like
any other man, only he has green teeth. He also wears a green hat. The
female Nixes appear like beautiful maidens. On fine sunny days they
may be seen sitting on the banks, or on the branches of the trees,
combing their long golden locks. When any person is shortly to be
drowned, the Nixes may be previously seen dancing on the surface of
the water. They inhabit a magnificent region below the water, whither
they sometimes convey mortals. A girl from a village near Leipzig was
one time at service in the house of a Nix. She said that everything
there was very good; all she had to complain of was that she was
obliged to eat her food without salt. The female Nixes frequently go
to the market to buy meat: they are always dressed with extreme
neatness, only a corner of their apron or some other part of their
clothes is wet. The man has also occasionally gone to market. They are
fond of carrying off women whom they make wives of, and often fetch an
earthly midwife to assist at their labour. Among the many tales of the
Nixes we select the following:--


                   _The Peasant and the Waterman._

A Water-man once lived on good terms with a peasant who dwelt not far
from his lake. He often visited him, and at last begged that the peasant
would visit him in his house under the water. The peasant consented, and
went down with him. There was everything down under the water as in a
stately palace on the land,--halls, chambers, and cabinets, with costly
furniture of every description. The Water-man led his guest over the
whole, and showed him everything that was in it. They came at length to
a little chamber, where were standing several new pots turned upside
down. The peasant asked what was in them. "They contain," was the reply,
"the souls of drowned people, which I put under the pots and keep them
close, so that they cannot get away." The peasant made no remark, and he
came up again on the land. But for a long time the affair of the souls
continued to give him great trouble, and he watched to find when the
Water-man should be from home. When this occurred, as he had marked the
right way down, he descended into the water-house, and, having made out
the little chamber, he turned up all the pots one after another, and
immediately the souls of the drowned people ascended out of the water,
and recovered their liberty.[294]


                          _The Water-Smith._

There is a little lake in Westphalia called the Darmssen, from which
the peasants in the adjacent village of Epe used to hear all through
the night a sound as if of hammering upon an anvil. People who were
awake used also to see something in the middle of the lake. They got
one time into a boat and went to it, and there they found that it was
a smith, who, with his body raised over the water, and a hammer in his
hand, pointed to an anvil, and bid the people bring him something to
forge. From that time forth they brought iron to him, and no people
had such good plough-irons as those of Epe.

One time as a man from this village was getting reeds at the Darmssen,
he found among them a little child that was rough all over his body. The
smith cried out, "Don't take away my son!" but the man put the child on
his back, and ran home with it. Since that time the smith has never more
been seen or heard. The man reared the Roughy, and he became the
cleverest and best lad in the place. But when he was twenty years old he
said to the farmer, "Farmer, I must leave you. My father has called me!"
"I am sorry for that," said the farmer. "Is there no way that you could
stay with me?" "I will see about it," said the water-child. "Do you go
to Braumske and fetch me a little sword; but you must give the seller
whatever he asks for it, and not haggle about it." The farmer went to
Braumske and bought the sword; but he haggled, and got something off the
price. They now went together to the Darmssen, and the Roughy said, "Now
mind. When I strike the water, if there comes up blood, I must go away;
but if there comes milk, then I may stay with you." He struck the water,
and there came neither milk nor blood. The Roughy was annoyed, and said,
"You _have_ been bargaining and haggling, and so there comes neither
blood nor milk. Go off to Braumske and buy another sword." The farmer
went and returned; but it was not till the third time that he bought a
sword without haggling. When the Roughy struck the water with this it
became as red as blood, and he threw himself into the lake, and never
was seen more.[295]


                       _The Working Waterman._

At Seewenweiher, in the Black-Forest, a little Water-man
(_Seemänlein_) used to come and join the people, work the whole day
long with them, and in the evening go back into the lakes. They used
to set his breakfast and dinner apart for him. When, in apportioning
the work, the rule of "Not too much and not too little" was infringed,
he got angry, and knocked all the things about. Though his clothes
were old and worn, he steadily refused to let the people get him new
ones. But when at last they would do so, and one evening the lake-man
was presented with a new coat, he said, "When one is paid off, one
must go away. After this day I'll come no more to you." And, unmoved
by the excuses of the people, he never let himself be seen again.[296]


                          _The Nix-Labour._

A midwife related that her mother was one night called up, and desired
to make haste and come to the aid of a woman in labour. It was dark,
but notwithstanding she got up and dressed herself, and went down,
where she found a man waiting. She begged of him to stay till she
should get a lantern, and she would go with him; but he was urgent,
said he would show her the way without a lantern, and that there was
no fear of her going astray.

He then bandaged her eyes, at which she was terrified, and was going
to cry out; but he told her she was in no danger, and might go with
him without any apprehension. They accordingly went away together, and
the woman remarked that he struck the water with a rod, and that they
went down deeper and deeper till they came to a room, in which there
was no one but the lying-in woman.

Her guide now took the bandage off her eyes, led her up to the bed,
and recommending her to his wife, went away. She then helped to bring
the babe into the world, put the woman to bed, washed the babe, and
did everything that was requisite.

The woman, grateful to the midwife, then secretly said to her: "I am a
Christian woman as well as you; and I was carried off by a Water-man,
who changed me. Whenever I bring a child into the world he always eats
it on the third day. Come on the third day to your pond, and you will
see the water turned to blood. When my husband comes in now and offers
you money, take no more from him than you usually get, or else he will
twist your neck. Take good care!"

Just then the husband came in. He was in a great passion, and he
looked all about; and when he saw that all had gone on properly he
bestowed great praise on the midwife. He then threw a great heap of
money on the table, and said, "Take as much as you will!" She,
however, prudently answered, "I desire no more from you than from
others, and that is a small sum. If you give me that I am content; if
you think it too much, I ask nothing from you but to take me home
again." "It is God," says he, "has directed you to say that." He paid
her then the sum she mentioned, and conducted her home honestly. She
was, however, afraid to go to the pond at the appointed day.

       *       *       *       *       *

There are many other tales in Germany of midwives, and even ladies of
rank, who have been called in to assist at Nix or Dwarf labours. The
Ahnfrau von Ranzau, for example, and the Frau von Alvensleben--the
Ladies Bountiful of Germany--were waked up in the night to attend the
little women in their confinement.[297] There is the same danger in
touching anything in the Dwarf as in the Nix abodes, but the Dwarfs
usually bestow rings and other articles, which will cause the family
to flourish. We have seen tales of the same kind in Scandinavia, and
shall meet with them in many other countries.

FOOTNOTES:

[294] This legend seems to be connected with the ancient idea of the
water-deities taking the souls of drowned persons to themselves. In
the Edda, this is done by the sea-goddess Ran.

[295] Grimm, _ut sup._ p. 463.

[296] Grimm, _ut sup._ p. 453.

[297] A tale of this kind is to be seen in Luther's Table-talk, told
by _die frau doctorin_, his wife. The scene of it was the river Mulda.




                             SWITZERLAND.

      Denn da hielten auch im lande
      Noch die guten Zwerglein Haus;
      Kleingestalt, doch hochbegabet,
      Und so hülfreich überaus!
                         MÜLLER.

      For then also in the country
      The good Dwarflings still kept house;
      Small in form, but highly gifted,
      And so kind and generous!


We now arrive at Switzerland, a country with which are usually
associated ideas of sublime and romantic scenery, simple manners, and
honest hearts. The character of the Swiss Dwarfs will be found to
correspond with these ideas. For, like the face of Nature, these
personifications of natural powers seem to become more gentle and mild
as they approach the sun and the south.

The Dwarfs, or little Hill- or Earth-men[298] of Switzerland, are
described as of a lively, joyous disposition, fond of strolling
through the valleys, and viewing and partaking in the labours of
agriculture. Kind and generous, they are represented as driving home
stray lambs, and leaving brushwood and berries in the way of poor
children. Their principal occupation is keeping cattle--not goats,
sheep, or cows, but the chamois, from whose milk they make excellent
and well-flavoured cheese. This cheese, when given by the Dwarfs to
any one, has the property of growing again when it has been cut or
bitten. But should the hungry owner be improvident enough to eat up
the whole of it and leave nothing from it to sprout from, he of course
has seen the end of his cheese.

The Kobolds are also to be met with in Switzerland. In the Vaudois,
they call them Servants,[299] and believe that they live in remote
dwellings and lonely shiels.[300] The most celebrated of them in those
parts is Jean de la Boliéta, or, as he is called in German, Napf-Hans,
_i. e._ Jack-of-the-Bowl, because it was the custom to lay for him
every evening on the roof of the cow-house a bowl of fresh sweet
cream, of which he was sure to give a good account. He used to lead
the cows to feed in the most dangerous places, and yet none of them
ever sustained the slightest injury. He always went along the same
steep path on which no one ever saw even a single stone lying, though
the whole side of the mountain was strewn as thickly as possible with
boulders. It is still called Boliéta's Path.[301]

Rationalising theory has been at work with the Swiss Dwarfs also. It
is supposed, that the early inhabitants of the Swiss mountains, when
driven back by later tribes of immigrants, retired to the high lands
and took refuge in the clefts and caverns of the mountains, whence
they gradually showed themselves to the new settlers--approached them,
assisted them, and were finally, as a species of Genii, raised to the
region of the wonderful.

For our knowledge of the Dwarf Mythology of Switzerland, we are
chiefly indebted to professor Wyss, of Bern, who has put some of the
legends in a poetical dress, and given others in the notes to his
Idylls as he styles them.[302] These legends were related by the
peasants to Mr. Wyss or his friends, on their excursions through the
mountains; and he declares that he has very rarely permitted himself
to add to, or subtract from, the peasants' narrative. He adds, that
the belief in these beings is strong in the minds of the people, not
merely in the mountain districts, but also at the foot of Belp
mountain, Belp, Gelterfingen, and other places about Bern.[303]

As a specimen of Mr. Wyss's manner of narrating these legends, we
give here a faithful translation of his first Idyll.[304]


                         _Gertrude and Rosy._

                              GERTRUDE.

      Quick, daughter, quick! spin off what's on your rock.
      'Tis Saturday night, and with the week you know
      Our work must end; we shall the more enjoy
      To-morrow's rest when all's done out of hand.[305]
      Quick, daughter, quick! spin off what's on your rock.

                                ROSY.

        True, mother, but every minute sleep
      Falls on my eyes as heavy as lead, and I
      Must yawn do what I will; and then God knows
      I can't help nodding though 'twere for my life;
      Or ... oh! it might be of some use if you
      Would once more, dearest mother, tell about
      The wonderful, good-natured little Dwarfs,
      What they here round the country used to do,
      And how they showed their kindness to the hinds.

                              GERTRUDE.

        See now! what industry!--your work itself
      Should keep you waking. I have told you o'er
      A thousand times the stories, and we lose,
      If you grow wearied of them, store of joy
      Reserved for winter-nights; besides, methinks,
      The evening's now too short for chat like this.

                                ROSY.

        There's only one thing I desire to hear
      Again, and sure, dear mother, never yet
      Have you explained how 'twas the little men
      Lived in the hills, and how, all through the year,
      They sported round the country here, and gave
      Marks of their kindness. For you'll ne'er persuade
      Me to believe that barely, one by one,
      They wandered in the valleys, and appeared
      Unto the people, and bestowed their gifts:
      So, come now, tell at once, how 'twas the Dwarfs
      Lived all together in society.

                              GERTRUDE.

        'Tis plain, however, of itself, and well
      Wise folks can see, that such an active race
      Would never with their hands before them sit.
      Ah! a right merry lively thing, and full
      Of roguish tricks, the little Hill-man is,
      And quickly too he gets into a rage,
      If you behave not toward him mannerly,
      And be not frank and delicate in your acts.
      But, above all things, they delight to dwell,
      Quiet and peaceful, in the secret clefts
      Of hills and mountains, evermore concealed.
      All through the winter, when with icy rind
      The frost doth cover o'er the earth, the wise
      And prudent little people keep them warm
      By their fine fires, many a fathom down
      Within the inmost rocks. Pure native gold,
      And the rock-crystals shaped like towers, clear,
      Transparent, gleam with colours thousandfold
      Through the fair palace, and the Little-folk,
      So happy and so gay, amuse themselves
      Sometimes with singing--Oh, so sweet! 'twould charm
      The heart of any one who heard it sound.
      Sometimes with dancing, when they jump and spring
      Like the young skipping kids in the Alp-grass.
        Then when the spring is come, and in the fields
      The flowers are blooming, with sweet May's approach,
      They bolts and bars take from their doors and gates,
      That early ere the hind or hunter stirs,
      In the cool morning, they may sport and play;
      Or ramble in the evening, when the moon
      Lights up the plains. Seldom hath mortal man
      Beheld them with his eyes; but should one chance
      To see them, it betokens suffering
      And a bad year, if bent in woe they glide
      Through woods and thickets; but the sight proclaims
      Joy and good luck, when social, in a ring,
      On the green meads and fields, their hair adorned
      With flowers, they shout and whirl their merry rounds.
      Abundance then they joyously announce
      For barn, for cellar, and for granary,
      And a blest year to men, to herds, and game.
      Thus they do constantly foreshow what will
      Befall to-morrow and hereafter; now
      Sighing, and still, by their lamenting tones,
      A furious tempest; and again, with sweet
      And smiling lips, and shouting, clear bright skies.[306]
        Chief to the poor and good, they love to show
      Kindness and favour, often bringing home
      At night the straying lambs, and oftener still
      In springtime nicely spreading, in the wood,
      Brushwood, in noble bundles, in the way
      Of needy children gone to fetch home fuel.
      Many a good little girl, who well obeyed
      Her mother,--or, mayhap, a little boy,--
      Has, with surprise, found lying on the hills
      Bright dazzling bowls of milk, and baskets too,
      Nice little baskets, full of berries, left
      By the kind hands of the wood-roaming Dwarfs.
        Now be attentive while I tell you one
      Out of a hundred and a hundred stories;
      'Tis one, however, that concerns us more
      Than all the rest, because it was my own
      Great-great-grandfather that the thing befell,
      In the old time, in years long since agone.
        Where from the lofty rocks the boundary runs
      Down to the vale, Barthel, of herdsmen first
      In all the country round, was ploughing up
      A spacious field, where he designed to try
      The seed of corn; but with anxiety
      His heart was filled, lest by any chance
      His venture should miscarry, for his sheep
      In the contagion he had lost, now poor
      And without skill, he ventures on the plough.
        Deliberate and still, at the plough-tail,
      In furrows he cuts up the grassy soil,
      While with the goad his little boy drives on
      The panting ox. When, lo! along the tall
      Rocky hill-side, a smoke ascends in clouds
      Like snow-flakes, soaring from the summit up
      Into the sky. At this the hungry boy
      Began to think of food, for the poor child
      Had tasted nothing all the live-long day
      For lunch, and, looking up, he thus began:
      "Ah! there the little Dwarf-folk are so gay
      At their grand cooking, roasting, boiling now,
      For a fine banquet, while with hunger I
      Am dying. Had we here one little dish
      Of the nice savoury food, were it but as
      A sign that there's a blessing on our work!"
        'Twas thus the boy spake, and his father ploughed
      Silently on, bent forwards o'er his work.
      They turn the plough; when huzza! lo! behold
      A miracle! there gleamed right from the midst
      Of the dark furrow, toward them, a bright
      Lustre, and there so charming! lay a plate
      Heaped up with roast meat; by the plate, a loaf
      Of bread upon the outspread table-cloth,
      At the disposal of the honest pair.
      Hurra! long live the friendly, generous Dwarfs!
        Barthel had now enough--so had the boy--
      And laughing gratefully and loud, they praise
      And thank the givers; then, with strength restored,
      They quick return unto their idle plough.
        But when again their day's task they resume,
      To break more of the field, encouraged now
      To hope for a good crop, since the kind Dwarfs
      Had given them the sign of luck they asked--
      Hush! bread and plate, and crums, and knife and fork,
      Were vanished clean; only--just for a sign
      For ever of the truth--lay on the ridge
      The white, nice-woven, pretty table-cloth.

                                ROSY.

        O mother! mother! what? the glittering plate
      And real? and the cloth with their own hands
      Spun by the generous Dwarfs? No, I can ne'er
      Believe it!--Was the thread then, real drawn
      And twisted thread, set in it evenly?
      And was there too a flower, a pretty figure,
      Nicely wrought in with warp and crossing woof?
      Did there a handsome border go all round.
      Enclosing all the figures?--Sure your great-
      Great-grandfather, if really he was
      The owner of the curious little cloth,
      He would have left it carefully unto
      His son and grandson for a legacy,
      That, for a lasting witness of the meal
      Given by the Dwarfs, it might to distant years,
      The praise and wonder of our vale remain.

                              GERTRUDE.

        Odds me! how wise the child is! what a loss
      And pity 'tis that in old times the folk
      Were not so thoughtful and so over-knowing!
      Ah! our poor simple fathers should rise up
      Out of their graves, and come to get advice
      And comfort from the brooders that are now,--
      As if they knew not what was right and fit!
        Have but a little patience, girl, and spin
      What's on your rock; to-morrow when 'tis day
      I'll let you see the Dwarfs' flowered table-cloth,
      Which, in the chest laid safe, inherited
      From mother down to daughter, I have long
      Kept treasured under lock and key, for fear
      Some little girl, like some one that you know,
      Might out of curiosity, and not
      Acquainted with its worth, set it astray.

                                ROSY.

        Ah, that is kind, dear mother; and see now
      How broad awake I am, and how so smart
      I'm finishing my work since you relate
      These pretty tales; but I will call you up
      Out of your bed to-morrow in the morning
      So early! Oh, I wish now it were day
      Already, for I'm sure I shall not get
      One wink of sleep for thinking of the cloth.[307]


                        _The Chamois-Hunter._

A chamois-hunter set out early one morning, and ascended the
mountains. He had arrived at a great height, and was in view of some
chamois, when, just as he was laying his bolt on his crossbow, and was
about to shoot, a terrible cry from a cleft of the rock interrupted
his purpose. Turning round he saw a hideous Dwarf, with a battle-axe
in his hand raised to slay him. "Why," cried he, in a rage, "hast thou
so long been destroying my chamois, and leavest not with me my flock?
But now thou shalt pay for it with thy blood." The poor hunter turned
pale at the stranger's words. In his terror he was near falling from
the cliff. At length, however, he recovered himself, and begged
forgiveness of the Dwarf, pleaded his ignorance that the chamois
belonged to him, declaring at the same time that he had no other means
of support than what he derived from hunting. The Dwarf was pacified,
laid down his axe, and said to him, "'Tis well; never be seen here
again, and I promise thee that every seventh day thou shalt find,
early in the morning, a dead chamois hanging before thy cottage; but
beware and keep from the others." The Dwarf then vanished, and the
hunter returned thoughtfully home, little pleased with the prospect of
the inactive live he was now to lead.

On the seventh morning he found, according to the Dwarf's promise, a
fat chamois hanging in the branches of a tree before his cottage, of
which he ate with great satisfaction. The next week it was the same,
and so it continued for some months. But at last he grew weary of this
idle life, and preferred, come what might, returning to the chase, and
catching chamois for himself, to having his food provided for him
without the remembrance of his toils to sweeten the repast. His
determination made, he once more ascended the mountains. Almost the
first object that met his view was a fine buck. The hunter levelled
his bow and took aim at the prey; and as the Dwarf did not appear, he
was just pulling the trigger, when the Dwarf stole behind him, took
him by the ankle, and tumbled him down the precipice.

Others say the Dwarf gave the hunter a small cheese of chamois-milk,
which would last him his whole life, but that he one day thoughtlessly
ate the whole of it, or, as some will have it, a guest who was
ignorant of the quality of it ate up the remainder. Poverty then drove
him to return to the chamois-hunting, and he was thrown into a chasm
by the Dwarf.[308]

                      _The Dwarfs on the Tree._

In the summer-time the troop of the Dwarfs came in great numbers down
from the hills into the valley, and joined the men that were at work,
either assisting them or merely looking on. They especially liked to be
with the mowers in the hay-making season, seating themselves, greatly to
their satisfaction, on the long thick branch of a maple-tree, among the
dense foliage. But one time some mischief-loving people came by night
and sawed the branch nearly through. The unsuspecting Dwarfs, as usual,
sat down on it in the morning; the branch snapt in two, and the Dwarfs
were thrown to the ground. When the people laughed at them they became
greatly incensed, and cried out,

      O how is heaven so high
      And perfidy so great!
      Here to-day and never more!

and they never let themselves again be seen.[309]

It is also related that it was the custom of the Dwarfs to seat
themselves on a large piece of rock, and thence to look on the haymakers
when at work. But some mischievous people lighted a fire on the rock and
made it quite hot, and then swept off all the coals. In the morning the
little people, coming to take their usual station, burned themselves in
a lamentable manner. Full of anger, they cried out, "O wicked world! O
wicked world!" called aloud for vengeance, and disappeared for ever.


                        _Curiosity Punished._

In old times men lived in the valley, and around them, in the clefts and
holes of the rocks, dwelt the Dwarfs. They were kind and friendly to
the people, often performing hard and heavy work for them in the night;
and when the country-people came early in the morning with their carts
and tools, they saw, to their astonishment, that the work was already
done, while the Dwarfs hid themselves in the bushes, and laughed aloud
at the astonished rustics. Often, too, were the peasants incensed to
find their corn, which was scarcely yet ripe, lying cut on the ground;
but shortly after there was sure to come on such a hail-storm, that it
became obvious that hardly a single stalk could have escaped destruction
had it not been cut, and then, from the bottom of their hearts, they
thanked the provident Dwarf-people. But at last mankind, through their
own folly, deprived themselves of the favour and kindness of the Dwarfs;
they fled the country, and since that time no mortal eye has seen them.
The cause of their departure was this:

A shepherd had a fine cherry-tree[310] that stood on the mountain.
When in the summer the fruit had ripened, it happened that, three
times running, the tree was stript, and all the fruit spread out on
the benches and hurdles, where the shepherd himself used to spread it
out to dry for the winter. The people of the village all said, "It
could be none but the good-natured Dwarfs, who come by night tripping
along with their feet covered with long mantles, as light as birds,
and industriously perform for mankind their daily work. People have
often watched them," continued the narrators, "but no one disturbs
them; they are left to come and go as they please." This talk only
excited the curiosity of the shepherd, and he longed to know why it
was that the Dwarfs so carefully concealed their feet, and whether
they were differently formed from those of men. Accordingly, next
year, when the summer came, and the time when the Dwarfs secretly
pulled the cherries, and brought them to the barn, the shepherd took a
sack full of ashes, and strewed them about under the cherry-tree. Next
morning, at break of day, he hastened to the place: the tree was
plucked completely empty, and he saw the marks of several goose-feet
impressed on the ashes. The shepherd then laughed and jested at
having discovered the Dwarfs' secret. But soon after the Dwarfs broke
and laid waste their houses, and fled down deeper in the mountain to
their splendid secret palace, that had long lain empty to receive
them. Vexed with mankind, they never more granted them their aid; and
the imprudent shepherd who had betrayed them became sickly, and
continued so to the end of his life.[311]


                         _The Rejected Gift._

A Dwarf came down one night from the chesnut woods on the side of the
mountain over the village of Walchwyl, and enquired for the house of a
midwife, whom he earnestly pressed to come out and go with him. She
consented, and the Dwarf, bearing a light, led the way in silence to the
woods. He stopped at last before a cleft in a rock, at which they
entered, and the woman suddenly found herself in a magnificent hall. She
was thence led through several rich apartments to the chamber of state,
where the queen of the Dwarfs, for whom her services were required, was
lying. She performed her office, and brought a fair young prince to the
light. She was thanked and dismissed, and her former conductor appeared
to lead her home. As he was taking leave of her, he filled her apron
with something, bidding her on no account to look at it till she was in
her own house. But the woman could not control her curiosity, and the
moment the Dwarf disappeared, she partly opened the apron, and lo! there
was nothing in it but some black coals. In a rage, she shook them out on
the ground, but she kept two of them in her hands, as a proof of the
shabby treatment she had met with from the Dwarfs. On reaching home, she
threw them also down on the ground. Her husband cried out with joy and
surprise, for they shone like carbuncles. She asserted that the Dwarf
had put nothing but coals into her apron; but she ran out to call a
neighbour, who knew more of such things than they did, and he on
examining them pronounced them to be precious stones of great value. The
woman immediately ran back to where she had shaken out the supposed
coals, but they were all gone.[312]


                    _The Wonderful Little Pouch._

At noon one day a young peasant sat by the side of a wood, and,
sighing, prayed to God to give him a morsel of food. A Dwarf suddenly
emerged from the wood, and told him that his prayer should be
fulfilled. He then gave him the pouch that he had on his side, with
the assurance that he would always find in it wherewithal to satisfy
his thirst and hunger, charging him at the same time not to consume it
all and to share with any one who asked him for food. The Dwarf
vanished, and the peasant put his hand into the pouch to make trial of
it, and there he found a cake of new bread, a cheese, and a bottle of
wine, on which he made a hearty meal. He then saw that the pouch
swelled up as before, and looking in he found that it was again full
of bread, cheese, and wine. He now felt sure of his food, and he lived
on in an idle luxurious way, without doing any work. One day, as he
was gorging himself, there came up to him a feeble old man, who prayed
him to give him a morsel to eat. He refused in a brutal, churlish
tone, when instantly the bread and choose broke, and scattered out of
his hands, and pouch and all vanished.[313]


                        _Aid and Punishment._

On the side of Mount Pilatus is a place named the Kastler-Alpe, now
covered with stones and rubbish, but which once was verdant and
fertile. The cause of the change was as follows.

The land there was formerly occupied by a farmer, a churlish,
unfeeling man, who, though wealthy, let his only sister struggle with
the greatest poverty in the valley beneath. The poor woman at length
having fallen sick, and seeing no other resource, resolved to apply to
her hardhearted brother for the means of employing a doctor. She sent
her daughter to him; but all the prayers and tears of the poor girl
failed to move him, and he told her he would, sooner than give her
anything, see the Alpe covered with stones and rubbish. She departed,
and as she went along a Dwarf suddenly appeared to her. She would have
fled, but he gently detained her, and telling her he had heard all
that had passed, gave her a parcel of herbs, which he assured her
would cure her mother, and a little cheese, which he said would last
them a long time.

On trial, the herbs quickly produced the promised effect; and when
they went to cut the cheese they found the knife would not penetrate
it, and no wonder, for it was pure gold. There also came a sudden
storm on the mountain, and the Kastler-Alpe was reduced to its present
condition.[314]



                  _The Dwarf in Search of Lodging._

One night, during a tremendous storm of wind and rain, a Dwarf came
travelling through a little village, and went from cottage to cottage,
dripping with rain, knocking at the doors for admission. None,
however, took pity on him, or would open the door to receive him: on
the contrary, the inhabitants even mocked at his distress.

At the very end of the village there dwelt two honest poor people, a
man and his wife. Tired and faint, the Dwarf crept on his staff up to
their house, and tapped modestly three times at the little window.
Immediately the old shepherd opened the door for him, and cheerfully
offered him the little that the house afforded. The old woman produced
some bread, milk, and cheese: the Dwarf sipped a few drops of the
milk, and ate some crums of the bread and cheese. "I am not used,"
said he, laughing, "to eat such coarse food: but I thank you from my
heart, and God reward you for it: now that I am rested, I will proceed
on farther." "God forbid!" cried the good woman; "you surely don't
think of going out in the night and in the storm! It were better for
you to take a bed here, and set out in the daylight." But the Dwarf
shook his head, and with a smile replied, "You little know what
business I have to do this night on the top of the mountain. I have to
provide for you too; and to-morrow you shall see that I am not
ungrateful for the kindness you have shown to me." So saying, the
Dwarf departed, and the worthy old couple went to rest.

But at break of day they were awaked by storm and tempest; the
lightnings flashed along the red sky, and torrents of water poured down
the hills and through the valley. A huge rock now tumbled from the top
of the mountain, and rolled down toward the village, carrying along with
it, in its course, trees, stones, and earth. Men and cattle, every thing
in the village that had breath in it, were buried beneath it. The waves
had now reached the cottage of the two old people, and in terror and
dismay they stood out before their door. They then beheld approaching in
the middle of the stream a large piece of rock, and on it, jumping
merrily, the Dwarf, as if he was riding and steering it with a great
trunk of a pine till he brought it before the house, where it stemmed
the water and kept it from the cottage, so that both it and the good
owners escaped. The Dwarf then swelled and grew higher and higher till
he became a monstrous Giant, and vanished in the air, while the old
people were praying to God and thanking him for their deliverance.[315]

FOOTNOTES:

[298] In Swiss _Härdmandle_, pl. _Härdmändlene_.

[299] Wyss, Reise in das Berner Oberland, ii. 412. _Servants_ is the
term in the original.

[300] This Scottish word, signifying the summer cabin of the herdsmen
on the mountains, exactly expresses the Sennhütten of the Swiss.

[301] Alpenrosen for 1824, _ap._ Grimm, Introd. to Irish Fairy
Legends.

[302] Idyllen, Volkssagen, Legenden, und Erzählungen aus der Schweiz.
Von J. Rud Wyss, Prof. Bern, 1813.

[303] In Bilder und Sagen aus der Schweiz, von Dr. Rudolf. Müller.
Glarus, 1842, may be found some legends of the Erdmännlein, but they
are nearly all the same as those collected by Mr. Wyss. We give below
those in which there is anything peculiar.

[304] The original is in German hexameters.

[305] It is a notion in some parts of Germany, that if a girl leaves
any flax or tow on her distaff unspun on Saturday night, none of what
remains will make good thread. Grimm, Deut. Mythol. Anhang, p. lxxii.

[306] _Glanz_ is the term employed in Switzerland.

[307] This legend was picked up by a friend of Mr. Wyss when on a
topographical ramble in the neighbourhood of Bern. It was told to him
by a peasant of Belp; "but," says Mr. Wyss, "if I recollect right,
this man said it was a nice smoking-hot cake that was on the plate,
and it was a servant, not the man's son, who was driving the plough.
The circumstance of the table-cloth being handed down from mother to
daughter," he adds, "is a fair addition which I have allowed myself."

The writer recollects to have heard this story, when a boy, from an
old woman in Ireland; and he could probably point out the very field
in the county of Kildare where it occurred. A man and a boy were
ploughing: the boy, as they were about in the middle of their furrow,
smelled roast beef, and wished for some. As they returned, it was
lying on the grass before them. When they had eaten, the boy said "God
bless me, and God bless the fairies!" The man did not give thanks, and
he met with misfortunes very shortly after.--The same legend is also
in Scotland. See below.

[308] The former account was obtained by a friend in Glarnerland. The
latter was given to Mr. Wyss himself by a man of Zweylütschinen, very
rich, says Mr. Wyss, in Dwarf lore, and who accompanied him to
Lauterbrunnen. Schiller has founded his poem Der Alpenjäger on this
legend.

[309] Mr. Wyss heard this and the following tale in Haslithal and
Gadmen.

[310] In several of the high valleys of Switzerland it is only a
single cherry-tree which happens to be favourably situated that bears
fruit. It bears abundantly, and the fruit ripens about the month of
August. _Wyss._

[311] Compare the narrative in the Swiss dialect given by Grimm, Deut.
Mythol. p. 419. The same peasant of Belp who related the first legend
was Mr. Wyss's authority for this one. "The vanishing of the
Bergmänlein," says Mr. Wyss, "appears to be a matter of importance to
the popular faith. It is almost always ascribed to the fault of
mankind--sometimes to their wickedness."

We may in these tales recognise the box of Pandora under a different
form, but the ground is the same. Curiosity and wickedness are still
the cause of superior beings withdrawing their favour from man.

"I have never any where else," says Mr. Wyss, "heard of the
goose-feet; but that all is not right with their feet is evident from
the popular tradition giving long trailing mantles as the dress of the
little people. Some will have it that their feet are regularly formed,
but set on their legs the wrong way, so that the toes are behind and
the heels before."

Heywood, in his Hierarchie of the Blessed Angels, p. 554, relates a
story which would seem to refer to a similar belief.

[312] Müller, Bilder und Sagen, p. 119; see above, p. 81. Coals are
the usual form under which the Dwarfs conceal the precious metals. We
also find this trait in Scandinavia. A smith who lived near Aarhuus in
Jutland, as he was going to church, saw a Troll on the roadside very
busy about two straws that had got across each other on a heap of
coals, and which, do what he would, he could not remove from their
position. He asked the smith to do it for him; but he who knew better
things took up the coals with the cross straws on them, and carried
them home in spite of the screams of the Troll, and when he reached
his own house he found it was a large treasure he had got, over which
the Troll had lost all power. Thiele, i. 122.

[313] Müller, _ut sup._ p. 123.

[314] Müller, _ut sup._ p. 126.

[315] This story is told of two places in the Highlands of Berning, of
Ralligen, a little village on the lake of Thun, where there once stood
a town called Roll; and again, of Schillingsdorf, a place in the
valley of Grinderwald, formerly destroyed by a mountain slip.

The reader need scarcely be reminded of the stories of Lot and of
Baucis and Philemon: see also Grimm's Kinder und Hausmärchen, iii.
153, for other parallels.




                            GREAT BRITAIN.

      In old wives daies that in old time did live,
      To whose odde tales much credit men did give,
      Great store of goblins, fairies, bugs, nightmares,
      Urchins and elves to many a house repaires.
                                           OLD POEM.


We use the term Great Britain in a very limited sense, as merely
inclusive of those parts of the island whose inhabitants are of
Gotho-German origin--England and the Lowlands of Scotland.

We have already seen[316] that the Anglo-Saxon conquerors of Britain
had in their language the terms from which are derived Elf and Dwarf,
and the inference is natural that their ideas respecting these beings
corresponded with those of the Scandinavians and Germans. The same may
be said of the Picts, who, akin to the Scandinavians, early seized on
the Scottish Lowlands. We therefore close our survey of the Fairy
Mythology of the Gotho-German race with Great Britain.

FOOTNOTE:

[316] See above pp. 66, 75.




                               ENGLAND.

      Merry elves, their morrice pacing,
      To aërial minstrelsy,
      Emerald rings on brown heath tracing,
      Trip it deft and merrily.
                           SCOTT.


The Fairy Mythology of England divides itself into two branches, that
of the people and that of the poets. Under the former head will be
comprised the few scattered traditions which we have been able to
collect respecting a system, the belief in which is usually thought to
be nearly extinct; the latter will contain a selection of passages,
treating of fairies and their exploits, from our principal poets.

The Fairies of England are evidently the Dwarfs of Germany and the
North, though they do not appear to have been ever so denominated.[317]
Their appellation was Elves, subsequently Fairies; but there would seem
to have been formerly other terms expressive of them, of which hardly a
vestige is now remaining in the English language.

They were, like their northern kindred, divided into two classes--the
rural Elves, inhabiting the woods, fields, mountains, and caverns; and
the domestic or house-spirits, usually called Hobgoblins and Robin
Goodfellows. But the Thames, the Avon, and the other English streams,
never seem to have been the abode of a Neck or Kelpie.

The following curious instances of English superstition, occur in the
twelfth century.


                        _The Green Children._

"Another wonderful thing," says Ralph of Coggeshall,[318] "happened in
Suffolk, at St. Mary's of the Wolf-pits. A boy and his sister were
found by the inhabitants of that place near the mouth of a pit which
is there, who had the form of all their limbs like to those of other
men, but they differed in the colour of their skin from all the people
of our habitable world; for the whole surface of their skin was tinged
of a green colour. No one could understand their speech. When they
were brought as curiosities to the house of a certain knight, Sir
Richard de Calne, at Wikes, they wept bitterly. Bread and other
victuals were set before them, but they would touch none of them,
though they were tormented by great hunger, as the girl afterwards
acknowledged. At length, when some beans just cut, with their stalks,
were brought into the house, they made signs, with great avidity, that
they should be given to them. When they were brought, they opened the
stalks instead of the pods, thinking the beans were in the hollow of
them; but not finding them there, they began to weep anew. When those
who were present saw this, they opened the pods, and showed them the
naked beans. They fed on these with great delight, and for a long time
tasted no other food. The boy, however, was always languid and
depressed, and he died within a short time. The girl enjoyed continual
good health; and becoming accustomed to various kinds of food, lost
completely that green colour, and gradually recovered the sanguine
habit of her entire body. She was afterwards regenerated by the laver
of holy baptism, and lived for many years in the service of that
knight (as I have frequently heard from him and his family), and was
rather loose and wanton in her conduct. Being frequently asked about
the people of her country, she asserted that the inhabitants, and all
they had in that country, were of a green colour; and that they saw no
sun, but enjoyed a degree of light like what is after sunset. Being
asked how she came into this country with the aforesaid boy, she
replied, that as they were following their flocks, they came to a
certain cavern, on entering which they heard a delightful sound of
bells; ravished by whose sweetness, they went for a long time
wandering on through the cavern, until they came to its mouth. When
they came out of it, they were struck senseless by the excessive light
of the sun, and the unusual temperature of the air; and they thus lay
for a long time. Being terrified by the noise of those who came on
them, they wished to fly, but they could not find the entrance of the
cavern before they were caught."

       *       *       *       *       *

This story is also told by William of Newbridge,[319] who places it in
the reign of King Stephen. He says he long hesitated to believe it,
but he was at length overcome by the weight of evidence. According to
him, the place where the children appeared was about four or five
miles from Bury St. Edmund's: they came in harvest-time out of the
Wolf-pits; they both lost their green hue, and were baptised, and
learned English. The boy, who was the younger, died; but the girl
married a man at Lenna, and lived many years. They said their country
was called St. Martin's Land, as that saint was chiefly worshiped
there; that the people were Christians, and had churches; that the sun
did not rise there, but that there was a bright country which could be
seen from theirs, being divided from it by a very broad river.


                         _The Fairy Banquet._

In the next chapter of his history, William of Newbridge relates as
follows:--

"In the province of the Deiri (Yorkshire), not far from my birth-place,
a wonderful thing occurred, which I have known from my boyhood. There is
a town a few miles distant from the Eastern Sea, near which are those
celebrated waters commonly called Gipse.... A peasant of this town went
once to see a friend who lived in the next town, and it was late at
night when he was coming back, not very sober; when lo! from the
adjoining barrow, which I have often seen, and which is not much over a
quarter of a mile from the town, he heard the voices of people singing,
and, as it were, joyfully feasting. He wondered who they could be that
were breaking in that place, by their merriment, the silence of the dead
night, and he wished to examine into the matter more closely. Seeing a
door open in the side of the barrow, he went up to it, and looked in;
and there he beheld a large and luminous house, full of people, women as
well as men, who were reclining as at a solemn banquet. One of the
attendants, seeing him standing at the door, offered him a cup. He took
it, but would not drink; and pouring out the contents, kept the vessel.
A great tumult arose at the banquet on account of his taking away the
cup, and all the guests pursued him; but he escaped by the fleetness of
the beast he rode, and got into the town with his booty. Finally, this
vessel of unknown material, of unusual colour, and of extraordinary
form, was presented to Henry the Elder, king of the English, as a
valuable gift, and was then given to the queen's brother David, king of
the Scots, and was kept for several years in the treasury of Scotland;
and a few years ago (as I have heard from good authority), it was given
by William, king of the Scots, to Henry the Second, who wished to see
it."

The scene of this legend, we may observe, is the very country in which
the Danes settled; and it is exactly the same as some of the legends
current at the present day among the Danish peasantry.[320] It is
really extraordinary to observe the manner in which popular traditions
and superstitions will thus exist for centuries.

Gervase of Tilbury, the Imperial Chancellor, gives the following
particulars respecting the Fairy Mythology of England in the
thirteenth century.


                          _The Fairy Horn._

"There is," says he,[321] "in the county of Gloucester, a forest
abounding in boars, stags, and every species of game that England
produces. In a grovy lawn of this forest there is a little mount,
rising in a point to the height of a man, on which knights and other
hunters are used to ascend when fatigued with heat and thirst, to seek
some relief for their wants. The nature of the place, and of the
business, is, however, such, that whoever ascends the mount must leave
his companions, and go quite alone.

"When alone, he was to say, as if speaking to some other person, 'I
thirst,' and immediately there would appear a cupbearer in an elegant
dress, with a cheerful countenance, bearing in his stretched-out hand a
large horn, adorned with gold and gems, as was the custom among the
most ancient English. In the cup[322] nectar of an unknown but most
delicious flavour was presented, and when it was drunk, all heat and
weariness fled from the glowing body, so that one would be thought ready
to undertake toil instead of having toiled. Moreover, when the nectar
was taken, the servant presented a towel to the drinker, to wipe his
mouth with, and then having performed his office, he waited neither for
a recompense for his services, nor for questions and enquiry.

"This frequent and daily action had for a very long period of old
times taken place among the ancient people, till one day a knight of
that city, when out hunting, went thither, and having called for a
drink and gotten the horn, did not, as was the custom, and as in good
manners he should have done, return it to the cup-bearer, but kept it
for his own use. But the illustrious Earl of Gloucester, when he
learned the truth of the matter, condemned the robber to death, and
presented the horn to the most excellent King Henry the Elder, lest he
should be thought to have approved of such wickedness, if he had added
the rapine of another to the store of his private property."


                           _The Portunes._

In another part of this work the Chancellor says,[323]--

"They have in England certain demons, though I know not whether I
should call them demons or figures of a secret and unknown generation,
which the French call Neptunes, the English Portunes.[324] It is their
nature to embrace the simple life of comfortable farmers, and when, on
account of their domestic work, they are sitting up at night, when
the doors are shut, they warm themselves at the fire, and take little
frogs out of their bosom, roast them on the coals, and eat them. They
have the countenance of old men, with wrinkled cheeks, and they are of
a very small stature, not being quite half-an-inch high.[325] They
wear little patched coats, and if anything is to be carried into the
house, or any laborious work to be done, they lend a hand, and finish
it sooner than any man could. It is their nature to have the power to
serve, but not to injure. They have, however, one little mode of
annoying. When in the uncertain shades of night the English are riding
any where alone, the Portune sometimes invisibly joins the horseman;
and when he has accompanied him a good while, he at last takes the
reins, and leads the horse into a neighbouring slough; and when he is
fixed and floundering in it, the Portune goes off with a loud laugh,
and by sport of this sort he mocks the simplicity of mankind.


                             _The Grant._

"There is," says he, again[326] "in England a certain kind of demon
whom in their language they call Grant,[327] like a yearling foal,
erect on its hind legs, with sparkling eyes. This kind of demon often
appears in the streets in the heat of the day, or about sunset. If
there is any danger impending on the following day or night, it runs
about the streets provoking the dogs to bark, and, by feigning flight,
draws the dogs after it, in the vain hope of catching it. This
illusion warns the inhabitants to beware of fire, and the friendly
demon, while he terrifies those who see him, puts by his coming the
ignorant on their guard."

       *       *       *       *       *

Thus far the Chancellor of the Holy Roman Empire, and, except in the
poets, we have met with no further account of, or allusion to,
fairies, until the reign of Elizabeth, when a little work appeared,
named, The mad Pranks and merry Jests of Robin Goodfellow,[328] from
which Shakespeare seems in a good measure to have derived his Puck.

This work consists of two parts. In the first we are informed that Robin
was the offspring of a "proper young wench by a hee-fayrie, a king or
something of that kind among them." By the time he was six years old he
was so mischievous and unlucky that his mother found it necessary to
promise him a whipping. He ran away and engaged with a tailor, from whom
also he soon eloped. When tired he sat down and fell asleep, and in his
sleep he had a vision of fairies; and when he awoke he found lying
beside him a scroll, evidently left by his father, which, in verses
written in letters of gold, informed him that he should have any thing
he wished for, and have also the power of turning himself "To horse, to
hog, to dog, to ape," etc., but he was to harm none but knaves and
queans, and was to "love those that honest be, and help them in
necessity." He made trials of his power and found that he really
possessed it. His first exploit was to turn himself into a horse, to
punish a churlish clown, whom he induced to mount him, and gave him a
fall that went well nigh to break his neck. The fellow then went to ride
him through a great plash of water, "and in the middle of it he found
himself with nothing but a pack-saddle between his legs, while Robin
went off laughing, _Ho, ho, hoh_! He next exerted himself in the cause
of two young lovers, and secured their happiness.

In the Second Part we find him more in the character of the Nis or
Brownie. Coming to a farmer's house, he takes a liking to a "good
handsome maid," that was there, and in the night does her work for
her, at breaking hemp and flax, bolting meal, etc. Having watched one
night and seen him at work, and observed that he was rather bare of
clothes, she provided him with a waistcoat against the next night.
But when he saw it he started and said:--

      Because thou layest me himpen hampen
      I will neither bolt nor stampen:
      'Tis not your garments, new or old,
      That Robin loves: I feel no cold.
      Had you left me milk or cream,
      You should have had a pleasing dream:
      Because you left no drop or crum,
      Robin never more will come.

He went off laughing _Ho, ho, hoh_! and the maid in future had to do
all the work herself.

A company of young fellows who had been making merry with their
sweethearts were coming home over a heath. Robin met them, and to make
himself merry took the form of _a walking fire_, and led them up and
down till daylight, and then went off saying:--

      Get you home, you merry lads:
      Tell your mammies and your dads,
      And all those that news desire,
      How you saw a walking fire.
      Wenches that do smile and lispe,
      Use to call me Willy Wispe.
      If that you but weary be,
      It is sport alone for me.
      Away: unto your houses go,
      And I'll go laughing, _Ho, ho, hoh_!

A fellow was attempting to offer violence to a young maiden. Robin
came to her aid, ran between his legs in the shape of a hare, then
turning himself into a horse, carried him off on his back, and flung
him into a thick hedge.

Robin fell in love with a weaver's pretty wife, and for her sake took
service with her husband. The man caught them one day kissing, and next
night he went and took Robin as he was sleeping, up out of his bed, and
went to the river and threw him in. But instantly he heard behind him--

      For this your service, master, I you thank.
      Go swim yourself; I'll stay upon the bank;

and was pushed in by Robin, who had put a bag of yarn in his bed, and
now went off with, _Ho, ho, hoh_!

Robin went as a fiddler to a wedding. When the candles came he blew
them out, and giving the men boxes in the ears he set them a-fighting.
He kissed the prettiest girls, and pinched the others, till he made
them scratch one another like cats. When the posset was brought forth,
he turned himself into a bear, and frightening them away, had it all
to himself.

At length his father who we now find was king Obreon (i.e.
Oberon),[329] called him up out of his bed one night, and took him to
where the fairies were dancing to the music of Tom Thumb's bagpipe,
and thence to Fairy-land, where he "did show him many secrets which he
never did open to the world."

In the same work Sib says of the woman-fairies:

"To walk nightly as do the men-fairies we use not; but now and then we
go together, and at good housewives' fires we warm our fairy
children.[330] If we find clean water and clean towels we leave them
money, either in their basins, or in their shoes; but if we find no
clean water in their houses, we wash our children in their pottage,
milk, or beer, or whatever we find: for the sluts that have not such
things fitting, we wash their faces and hands with a gilded child's
clout, or else carry them to some river and duck them over head and
ears. We often use to dwell in some great hill, and from thence we do
lend money to any poor man or woman that hath need; but if they bring
it not again at the day appointed, we do not only punish them with
pinching, but also in their goods, so that they never thrive till they
have paid us."

The learned and strong-minded Reginald Scot, thus notices the
superstitions of his own and the preceding age.[331]

"Indeed your grandams' maids were wont to set a bowl of milk before
him (Incubus) and his cousin Robin Goodfellow, for grinding of malt or
mustard, and sweeping the house at midnight; and you have also heard
that he would chafe exceedingly if the maid or good-wife of the house,
having compassion of his nakedness, laid any clothes for him besides
his mess of white bread and milk, which was his standing fee; for in
that case he saith,

      What have we here? Hemten, hamten,
      Here will I never more tread nor stampen.

Again:[332]

"The Faeries do principally inhabit the mountains and caverns of the
earth, whose nature is to make strange apparitions on the earth, in
meadows or on mountains, being like men and women, soldiers, kings,
and ladies, children and horsemen, clothed in green, to which purpose
they do in the night steal hempen stalks from the fields where they
grow, to convert them into horses, as the story goes.

"Such jocund and facetious spirits," he continues, "are said to sport
themselves in the night by tumbling and fooling with servants and
shepherds in country houses, pinching them black and blue, and leaving
bread, butter, and cheese, sometimes with them, which, if they refuse
to eat, some mischief shall undoubtedly befal them by the means of
these Faeries; and many such have been taken away by the said spirits
for a fortnight or a month together, being carried with them in
chariots through the air, over hills and dales, rocks and precipices,
till at last they have been found lying in some meadow or mountain,
bereaved of their senses, and commonly one of their members to boot."

Elsewhere[333] he gives the following goodly catalogue of these
objects of popular terror:--"Our mother's maids have so frayed us with
Bull-beggars, Spirits, Witches, Urchins, Elves, Hags, Faeries, Satyrs,
Pans, Faunes, Sylens, Kit-wi-the-Canstick, Tritons, Centaurs, Dwarfs,
Gyants, Impes, Calcars, Conjurors, Nymphs, Changelings, Incubus, Robin
Goodfellow, the Spoorn, the Mare, the Man-in-the-Oak, the Hell-wain,
the Firedrake, the Puckle, Tom-thombe, Hob-goblin, Tom-tumbler,
Boneless, and such other Bugs, that we are afraid of our shadow."[334]

Burton, after noticing from Paracelsus those which in Germany "do
usually walk in little coats, some two foot long," says,[335] "A
bigger kind there is of them called with us Hobgoblins and Robin
Goodfellows, that would, in those superstitious times, grind corn for
a mess of milk, cut wood, or do any manner of drudgery work." And
again: "Some put our Fairies into this rank (that of terrestrial
devils), which have been in former times adored with much
superstition, with sweeping their houses, and setting of a pail of
clean water, good victuals, and the like, and then they should not be
pinched, but find money in their shoes, and be fortunate in their
enterprises." In another place (p. 30,) he says, "And so those which
Miyaldus calls _Ambulones_, that walk about midnight, on heaths and
desert places, which (saith Lavater) draw men out of the way and lead
them all night a by-way, or quite barre them of their way; these have
several names, in several places; we commonly call them _Pucks_."

Harsenet thus speaks of them in his Declaration:[336]--

"And if that the _bowl_ of curds and _cream_ were not _duly set_ out
for Robin Goodfellow, the _friar_, and Sisse the dairy-maid, why then,
either the pottage was burned the next day in the pot, or the cheeses
would not curdle, or the butter would not come, or the ale in the fat
never would have good head. But if a Peter-penny or a Housle-egge[337]
were behind, or a patch of tythe unpaid--then 'ware of bull-beggars,
spirits, &c."

Nash thus describes them:[338]--

"Then ground they malt, and had hempen shirts for their labours;
daunced in rounds in green meadows; pincht maids in their sleep that
swept not their houses clean, and led poor travellers out of their way."

       *       *       *       *       *

As the celebrated Luck of Eden Hall is supposed to have been a
chalice, due respect for the piety of our forefathers will not allow
of our placing the desecration of it any higher than the reign of
Elizabeth, or that of her father at farthest. We will therefore
introduce its history in this place.

                       _The Luck of Eden Hall._

In this house (Eden Hall, a seat of the Musgraves,) are some good
old-fashioned apartments. An old painted drinking-glass, called the
_Luck of Eden Hall_, is preserved with great care. In the garden near
to the house is a well of excellent spring water, called St.
Cuthbert's Well. (The church is dedicated to that saint.) This glass
is supposed to have been a sacred chalice; but the legendary tale is,
that the butler, going to draw water, surprised a company of Fairies,
who were amusing themselves upon the green near the well; he seized
the glass which was standing upon its margin. They tried to recover
it; but, after an ineffectual struggle, flew away, saying,--

      If that glass either break or fall,
      Farewell the luck of Eden Hall.[339]

"In the year 1633-4 (says Aubrey[340]) soon after I had entered into
my grammar, at the Latin schoole of Yatton-Keynel, [near Chippenham,
Wilts,] our curate, Mr. Hart, was annoyed one night by these elves or
fayeries. Comming over the downes, it being neere darke, and
approaching one of the faiery dances, as the common people call them
in these parts, viz. the greene circles made by those sprites on the
grasse, he all at once saw an innumerable quantitie of pigmies, or
very small people, dancing rounde and rounde, and singing and making
all maner of small odd noyses. He, being very greatly amazed, and yet
not being able, as he says, to run away from them, being, as he
supposes, kept there in a kinde of enchantment, they no sooner
perceave him but they surround him on all sides, and what betwixte
feare and amazement he fell down, scarcely knowing what he did; and
thereupon these little creatures pinched him all over, and made a
quick humming noyse all the tyme; but at length they left him, and
when the sun rose he found himself exactly in the midst of one of
these faiery dances. This relation I had from him myselfe a few days
after he was so tormented; but when I and my bed-fellow, Stump, wente
soon afterwards, at night time, to the dances on the downes, we sawe
none of the elves or faieries. But, indeed, it is saide they seldom
appeare to any persons who go to seeke for them."

The next account, in order of time, that occurs, is what Sir Walter
Scott calls the Cock Lane narrative of Anne Jefferies, who was born in
1626, in the parish of St. Teath, in Cornwall, and whose wonderful
adventures with the fairies were, in 1696, communicated by Mr. Moses
Pitt, her master's son, to Dr. Fowler, bishop of Gloucester.[341]

According to this account, Anne described the Fairies, who she said came
to her, as "six small people, all in green clothes." They taught her to
perform numerous surprising cures; they fed her from harvest-time till
Christmas; they always appeared in even numbers. When seen dancing in
the orchard among the trees, she said she was dancing with the fairies.
These fairies scorned the imputation of being evil spirits, and referred
those who termed them such to Scripture.

The following "relation of the apparition of Fairies, their seeming to
keep a fair, and what happened to a certain man that endeavoured to
put himself in amongst them," is given by Bovet.[342]



                          _The Fairy-Fair._

"Reading once the eighteenth of Mr. Glanvil's relations, p. 203,
concerning an Irishman that had like to have been carried away by
spirits, and of the banquet they had spread before them in the fields,
etc., it called to mind a passage I had often heard, of Fairies or
spirits, so called by the country people, which showed themselves in
great companies at divers times. At some times they would seem to
dance, at other times to keep a great fair or market. I made it my
business to inquire amongst the neighbours what credit might be given
to that which was reported of them, and by many of the neighbouring
inhabitants I had this account confirmed.

"The place near which they most ordinarily showed themselves was on
the side of a hill, named Black-down, between the parishes of
Pittminster and Chestonford, not many miles from Tanton. Those that
have had occasion to travel that way have frequently seen them there,
appearing like men and women, of a stature generally near the smaller
size of men. Their habits used to be of red, blue, or green, according
to the old way of country garb, with high crowned hats. One time,
about fifty years since, a person living at Comb St. Nicholas, a
parish lying on one side of that hill, near Chard, was riding towards
his home that way, and saw, just before him, on the side of the hill,
a great company of people, that seemed to him like country folks
assembled as at a fair. There were all sorts of commodities, to his
appearance, as at our ordinary fairs; pewterers, shoemakers, pedlars,
with all kind of trinkets, fruit, and drinking-booths. He could not
remember anything which he had usually seen at fairs but what he saw
there. It was once in his thoughts that it might be some fair for
Chestonford, there being a considerable one at some time of the year;
but then again he considered that it was not the season for it. He
was under very great surprise, and admired what the meaning of what
he saw should be. At length it came into his mind what he had heard
concerning the Fairies on the side of that hill, and it being near the
road he was to take, he resolved to ride in amongst them, and see what
they were. Accordingly he put on his horse that way, and, though he
saw them perfectly all along as he came, yet when he was upon the
place where all this had appeared to him, he could discern nothing at
all, only seemed to be crowded and thrust, as when one passes through
a throng of people. All the rest became invisible to him until he came
to a little distance, and then it appeared to him again as at first.
He found himself in pain, and so hastened home; where, being arrived,
lameness seized him all on one side, which continued on him as long as
he lived, which was many years; for he was living in Comb, and gave an
account to any that inquired of this accident for more than twenty
years afterwards; and this relation I had from a person of known
honour, who had it from the man himself.

"There were some whose names I have now forgot, but they then lived at
a gentleman's house, named Comb Farm, near the place before specified:
both the man, his wife, and divers of the neighbours, assured me they
had, at many times, seen this _fair-keeping_ in the summer-time, as
they came from Tanton-market, but that they durst not adventure in
amongst them; for that every one that had done so had received great
damage by it."


                       _The Fairies' Caldron._

"In the vestry of Frensham church, in Surrey, on the north side of the
chancel, is an extraordinary great kettle or caldron, which the
inhabitants say, by tradition, was brought hither by the fairies, time
out of mind, from Borough-hill, about a mile hence. To this place, if
anyone went to borrow a yoke of oxen, money, etc., he might have it
for a year or longer, so he kept his word to return it. There is a
cave where some have fancied to hear music. In this Borough-hill is a
great stone, lying along of the length of about six feet. They went to
this stone and knocked at it, and declared what they would borrow, and
when they would repay, and a voice would answer when they should come,
and that they should find what they desired to borrow at that stone.
This caldron, with the trivet, was borrowed here after the manner
aforesaid, and not returned according to promise; and though the
caldron was afterwards carried to the stone, it could not be received,
and ever since that time no borrowing there."[343]


                      _The Cauld Lad of Hilton._

"Hilton Hall, in the vale of the Wear, was in former times the resort of
a Brownie or House-spirit called The Cauld Lad. Every night the servants
who slept in the great hall heard him at work in the kitchen, knocking
the things about if they had been set in order, arranging them if
otherwise, which was more frequently the case. They were resolved to
banish him if they could, and the spirit, who seemed to have an inkling
of their design, was often heard singing in a melancholy tone:

      Wae's me! wae's me!
      The acorn is not yet
      Fallen from the tree,
      That's to grow the wood,
      That's to make the cradle,
      That's to rock the bairn,
      That's to grow to a man,
      That's to lay me.

The servants, however, resorted to the usual mode of banishing a
Brownie: they left a green cloke and hood for him by the kitchen fire,
and remained on the watch. They saw him come in, gaze at the new
clothes, try them on, and, apparently in great delight, go jumping
and frisking about the kitchen. But at the first crow of the cock he
vanished, crying--

      Here's a cloak, and here's a hood!
      The Cauld Lad of Hilton will do no more good;

and he never again returned to the kitchen; yet it was said that he
might still be heard at midnight singing those lines in a tone of
melancholy.

There was a room in the castle long called the Cauld Lad's Room, which
was never occupied unless the castle was full of company, and within
the last century many persons of credit had heard of the midnight
wailing of the Cauld Lad, who some maintained was the spirit of a
servant whom one of the barons of Hilton had killed unintentionally in
a fit of passion."[344]

       *       *       *       *       *

In the beginning of the last century Bourne thus gives the popular
belief on this subject:

"Another part of this (winter's evening) conversation generally turns
upon Fairies. These, they tell you, have frequently been seen and heard;
nay, that there are some still living who were stolen away by them, and
confined seven years. According to the description they give of them,
who pretend to have seen them, they are in the shape of men exceeding
little: they are always clad in green, and frequent the woods and
fields. When they make cakes (which is a work they have been often heard
at), they are very noisy; and when they have done, they are full of
mirth and pastime. But generally they dance in moonlight, when mortals
are asleep, and not capable of seeing them; as may be observed on the
following morning, their dancing places being very distinguishable: for
as they dance hand in hand, and so make a circle in their dance, so next
day there will be seen rings and circles on the grass."[345]

The author of "Round about our Coalfire" says:[346]

"My grandmother has often told me of Fairies dancing upon our green,
and they were _little little creatures, clothed in green_.

"The moment any one saw them, and took notice of them, they were
struck blind of an eye. They lived under ground, and generally came
out of a mole-hill.

"They had fine music always among themselves, and danced in a
moonshiny night around, or in a ring, as one may see at this day upon
every common in England, where mushrooms grow.

"When the master and mistress were laid on their pillows, the men and
maids, if they had a game at romp, and blundered upstairs, or jumbled
a chair, the next morning every one would swear it was the fairies,
and that they heard them stamping up and down stairs all night, crying
'Water's locked! Water's locked!' when there was not water in every
pail in the kitchen."

To come to the present times. There is no stronger proof of the
neglect of what Mr Thoms has very happily designated "Folk-lore" in
this country, than the fact of there having been no account given
anywhere of the Pixies or Pisgies[347] of Devonshire and Cornwall,
till within these last few years. In the year 1836, Mrs. Bray, a lady
well known as the author of several novels, and wife of a clergyman at
Tavistock, published, in a series of letters to Robert Southey,
interesting descriptions of the part of Devonshire bordering on the
Tamar and the Tavy. In this work there is given an account of the
Pixies, from which we derive the following information:

According to the Devon peasant, the Pixies are the souls of infants
who died before they were baptised. They are of small dimensions,
generally handsome in their form. Their attire is always green.
Dancing is their chief amusement, which they perform to the music of
the cricket, the grasshopper, and the frog,--always at night; and thus
they form the fairy-rings. The Pixy-house is usually in a rock. By
moon-light, on the moor, or under the dark shade of rocks, the
Pixy-monarch, Mrs. Bray says, holds his court, where, like Titania, he
gives his subjects their several charges. Some are sent to the mines,
where they will kindly lead the miner to the richest lode, or
maliciously, by noises imitating the stroke of the hammer, and by
false fires, draw him on to where the worst ore in the mine lies, and
then laugh at his disappointment. Others are sent

      To make the maids their sluttery rue,
      By pinching them both black and blue.

On this account, says Mrs. Bray, "the good dames in this part of the
world are very particular in sweeping their houses before they go to
bed; and they will frequently place a basin of water beside the
chimney-nook, to accommodate the Pixies, who are great lovers of
water; and sometimes they requite the good deed by dropping a piece of
money into the basin. A young woman of our town, who declared she had
received the reward of sixpence for a like service, told the
circumstance to her gossips; but no sixpence ever came again, and it
was generally believed that the Pixies had taken offence by her
chattering, as they do not like to have their deeds, good or evil,
talked over by mortal tongues."

The office of some is to steal children; of others, to lead travellers
astray, as Will-o'-the-wisps, or to _Pixy-lead_ them, as it is termed.
Some will make confusion in a house by blowing out the candle, or
kissing the maids "with a smack, as they 'shriek Who's this?' as the
old poet writes, till their grandams come in and lecture them for
allowing unseemly freedoms with their bachelors." Others will make
noises in walls, to frighten people. In short, everything that is done
elsewhere by fairies, boggarts, or other like beings, is done in Devon
by the Pixies.

It is said that they will sometimes aid their favourites in spinning
their flax. "I have heard a story about an old woman in this town,"
says Mrs. Bray, "who suspected she received assistance of the above
nature; and one evening, coming suddenly into the room, she spied a
ragged little creature, who jumped out of the door. She thought she
would try still further to win the services of her elfin friend, and
so bought some smart new clothes, as big as those made for a doll.
These pretty things she placed by the side of her wheel. The Pixy
returned, and put them on; when, clapping her tiny hands, she was
heard to exclaim--

      Pixy fine, Pixy gay,
      Pixy now will run away;

and off she went. But the ungrateful little creature never spun for
the poor old woman after."

Mrs. Bray has been assured that mothers used frequently to pin their
children to their sides, to prevent their being stolen by the Pixies;
and she heard of a woman in Tavistock who avowed that her mother had a
child which was stolen by them, as she was engaged hanging out clothes
to dry in her garden. She almost broke her heart when she discovered
it; but she took great care of the changeling, which so pleased the
Pixy, that she soon after gave the woman back her child, who proved
eminently lucky in after life.

The being _Pixy-led_ is a thing very apt to befall worthy yeomen
returning at night from fair or market, especially if they sat long at
the market-table; and then, says our authority, "he will declare, and
offer to take his Bible-oath upon it, that, as sure as ever he's alive
to tell it, whilst his head was running round like a mill-wheel, he
heard with his own ears they bits of Pisgies a-laughing and
a-_tacking_ their hands, all to see he led-astray, and never able to
find the right road, though he had travelled it scores of times long
agone, by night or by day, as a body might tell." Mr. Thoms, too, was
told by a Devon girl, who had often heard of the Pixies, though she
had never seen any, that "she once knew a man who, one night, could
not find his way out of his own fields, all he could do, until he
recollected to _turn his coat_; and the moment he did so, he heard the
Pixies all fly away, up into the trees, and there they sat and
laughed. Oh! how they did laugh! But the man then soon found his way
out of the field."

This turning of the coat, or some other article of dress, is found to
be the surest remedy against Pixy-illusion. Mrs. Bray says that the
old folk in Tavistock have recourse to it as a preventive against
being _Pixy-led_, if they have occasion to go out after sun-down. It
appears to have been formerly in use in other parts of England also;
for Bishop Corbet thus notices it in his "Iter Boreale:"

                                  William found
      A mean for our deliverance, _Turne your cloakes_
      Quoth hee, for Pucke is busy in these oakes;
      If ever wee at Bosworth will be found
      Then _turne your cloakes_, for this is fairy ground.

In Scandinavia, also, we learn the remedy against being led astray by
the Lygtemand, Lyktgubhe, or Will-o'-the-Wisp, is to turn one's cap
inside out.

Mrs. Bray gives, in addition, the following legends, which we have
taken the liberty of abridging a little.


                          _The Pixy-Labour._

One night, about twelve o'clock in the morning, as the good folks say,
who tell this good tale, Dame ---- the _sage femme_ of Tavistock, had
just got comfortably into bed, when rap, rap, rap, came on her cottage
door, with such bold and continued noise, that there was a sound of
authority in every individual knock. Startled and alarmed by the call,
she arose from her bed, and soon learnt that the summons was a hasty
one to bid her attend on a patient who needed her help. She opened her
door, when the summoner appeared to be a strange, squint-eyed, little,
ugly old fellow, who had a look, as she said, very like a certain dark
personage, who ought not at all times to be called by his proper name.
Not at all prepossessed in favour of the errand by the visage of the
messenger, she nevertheless could not, or dared not, resist the
command to follow him straight, and attend on "his wife."

"Thy wife!" thought the good dame; "Heaven forgive me, but as sure as
I live I be going to the birth of a little divil." A large coal-black
horse, with eyes like balls of fire, stood at the door. The
ill-looking old fellow, without more ado, whisked her up on a high
pillion in a minute, seated himself before her, and away went horse
and riders as if sailing through the air rather than trotting on the
ground. How she got to the place of her destination she could not
tell; but it was a great relief to her fears when she found herself
set down at the door of a neat cottage, saw a couple of tidy children,
and remarked her patient to be a decent looking woman, having all
things about her fitting the time and occasion. A fine bouncing babe
soon made its appearance, who seemed very bold on its entry into life,
for it gave the good dame a box on the ear, as, with the coaxing and
cajolery of all good old nurses, she declared the "sweet little thing
to be very like its father." The mother said nothing to this, but gave
nurse a certain ointment, with directions that she should _strike_ (i.
e. _rub_) the child's eyes with it. The nurse performed her task,
considering what it could be for. She thought that, as no doubt it was
a good thing, she might just as well try it upon her own eyes as well
as those of the baby; so she made free to _strike_ one of them by way
of trial, when, O ye powers of fairy land! what a change was there!

The neat, but homely cottage, and all who were in it, seemed all on a
sudden to undergo a mighty transformation; some for the better, some for
the worse. The new-made mother appeared as a beautiful lady attired in
white; the babe was seen wrapped in swaddling clothes of a silvery
gauze. It looked much prettier than before, but still maintained the
elfish cast of the eye, like his father, whilst two or three children
more had undergone a strange metamorphosis. For there sat on either side
the bed's head, a couple of little flat-nosed imps, who with "mops and
mows," and with many a grimace and grin, were busied to no end in
scratching their own polls, or in pulling the fairy lady's ears with
their long and hairy paws. The dame who beheld all this, fearing she
knew not what, in the house of enchantment, got away as fast as she
could, without saying one word about _striking_ her own eye with the
magic ointment and what she had seen. The sour-looking old fellow once
more handed her up on the coal-black-horse, and sent her home in a _whip
sissa_[348] much faster than she came.

On the next market-day, when she sallied forth to sell her eggs, she
saw the same old fellow busy pilfering sundry articles from stall to
stall, and going up to him she enquired about his wife and child.
"What!" exclaimed he, "do you see me to-day?" "See you! to be sure I
do, as plain as I see the sun in the sky; and I see you are busy,
too." "Do you?" says he, "and pray with which eye do you see all
this?" "With the right eye to be sure."

"The ointment! the ointment!" cried he. "Take that, for meddling with
what did not belong to you; you shall see me no more."

He struck her eye as he spoke, and from that hour till the day of her
death she was blind of that eye.


                          _Pixy-Vengeance._

Two serving-girls in Tavistock said that the Pixies were very kind to
them, and used to drop silver for them into a bucket of fair water
which they took care to place for them in the chimney-nook every
night. Once it was forgotten, and the Pixies forthwith came up to the
girls' room, and loudly complained of the neglect. One of them, who
happened to be awake, jogged the other, and proposed going down to
rectify the omission, but she said, "for her part she would not stir
out of bed to please all the pixies in Devonshire." The other went
down and filled the bucket, in which, by the way, she found next
morning a handful of silver pennies. As she was returning, she heard
the Pixies debating about what they would do to punish the other.
Various modes were proposed and rejected; at last it was agreed to
give her a lame leg for a term of seven years, then to be cured by an
herb growing on Dartmoor, whose name of seven syllables was
pronounced in a clear and audible tone. This the girl tried by every
known means to fix in her memory. But when she awoke in the morning,
it was gone, and she could only tell that Molly was to be lame for
seven years, and then be cured by an herb with a strange name. As for
Molly, she arose dead lame, and so she continued till the end of the
period, when one day, as she was picking up a mushroom, a
strange-looking boy started up and insisted on _striking_ her leg with
a plant which he held in his hand. He did so, and she was cured and
became the best dancer in the town.


                          _Pixy-Gratitude._

An old woman who lived near Tavistock had in her garden a splendid bed
of tulips. To these the Pixies of the neighbourhood loved to resort,
and often at midnight might they be heard singing their babes to rest
among them. By their magic power they made the tulips more beautiful
and more permanent than any other tulips, and they caused them to emit
a fragrance equal to that of the rose. The old woman was so fond of
her tulips that she would never let one of them be plucked, and thus
the Pixies were never deprived of their floral bowers.

But at length the old woman died; the tulips were taken up, and the
place converted into a parsley-bed. Again, however, the power of the
Pixies was shown; the parsley withered, and nothing would grow even in
the other beds of the garden. On the other hand, they tended diligently
the grave of the old woman, around which they were heard lamenting and
singing dirges. They suffered not a weed to grow on it; they kept it
always green, and evermore in spring-time spangled with wild flowers.

       *       *       *       *       *

Thus far for the Pixies of Devon; as for the adjoining Somerset, all
we have to say is, that a good woman from that county, with whom we
were acquainted, used, when making a cake, always to draw a cross
upon it. This, she said, was in order to prevent the Vairies from
dancing on it. She described these Vairies as being very small people,
who, with the vanity natural to little personages, wear high-heeled
shoes, and if a new-made cake be not duly crossed, they imprint on it
in their capers the marks of their heels. Of the actual existence of
the Vairies, she did not seem to entertain the shadow of a doubt.

       *       *       *       *       *

In Dorset also, the Pixy-lore still lingers. The being is called _Pexy_
and _Colepexy_; the fossil belemnites are named Colepexies'-fingers; and
the fossil echini, Colepexies'-heads. The children, when naughty, are
also threatened with the Pexy, who is supposed to haunt woods and
coppices.[349]

       *       *       *       *       *

"In Hampshire," says Captain Grose, "they give the name of Colt-Pixy
to a supposed spirit or fairy, which in the shape of a horse
_wickers_, i. e. neighs, and misleads horses into bogs, etc."

The following is a Hampshire legend:[350]


                         _The Fairy-Thieves._

A farmer in Hampshire was sorely distressed by the unsettling of his
barn. However straightly over-night he laid his sheaves on the
threshing-floor for the application of the morning's flail, when
morning came, all was topsy-turvy, higgledy-piggledy, though the door
remained locked, and there was no sign whatever of irregular entry.
Resolved to find out who played him these mischievous pranks, Hodge
couched himself one night deeply among the sheaves, and watched for
the enemy. At length midnight arrived, the barn was illuminated as if
by moonbeams of wonderful brightness, and through the key-hole came
thousands of elves, the most diminutive that could be imagined. They
immediately began their gambols among the straw, which was soon in a
most admired disorder. Hodge wondered, but interfered not; but at last
the supernatural thieves began to busy themselves in a way still less
to his taste, for each elf set about conveying the crop away, a straw
at a time, with astonishing activity and perseverance. The key-hole
was still their port of egress and regress, and it resembled the
aperture of a bee-hive, on a sunny day in June. The farmer was rather
annoyed at seeing his grain vanish in this fashion, when one of the
fairies said to another in the tiniest voice that ever was heard--"_I
weat, you weat?_" Hodge could contain himself no longer. He leaped out
crying, "The devil sweat ye. Let me get among ye!" when they all flew
away so frightened that they never disturbed the barn any more.

       *       *       *       *       *

In Suffolk the fairies are called _farisees_. Not many years ago, a
butcher near Woodbridge went to a farmer's to buy a calf, and finding,
as he expressed it, that "the cratur was all o' a muck," he desired
the farmer to hang a flint by a string in the crib, so as to be just
clear of the calf's head. "Becaze," said he, "the calf is rid every
night by the _farisees_, and the stone will brush them off."[351]

       *       *       *       *       *

We once questioned a girl from Norfolk on the subject of Fairy-lore.
She said she had often heard of and even seen the _Frairies_. They
were dressed in white, and lived under the ground, where they
constructed houses, bridges, and other edifices. It is not safe, she
added, to go near them when they appear above ground.

       *       *       *       *       *

We now proceed to Yorkshire, where the Boggart and the Barguest used
to appear in by-gone days. The former, whose name we will presently
explain, is the same as the Brownie or Kobold; the latter, whose
proper name perhaps is Barn-ghaist, or Barn-spirit, keeps without, and
usually takes the form of some domestic animal.


                            _The Boggart._

In the house of an honest farmer in Yorkshire, named George
Gilbertson, a Boggart had taken up his abode. He here caused a good
deal of annoyance, especially by tormenting the children in various
ways. Sometimes their bread and butter would be snatched away, or
their porringers of bread and milk be capsized by an invisible hand;
for the Boggart never let himself be seen; at other times, the
curtains of their beds would be shaken backwards and forwards, or a
heavy weight would press on and nearly suffocate them. The parents had
often, on hearing their cries, to fly to their aid. There was a kind
of closet, formed by a wooden partition on the kitchen-stairs, and a
large knot having been driven out of one of the deal-boards of which
it was made, there remained a hole.[352] Into this one day the
farmer's youngest boy stuck the shoe-horn with which he was amusing
himself, when immediately it was thrown out again, and struck the boy
on the head. The agent was of course the Boggart, and it soon became
their sport (which they called _laking_[353] _with Boggart_) to put
the shoe-horn into the hole and have it shot back at them.

The Boggart at length proved such a torment that the farmer and his wife
resolved to quit the house and let him have it all to himself. This was
put into execution, and the farmer and his family were following the
last loads of furniture, when a neighbour named John Marshall came
up--"Well, Georgey," said he, "and soa you're leaving t'ould hoose at
last?"--"Heigh, Johnny, my lad, I'm forced tull it; for that damned
Boggart torments us soa, we can neither rest neet nor day for't. It
seems loike to have such a malice again t'poor bairns, it ommost kills
my poor dame here at thoughts on't, and soa, ye see, we're forced to
flitt loike." He scarce had uttered the words when a voice from a deep
upright churn cried out, "Aye, aye, Georgey, we're flitting ye
see."--"Od damn thee," cried the poor farmer, "if I'd known thou'd been
there, I wadn't ha' stirred a peg. Nay, nay, it's no use, Mally,"
turning to his wife, "we may as weel turn back again to t'ould hoose as
be tormented in another that's not so convenient."[354]


                        _Addlers and Menters._

An old lady in Yorkshire related as follows:--My eldest daughter
Betsey was about four years old; I remember it was on a fine summer's
afternoon, or rather evening, I was seated in this chair which I now
occupy. The child had been in the garden, she came into that entry or
passage from the kitchen (on the right side of the entry was the old
parlour-door, on the left the door of the common sitting-room; the
mother of the child was in a line with both the doors); the child,
instead of turning towards the sitting-room made a pause at the
parlour-door, which was open. She stood several minutes quite still;
at last I saw her draw her hand quickly towards her body; she set up a
loud shriek and ran, or rather flew, to me crying out "Oh! Mammy,
green man will hab me! green man will hab me!" It was a long time
before I could pacify her; I then asked her why she was so frightened.
"O Mammy," she said, "all t'parlour is full of _addlers_ and
_menters_." Elves and fairies (spectres?) I suppose she meant. She
said they were dancing, and a little man in a green coat with a gold
laced cocked hat on his head, offered to take her hand as if he would
have her as his partner in the dance. The mother, upon hearing this,
went and looked into the old parlour, but the fairy vision had melted
into thin air. "Such," adds the narrator, "is the account I heard of
this vision of fairies. The person is still alive who witnessed or
supposed she saw it, and though a well-informed person, still
positively asserts the relation to be strictly true.[355]

       *       *       *       *       *

Ritson, who was a native of the bishopriek of Durham, tells us[356] that
the fairies frequented many parts of it; that they were described as
being of the smallest size, and uniformly habited in green. They could,
however, change their size and appearance. "A woman," he says, "who had
been in their society challenged one of the guests whom she espied in
the market selling fairy-butter.[357] This freedom was deeply resented,
and cost her the eye she first saw him with. Some one informed him that
an acquaintance of his in Westmoreland, wishing to see a fairy, was told
that on such a day on the side of such a hill, he should be gratified.
He went, and there, to use his own words, "the hobgoblin stood before
him in the likeness of a green-coat lad," but vanished instantly. This,
he said, the man told him. A female relation of his own told Mr. Ritson
of Robin Goodfellow's, it would seem, thrashing the corn, churning the
butter, drinking the milk, etc., and when all was done, lying before the
fire "_like a great rough hurgin_ (hugging?) _bear_."[358]

The Barguest used also to appear in the shape of a mastiff-dog and
other animals, and terrify people with his _skrikes_ (shrieks). There
was a Barguest named the Picktree Brag, whose usual form was that of a
little galloway, "in which shape a farmer, still or lately living
thereabouts, reported that it had come to him one night as he was going
home; that he got upon it and rode very quietly till it came to a great
pond, to which it ran and threw him in, and _went laughing away_."

       *       *       *       *       *

In Northumberland the belief in the fairies is not yet extinct. The
writer from whom we derive the following legends tells us[359] that he
knew an old man whose dog had _pointed_ a troop of fairies,[360] and
though he could not see them he plainly heard their music sounding like
a fiddle and a _very small_ pair of pipes. He also tells us, that many
years ago a girl who lived near Nether Witton, as she was returning from
milking with her pail on her head, saw the fairies playing in the
fields, and though she pointed them out to her companions they could not
see them. The reason it seemed was her _weise_ or pad for bearing the
pail on her head was composed of four-leaved clover, which gives the
power of seeing fairies. Spots are pointed out in sequestered places as
the favourite haunts of the elves. A few miles from Alnwick is a
fairy-ring, round which if people run more than nine times, some evil
will befall them. The children constantly run this number, but nothing
will induce them to venture a tenth run.


                        _The Fary Nurseling._

A cottager and his wife residing at Nether Witton were one day visited
by a _fary_ and his spouse with their young child, which they wished
to leave in their charge. The cottager agreed to take care of the
child for a certain period when it had to be taken thence. The fary
gave the man a box of ointment with which to anoint the child's eyes;
but he had not on any account to touch himself with it, or some
misfortune would befal him. For a long time he and his wife were very
careful to avoid the dangerous unction; but one day when his wife was
out curiosity overcame his prudence, and he anointed his eyes without
any noticeable effect; but after a while, when walking through Long
Horsley Fair, he met the male fary and accosted him. He started back
in amazement at the recognition; but instantly guessing the truth,
blew on the eyes of the cottager, and instantly blinded him. The child
was never more seen.


                          _The Fary Labour._

Another tale relates that a messenger having visited a country midwife
or _howdie_ requested her professional assistance in a case where so
much secrecy was required that she must be conducted to and from the
destined place blindfolded; she at first hesitated, but her scruples
were overcome by a handsome present, the promise of a future reward,
and assurance of perfect personal safety. She then submitted to the
required condition, mounted behind the messenger on a fleet charger,
and was carried forward in an unaccountable manner. The journey was
not of long continuance, the steed halted, she dismounted, and was
conducted into a cottage where the bandage was removed from her eyes;
everything appeared neat and comfortable. She was shown the woman "in
the straw," and performed her office; but when ready to dress the
babe, an old woman, (who, according to the narration, appears to have
been the nurse,) put a box of ointment into her hand, requiring her to
anoint the child all over with it, but to be careful that it did not
touch her own person; she prudently complied, though wondering at the
motive. Whilst this operation was going on, she felt an itching in one
of her eyes, and in an unguarded moment rubbed it with a finger which
had touched the mysterious ointment. And now a new scene forced itself
upon her astonished vision, and she saw everything in a different
light; instead of the neat cottage, she perceived the large
overhanging branches of an ancient oak, whose hollow and moss-grown
trunk she had before mistaken for the fire place, glowworms supplied
the place of lamps, and, in short, she found herself in the abode of a
family of faries, with faries was she surrounded, and one of their
number reposed on her lap. She however retained her self-possession,
finished her task, and was conducted homeward in the same manner as
she was brought. So far all went well, and the _howdie_ might have
carried the secret to her grave, but in after time, on a market-day
(in what town the legend saith not,) forgetful of her former caution,
she saw the old nurse among the countrywomen, gliding about from one
basket to another, passing a little wooden scraper along the rolls of
butter, and carefully collecting the particles thus purloined into a
vessel hung by her side. After a mutual but silent recognition, the
nurse addressed her thus, "Which eye do you see me with?" "With this,"
innocently answered the other. No sooner had she spoken than a puff
from the withering breath of her unearthly companion extinguished the
ill-fated orb for ever, and the hag instantly vanished.

       *       *       *       *       *

Another version says the Doctor is presented with a box of eye-salve
by his conductor; on using it he sees a splendid portico in the side
of a steep hill, through this he is shown into the faries' hall in the
interior of the mountain: he performs his office, and on coming out
receives a second box; he rubs one eye, and with it sees the hill in
its natural shape; then thinking to cheat the devil, feigns to rub the
other, and gallops off. Afterwards he sees the fary's husband stealing
corn in the market, when similar consequences befal him as those which
occurred unto the woman.


                              _Ainsel._

A widow and her son, a little boy, lived together in a cottage in or
near the village of Rothley, Northumberland. One winter's evening the
child refused to go to bed with his mother, as he wished to sit up for
a while longer, "for," said he, "I am not sleepy." The mother finding
remonstrance in vain, at last told him that if he sat up by himself
the faries would most certainly come and take him away. The boy
laughed as his mother went to bed, leaving him sitting by the fire; he
had not been there long, watching the fire and enjoying its cheerful
warmth, till a beautiful little figure, about the size of a child's
doll, descended the chimney and alighted on the hearth! The little
fellow was somewhat startled at first, but its prepossessing smile as
it paced to and fro before him soon overcame his fears, and he
inquired familiarly, "What do they ca' thou?" "Ainsel," answered the
little thing haughtily, at the same time retorting the question, "And
what do they ca' _thou_?" "_My_ ainsel'," answered the boy; and they
commenced playing together like two children newly acquainted. Their
gambols continued quite innocently until the fire began to grow dim;
the boy then took up the poker to stir it, when a hot cinder
accidently fell upon the foot of his playmate; her tiny voice was
instantly raised to a most terrific roar, and the boy had scarcely
time to crouch into the bed behind his mother, before the voice of the
old fary-mother was heard shouting, "Who's done it? Who's done it?"
"Oh! it was my ainsel!" answered the daughter. "Why, then," said the
mother, as she kicked her up the chimney, "what's all this noise for:
there's nyon (_i.e._ no one) to blame."

       *       *       *       *       *

Such is the sum of what we have been able to collect respecting the
popular fairy-lore of England, the largest and most complete
collection that, to our knowledge, has ever been made. We might
venture to add that little more is ever likely to be collected, for
the sounds of the cotton-mill, the steam-engine, and, more than all,
the whistle of the railway train, more powerful than any exorcists,
have banished, or soon will banish, the fairy tribes from all their
accustomed haunts, and their name and their exploits will in future be
found in works like the present rather than in village tradition.

       *       *       *       *       *

As the merry spirit, Puck, is so prominent an actor in the scenes
forming our next division, this may be deemed no unfitting place for
the consideration of his various appellations; such as Puck, Robin
Good-fellow, Robin Hood, Hobgoblin.

Puck is evidently the same with the old word _Pouke_,[361] the
original meaning of which would seem to be devil, demon, or evil
spirit. We first meet with it in the Vision of Piers Ploughman, where
it undoubtedly signifies 'the grand adversary of God and man.'

When, in this poem,[362] the Seer beholds Abraham, the personification
of Faith, with his "wide clothes," within which lay a Lazar,

      Amonges patriarkes and prophetes,
      Pleying togideres,

and asks him what was there,

      Loo! quod he, and leet me see.
      Lord mercy! I seide;
      This is a present of muche pris,
      What prynce shal it have?
      It is a precious present, quod he,
      Ac the _pouke_ it hath attached,
      And me theremyde, quod that man,
      May no wed us quyte,

      Ne no buyrn be oure borgh,
      Ne bringe us from his daunger;
      Out of the _poukes pondfold_
      No maynprise may us fecche,
      Til he come that I carpe of,
      Crist is his name,
      That shall delivere us som day
      Out of the _develes_ power.

Golding also must have understood Pooke in the sense of devil, when in
the ninth book of his translation of Ovid, unauthorised however by
the original, he applies it to the Chimæra,

            The country where Chymæra, that same _pooke_
      Hath goatish body, lion's head and brist, and dragon's tayle.

Spenser employs the word, and he clearly distinguishes it from
hob-goblin:

      Ne let housefires nor lightnings helpless harms,
      Ne let the _pouke_[363] nor other evil sprites,
      Ne let mischievous witches with their charms,
      Ne let _hob-goblins_, names whose sense we see not,
      Fray us with things that be not.--_Epithalamion_, v. 340.

These terms are also distinguished in the poem named The Scourge of
Venus:

      And that they may perceive the heavens frown,
      The _poukes_ and _goblins_ pull the coverings down.

In Ben Jonson's play of The Devil is an Ass, the unlucky fiend who gives
origin to its name is called Pug, and in the same author's Sad Shepherd
the personage named Puck-hairy is, as Gifford justly observes, "not the
Fairy or Oriental Puck, though often confounded with him."[364] In
truth, it is first in Shakespeare that we find Puck confounded with the
House-spirit, and having those traits of character which are now
regarded as his very essence, and have caused his name Pug to be given
to the agile mischievous monkey, and to a kind of little dog.

We will now discuss the origin of this far-famed appellation and its
derivation.

In the Slavonic tongues, which are akin to the Teutonic, _Bôg_ is God,
and there are sleights of etymology which would identify the two
terms; the Icelandic Puki is an evil spirit, and such we have seen was
the English Pouke, which easily became Puck, Pug, and Bug; finally, in
Friesland the Kobold is called Puk, and in old German we meet with
Putz or Butz as the name of a being not unlike the original English
Puck.[365] The Devonshire fairies are called Pixies, and the Irish
have their Pooka, and the Welsh their Pwcca, both derived from Pouke
or Puck. From Bug comes the Scottish Bogle, (which Gawin Douglas
expressly distinguishes from the Brownie) and the Yorkshire
Boggart.[366] The Swedish language has the terms _spöka_, _spöke_; the
Danish _spöge_, _spögelse_, the German, _spuken_, _spuk_, all used of
spirits or ghosts, and their apparitions. Perhaps the Scottish
_pawkey_, sly, knowing, may belong to the same family of words. Akin
to Bogle was the old English term Puckle, noticed above, which is
still retained in the sense of mischievous, as in Peregrine Pickle and
Little Pickle. It has been conjectured[367] that _Picklehäring_, the
German term for zany or merry-andrew, may have been properly
_Picklehärin_, _i.e._ the hairy sprite, answering to Jonson's
Puck-hairy, and that he may have worn a vesture of hair or leaves to
be rough like the Brownie and kindred beings.

From Bug also come Bugbear, and Bugleboo, or Bugaboo. They owe their
origin probably to the Ho! Ho! Ho! given to Puck or Robin Goodfellow,
as it was to the Devil (_i.e._, Pouke) in the Mysteries. Bull-beggar
may be only a corruption of Bugbear.[368]

The following passage from a writer of the present day proves that in
some places the idea of Puck as a spirit haunting the woods and fields
is still retained. "The peasantry," says Mr. Allies,[369] "of Alfrick
and those parts of Worcestershire, say that they are sometimes what
they call _Poake-ledden_, that is, that they are occasionally waylaid
in the night by a mischievous sprite whom they call Poake, who leads
them into ditches, bogs, pools, and other such scrapes, and then sets
up a loud laugh and leaves them quite bewildered in the lurch." This
is what in Devon is called being _Pixy-led_. We may observe the
likeness here to the Puck of Shakspeare and Drayton, who were both
natives of the adjoining county.

A further proof perhaps of Puck's rural and extern character is the
following rather trifling circumstance. An old name of the fungus
named _puffball_ is _puckfist_, which is plainly Puck's-fist, and not
_puff-fist_ as Nares conjectured; for its Irish name is
_Cos-a-Phooka_, or Pooka's-foot, _i.e._, Puck's-foot. We will add by
the way, that the Anglo-Saxon [Old English: Wulfes-fist], Wolf's-fist,
is rendered in the dictionaries toadstool, mushroom, and we cannot
help suspecting that as wolf and elf were sometimes confounded, and
wolf and fist are, in fact, incompatible terms, this was originally
[Old English: Ælfes-fist] Elf's-fist, and that the mushrooms meant
were not the thick ugly toadstools, the "grislie todestooles," of
Spenser, but those delicate fungi called in Ireland _fairy-mushrooms_,
and which perhaps in England also were ascribed to the fairies.[370]

So much then for Puck; we will now consider some other terms.

       *       *       *       *       *

Robin Goodfellow, of whom we have given above a full account, is
evidently a domestic spirit, answering in name and character to the
Nisse God-dreng of Scandinavia, the Knecht Ruprecht, _i.e._, Robin of
Germany. He seems to unite in his person the Boggart and Barguest of
Yorkshire.

Hob-goblin is, as we have seen, another name of the same spirit.
Goblin is the French _gobelin_, German Kobold; Hob is Rob, Robin, Bob;
just as Hodge is Roger. We still have the proper names Hobbs, Hobson,
like Dix, Dixon, Wills, Wilson; by the way, Hick, _i. e._ Dick, from
Richard, still remains in Hicks, Hickson.

Robin Hood, though we can produce no instance of it, must, we think,
also have been an appellation of this spirit, and been given to the
famed outlaw of merry Sherwood, from his sportive character and his
abiding in the recesses of the greenwood. The hood is a usual
appendage of the domestic spirit.

Roguery and sportiveness are, we may see, the characteristics of this
spirit. Hence it may have been that the diminutives of proper names were
given to him, and even to the Ignis Fatuus, which in a country like
England, that was in general dry and free from sloughs and bog-holes,
was mischievous rather than dangerous.[371] But this seems to have been
a custom of our forefathers, for we find the devil himself called Old
Nick, and Old Davy is the sailor's familiar name for Death.

       *       *       *       *       *

In the Midsummer Night's Dream the fairy says to Puck "Thou Lob of
spirits;" Milton has the _lubber-fiend_, and Fletcher says,[372]
"There is a pretty tale of a witch that had a giant to be her son that
was called Lob Lie-by-the-fire." This might lead us to suppose that
_Lob_, whence _loby_ (looby), _lubbard_, _lubber_,[373] and adding the
diminutive _kin_, Lubberkin, a name of one of the clowns in Gay's
Pastorals, was an original name of some kind of spirit. We shall
presently see that the Irish name of the Leprechaun is actually
Lubberkin. As to the origin of the name we have little to say, but it
may have had a sense the very opposite of the present one of _lubber_,
and have been connected with the verb _to leap_.[374] Grimm[375] tells
of a spirit named the Good Lubber, to whom the bones of animals used
to be offered at Mansfield in Germany; but we see no resemblance
between him and our Lob of spirits; we might rather trace a connexion
with the French Lutin, Lubin.[376] The phrase of _being in_ or
_getting into Lob's Pound_ (like the "Pouke's pondfold,") is easy of
explanation, if we suppose Lob to be a sportive spirit. It is
equivalent to being _Poake-ledden_ or _Pixy-led_.

       *       *       *       *       *

Wight, answering to the German _Wicht_, seems to have been used in the
time of Chaucer for elf or fairy, most probably for such as haunted
houses, or it may have had the signification of _witch_, which is
evidently another form of it. In the Miller's Tale the carpenter says,

      I crouchè thee from elvès and from _wights_.

And

      Jesu Crist, and Seint Benedight,
      Blisse this house from every wicked _wight_![377]

Urchin is a term which, like _elf_ and such like, we still apply to
children, but which seems formerly to have been one of the
appellations of the fairies. Reginald Scott, as we have seen, places
it in his list, and we find it in the following places of the poets:--

                                    _Urchins_
      Shall for the vast of night that they may work
      All exercise on thee.--_Tempest_, i. 2.

                            His spirits hear me,
      And yet I needs must curse; but they'll not pinch.
      Fright me with _urchin-shows_, pitch me i' the mire,
      Nor lead me like a fire-brand in the dark
      Out of my way, unless he bid 'em.--_Ib._ ii. 2.

      Like _urchins_, ouphs, and fairies.
                             _Merry Wives of Windsor_, iv. 4.

      Elves, _urchins_, goblins all, and little fairyes.
                                     _Mad Pranks_, etc., p. 38.

      Great store of goblins, fairies, bugs, nightmares,
      _Urchins_, and elves, to many a house repairs.
                                      _Old Poem_, in Brand, ii. 514.

      Trip it, little _urchins_ all.
                      _Maid's Metamorphosis._

      Helping all _urchin-blasts_ and ill-luck signs,
      That the shrewd meddling elfe delights to make.
                                       _Comus_, 845.

Urchin is a hedgehog, as Stevens has justly observed,[378] and in
these lines of Titus Andronicus (ii. 3.)

      A thousand fiends, a thousand hissing snakes,
      Ten thousand swelling toads, as many _urchins_,

it probably has this sense. We still call the _echinus marinus_ the
Sea-urchin. Still as we have no analogy, but rather the contrary, for
transferring the name of an animal to the elves, we feel inclined to
look for a different origin of the term as applied to these beings. The
best or rather only hypothesis we have met with[379] is that which finds
it in the hitherto unexplained word _Orcneas_ in Beówulf, which may have
been _Orcenas_, and if, as we have supposed,[380] the Anglo-Saxons
sometimes pronounced _c_ before _e_ and _i_ in the Italian manner, we
should have, if needed, the exact word. We would also notice the old
German _urkinde_, which Grimm renders _nanus_.[381]

We now come to the poets.

In Beówulf, an Anglo-Saxon poem, supposed not to be later than the
seventh century, we meet with the following verse,

      "Eotenas, and Ylfe,
       And Orcneas."

The first of these words is evidently the same as the Iötunn or Giants
of the northern mythology; the second is as plainly its Alfar, and we
surely may be excused for supposing that the last may be the same as
its Duergar.

Layamon, in the twelfth century, in his poetic paraphrase of Wace's
Brut,[382] thus expands that poet's brief notice of the birth of
Arthur:--

                      "Ertur son nom; de sa bunte
                      Ad grant parole puis este."

      Sone swa he com on eorthe,        So soon he came on earth,
      Alven hine ivengen.               Elves received him.
      Heo bigolen that child            They enchanted that child
      Mid galdere swith stronge.        With magic most strong.
      Heo zeven him mihte               They gave him might
      To beon best alre cnihton.        To be the best of all knights.
      Heo zeven him an other thing      They gave him another thing
      That he scolde beon riche king.   That he should be a rich king.
      Heo zeven him that thridde        They gave him the third
      That he scolde longe libben.      That he should long live.
      Heo zeven that kin-bern           They gave to that kingly child
      Custen swithe gode.               Virtues most good.
      That he was mete-custi            That he was most generous
      Of alle quike monnen.             Of all men alive.
      This the Alven him zef.           This the Elves him gave.
                                                       vv. 19254: _seq._

If we have made any discovery of importance in the department of
romantic literature, it is our identification of Ogier le Danois with
the Eddaic Helgi.[383] We have shown among other points of
resemblance, that as the Norns were at the birth of the one, so the
Fées were at that of the other. With this circumstance Layamon was
apparently acquainted, and when he wished to transfer it to Arthur as
the Norns were no longer known and the Fees had not yet risen into
importance, there only remained for him to employ the Elves, which had
not yet acquired tiny dimensions. Hence then we see that the progress
was Norns, Elves, Fées, and these last held their place in the
subsequent Fairy tales of France and Italy.

These potent Elves are still superior to the popular Fairies which we
first met with in Chaucer.

Yet nothing in the passages in which he speaks of them leads to the
inference of his conceiving them to be of a diminutive stature. His
notions, indeed, on the subject seem very vague and unsettled; and
there is something like a confusion of the Elves and Fairies of
Romance, as the following passages will show:--

The Wife of Bathes Tale is evidently a Fairy tale. It thus commences:

      In oldè dayès of the king Artoúr,
      Of which that Bretons speken gret honoúr,
      All was this lond fulfilled of faërie;[384]
      The Elf-quene with her joly compagnie,
      Danced ful oft in many a grenè mede.
      This was the old opinion as I rede;
      I speke of many hundred yeres ago.
      But now can no man see non elvès mo,
      For now the gretè charitee and prayéres
      Of limitoures, and other holy freres,
      That serchen every land and every streme,
      As thikke as motès in the sonnè-beme,
      Blissing halles, chambres, kichenès, and boures,
      Citees and burghès, castles highe, and toures,
      Thropès[385] and bernès, shepenes and dairiés,
      This maketh that there ben no faëries;
      For there as wont to walken was an elf,
      There walketh now the limitour himself,
      In undermelès,[386] and in morweninges,
      And sayth his matines and his holy thinges,
      As he goth in his limitatioun.
      Women may now go safely up and down;
      In every bush and under every tree
      There is none other incubus but he,
      And he ne will don hem no dishonoúr.

The Fairies therefore form a part of the tale, and they are thus
introduced:

      The day was come that homward must he turne;
      And in his way it happed him to ride,
      In all his care, under a forest side,
      Wheras he saw upon a dancè go
      Of ladies foure and twenty, and yet mo:
      Toward this ilke dance he drow ful yerne,
      In hope that he som wisdom shuldè lerne;
      But certainly, er he came fully there,
      Yvanished was this dance, he n'iste not wher;
      No creäture saw he that barè lif,
      Save on the grene he saw sitting a wif,
      A fouler wight ther may no man devise.

These ladies bear a great resemblance to the Elle-maids of
Scandinavia. We need hardly inform our readers that this "foul wight"
becomes the knight's deliverer from the imminent danger he is in, and
that, when he has been forced to marry her, she is changed into a
beautiful young maiden. But who or what she was the poet sayeth not.

In the Marchantes Tale we meet the Faerie attendant on Pluto and
Proserpina, their king and queen, a sort of blending of classic and
Gothic mythology:

                                  for to tell
      The beautee of the gardin, and the well
      That stood under a laurer alway grene;
      Ful often time he Pluto, and his quene
      Proserpina, and alle hir faërie[387]
      Disporten hem, and maken melodie
      About that well, and daunced, as men told.

Again, in the same Tale:

      And so befel in that bright morwe tide,
      That, in the gardin, on the ferther side,
      Pluto, that is the king of Faërie,
      And many a ladye in his compagnie,
      Folwing his wif, the quene Proserpina,
      Which that he ravisshed out of Ethná,
      While that she gadred floures in the mede,
      (In Claudian ye may the story rede,
      How that hire in his grisely carte he fette);
      This king of Faërie adoun him sette
      Upon a benche of turvès, fresh and grene.


In the conversation which ensues between these august personages,
great knowledge of Scripture is displayed; and the queen, speaking of
the "sapient prince," passionately exclaims--

      I setè nat of all the vilanie
      That he of women wrote a boterflie;
      I am a woman nedès moste I speke,
      Or swell unto that time min hertè breke.

Some might suspect a mystery in the queen's thus emphatically styling
herself a woman, but we lay no stress upon it, as Faire Damoselle
Pertelote, the hen, who was certainly less entitled to it, does the
same.

In the Man of Lawes Tale the word Elfe is employed, but whether as
equivalent to witch or fairy is doubtful.

      This lettre spake, the quene delivered was
      Of so horríble a fendliche creätúre,
      That in the castle, non so hardy was,
      That any whilè dorste therein endure.
      The mother was an _elfe_ by áventure,
      Y come, by charmès or by sorcerie,
      And everich man hateth hire compagnie.[388]

The Rime of Sir Thopas has been already considered as belonging to
romance.

It thus appears that the works of manners-painting Chaucer give very
little information respecting the popular belief in Fairies of his
day. Were it not for the sly satire of the passage, we might be apt to
suspect that, like one who lived away from the common people, he was
willing to represent the superstition as extinct--"But now can no man
see non elves mo." The only trait that he gives really characteristic
of the popular elves is their love of dancing.

In the poets that intervene between Chaucer and the Maiden Reign, we
do not recollect to have noticed anything of importance respecting
Fairies, except the employment, already adverted to, of that term, and
that of Elves, by translators in rendering the Latin _Nymphæ_. Of the
size of these beings, the passages in question give no information.

But in Elizabeth's days, "Fairies," as Johnson observes, "were much in
fashion; common tradition had made them familiar, and Spenser's poem had
made them great." A just remark, no doubt, though Johnson fell into the
common error of identifying Spenser's Fairies with the popular ones.

The three first books of the Faerie Queene were published in 1590,
and, as Warton remarks, Fairies became a familiar and fashionable
machinery with the poets and poetasters. Shakspeare, well acquainted,
from the rural habits of his early life, with the notions of the
peasantry respecting these beings, and highly gifted with the
prescient power of genius, saw clearly how capable they were of being
applied to the production of a species of the wonderful, as pleasing,
or perhaps even more so, than the classic gods; and in the
Midsummer-Night's Dream he presented them in combination with the
heroes and heroines of the mythic age of Greece. But what cannot the
magic wand of genius effect? We view with undisturbed delight the
Elves of Gothic mythology sporting in the groves of Attica, the
legitimate haunts of Nymphs and Satyrs.

Shakspeare, having the Faerie Queene before his eyes, seems to have
attempted a blending of the Elves of the village with the Fays of
romance. His Fairies agree with the former in their diminutive
stature,--diminished, indeed, to dimensions inappreciable by village
gossips,--in their fondness for dancing, their love of cleanliness,
and their child-abstracting propensities. Like the Fays, they form a
community, ruled over by the princely Oberon and the fair
Titania.[389] There is a court and chivalry: Oberon would have the
queen's sweet changeling to be a "Knight of his train to trace the
forest wild." Like earthly monarchs, he has his jester, "the shrewd
and knavish sprite, called Robin Good-fellow."

The luxuriant imagination of the poet seemed to exult in pouring forth
its wealth in the production of these new actors on the mimic scene, and
a profusion of poetic imagery always appears in their train. Such lovely
and truly British poetry cannot be too often brought to view; we will
therefore insert in this part of our work several of these gems of our
Parnassus, distinguishing by a different character such acts and
attributes as appear properly to belong to the Fairy of popular belief.


                       MIDSUMMER-NIGHT'S DREAM.

                          ACT II.--SCENE I.

                         _Puck and a Fairy._

  _Puck._ How now, spirit! whither wander you?

  _Fai._  Over hill, over dale,
           Thorough bush, thorough briar,
        Over park, over pale,
           Thorough flood, thorough fire.
        I do wander every where,
        Swifter than the moonès sphere,
        And I serve the Fairy-queen,
        To dew her orbs upon the green.
        The cowslips tall her pensioners be;
        In their gold coats spots you see.
        Those be rubies, fairy favours,
        In those freckles live their savours.
      I must go seek some dew-drops here,
      And hang a pearl in every cowslip's ear.[390]
      Farewell, thou lob of spirits! I'll be gone;
      Our queen and all her elves come here anon.

  _Puck._ The king doth keep his revels here to-night.
      Take heed the queen come not within his sight;
      For Oberon is passing fell and wroth,
      Because that she, as her attendant, hath
      A lovely boy stolen from an Indian king,--
      She never had so sweet a changeling;
  And jealous Oberon would have the child
  Knight of his train, to trace the forests wild;
  But she, perforce, withholds the loved boy,
  Crowns him with flowers, and makes him all her joy
  And now they never meet in grove or green,
  By fountain clear, or spangled star-light sheen,
  But they do square; that all their elves, for fear,
  Creep into acorn cups, and hide them there.

   _Fai._ Either I mistake your shape and making quite,
  Or else you are that shrewd and knavish sprite
  Call'd Robin Good-fellow. Are you not he
  _That frights the maidens of the villagery,
  Skims milk, and sometimes labours in the quern,
  And bootless makes the breathless housewife churn;
  And sometimes makes the drink to bear no barm;
  Misleads night-wanderers, laughing at their harm?
  Those that Hob-goblin call you, and sweet Puck,
  You do their work, and they shall have good luck_,
  Are not you he?

   _Puck._       Thou speakest aright,
  I am that merry wanderer of the night.
  I jest to Oberon, and make him smile,
  _When I a fat and bean-fed horse beguile,
  Neighing in likeness of a filly-foal_;
  And sometimes lurk I in a gossip's bowl,
  In very likeness of a roasted crab,
  And when she drinks, against her lips I bob,
  And on her withered dewlap pour the ale.
  The wisest aunt, telling the saddest tale,
  Sometimes for three-foot stool mistaketh me:
  Then slip I from her bum,--down topples she,
  And _tailor_ cries, and falls into a cough;
  And then the whole quire hold their hips and loffe,
  And waxen in their mirth, and neeze, and swear
  A merrier hour was never wasted there.

The haunts of the Fairies on earth are the most rural and romantic
that can be selected. They meet

                  On hill, in dale, forest or mead,
      By paved fountain, or by rushy brook,
      Or on the beached margent of the sea,
      To dance their ringlets to the whistling wind.

And the place of Titania's repose is

              A bank whereon the wild thyme blows,
      Where oxlips and the nodding violet grows,
      Quite over-canopied with lush woodbine,
      With sweet musk-roses, and with eglantine.
      There sleeps Titania, some time of the night
      Lull'd in these flowers with dances and delight;
      And there the snake throws her enamell'd skin,
      Weed wide enough to wrap a fairy in.

The powers of the poet are exerted to the utmost, to convey an idea of
their minute dimensions; and time, with them, moves on lazy pinions.
"Come," cries the queen,

      Come now, a roundel and a fairy song,
      Then for the third part of a minute hence:
      Some to kill cankers in the musk-rose buds;
      Some war with rear-mice for their leathern wings,
      To make my small elves coats.

And when enamoured of Bottom, she directs her Elves that they should

      Hop in his walks and gambol in his eyes;
      Feed him with apricocks and dewberries,
      With purple grapes, green figs, and mulberries.
      The honey-bags steal from the humble-bees,
      And for night-tapers crop their waxen thighs,
      And light them at the fiery glow-worm's eyes;
      To have my love to bed, and to arise
      And pluck the wings from painted butterflies,
      To fan the moon-beams from his sleeping eyes.

Puck goes "swifter than arrow from the Tartar's bow;" he says, "he'll
put a girdle round about the earth in forty minutes;" and "We," says
Oberon--

      We the globe can compass soon,
      Swifter than the wandering moon.

They are either not mortal, or their date of life is indeterminately
long; they are of a nature superior to man, and speak with contempt of
human follies. By night they revel beneath the light of the moon and
stars, retiring at the approach of "Aurora's harbinger,"[391] but not
compulsively like ghosts and "damned spirits."

      But we (says Oberon) are spirits of another sort;
      I with the morning's love have oft made sport,
      And like a forester the groves may tread,
      Even till the eastern gate, all fiery red,
      Opening on Neptune with fair blessed beams,
      Turns into yellow gold his salt-green streams.

In the Merry Wives of Windsor, we are introduced to mock-fairies,
modelled, of course, after the real ones, but with such additions as
the poet's fancy deemed itself authorised to adopt.

Act IV., Scene IV., Mrs. Page, after communicating to Mrs. Ford her
plan of making the fat knight disguise himself as the ghost of Herne
the hunter, adds--

      Nan Page, my daughter, and my little son,
      And three or four more of their growth, we'll dress
      Like urchins, ouphes,[392] and fairies, green and white,
      With rounds of waxen tapers on their heads,
      And rattles in their hands.

             *       *       *       *       *

      Then let them all encircle him about,
      And, _fairy-like_, _to-pinch_[393] the unclean knight,
      And ask him why that hour of fairy revel
      In their so sacred paths he dares to tread
      In shape profane.

And

      My Nan shall be the queen of all the fairies,
      Finely attired in a robe of white.

In Act V., Scene V., the plot being all arranged, the Fairy rout
appears, headed by Sir Hugh, as a Satyr, by ancient Pistol as
Hobgoblin, and by Dame Quickly.

    _Quick._ Fairies black, grey, green, and white,
  You moonshine revellers and shades of night,
  You orphan heirs of fixed destiny,[394]
  Attend your office and your quality.
  Crier Hob-goblin, make the fairy O-yes.

    _Pist._ Elves, list your names! silence, you airy toys!
  _Cricket_, to Windsor chimneys shalt thou leap;
  _Where fires thou findest unraked, and hearths unswept,
  There pinch the maids as blue as bilberry:
  Our radiant queen, hates sluts and sluttery_.

    _Fals._ They are fairies; _he that speaks to them shall die_.
  I'll wink and couch; no man their works must eye.

    _Pist._ Where's Bead?--Go you, and where you find a maid
  That, ere she sleep, has thrice her prayers said,
  Raise up the organs of her fantasy,
  Sleep she as sound as careless infancy;
  But those as sleep and think not on their sins,
  Pinch them, arms, legs, backs, shoulders, sides, and shins.

    _Quick._ About, about,
  Search Windsor castle, elves, within and out;
  _Strew good luck, ouphes, on every sacred room_,
  That it may stand till the perpetual doom,
  In state as wholesome as in state 'tis fit;
  Worthy the owner, and the owner it.
  The several chairs of order look you scour
  With juice of balm and every precious flower;
  Each fair instalment, coat, and several crest,
  With loyal blazon evermore be blest;
  _And nightly, meadow-fairies, look, you sing_,
  Like to the Garter's compass, _in a ring:
  The expressure that it bears green let it be,
  More fertile-fresh than all the field to see_;
  And "Hony soit qui mal y pense" write,
  In emerald tufts, flowers, purple, blue, and white;
  Like sapphire, pearl, and rich embroidery,
  Buckled below fair knighthood's bending knee:
  Fairies use flowers for their charactery.
  Away--disperse!--but, till 'tis one o'clock,
  Our dance of custom, round about the oak
  Of Herne the hunter, let us not forget.

    _Eva._ Pray you, lock hand in hand, yourselves in order set,
  And twenty glow-worms shall our lanterns be,
  To guide our measure round about the tree;
  But stay, I smell a man of middle earth.[395]

    _Fal._ Heaven defend me from that Welsh fairy, lest
  He transform me to a piece of cheese.

    _Pist._ Vile worm! thou wast o'erlook'd even in thy birth.

    _Quick._ With trial fire touch we his finger-end:
  If he be chaste the flame will back descend,
  And turn him to no pain; but if he start,
  It is the flesh of a corrupted heart.

    _Pist._ A trial, come.

    _Eva._ Come, will this wood take fire?

    _Fal._ Oh, oh, oh!

    _Quick._ Corrupt, corrupt, and tainted in desire:
  About him, fairies, sing a scornful rime;
  And, as you trip, still pinch him to your time.

In Romeo and Juliet the lively and gallant Mercutio mentions a fairy
personage, who has since attained to great celebrity, and completely
dethroned Titania, we mean Queen Mab,[396] a dame of credit and renown
in Faëry.

"I dreamed a dream to-night," says Romeo.

"O then," says Mercutio:--

      O then, I see Queen Mab hath been with you.
      She is the fairies' midwife; and she comes,
      In shape no bigger than an agate-stone
      On the forefinger of an alderman,
      Drawn with a team of little atomies,
      Over men's noses as they lie asleep:
      Her waggon-spokes made of long spinners' legs;
      The cover, of the wings of grasshoppers;
      The traces, of the smallest spider's web;
      The collars of the moonshine's watery beams:
      Her whip of cricket's bone; the lash of film:
      Her waggoner, a small gray-coated gnat,
      Not half so big as a round little worm
      Prick'd from the lazy finger of a maid:
      Her chariot is an empty hazel-nut,
      Made by the joiner squirrel or old grub,
      Time out of mind the fairies' coachmakers.

             *       *       *       *       *

                          This is that very Mab
      _That plats the manes of horses in the night;
      And bakes the elf-locks in foul sluttish hairs,
      Which once untangled, much misfortune bode.
      This is the hag,[397] when maids lie on their backs,
      That presses them_.

In an exquisite and well-known passage of the Tempest, higher and more
awful powers are ascribed to the Elves: Prospero declares that by
their aid he has "bedimmed the noon-tide sun;" called forth the winds
and thunder; set roaring war "'twixt the green sea and the azured
vault;" shaken promontories, and plucked up pines and cedars. He thus
invokes them:--

      Ye elves of hills, brooks, standing lakes, and groves;[398]
      And ye, that on the sands with printless foot
      Do chase the ebbing Neptune, and do fly him,
      When he comes back; you demi-puppets that
      _By moonshine do the green-sour ringlets make,
      Whereof the ewe not bites; and you whose pastime
      Is to make midnight-mushrooms_, that rejoice
      To hear the solemn curfew.

The other dramas of Shakspeare present a few more characteristic
traits of the Fairies, which should not be omitted.

      Some say that ever 'gainst that season comes
      Wherein our Saviour's birth is celebrated,
      This bird of dawning singeth all night long;
      And then they say no spirit dares stir abroad;
      The nights are wholesome; then no planet strikes,
      _No fairy takes_,[399] no witch hath power to charm,
      So hallow'd and so gracious is that time.
                                   _Hamlet_, Act. i. sc. 1.

King Henry IV. wishes it could be proved,

      _That some night-tripping fairy had exchanged
      In cradle-clothes our children where they lay_,
      And called mine--Percy, his--Plantagenet!

The old shepherd in the Winter's Tale, when he finds Perdita, exclaims,

    It was told me, I should be rich, by the fairies: this is some
    changeling.

And when his son tells him it is gold that is within the
"bearing-cloth," he says,

    This is fairy-gold, boy, and 'twill prove so. We are lucky, boy,
    and _to be so still requires nothing but secresy_.[400]

In Cymbeline, the innocent Imogen commits herself to sleep with these
words:--

      To your protection I commit me, gods!
      _From fairies and the tempters of the night,
      Guard me_, beseech ye!

And when the two brothers see her in their cave, one cries--

      But that it eats our victuals, I should think
      Here were a fairy.

And thinking her to be dead, Guiderius declares--

      If he be gone, he'll make his grave a bed;
      With female fairies will his tomb be haunted,
      And worms will not come to thee.

       *       *       *       *       *

The Maydes Metamorphosis of Lylie was acted in 1600, the year the
oldest edition we possess of the Midsummer Night's Dream was printed.
In Act II. of this piece, Mopso, Joculo, and Frisio are on the stage,
and "Enter the Fairies singing and dancing."

      By the moon we sport and play,
      With the night begins our day;
      As we dance the dew doth fall--
      Trip it, little urchins all,
      Lightly as the little bee,
      Two by two, and three by three;
      And about go we, and about go we.

    _Jo._ What mawmets are these?

    _Fris._ O they be the faieries that haunt these woods.

    _Mop._ O we shall be pinched most cruelly!

    _1st Fai._ Will you have any music, sir?

    _2d Fai._ Will you have any fine music?

    _3d Fai._ Most dainty music?

    _Mop._ We must set a face on it now; there is no flying.
  No, sir, we very much thank you.

    _1st Fai._ O but you shall, sir.

    _Fris._ No, I pray you, save your labour.

    _2d Fai._ O, sir! it shall not cost you a penny.

    _Jo._ Where be your fiddles?

    _3d Fai._ You shall have most dainty instruments, sir?

    _Mop._ I pray you, what might I call you?

    _1st Fai._ My name is Penny.

    _Mop._ I am sorry I cannot purse you.

    _Fris._ I pray you, sir, what might I call you?

    _2d Fai._ My name is Cricket.

    _Fris._ I would I were a chimney for your sake.

    _Jo._ I pray you, you pretty little fellow, what's your name?

    _3d Fai._ My name is little little Prick.

    _Jo._ Little little Prick? O you are a dangerous faierie!
  I care not whose hand I were in, so I were out of yours.

    _1st Fai._ I do come about the coppes.
                    Leaping upon flowers' toppes;
                    Then I get upon a fly,
                    She carries me about the sky,
                    And trip and go.

    _2d Fai._  When a dew-drop falleth down,
                    And doth light upon my crown.
                    Then I shake my head and skip,
                    And about I trip.

    _3d Fai._  When I feel a girl asleep,
                    Underneath her frock I peep,
                    There to sport, and there I play,
                    Then I bite her like a flea,
                    And about I skip.

    _Jo._      I thought where I should have you.

    _1st Fai._ Will't please you dance, sir?

    _Jo._      Indeed, sir, I cannot handle my legs.

    _2d Fai._  O you must needs dance and sing,
                    Which if you refuse to do,
                    We will pinch you black and blue;
                    And about we go.

They all dance in a ring, and sing as followeth:--

      Round about, round about, in a fine ring a,
      Thus we dance, thus we dance, and thus we sing a;
      Trip and go, to and fro, over this green a,
      All about, in and out, for our brave queen a.

      Round about, round about, in a fine ring a,
      Thus we dance, thus we dance, and thus we sing a;
      Trip and go, to and fro, over this green a,
      All about, in and out, for our brave queen a.

      We have danced round about, in a fine ring a,
      We have danced lustily, and thus we sing a,
      All about, in and out, over this green a,
      To and fro, trip and go, to our brave queen a.

The next poet, in point of time, who employs the Fairies, is worthy,
long-slandered, and maligned Ben Jonson. His beautiful entertainment
of the Satyr was presented in 1603, to Anne, queen of James I. and
prince Henry, at Althorpe, the seat of Lord Spenser, on their way from
Edinburgh to London. As the queen and prince entered the park, a Satyr
came forth from a "little spinet" or copse, and having gazed the
"Queen and the Prince in the face" with admiration, again retired into
the thicket; then "there came tripping up the lawn a bevy of Fairies
attending on Mab, their queen, who, falling into an artificial ring,
began to dance a round while their mistress spake as followeth:"

  _Mab._ Hail and welcome, worthiest queen!
              Joy had never perfect been,
              To the nymphs that haunt this green,
              Had they not this evening seen.
              _Now they print it on the ground
              With their feet, in figures round_;
              Marks that will be ever found
              To remember this glad stound.

  _Satyr_ (_peeping out of the bush_).
              Trust her not, you bonnibell,
              She will forty leasings tell;
              I do know her pranks right well.

  _Mab._ Satyr, we must have a spell,
              For your tongue it runs too fleet.

  _Sat._ Not so nimbly as your feet,
              When about the cream-bowls sweet
              You and all your elves do meet.

(_Here he came hopping forth, and mixing himself with the Fairies,
skipped in, out, and about their circle, while they made many offers
to catch him._)

              _This is Mab, the mistress Fairy,
              That doth nightly rob the dairy;
              And can hurt or help the churning
              As she please_, without discerning.

  _1st Fai._ Pug, you will anon take warning.

  _Sat._ _She that pinches country wenches,
              If they rub not clean their benches,
              And, with sharper nail, remembers
              When they rake not up their embers;
              But if so they chance to feast her,
              In a shoe she drops a tester._

  _2d Fai._ Shall we strip the skipping jester?

  _Sat._ _This is she that empties cradles,
              Takes out children, puts in ladles_;
              Trains forth midwives in their slumber,
              With a sieve the holes to number,
              And then leads them from her burrows,
              Home through ponds and water-furrows.[401]

  _1st Fai._ Shall not all this mocking stir us?

  _Sat._ She can start our Franklin's daughters
              In her sleep with shouts and laughters;
              And on sweet St. Anna's[402] night
              Feed them with a promised sight,
              Some of husbands, some of lovers,
              Which an empty dream discovers.

  _1st Fai._ Satyr, vengeance near you hovers.

At length Mab is provoked, and she cries out,

              Fairies, pinch him black and blue.
              Now you have him make him rue.

  _Sat._ O hold, mistress Mab, I sue!

Mab, when about to retire, bestows a jewel on the Queen, and concludes
with,

      _Utter not, we you implore,
      Who did give it, nor wherefore._
      And whenever you restore
      Yourself to us you shall have more.
      Highest, happiest queen, farewell,
      But, beware you do not tell.

The splendid Masque of Oberon, presented in 1610, introduces the Fays
in union with the Satyrs, Sylvans, and the rural deities of classic
antiquity; but the Fay is here, as one of them says, not

      The coarse and country fairy,
      That doth haunt the hearth and dairy;

it is Oberon, the prince of Fairy-land, who, at the crowing of the
cock, advances in a magnificent chariot drawn by white bears, attended
by Knights and Fays. As the car advances, the Satyrs begin to leap and
jump, and a Sylvan thus speaks:--

      Give place, and silence; you were rude too late--
      This is a night of greatness and of state;
      Not to be mixed with light and skipping sport--
      A night of homage to the British court,
      And ceremony due to Arthur's chair,
      From our bright master, Oberon the Fair,
      Who with these knights, attendants here preserved
      In Fairy-land, for good they have deserved
      Of yond' high throne, are come of right to pay
      Their annual vows, and all their glories lay
      At 's feet.

Another Sylvan says,

      Stand forth, bright faies and elves, and tune your lay
      Unto his name; then let your nimble feet
      Tread subtile circles, that may always meet
      In point to him.

In the Sad Shepherd, Alken says,

      There in the stocks of trees white fays[403] do dwell,
      And span-long elves that dance about a pool,
      With each a little changeling in their arms!

The Masque of Love Restored presents us "Robin Good-fellow, he that
sweeps the hearth and the house clean, riddles for the country maids,
and does all their other drudgery, while they are at hot-cockles," and
he appears therefore with his _broom_ and his _canles_.

In Fletcher's Faithful Shepherdess we read of

      A virtuous well, about whose flowery banks
      The nimble-footed fairies dance their rounds,
      By the pale moonshine; dipping oftentimes
      Their stolen children, so to make them free
      From dying flesh and dull mortality.

And in the Little French Lawyer (iii. 1), one says, "You walk like
Robin Goodfellow all the house over, and every man afraid of you."

In Randolph's Pastoral of Amyntas, or the Impossible Dowry, a "knavish
boy," called Dorylas, makes a fool of a "fantastique sheapherd,"
Jocastus, by pretending to be Oberon, king of Fairy. In Act i., Scene
3, Jocastus' brother, Mopsus, "a foolish augur," thus addresses him:--

        _Mop._ Jocastus, I love Thestylis abominably,
      The mouth of my affection waters at her.

        _Jo._ Be wary, Mopsus, learn of me to scorn
      The mortals; choose a better match: go love
      Some fairy lady! Princely Oberon
      Shall stand thy friend, and beauteous Mab, his queen,
      Give thee a maid of honour.

        _Mop._              How, Jocastus?
      Marry a puppet? Wed a mote i' the sun?
      Go look a wife in nutshells? Woo a gnat,
      That's nothing but a voice? No, no, Jocastus,
      I must have flesh and blood, and will have Thestylis:
      A fig for fairies!

Thestylis enters, and while she and Mopsus converse, Jocastus muses.
At length he exclaims,

        _Jo._ It cannot choose but strangely please his highness.

        _The._ What are you studying of Jocastus, ha?

        _Jo._ A rare device; a masque to entertain
      His Grace of Fairy with.

        _The._                   A masque! What is't?

        _Jo._ An anti-masque of fleas, which I have taught
      To dance corrantos on a spider's thread.

             *       *       *       *       *

                    And then a jig of pismires
      Is excellent.

          _Enter_ DORYLAS. _He salutes_ MOPSUS, _and then_

        _Dor._ Like health unto the president of the jigs.
      I hope King Oberon and his joyall Mab
      Are well.

        _Jo._     They are. I never saw their Graces
      Eat such a meal before.

        _Dor._                  E'en much good do't them!

        _Jo._ They're rid a hunting.

        _Dor._                       Hare or deer, my lord?

        _Jo._ Neither. A brace of snails of the first head.


                           ACT I.--SCENE 6.

        _Jo._ Is it not a brave sight, Dorylas? Can the mortals
      Caper so nimbly?

        _Dor._           Verily they cannot.

        _Jo._ Does not King Oberon bear a stately presence?
      Mab is a beauteous empress.

        _Dor._                      Yet you kissed her
      With admirable courtship.

        _Jo._                     I do think
      There will be of Jocastus' brood in Fairy.

             *       *       *       *       *

        _The._ But what estate shall he assure upon me?

        _Jo._ A royal jointure, all in Fairy land.

             *       *       *       *       *

              Dorylas knows it.
      A curious park--

        _Dor._ Paled round about with pickteeth.

        _Jo._ Besides a house made all of mother-of-pearl,
      An ivory tennis-court.

        _Dor._ A nutmeg parlour.

        _Jo._ A sapphire dairy-room.

        _Dor._ A ginger hall.

        _Jo._ Chambers of agate.

        _Dor._ Kitchens all of crystal.

        _Am._ O admirable! This it is for certain.

        _Jo._ The jacks are gold.

        _Dor._ The spits are Spanish needles.

        _Jo._ Then there be walks--

        _Dor._ Of amber.

        _Jo._ Curious orchards--

        _Dor._ That bear as well in winter as in summer.

        _Jo._ 'Bove all, the fish-ponds, every pond is full--

        _Dor._ Of nectar. Will this please you! Every grove
      Stored with delightful birds.


                          ACT III.--SCENE 2.

                           _Dorylas says_,

      Have at Jocastus' orchard! Dainty apples,
      How lovely they look! Why these are Dorylas' sweetmeats.
      Now must I be the princely Oberon,
      And in a royal humour with the rest
      Of royal fairies attendant, go in state
      To rob an orchard. I have hid my robes
      On purpose in a hollow tree.


                          ACT III.--SCENE 4.

                  _Dorylas with a bevy of Fairies._

        _Dor._ How like you now, my Grace? Is not my countenance
      Royal and full of majesty? Walk not I
      Like the young prince of pygmies? Ha, my knaves,
      We'll fill our pockets. Look, look yonder, elves;
      Would not yon apples tempt a better conscience
      Than any we have, to rob an orchard? Ha!
      Fairies, like nymphs with child, must have the things
      They long for. You sing here a fairy catch
      In that strange tongue I taught you, while ourself
      Do climb the trees. Thus princely Oberon
      Ascends his throne of state.

        _Elves._   Nos beata Fauni proles,
                        Quibus non est magna moles,
                        Quamvis Lunam incolamus.
                        Hortos sæpe frequentamus.

                        Furto cuncta magis bella,
                        Furto dulcior puella,
                        Furto omnia decora,
                        Furto poma dulciora.

                        Cum mortales lecto jacent,
                        Nobis poma noctu placent;
                        Illa tamen sunt ingrata
                        Nisi furto sint parata.

Jocastus and his man Bromius come upon the Elves while plundering the
orchard: the latter is for employing his cudgel on the occasion, but
Jocastus is overwhelmed by the condescension of the princely Oberon in
coming to his orchard, when

      His Grace had orchards of his own more precious
      Than mortals can have any.

The Elves, by his master's permission, pinch Bromius, singing,

      Quoniam per te violamur,
      Ungues hic experiamur;
      Statim dices tibi datam
      Cutem valde variatam.

Finally, when the coast is clear, Oberon cries,

      So we are got clean off; come, noble peers
      Of Fairy, come, attend our royal Grace.
      Let's go and share our fruit with our queen Mab
      And the other dairy-maids; where of this theme
      We will discourse amidst our cakes and cream.

               Cum tot poma habeamus,
               Triumphos læti jam canamus;
               Faunos ego credam ortos,
               Tantum ut frequentent hortos.

               I domum, Oberon, ad illas,
               Quæ nos manent nunc, ancillas,
               Quarum osculemur sinum,
               Inter poma lac et vinum.

In the old play of Fuimus Troes are the following lines:[404]

      Fairies small,
      Two foot tall,
      With caps red
      On their head,
      Danse around
      On the ground.

The pastoral poets also employed the Fairy Mythology. Had they used it
exclusively, giving up the Nymphs, Satyrs, and all the rural rout of
antiquity, and joined with it faithful pictures of the scenery England
then presented, with just delineations of the manners and character of
the peasantry, the pastoral poetry of that age would have been as
unrivalled as its drama. But a blind admiration of classic models, and
a fondness for allegory, were the besetting sins of the poets. They
have, however, left a few gems in this way.

Britannia's Pastorals furnish the following passages:[405]

      Near to this wood there lay a pleasant mead,
      Where fairies often did their measures tread,
      Which in the meadows made such circles green,
      As if with garlands it had crowned been;
      Or like the circle where the signs we track,
      And learned shepherds call 't the Zodiac;
      Within one of these rounds was to be seen
      A hillock rise, where oft the fairy-queen
      At twilight sate, and did command her elves
      To pinch those maids that had not swept their shelves;
      And, further, if, by maiden's oversight,
      Within doors water was not brought at night,
      Or if they spread no table, set no bread,
      They should have nips from toe unto the head;
      And for the maid who had perform'd each thing,
      She in the water-pail bade leave a ring.
                                             _Song 2._

      Or of the faiery troops which nimbly play,
      And by the springs dance out the summer's day,
      Teaching the little birds to build their nests,
      And in their singing how to keepen rests.
                                             _Song 4._

      As men by fairies led fallen in a dream.
                                             _Ibid._

In his Shepherd's Pipe, also, Brown thus speaks of the Fairies:--

      Many times he hath been seen
      With the fairies on the green,
      And to them his pipe did sound
      While they danced in a round.
      Mickle solace they would make him,
      And at midnight often wake him
      And convey him from his room
      To a field of yellow-broom;
      Or into the meadows where
      Mints perfume the gentle air,
      And where Flora spreads her treasure;
      There they would begin their measure.
      If it chanced night's sable shrouds
      Muffled Cynthia up in clouds,
      Safely home they then would see him,
      And from brakes and quagmires free him.

But Drayton is the poet after Shakespeare for whom the Fairies had the
greatest attractions. Even in the Polyolbion he does not neglect them.
In Song xxi., Ringdale, in Cambridgeshire, says,

        For in my very midst there is a swelling ground
      About which Ceres' nymphs dance many a wanton round;
      The frisking fairy there, as on the light air borne,
      Oft run at barley-break upon the cars of corn;
      And catching drops of dew in their lascivious chases,
      Do cast the liquid pearl in one another's faces.

And in Song iv., he had spoken of

      The feasts that underground the faëry did him (Arthur) make,
      And there how he enjoyed the Lady of the Lake.

Nymphidia is a delicious piece of airy and fanciful invention. The
description of Oberon's palace in the air, Mab's amours with the
gentle Pigwiggin, the mad freaks of the jealous Oberon, the pygmy
Orlando, the mutual artifices of Puck and the Fairy maids of honour,
Hop, Mop, Pip, Trip, and Co., and the furious combat of Oberon and the
doughty Pigwiggin, mounted on their earwig chargers--present
altogether an unequalled fancy-piece, set in the very best and most
appropriate frame of metre.

It contains, moreover, several traits of traditionary Fairy lore, such
as in these lines:--

      Hence shadows, seeming idle shapes
      Of little frisking elves and apes,
      To earth do make their wanton skapes
        As hope of pastime hastes them;
      Which maids think on the hearth they see,
      When fires well near consumed be,
      There dancing hays by two and three,
        Just as their fancy casts them.[406]

      These make our girls their sluttery rue,
      By pinching them both black and blue,
      And put a penny in their shoe.
        The house for cleanly sweeping;
      And in their courses make that round,
      In meadows and in marshes found,
      Of them so call'd the fairy ground,
        Of which they have the keeping.

      These, when a child haps to be got,
      That after proves an idiot,
      When folk perceive it thriveth not,
        The fault therein to smother,
      Some silly, doating, brainless calf,
      That understands things by the half,
      Says that the fairy left this aulf,
        And took away the other.

And in these:--

      Scarce set on shore but therewithal
      He meeteth Puck, whom most men call
      Hobgoblin, and on him doth fall
        With words from frenzy spoken;
      "Ho! ho!" quoth Puck, "God save your Grace!
      Who drest you in this piteous case?
      He thus that spoiled my sovereign's face,
        I would his neck were broken.

      This Puck seems but a dreaming dolt.
      Still walking like a ragged colt,
      And oft out of a bush doth bolt,
        Of purpose to deceive us;
      And leading us, makes us to stray
      Long winter nights out of the way;
      And when we stick in mire and clay,
        He doth with laughter leave us.

In his Poet's Elysium there is some beautiful Fairy poetry, which we do
not recollect to have seen noticed any where. This work is divided into
ten Nymphals, or pastoral dialogues. The Poet's Elysium is, we are told,
a paradise upon earth, inhabited by Poets, Nymphs, and the Muses.

      The poet's paradise this is,
      To which but few can come,
      The Muses' only bower of bliss,
      Their dear Elysium.

In the eighth Nymphal,

      A nymph is married to a fay,
      Great preparations for the day,
      All rites of nuptials they recite you
      To the bridal, and invite you.

The dialogue commences between the nymphs Mertilla and Claia:--

      _M._ But will our Tita wed this fay?

      _C._ Yes, and to-morrow is the day.

      _M._ But why should she bestow herself
                Upon this dwarfish fairy elf?

      _C._ Why, by her smallness, you may find
                That she is of the fairy kind;
                And therefore apt to choose her make
                Whence she did her beginning take;
                Besides he's deft and wondrous airy,
                And of the noblest of the fairy,[407]
                Chief of the Crickets,[408] of much fame,
                In Fairy a most ancient name.

The nymphs now proceed to describe the bridal array of Tita: her
jewels are to be dew-drops; her head-dress the "yellows in the
full-blown rose;" her gown

      Of <DW29>, pink, and primrose leaves,
      Most curiously laid on in threaves;

her train the "cast slough of a snake;" her canopy composed of "moons
from the peacock's tail," and "feathers from the pheasant's head;"

      Mix'd with the plume (of so high price),
      The precious bird of paradise;

and it shall be

      Borne o'er our head (by our inquiry)
      By elfs, the fittest of the fairy.

Her buskins of the "dainty shell" of the lady-cow. The musicians are
to be the nightingale, lark, thrush, and other songsters of the grove.

      But for still music, we will keep
      The wren and titmouse, which to sleep
      Shall sing the bride when she's alone,
      The rest into their chambers gone;
      And like those upon ropes that walk
      On gossamer from stalk to stalk,
      The tripping fairy tricks shall play
      The evening of the wedding day.

Finally, the bride-bed is to be of roses; the curtains, tester, and
all, of the "flower imperial;" the fringe hung with harebells; the
pillows of lilies, "with down stuft of the butterfly;"

      For our Tita is to-day,
      To be married to a fay.

In Nymphal iii.,

      The fairies are hopping,
      The small flowers cropping,
      And with dew dropping,
        Skip thorow the greaves.

      At barley-break they play
      Merrily all the day:
      At night themselves they lay
        Upon the soft leaves.

And in Nymphal vi. the forester says,

      The dryads, hamadryads, the satyrs, and the fawns,
      Oft play at hide-and-seek before me on the lawns;
      The frisking fairy oft, when horned Cynthia shines,
      Before me as I walk dance wanton matachines.

Herrick is generally regarded as the Fairy-poet, _par excellence_;
but, in our opinion, without sufficient reason, for Drayton's Fairy
pieces are much superior to his. Indeed Herrick's Fairy-poetry is by
no means his best; and we doubt if he has anything to exceed in that
way, or perhaps equal, the light and fanciful King Oberon's Apparel of
Smith.[409]

Milton disdained not to sing

      How faëry Mab the junkets eat.
      She was pinch'd and pull'd, she said;
      And he, by _friar's_ lantern led,[410]
      Tells how the drudging Goblin sweat
      To earn his _cream bowl duly set_,
      When in one night, ere glimpse of morn,
      His shadowy flail hath thresh'd the corn
      That ten day-labourers could not end;
      Then lies him down, the lubber fiend,
      And stretch'd out all the chimney's length,
      Basks at the fire his hairy strength,
      And, crop-full, out of doors he flings,
      Ere the first cock his matin rings.

Regardless of Mr. Gifford's sneer at "those who may undertake the
unprofitable drudgery of tracing out the property of every word, and
phrase, and idea in Milton,"[411] we will venture to trace a little
here, and beg the reader to compare this passage with one quoted above
from Harsenet, and to say if the resemblance be accidental. The truth
is, Milton, reared in London, probably knew the popular superstitions
chiefly or altogether from books; and almost every idea in this
passage may be found in books that he must have read.

In the hands of Dryden the Elves of Chaucer lose their indefiniteness.
In the opening of the Wife of Bath her Tale,

      The king of elves and _little_ fairy queen
      Gamboled on heaths and danced on every green.

And

      In vain the dairy now with mint is dressed,
      The dairy-maid expects no fairy guest
      To skim the bowls, and after pay the feast.
      She sighs, and shakes her empty shoes in vain,
      No silver penny to reward her pain.

In the Flower and the Leaf, unauthorised by the old bard, he makes the
knights and dames, the servants of the Daisy and of the Agnus Castus,
Fairies, subject, like the Italian Fate, to "cruel Demogorgon."

Pope took equal liberties with his original, as may be seen by a
comparison of the following verses with those quoted above:--

      About this spring, if ancient fame say true,
      The dapper elves their moonlight sports pursue:
      Their pigmy king and little fairy queen
      In circling dances gamboled on the green,
      While tuneful sprites a merry concert made,
      And airy music warbled through the shade.
                                        _January and May_, 459.

      It so befel, in that fair morning tide,
      The fairies sported on the garden's side,
      And in the midst their monarch and his bride.
      So featly tripp'd the light-foot ladies round,
      The knight so nimbly o'er the greensward bound,
      That scarce they bent the flowers or touch'd the ground.
      The dances ended, all the fairy train
      For pinks and daisies search'd the flowery plain.[412]
                                                  _Ibid._, 617.

With the Kensington Garden[413] of Tickell, Pope's contemporary, our
Fairy-poetry may be said to have terminated.[414] Collins, Beattie,
and a few other poets of the last century make occasional allusions to
it, and some attempts to revive it have been made in the present
century. But vain are such efforts, the belief is gone, and divested
of it such poetry can produce no effect. The Fairies have shared the
fate of the gods of ancient Hellas.

FOOTNOTES:

[317] The Anglo-Saxon Dweorg, Dworh, and the English Dwarf, do not
seem ever to have had any other sense than that of the Latin _nanus_.

[318] As quoted by Picart in his Notes on William of Newbridge. We
could not find it in the Collection of Histories, etc., by Martène and
Durand,--the only place where, to our knowledge, this chronicler's
works are printed.

[319] _Guilielmi Neubrigensis Historia, sive Chronica Rerum
Anglicarum._ Oxon. 1719, lib. i. c. 27.

[320] See above, p. 109.

[321] Otia Imperialia _apud Leibnitz Scriptores rerum Brunsvicarum_,
vol. i. p. 981.

[322] Vice calicis.

[323] Otia Imperialia _apud Leibnitz Scriptores rerum Brunsvicarum_,
vol. i. p. 980.

[324] There is, as far as we are aware, no vestige of these names
remaining in either the French or English language, and we cannot
conceive how the Latin names of sea-gods came to be applied to the
Gotho-German Kobolds, etc.

[325] Dimidium _pollicis_. Should we not read _pedis_?

[326] Otia Imperialia _apud Leibnitz Scriptores rerum Brunsvicarum_,
vol. i. p. 980.

[327] Can this name be connected with that of Grendel, the malignant
spirit in Beówulf?

[328] Edited for the Percy Society by J. P. Collyer, Esq., 1841. Mr.
Collyer says there is little doubt but that this work was printed
before 1588, or even 1584. We think this is true only of the First
Part; for the Second, which is of a different texture, must have been
added some time after tobacco had come into common use in England: see
the verses in p. 34.

[329] Mr. Collyer does not seem to have recollected that Huon de
Bordeaux had been translated by Lord Berners; see above, p. 56.

[330] It is, according to this authority the man-fairy Gunn that
steals children and leaves changelings.

[331] Discoverie of Witchcrafte, iv. ch. 10.

[332] R. Scot, Discoverie of Witchcrafte, ii. ch. 4.

[333] _Ib._ vii. 15.

[334] This appears to us to be rather a display of the author's
learning than an actual enumeration of the objects of popular terror;
for the maids hardly talked of Satyrs, Pans, etc. For Bull-beggar, see
p. 316; for Urchin, p. 319. _Hag_ is the Anglo-Saxon [Old English:
hægeise], German _hexe_, "witche," and hence the Nightmare (see p.
332) which was ascribed to witches; we still say _Hag-ridden_. Calcar
and Sporn (spurs?) may be the same, from the idea of riding: the
French call the Nightmare, _Cauchemare_, from _Caucher_, _calcare_.
Kit-wi-the-Canstick is Jack-with-the-Lanthorn. The Man in the Oak is
probably Puck, "Turn your cloakes, quoth hee, for Pucke is busy in
these oakes."--Iter Boreale. The Hell-wain is perhaps the Death-coach,
connected with Northern and German superstitions, and the Fire-drake
an Ignis Fatuus. Boneless may have been some impalpable spectre; the
other terms seem to be mere appellations of Puck.

[335] Anat. of Mel. p. 47.

[336] Chap. xx. p. 134. Lond. 1604.

[337] This is, we apprehend, an egg at Easter or on Good Friday.
_Housle_ is the Anglo-Saxon [Old English: husel]; Goth. _hunsl_,
sacrifice or offering, and thence the Eucharist.

[338] Terrors of the Night, 1594.

[339] Hutchinson, History of Cumberland, vol. i. p. 269.

[340] As quoted by Thoms in his Essay on Popular Songs, in the
Athenæum for 1847.

[341] Morgan, Phœnix Britannicus, Lond. 1732.

[342] Pandemonium, p. 207. Lond. 1684.

[343] Aubrey, Natural History of Surrey, iii 366, _ap._ Ritson, Fairy
Tales, p. 166.

[344] The Local Historian's Table-Book, by M. A. Richardson, iii. 239.
Newcastle-upon-Tyne, 1846.

[345] Bourne, Antiquitates Vulgares, 1725.

[346] Quoted by Brand in his Popular Antiquities, an enlarged edition
of Bourne's work.

[347] This word Pixy, is evidently Pucksy, the endearing diminutive
_sy_ being added to Puck, like Betsy, Nancy, Dixie. So Mrs. Trimmer in
her Fabulous Histories--which we read with wonderful pleasure in our
childhood, and would recommend to our young readers--calls her
hen-robins Pecksy and Flapsy. Pisgy is only Pixy transposed. Mrs. Bray
derives Pixy from Pygmy. At Truro, in Cornwall, as Mr. Thoms informs
us, the _moths_, which some regard as departed souls, others as
fairies, are called _Pisgies_. He observes the curious, but surely
casual, resemblance between this and the Greek ψυχη, which is both
soul and moth. Grimm (p. 430) tells us from an old glossary, that the
caterpillar was named in Germany, _Alba_, i. e. _Elbe_, and that the
Alp often takes the form of a butterfly.

[348] _Whip says he_, as Mrs. Bray conjectures.

[349] Brand, Popular Antiquities, ii. 513. Bohn's edit.

[350] Given in the Literary Gazette for 1825. No. 430.

[351] Brand, Popular Antiquities, ii. 503. Bohn's edit.

[352] The _Elfbore_ of Scotland, where it is likewise ascribed to the
fairies, Jamieson, _s. v._ The same opinion prevails in Denmark, where
it is said that any one who looks through it will see things he would
not otherwise have known: see Thiele, ii. 18.

[353] The Anglo-Saxon _lǽan_, _laécan_, to play.

[354] We have abridged this legend from a well-written letter in the
Literary Gazette, No. 430 (1825), the writer of which says, he knew
the house in which it was said to have occurred. He also says he
remembered an old tailor, who said the horn was often pitched at the
head of himself and his apprentice, when in the North-country fashion
they went to work at the farm-house. Its identity with other legends
will be at once perceived.

[355] And true no doubt it is, _i. e._ the impression made on her
imagination was as strong as if the objects had been actually before
her. The narrator is the same person who told the preceding Boggart
story.

[356] Fairy Tales, pp. 24, 56.

[357] In Northumberland the common people call a certain fungous
excrescence, sometimes found about the roots of old trees,
Fairy-butter. After great rains and in a certain degree of
putrefaction, it is reduced to a consistency, which, together with its
colour, makes it not unlike butter, and hence the name. Brand, Popular
Antiquities, ii. 492, Bohn's edit.

The Menyn Tylna Têg or Fairy-butter of Wales, we are told in the same
place, is a substance found at a great depth in cavities of
limestone-rocks when sinking for lead-ore.

[358] Comp. Milton, L'Allegro, 105 _seq._

[359] Richardson, Table-Book, iii. 45; see above, p. 297.

[360] This word, as we may see, is spelt _faries_ in the following
legends; so we may suppose that _fairy_ is pronounced _farry_ in the
North, which has a curious coincidence with _Peri_: see above, p. 15.

[361] Probably pronounced _Poke_, as still in Worcestershire. Our
ancestors frequently used _ou_, or _oo_ for the long _o_ while they
expressed the sound of _oo_ by _o_ followed by _e_, as _rote_ root,
_coke_ cook, _more_ moor, _pole_ pool.

[362] Passus xvii. _v._ 11,323 _seq._ ed. 1842. Comp. _vv._ 8363,
9300, 10,902.

[363] Mr. Todd is right, in reading _pouke_ for _ponke_, an evident
typographic error: wrong in saying, "He is the Fairy, Robin
Good-fellow, known by the name of Puck." Robin is the "hob-goblin"
mentioned two lines after.

[364] We know nothing of the Oriental origin of Puck, and cannot give
our full assent to the character of our ancestry, as expressed in the
remaining part of Mr. Gifford's note: "but a fiend engendered in the
moody minds, and rude and gloomy fancies of the barbarous invaders of
the North." It is full time to have done with describing the old
Gothic race as savages.

[365] _Der Putz würde uns über berg und thäler tragen._ To frighten
children they say _Der Butz kommt!_ see Grimm, Deut. Mythol. p. 474.

[366] The former made by adding the Anglo-Saxon and English _el_,
_le_; the latter by adding the English _art_: see p. 318.

[367] By Sir F. Palgrave, from whose article in the Quarterly Review,
we have derived many of the terms named above. He adds that the
Anglo-Saxon _pæcan_ is to deceive, seduce; the Low-Saxon _picken_ to
gambol; _pickeln_ to play the fool; _pukra_ in Icelandic to make a
murmuring noise, to steal secretly; and _pukke_ in Danish to scold. He
further adds the Swedish _poika_ boy, the Anglo-Saxon and Swedish
_piga_ and Danish _pige_ girl. If, however, Pouke is connected with
the Sclavonic Bog, these at the most can be only derivations from it.
By the way _boy_ itself seems to be one of these terms; the
Anglo-Saxon _piga_ was probably pronounced _piya_, and _a_ is a
masculine termination in that language.

[368] See above, p. 291. In Low German, however, the Kobold is called
Bullmann, Bullermann, Bullerkater, from _bullen_, _bullern_, to knock:
see Grimm, _ut sup._ p. 473.

[369] Essay on the Ignis Fatuus, quoted by Thoms.

[370]

                      And you whose pastime
      Is to make midnight mushrooms.--_Tempest_, v. 1.


[371] Jack-o'-the-lanthorn, Will-o'-the-wisp. In Worcestershire they
call it Hob-and-his-lanthorn, and Hobany's- or Hobredy's-lanthorn.
Allies, _ut sup._

[372] Knight of the Burning Pestle: see above, p. 309.

[373] _Ard_ is the German _hart_, and is, like it, depreciatory. It is
not an Anglo-Saxon termination, but from the Anglo-Saxon [Old English:
doll], _dull_, we have _dullard_. May not _haggard_ be _hawk-ard_, and
the French _hagard_ be derived from it, and not the reverse?

[374] For in Anglo-Saxon _áttorcoppe_ (_Poison-head?_) is spider, and
from _áttorcoppe-web_, by the usual aphœresis of the two first syllables
we put _coppe-web_, cobweb. May not the same have been the case with
_lob_? and may not the nasty _bug_ be in a similar manner connected with
Puck? As _dvergsnat_ is in Swedish a cobweb, one might be tempted to
suppose that this last, for which no good etymon has been offered, was
_lob-web_; but the true etymon is _cop-web_, from its usual site.

      Upon the _cop_ right of his nose he hedde
      A wert.--Chaucer, _Cant. Tales_, _v._ 556.


[375] Deut. Mythol. p. 492.

[376] See _France_. _In_ is a mere termination, perhaps, like _on_, a
diminutive, as in _Catin_ Kate, _Robin_ Bob. _Lutin_ was also spelt
_Luyton_: see p. 42.

[377] The two lines which follow

      Fro the nightes mare the witè Paternoster!
      Where wonest thou Seint Peter's suster?

are rather perplexing. We would explain them thus. Bergerac, as quoted
by Brand (Pop. Antiq. i. 312. Bohn's edit.) makes a magician say "I
teach the shepherds the wolf's paternoster," _i. e._ one that keeps
off the wolf. _Wite_ may then be _i. q. wight_, and _wight
paternoster_ be a safeguard against the wights, and we would read the
verse thus: "Fro the nightes mare the wite paternoster" _sc. blisse
it_ or _us_. St. Peter's _suster_, _i. e._ wife (see I Cor. ix. 5) may
have been canonised in the popular creed, and held to be potent
against evil beings. The term _suster_ was used probably to obviate
the scandal of supposing the first Pope to have been a married man.
This charm is given at greater length and with some variations by
Cartwright in his Ordinary, Act iii. sc. 1.

[378] He derives it from the French _oursin_, but the Ang.-Sax. name
of the hedgehog is [Old English: erscen].

[379] Athenæum, Oct. 9, 1847.

[380] Hist. of England, i. 478, 8vo edit.

[381] Deut. Mythol. p. 419.

[382] Layamon's Brut, etc., by Sir Frederick Madden.

[383] Tales and Popular Fictions, ch. viii. We do not wonder that this
should have eluded previous observation, but it is really surprising
that we should have been the first to observe the resemblance between
Ariosto's tale of Giocondo and the introductory tale of the Thousand
and One Nights. It is also strange that no one should have noticed the
similarity between Ossian's Carthon and the tale of Soohrâb in the
Shâh-nâmeh.

[384] Both here and lower down we would take _faërie_ in its first
sense.

[385] _Thrope_, _thorpe_, or _dorp_, is a village, the German _dorf_;
Dutch _dorp_; we may still find it in the names of places, as
Althorpe. _Dorp_ occurs frequently in Drayton's Polyolbion; it is also
used by Dryden, Hind and Panther, _v._ 1905.

[386] _Undermeles_ i. e. _undertide_ (p 51), aftermeal, afternoon.

[387] This is the third sense of _Faërie_. In the next passage it is
doubtful whether it be the second or third sense; we think the latter.

[388]

      This wife which is of _faërie_,
      Of such a childe delivered is,
      Fro kindè which stante all amis.
                 GOWER, _Legende of Constance_.


[389] The derivation of Oberon has been already given (p. 208). The
Shakspearean commentators have not thought fit to inform us why the
poet designates the Fairy-queen, Titania. It, however, presents no
difficulty. It was the belief of those days that the Fairies were the
same as the classic Nymphs, the attendants of Diana: "That fourth kind
of spritis," says King James, "quhilk be the gentilis was called
Diana, and her wandering court, and amongst us called the _Phairie_."
The Fairy-queen was therefore the same as Diana, whom Ovid (Met. iii.
173) styles Titania; Chaucer, as we have seen, calls her Proserpina.

[390]

      'Twas I that led you through the painted meads,
      Where the light Fairies danced upon the flowers,
      Hanging on every leaf an orient pearl.
                  _Wisdom of Dr. Dodypoll, 1600. Steevens._

Men of fashion, in that age, wore earrings.

[391]

      And the yellow-skirted Fayes
      Fly after the night-steeds, leaving their moon-loved maze.
                               MILTON, _Ode on the Nativity_, 235.


[392] _Ouph_, Steevens complacently tells us, in the Teutonic
language, is a fairy; if by Teutonic he means the German, and we know
of no other, he merely showed his ignorance. Ouph is the same as _oaf_
(formerly spelt _aulf_), and is probably to be pronounced in the same
manner. It is formed from _elf_ by the usual change of _l_ into _u_.

[393] _i. e._ Pinch severely. The Ang.-Sax. [Old English: to] joined
to a verb or part. answers to the German _zu_ or _zer_. [Old English:
to-brecan] is to break to pieces, [Old English: to-drifan] to drive
asunder, scatter. Verbs of this kind occur in the Vision of Piers
Ploughman, in Chaucer and elsewhere. The part. is often preceded by
_all_, in the sense of the German _ganz_, quite, with which some
ignorantly join the _to_ as _all-to ruffled_ in Comus, 380, instead of
_all to-ruffled_. In Golding's Ovid (p. 15) we meet "With rugged head
as white as down, and garments _all to-torn_;" in Judges ix. 53, "and
_all to-brake_ his skull." See also Faerie Queene, iv. 7, 8; v. 8, 4,
43, 44; 9, 10.

[394] After all the commentators have written, this line is still nearly
unintelligible to us. It may relate to the supposed origin of the
fairies. For _orphan_, Warburton conjectured _ouphen_, from _ouph_.

[395] The Anglo-Saxon [Old English: Midan eard] or [Old English:
geard]; and is it not also plainly the Midgard of the Edda?

[396] The origin of Mab is very uncertain; it may be a contraction of
Habundia, see below _France_. "Mab," says Voss, one of the German
translators of Shakspeare, "is not the Fairy-queen, the same with
Titania, as some, misled by the word _queen_, have thought. That word
in old English, as in Danish, designates the female sex." He might
have added the Ang.-Sax. [Old English: cþen] woman, whence both
_queen_ and _quean_. Voss is perhaps right and _elf-queen_ may have
been used in the same manner as the Danish _Elle-quinde_, _Elle-kone_
for the female Elf. We find Phaer (see above, p. 11) using
_Fairy-queen_, as a translation for _Nympha_.

[397] _i. e._, Night-mare. "Many times," says Gull the fairy, "I get
on men and women, and so lie on their stomachs, that I cause them
great pain; for which they call me by the name of Hagge or
Night-mare." _Merry Pranks_, etc. p. 42.

[398]

      Auræque et venti, montesque, amnesque, lacusque,
      Dîque omnes nemorum, dîque omnes noctis, adeste.
                                    _Ovid, Met._ l. vii. 198.

      Ye ayres and winds, ye _elves_ of hills, of brooks, of woods, alone,
      Of standing lakes, and of the night--approach ye everich one.
                                                            GOLDING.

Golding seems to have regarded, by chance or with knowledge, the Elves
as a higher species than the Fairies. Misled by the word _elves_,
Shakspeare makes sad confusion of classic and Gothic mythology.

[399] _Take_ signifies here, to strike, to injure.

      And there he blasts the tree and _takes_ the cattle.
                                       _Merry Wives of Windsor_, iv. 4.

      Thou farest as fruit that with the frost is taken.
                                   SURREY, _Poems_, p. 13, Ald. edit.

In our old poetry _take_ also signifies, to give.

[400]

      But not a word of it,--'tis fairies' treasure,
      Which but revealed brings on the blabber's ruin.
                          MASSINGER, _Fatal Dowry_, Act iv. sc. 1.

      A prince's secrets are like fairy favours,
      Wholesome if kept, but poison if discovered.
                                             _Honest Man's Fortune._


[401] We do not recollect having met with any account of this prank;
but Jonson is usually so correct, that we may be certain it was a part
of the popular belief.

[402] Whalley was certainly right in proposing to read Agnes. This
ceremony is, we believe, still practised in the north of England on
St. Agnes' night. See Brand, i. 34.

[403] Shakespeare gives different colours to the Fairies; and in some
places they are still thought to be white. See p. 306.

[404] Act i. sc. 5. R. Dodsley's Old Plays, vii. p. 394. We quote this
as the first notice we have met of the red caps of the fairies.

[405] Brown, their author, was a native of Devon, the Pixy region;
hence their accordance with the Pixy legends given above.

[406] This is perhaps the dancing on the hearth of the fairy-ladies to
which Milton alludes: see above, p. 42. "Doth not the warm zeal of an
English-man's devotion make them maintain and defend the social hearth
as the sanctuary and chief place of residence of the tutelary lares
and household gods, and the only court where the _lady-fairies convene
to dance and revel_?"--Paradoxical Assertions, etc. 1664, quoted by
Brand, ii. p. 504.

[407] The reader will observe that the third sense of Fairy is the
most usual one in Drayton. It occurs in its second sense two lines
further on, twice in Nymphidia, and in the following passage of his
third Eclogue,

      For learned Colin (Spenser) lays his pipes to gage,
      And is to _Fayrie_ gone a pilgrimage,
        The more our moan.


[408] Mr. Chalmers does not seem to have known that the Crickets were
family of note in Fairy. Shakspeare (_Merry Wives of Windsor_)
mentions a Fairy named Cricket; and no hint of Shakspeare's was lost
upon Drayton.

[409] In the Musarum Deliciæ.

[410] This is a palpable mistake of the poet's. The Friar (see above,
p. 291) is the celebrated Friar Rush, who haunted houses, not fields,
and was never the same with Jack-o'-the-Lanthorn. It was probably the
name Rush, which suggested _rushlight_, that caused Milton's error. He
is the Brüder Rausch of Germany, the Broder Ruus of Denmark. His name
is either as Grimm thinks, _noise_, or as Wolf (Von Bruodor Rauschen,
p. xxviii.) deems _drunkenness_, our old word, _rouse_. Sir Walter
Scott in a note on Marmion, says also "Friar Rush, _alias_
Will-o'-the-Wisp. He was also a sort of Robin Goodfellow and
Jack-o'-Lanthorn," which is making precious confusion. Reginald Scot
more correctly describes him as being "for all the world such another
fellow as this Hudgin," _i. e._ Hödeken: see above, p. 255.

[411] Ben Jonson's Works, vol. ii. p. 499. We shall never cease to
regret that the state to which literature has come in this country
almost precludes even a hope of our ever being able to publish our
meditated edition of Milton's poems for which we have been collecting
materials these five and twenty years. It would have been very
different from Todd's. [Published in 1859.]

[412] Evidently drawn from Dryden's Flower and Leaf.

[413] We meet here for the last time with Fairy in its collective
sense, or rather, perhaps, as the country:

      All Fairy shouted with a general voice

[414] In Mr Halliwell's Illustrations of Fairy Mythology, will be
found a good deal of Fairy poetry, for which we have not had space in
this work.




                          SCOTTISH LOWLANDS.

      When from their hilly dens, at midnight hour,
        Forth rush the airy elves in mimic state,
      And o'er the moonlight heath with swiftness scour,
        In glittering arms the little horsemen shine.
                                               ERSKINE.


The Scottish Fairies scarcely differ in any essential point from those
of England. Like them they are divided into the rural and the
domestic. Their attire is green, their residence the interior of the
hills. They appear more attached than their neighbours to the
monarchical form of government, for the Fairy king and queen, who seem
in England to have been known only by the poets, were recognised by
law in Caledonia, and have at all times held a place in the popular
creed. They would appear also to be more mischievously inclined than
the Southrons, and less addicted to the practice of dancing. They
have, however, had the advantage of not being treated with contempt
and neglect by their human countrymen, and may well be proud of the
attention shown them by the brightest genius of which their country
can boast. There has also been long due from them an acknowledgment of
the distinction conferred on them by the editor of the Nithsdale and
Galloway Song,[415] for the very fanciful manner in which he has
described their attributes and acts.

The Scottish Fairies have never been taken by the poets for their
heroes or machinery, a circumstance probably to be attributed to the
sterner character of Scottish religion. We cannot, therefore, as in
England, make a distinction between popular and poetic fairies.

The earliest notice we have met with of the Fairies is in Montgomery's
Flyting against Polwart, where he says,

      In the hinder end of harvest, at All-hallowe'en,
        When our _good neighbours_[416] dois ride, if I read right,
      Some buckled on a beenwand, and some on a been,
        Ay trottand in troops from the twilight;
      Some saidled on a she-ape all graithed in green,
        Some hobland on a hempstalk hovand to the sight;
      The king of Phairie and his court, with the elf-queen,
        With many elfish incubus, was ridand that night.

Elf-land was the name of the realm ruled by the king of Phairie. King
James[417] speaks of him and his queen, and "of sic a jolie court and
traine as they had; how they had a teinde and a dewtie, as it were, of
all guidis; how they naturally raid and yeid, eat and drank, and did
all other actions lyke natural men and women. I think," concludes the
monarch, "it is lyker Virgilis _Campi Elysii_ nor anything that ought
to be believed by Christianis." And one of the interlocutors in his
dialogue asks how it was that witches have gone to death confessing
that they had been "transported with the Phairie to such and such a
hill, which, opening, they went in, and there saw a faire queene, who,
being now lighter, gave them a stone which had sundry virtues."

According to Mr. Cromek, who, however, rather sedulously keeps their
darker attributes out of view, and paints everything relating to them
_couleur de rose_, the Lowland Fairies are of small stature, but
finely proportioned; of a fair complexion, with long yellow hair
hanging over their shoulders, and gathered above their heads with
combs of gold. They wear a mantle of green cloth, inlaid with wild
flowers; green pantaloons, buttoned with bobs of silk; and silver
shoon. They carry quivers of "adder-slough," and bows made of the ribs
of a man buried where _three lairds' lands meet_; their arrows are
made of bog-reed, tipped with white flints, and dipped in the dew of
hemlock; they ride on steeds whose hoofs "would not dash the dew from
the cup of a harebell." With their arrows they shoot the cattle of
those who offend them; the wound is imperceptible to common eyes, but
there are gifted personages who can discern and cure it.[418]

In their intercourse with mankind they are frequently kind and generous.
A young man of Nithsdale, when out on a love affair, heard most
delicious music, far surpassing the utterance of 'any mortal mixture of
earth's mould.' Courageously advancing to the spot whence the sound
appeared to proceed, he suddenly found himself the spectator of a
Fairy-banquet. A green table with feet of gold, was laid across a small
rivulet, and supplied with the finest of bread and the richest of wines.
The music proceeded from instruments formed of reeds and stalks of corn.
He was invited to partake in the dance, and presented with a cup of
wine. He was allowed to depart in safety, and ever after possessed the
gift of second sight. He said he saw there several of his former
acquaintances, who were become members of the Fairy society.

We give the following legend on account of its great similarity to a
Swiss tradition already quoted:--

Two lads were ploughing in a field, in the middle of which was an old
thorn-tree, a trysting place of the Fairy-folk. One of them described a
circle round the thorn, within which the plough should not go. They were
surprised, on ending the furrow, to behold a green table placed there,
heaped up with excellent bread and cheese, and even wine. The lad who
had drawn the circle sat down without hesitation, ate and drank
heartily, saying, "Fair fa' the hands whilk gie." His companion whipped
on the horses, refusing to partake of the Fairy-food. The other, said
Mr. Cromek's informant, "thrave like a breckan," and was a proverb for
wisdom, and an oracle for country knowledge ever after.[419]

The Fairies lend and borrow, and it is counted _uncanny_ to refuse them.
A young woman was one day sifting meal warm from the mill, when a nicely
dressed beautiful little woman came to her with a bowl of antique form,
and requested the loan of as much meal as would fill it. Her request was
complied with, and in a week she returned to make repayment. She set
down the bowl and breathed over it, saying, "Be never toom." The woman
lived to a great age, but never saw the bottom of the bowl.

Another woman was returning late one night from a gossiping. A pretty
little boy came up to her and said, "Coupe yere dish-water farther
frae yere door-step, it pits out our fire." She complied with this
reasonable request, and prospered ever after.


                        _The Fairies' Nurse._

The Fairies have a great fondness for getting their babes suckled by
comely, healthy young women. A fine young woman of Nithsdale was one
day spinning and rocking her first-born child. A pretty little lady in
a green mantle, and bearing a beautiful babe, came into the cottage
and said, "Gie my bonny thing a suck." The young woman did so, and the
lady left her babe and disappeared, saying, "Nurse kin' and ne'er
want." The young woman nursed the two children, and was astonished to
find every morning, when she awoke, rich clothes for the children, and
food of a most delicious flavour. Tradition says this food tasted
like wheaten-bread, mixed with wine and honey.

When summer came, the Fairy lady came to see her child. She was
delighted to see how it had thriven, and, taking it in her arms,
desired the nurse to follow her. They passed through some scroggy
woods skirting the side of a beautiful green hill, which they ascended
half way. A door opened on the sunny side--they went in, and the sod
closed after them. The Fairy then dropped three drops of a precious
liquid on her companion's left eyelid, and she beheld a most delicious
country, whose fields were yellow with ripening corn, watered by
_looping burnies_, and bordered by trees laden with fruit. She was
presented with webs of the finest cloth, and with boxes of precious
ointments. The Fairy then moistened her right eye with a green fluid,
and bid her look. She looked, and saw several of her friends and
acquaintances at work, reaping the corn and gathering the fruit.
"This," said the Fairy, "is the punishment of evil deeds!" She then
passed her hand over the woman's eye, and restored it to its natural
power. Leading her to the porch at which she had entered, she
dismissed her; but the woman had secured the wonderful salve. From
this time she possessed the faculty of discerning the Fairy people as
they went about invisibly; till one day, happening to meet the
Fairy-lady, she attempted to shake hands with her. "What ee d'ye see
me wi'?" whispered she. "Wi' them baith," said the woman. The Fairy
breathed on her eyes, and the salve lost its efficacy, and could never
more endow her eyes with their preternatural power.[420]


                          _The Fairy Rade._

The _Fairy Rade_, or procession, was a matter of great importance. It
took place on the coming in of summer, and the peasantry, by using the
precaution of placing a branch of rowan over their door, might safely
gaze on the cavalcade, as with music sounding, bridles ringing, and
voices mingling, it pursued its way from place to place. An old woman of
Nithsdale gave the following description of one of these processions:

"In the night afore Roodmass I had trysted with a neebor lass a Scots
mile frae hame to talk anent buying braws i' the fair. We had nae
sutten lang aneath the haw-buss till we heard the loud laugh of fowk
riding, wi' the jingling o' bridles, and the clanking o' hoofs. We
banged up, thinking they wad ride owre us. We kent nae but it was
drunken fowk ridin' to the fair i' the forenight. We glowred roun' and
roun', and sune saw it was the _Fairie-fowks Rade_. We cowred down
till they passed by. A beam o' light was dancing owre them mair bonnie
than moonshine: they were a' wee wee fowk wi' green scarfs on, but ane
that rade foremost, and that ane was a good deal larger than the lave
wi' bonnie lang hair, bun' about wi' a strap whilk glinted like stars.
They rade on braw wee white naigs, wi' unco lang swooping tails, an'
manes hung wi' whustles that the win' played on. This an' their tongue
when they sang was like the soun' o' a far awa psalm. Marion an' me
was in a brade lea fiel', where they came by us; a high hedge o'
haw-trees keepit them frae gaun through Johnnie Corrie's corn, but
they lap a' owre it like sparrows, and gallopt into a green know
beyont it. We gaed i' the morning to look at the treddit corn; but the
fient a hoof mark was there, nor a blade broken."


                          _The Changeling._

But the Fairies of Scotland were not, even according to Mr. Cromek,
uniformly benevolent. Woman and child abstraction was by no means
uncommon with them, and the substitutes they provided were, in
general, but little attractive.

A fine child at Caerlaveroc, in Nithsdale, was observed on the second
day after its birth, and before it was baptised, to have become quite
ill-favoured and deformed. Its yelling every night deprived the whole
family of rest; it bit and tore its mother's breasts, and would lie
still neither in the cradle nor the arms. The mother being one day
obliged to go from home, left it in charge of the servant girl. The
poor lass was sitting bemoaning herself--"Were it nae for thy girning
face, I would knock the big, winnow the corn, and grun the
meal."--"Lowse the cradle-band," said the child, "and tent the
neighbours, and I'll work yere work." Up he started--the wind
arose--the corn was chopped--the outlyers were foddered--the hand-mill
moved around, as by instinct--and the knocking-mill did its work with
amazing rapidity. The lass and child then rested and diverted
themselves, till, on the approach of the mistress, it was restored to
the cradle, and renewed its cries. The girl took the first opportunity
of telling the adventure to her mistress. "What'll we do with the wee
diel?" said she. "I'll work it a pirn," replied the lass. At midnight
the chimney-top was covered up, and every chink and cranny stopped.
The fire was blown till it was glowing hot, and the maid speedily
undressed the child, and tossed him on the burning coals. He shrieked
and yelled in the most dreadful manner, and in an instant the Fairies
were heard moaning on every side, and rattling at the windows, door,
and chimney. "In the name of God bring back the bairn," cried the
lass. The window flew up, the real child was laid on the mother's lap,
and the _wee diel_ flew up the chimney laughing.


                     _Departure of the Fairies._

On a Sabbath morning, all the inmates of a little hamlet had gone to
church, except a herd-boy, and a little girl, his sister, who were
lounging beside one of the cottages, when just as the shadow of the
garden-dial had fallen on the line of noon, they saw a long cavalcade
ascending out of the ravine, through the wooded hollow. It winded
among the knolls and bushes, and turning round the northern gable of
the cottage, beside which the sole spectators of the scene were
stationed, began to ascend the eminence towards the south. The horses
were shaggy diminutive things, speckled dun and grey; the riders
stunted, misgrown, ugly creatures, attired in antique jerkins of
plaid, long grey clokes, and little red caps, from under which their
wild uncombed locks shot out over their cheeks and foreheads. The boy
and his sister stood gazing in utter dismay and astonishment, as rider
after rider, each more uncouth and dwarfish than the other which had
preceded it, passed the cottage and disappeared among the brushwood,
which at that period covered the hill, until at length the entire
rout, except the last rider, who lingered a few yards behind the
others, had gone by. "What are you, little manie? and where are ye
going?" inquired the boy, his curiosity getting the better of his
fears and his prudence. "Not of the race of Adam," said the creature,
turning for a moment in its saddle, "the people of peace shall never
more be seen in Scotland."[421]


                            _The Brownie._

The Nis, Kobold, or Goblin, appears in Scotland under the name of
Brownie.[422] Brownie is a personage of small stature, wrinkled visage,
covered with short curly brown hair, and wearing a brown mantle and
hood. His residence is the hollow of an old tree, a ruined castle, or
the abode of man. He is attached to particular families, with whom he
has been known to reside, even for centuries, threshing the corn,
cleaning the house, and doing everything done by his northern and
English brethren. He is, to a certain degree, disinterested; like many
great personages, he is shocked at anything approaching to the name of a
bribe or _douceur_, yet, like them, allows his scruples to be overcome
if the thing be done in a genteel, delicate, and secret way. Thus, offer
Brownie a piece of bread, a cup of drink, or a new coat and hood, and he
flouted at it, and perhaps, in his huff, quitted the place for ever; but
leave a nice bowl of cream, and some fresh honeycomb, in a snug private
corner, and they soon disappeared, though Brownie, it was to be
supposed, never knew anything of them.

A good woman had just made a web of linsey-woolsey, and, prompted by
her good nature, had manufactured from it a snug mantle and hood for
her little Brownie. Not content with laying the gift in one of his
favourite spots, she indiscreetly called to tell him it was there.
This was too direct, and Brownie quitted the place, crying,

      A new mantle and a new hood;
      Poor Brownie! ye'll ne'er do mair gude!

Another version of this legend says, that the gudeman of a farm-house
in the parish of Glendevon having left out some clothes one night for
Brownie, he was heard to depart, saying,

      Gie Brownie coat, gie Brownie sark,
      Ye'se get nae mair o' Brownie's wark![423]

At Leithin-hall, in Dumfrieshire, a Brownie had dwelt, as he himself
declared, for three hundred years. He used to show himself but once to
each master; to other persons he rarely discovered more than his hand.
One master was greatly beloved by Brownie, who on his death bemoaned
him exceedingly, even abstaining from food for many successive days.
The heir returning from foreign parts to take possession of the
estate, Brownie appeared to do him homage, but the Laird, offended at
his mean, starved appearance, ordered him meat and drink, and new
livery. Brownie departed, loudly crying,

      Ca', cuttee, ca'!
      A' the luck of Leithin Ha'
      Gangs wi' me to Bodsbeck Ha'.

In a few years Leithin Ha' was in ruins, and "bonnie Bodsbeck"
flourishing beneath the care of Brownie.

Others say that it was the gudeman of Bodsbeck that offended the
Brownie by leaving out for him a mess of bread and milk, and that he
went away, saying,

      Ca, Brownie, ca',
      A' the luck of Bodsbeck awa to Leithenha'.

Brownie was not without some roguery in his composition. Two lasses
having made a fine bowlful of buttered brose, had taken it into the
byre to sup in the dark. In their haste they brought but one spoon,
so, placing the bowl between them, they supped by turns. "I hae got
but three sups," cried the one, "and it's a' dune."--"It's a' dune,
indeed," cried the other.--"Ha, ha, ha!" cried a third voice, "Brownie
has got the maist o' it."--And Brownie it was who had placed himself
between them, and gotten two sups for their one.

The following story will remind the reader of Hinzelmann. A Brownie
once lived with Maxwell, Laird of Dalswinton, and was particularly
attached to the Laird's daughter, the comeliest lass in all the holms
of Nithsdale. In all her love affairs Brownie was her confidant and
assistant; when she was married, it was Brownie who undressed her for
the bridal bed; and when a mother's pains first seized her, and a
servant, who was ordered to go fetch the _cannie wife_, who lived on
the other side of the Nith, was slow in getting himself ready,
Brownie, though it was one of dark December's stormy nights, and the
wind was howling through the trees, wrapped his lady's fur cloak about
him, mounted the servant's horse, and dashed through the waves of the
foaming Nith. He went to the cannie wife, got her up behind him, and,
to her terror and dismay, plunged again into the torrent. "Ride nae by
the auld pool," said she, "lest we suld meet wi' Brownie." "Fear nae,
dame," replied he, "ye've met a' the Brownies ye will meet." He set
her down at the hall steps, and went to the stable. There finding the
lad, whose embassy he had discharged, but drawing on his boots, he
took off the bridle, and by its vigorous application instilled into
the memory of the loitering loon the importance of dispatch. This was
just at the time of the Reformation, and a zealous minister advised
the Laird to have him baptised. The Laird consented, and the worthy
minister hid himself in the barn. When Brownie was beginning his
night's work, the man of God flung the holy water in his face,
repeating at the same time the form of baptism. The terrified Brownie
gave a yell of dismay, and disappeared for ever.

Another name by which the domestic spirit was known in some parts of
Scotland was Shellycoat, of which the origin is uncertain.[424]

       *       *       *       *       *

Scotland has also its water-spirit, called Kelpie, who in some respects
corresponds with the Neck of the northern nations. "Every lake," says
Graham,[425] "has its _Kelpie_, or Water-horse, often seen by the
shepherd, as he sat in a summer's evening upon the brow of a rock,
dashing along the surface of the deep, or browsing on the pasture-ground
upon its verge. Often did this malignant genius of the waters allure
women and children to his subaqueous haunts, there to be immediately
devoured. Often did he also swell the torrent or lake beyond its usual
limits, to overwhelm the hapless traveller in the flood."[426]

       *       *       *       *       *

We have now gone through nearly the whole of the Gotho-German race,
and everywhere have found their fairy system the same--a proof, we
conceive, of the truth of the position of its being deeply founded in
the religious system originally common to the whole race. We now
proceed to another, and, perhaps, an older European family, the Celts.

FOOTNOTES:

[415] Mr. Cromek. There was, we believe, some false dealing on the
part of Allan Cunningham toward this gentleman, such as palming on him
his own verses as traditionary ones. But the legends are genuine.

[416] This answers to the _Deenè Mâh_, Good People, of the Highlands
and Ireland. An old Scottish name, we may add, for a fairy seems to
have been Bogle, akin to the English Pouke, Puck, Puckle; but
differing from the Boggart. Thus Gawain Douglas says,

      Of _Brownyis_ and of _Boggles_ full is this Beuk.


[417] Daemonologie, B. III. c. 5.

[418] These elf-arrows are triangular pieces of flint, supposed to have
been the heads of the arrows used by the aborigines. Though more
plentiful in Scotland they are also found in England and Ireland, and
were there also attached to the fairies, and the wounds were also only
to be discerned by gifted eyes. In an Anglo-Saxon poem, there occur the
words [Old English: æsa gescot] and [Old English: ýlfa gescot], _i. e._
arrow of the Gods, and arrow of the Elves. Grimm, Deut. Mythol., p. 22.

[419] "It was till lately believed by the ploughmen of Clydesdale,
that if they repeated the rhyme

      Fairy, fairy, bake me a bannock and roast me a collop,
      And I'll gie ye a spurtle off my gadend!

three several times on turning their cattle at the terminations of
ridges, they would find the said fare prepared for them on reaching the
end of the fourth furrow."--Chambers' Popular Rhymes of Scotland, p. 33.

[420] See above, pp. 302, 311. Graham also relates this legend in his
Picturesque Sketches of Perthshire.

[421] Hugh Miller, The Old Red Sandstone, p. 251. We are happy to have
an opportunity of expressing the high feelings of respect and esteem
which we entertain for this extraordinary man. Born in the lowest rank
of society, and commencing life as a workman in a stone-quarry, he
has, by the mere force of natural genius, become not only a most able
geologist but an elegant writer, and a sound and discerning critic.
Scotland seems to stand alone in producing such men.

[422] He is named as we have seen (p. 351) by Gawain Douglas. King
James says of him "The spirit called Brownie appeared like a rough
man, and haunted divers houses without doing any evill, but doing, as
it were, necessarie turns up and down the house; yet some are so
blinded as to believe that their house was all the sonsier, as they
called it, that such spirits resorted there."

[423] Popular Rhymes of Scotland, p. 33.

[424] Grimm (Deut. Mythol., p. 479) says it is the German Schellenrock,
_i. e._, Bell-coat, from his coat being hung with bells like those of
the fools. A _Pūck_ he says, once served in a convent in Mecklenburg,
for thirty years, in kitchen, and stable, and the only reward he asked
was "tunicam de diversis coloribus et _tintinnabulis_ plenam."

[425] Sketches of Perthshire, p. 245.

[426] In what precedes, we have chiefly followed Mr. Cromek. Those
anxious for further information will meet it in the Minstrelsy of the
Scottish Border, and other works.




                           CELTS AND CYMRY.

      There every herd by sad experience knows,
        How winged with fate their elf-shot arrows fly;
      When the sick ewe her summer-food foregoes,
        Or, stretched on earth, the heart-smit heifers lie.
                                                     COLLINS.


Under the former of these appellations we include the inhabitants of
Ireland, the Highlands of Scotland, and the Isle of Man; under the
latter, the people of Wales and Brittany. It is, not, however, by any
means meant to be asserted that there is in any of these places to be
found a purely Celtic or Cymric population. The more powerful
Gotho-German race has, every where that they have encountered them,
beaten the Celts and Cymry, and intermingled with them, influencing
their manners, language, and religion.

Our knowledge of the original religion of this race is very limited,
chiefly confined to what the Roman writers have transmitted to us, and
the remaining poems of the Welsh bards. Its character appears to have
been massive, simple, and sublime, and less given to personification
than those of the more eastern nations. The wild and the plastic
powers of nature never seem in it to have assumed the semblance of
huge giants and ingenious dwarfs.

Yet in the popular creed of all these tribes, we meet at the present day
beings exactly corresponding to the Dwarfs and Fairies of the
Gotho-German nations. Of these beings there is no mention in any
works--such as the Welsh Poems, and Mabinogion, the Poems of Ossian, or
the different Irish poems and romances--which can by any possibility lay
claim to an antiquity anterior to the conquests of the Northmen. Is it
not then a reasonable supposition that the Picts, Saxons, and other sons
of the North, brought with them their Dwarfs and Kobolds, and
communicated the knowledge of, and belief in, them to their Celtic and
Cymric subjects and neighbours? Proceeding on this theory, we have
placed the Celts and Cymry next to and after the Gotho-German nations,
though they are perhaps their precursors in Europe.




                               IRELAND.

        Like him, the Sprite,
        Whom maids by night
      Oft meet in glen that's haunted.
                                 MOORE.


We commence our survey of the lands of Celts and Cymry with Ireland,
as being the first in point of importance, but still more as being the
land of our birth. It is pleasing to us, now in the autumn of our
life, to return in imagination to where we passed its spring--its most
happy spring. As we read and meditate, its mountains and its vales,
its verdant fields and lucid streams, objects on which we probably
never again shall gaze, rise up in their primal freshness and beauty
before us, and we are once more present, buoyant with youth, in the
scenes where we first heard the fairy-legends of which we are now to
treat. Even the forms of the individual peasants who are associated
with them in our memory, rise as it were from their humble
resting-places and appear before us, again awaking our sympathies;
for, we will boldly assert it, the Irish peasantry, with all their
faults, gain a faster hold on the affections than the peasantry of any
other country. We speak, however, particularly of them as they were in
our county and in our younger days; for we fear that they are somewhat
changed, and not for the better. But our present business is with the
Irish fairies rather than with the Irish people.

The fairies of Ireland can hardly be said to differ in any respect
from those of England and Scotland. Like them they are of diminutive
size, rarely exceeding two feet in height; they live also in society,
their ordinary abode being the interior of the mounds, called in
Irish, Raths (_Râhs_), in English, Moats, the construction of which
is, by the peasantry, ascribed to the Danes from whom, it might thence
perhaps be inferred, the Irish got their fairies direct and not _viâ_
England. From these abodes they are at times seen to issue mounted on
diminutive steeds, in order to take at night the diversion of the
chase. Their usual attire is green with red caps.[427] They are fond
of music, but we do not in general hear much of their dancing, perhaps
because on account of the infrequency of thunder, the fairy-rings are
less numerous in Ireland than elsewhere. Though the fairies steal
children and strike people with paralysis and other ailments (which is
called being _fairy-struck_), and shoot their elf-arrows at the
cattle, they are in general kind to those for whom they have
contracted a liking, and often render them essential service in time
of need. They can make themselves visible and invisible, and assume
any forms they please. The pretty tiny conical mushrooms which grow so
abundantly in Ireland are called Fairy-mushrooms; a kind of nice
regularly-formed grass is named Fairy-flax, and the bells of the
foxglove called in some places Fairy-bells, are also said to have some
connexion with the Little People.

The popular belief in Ireland also is, that the Fairies are a portion of
the fallen angels, who, being less guilty than the rest, were not driven
to hell, but were suffered to dwell on earth. They are supposed to be
very uneasy respecting their condition after the final judgement.

The only names by which they are known in those parts of Ireland in
which the English language is spoken are, Fairies, the Good
People,[428] and the Gentry, these last terms being placatory, like
the Greek Eumenides. When, for example, the peasant sees a cloud of
dust sweeping along the road, he raises his hat and says, "God speed
you, gentlemen!" for it is the popular belief that it is in these
cloudy vehicles that the Good People journey from one place to
another.[429] The Irish language has several names for the fairies;
all however are forms or derivations of the word _Shia_,[430] the
proper meaning of which seems to be Spirit. The most usual name
employed by the Munster peasantry is _Shifra_; we are not acquainted
with the fairy-belief and terminology of the inhabitants of Connemara
and the other wilds of Connaught.[431]

Most of the traits and legends of the Irish fairies are contained in
the Fairy Legends and Traditions of the South of Ireland, compiled by
Mr. Crofton Croker. As we ourselves aided in that work we must inform
the reader that our contributions, both in text and notes, contain
only Leinster ideas and traditions, for that was the only province
with which we were acquainted. We must make the further confession,
that some of the more poetic traits which MM. Grimm, in the
Introduction to their translation of this work, give as characteristic
of the Irish fairies, owe their origin to the fancy of the writers,
who were, in many cases, more anxious to produce amusing tales than to
transmit legends faithfully.

The Legend of Knockshegowna (_Hill of the Fairy-calf_) the first given
in that work, relates how the fairies used to torment the cattle and
herdsmen for intruding on one of their favourite places of resort
which was on this hill. The fairy-queen, it says, having failed in her
attempts to daunt a drunken piper who had undertaken the charge of the
cattle, at last turned herself into a calf, and, with the piper on her
back, jumped over the Shannon, ten miles off, and back again. Pleased
with his courage, she agreed to abandon the hill for the future.

The Legend of Knock-Grafton tells how a little hunchback, while
sitting to rest at nightfall at the side of a Rath or Moat, heard the
fairies within singing over and over again, _Da Luan, Da Mart!_
(_i.e._, Monday, Tuesday!) and added, weary with the monotony, _Agus
da Cadin!_ (_i.e._, and Wednesday!) The fairies were so delighted with
this addition to their song that they brought him into the Moat,
entertained him, and finally freed him from the incumbrance of his
hump. Another hunchback hearing the story went to the Moat to try if
he could meet with the same good fortune. He heard the fairies singing
the amended version of the song, and, anxious to contribute, without
waiting for a pause or attending to the rhythm or melody, he added
_Agus da Hena!_ (_i.e._, and Friday.)[432] His reward was, being
carried into the Moat, and having his predecessor's hump placed on his
back in addition to his own.[433]

In the story named the Priest's Supper, a fisherman, at the request of
the fairies, asks a priest who had stopt at his house, whether they
would be saved or not at the last day. The priest desired him to tell
them to come themselves and put the question to him, but this they
declined doing, and the question remained undecided.

The next three stories are of changelings. The Young Piper, one of our
own contributions, will be found in the Appendix. The Changeling has
nothing peculiar in it; but the Brewery of Eggshells is one which we
find in many places, even in Brittany and Auvergne. In the present
version, the mother puts down eggshells to boil, and to the enquiry of
the changeling she tells him that she is brewing them, and clapping
his hands he says, "Well! I'm fifteen hundred years in the world, and
I never saw a brewery of eggshells before!"

In the Capture of Bridget Purcel, a girl is struck with a little
switch between the shoulders, by something in the form of a little
child that came suddenly behind her, and she pined away and died.

The Legend of Bottle Hill gives the origin of that name, which was as
follows. A poor man was driving his only cow to Cork to sell her. As
he was going over that hill he was suddenly joined by a
strange-looking little old man with a pale withered face and red eyes,
to whom he was eventually induced to give his cow in exchange for a
bottle, and both cow and purchaser then disappeared. When the poor man
came home he followed the directions of the stranger, and spreading a
cloth on the table, and placing the bottle on the ground, he said,
"Bottle, do your duty!" and immediately two little beings rose out of
it, and having covered the table with food in gold and silver dishes,
went down again into the bottle and vanished. By selling these he got
a good deal of money and became rich for one in his station. The
secret of his bottle however transpired, and his landlord induced him
to sell it to him. But his prosperity vanished with it, and he was
again reduced to one cow, and obliged to drive her to Cork for sale.
As he journeyed over the same hill he met the same old man, and sold
him the cow for another bottle. Having made the usual preparations, he
laid it on the ground and said, "Bottle, do your duty!" but instead of
the tiny little lads with their gold and silver dishes, there jumped
up out of it two huge fellows with cudgels, who fell to belabouring
the whole family. When they had done and were gone back into the
bottle, the owner of it, without saying a word, put it under his coat
and went to his landlord, who happened to have a great deal of company
with him, and sent in word that he was come with another bottle to
sell. He was at once admitted, the bottle did its duty, and the men
with cudgels laid about them on all present, and never ceased till the
original wealth-giving bottle was restored. He now grew richer than
ever, and his son married his landlord's daughter, but when the old
man and his wife died, the servants, it is recorded, fighting at their
wake, broke the two bottles.[434]

The Confessions of Tom Bourke, as it contains a faithful transcript of
the words and ideas of that personage, is perhaps the most valuable
portion of the work. From this we learn that in Munster the fairies are,
like the people themselves, divided into _factions_. Thus we are told
that, on the occasion of the death of Bourke's mother, the two parties
fought for three continuous nights, to decide whether she should be
buried with her own or her husband's _people_ (_i. e._ family). Bourke
also had sat for hours looking at two parties of the Good People playing
at the popular game of hurling, in a meadow at the opposite side of the
river, with their coats and waistcoats off, and white handkerchiefs on
the heads of one, and red on these of the other party.

A man whom Tom knew was returning one evening from a fair, a little
elevated of course, when he met a _berrin_ (_i. e._ funeral), which he
joined, as is the custom; but, to his surprise, there was no one there
that he knew except one man, and _he_ had been dead for some years.
When the _berrin_ was over, they gathered round a piper, and began to
dance in the churchyard. Davy longed to be among them, and the man
that he knew came up to him, and bid him take out a partner, but on no
account to give her the usual kiss. He accordingly took out the
_purtiest girl in the ring_, and danced a jig with her, to the
admiration of the whole company; but at the end he forgot the warning,
and complied with the custom of kissing one's partner. All at once
everything vanished; and when Davy awoke nest morning, he found
himself lying among the tombstones.

Another man, also a little in liquor, was returning one night from a
_berrin_. The moon was shining bright, and from the other side of the
river came the sounds of merriment, and the notes of a bagpipe. Taking
off his shoes and stockings, he waded across the river, and there he
found a great crowd of people dancing on the Inch[435] on the other
side. He mingled with them without being observed, and he longed to
join in the dance; for he had no mean opinion of his own skill. He did
so, but found that it was not to be compared to theirs, they were so
light and agile. He was going away quite in despair, when a little old
man, who was looking on with marks of displeasure in his face, came up
to him, and telling him he was his friend, and his father's friend,
bade him go into the ring and call for a lilt. He complied, and all
were amazed at his dancing; he then got a table and danced on it, and
finally he span round and round on a trencher. When he had done, they
wanted him to dance again; but he refused with a great oath, and
instantly he found himself lying on the Inch with only a white cow
grazing beside him. On going home, he got a shivering and a fever. He
was for many days out of his mind, and recovered slowly; but ever
after he had great skill in fairy matters. The dancers, it turned out,
had belonged to a different faction, and the old man who gave him his
skill to that to which he himself was attached.

In these genuine confessions it is very remarkable that the Good People
are never represented as of a diminutive size; while in every story that
we ever heard of them in Leinster, they were of pygmy stature. The
following account of their mode of entering houses in Ulster gives them
dimensions approaching to those of Titania's 'small elves.'

A Fairy, the most agile, we may suppose, of the party, is selected,
who contrives to get up to the keyhole of the door, carrying with him
a piece of thread or twine. With this he descends on the inside, where
he fastens it firmly to the floor, or some part of the furniture.
Those without then 'haul taut and belay,' and when it is fast they
prepare to march along this their perilous Es-Sirat, leading to the
paradise of pantry or parlour, in this order. First steps up the
Fairy-piper, and in measured pace pursues his adventurous route,
playing might and main an invigorating elfin-march, or other
spirit-stirring air; then one by one the rest of the train mount the
cord and follow his steps. Like the old Romans, in their triumphal
processions, they pass beneath the lofty arch of the keyhole, and move
down along the other side. Lightly, one by one, they then jump down on
the floor, to hold their revels or accomplish their thefts.

       *       *       *       *       *

We have never heard of any being, in the parts of Ireland with which
we are acquainted, answering to the Boggart, Brownie, or Nis. A
farmer's family still, we believe, living in the county of Wicklow,
used to assert that in their grandfather's time they never had any
trouble about washing up plates and dishes; for they had only to leave
them collected in a certain part of the house for the Good People,
who would come in and wash and clean them, and in the morning
everything would be clean and in its proper place.

Yet in the county of Cork it would seem that the Cluricaun, of which we
shall presently speak, used to enact the part of Nis or Boggart. Mr.
Croker tells a story of a little being, which he calls a Cluricaun, that
haunted the cellar of a Mr. Macarthy, and in a note on this tale he
gives the contents of a letter informing him of another ycleped Little
Wildbean, that haunted the house of a Quaker gentleman named Harris, and
which is precisely the Nis or Boggart. This Wildbean, who kept to the
cellar, would, if one of the servants through negligence left the
beer-barrel running, wedge himself into the cock and stop it, till some
one came to turn it. His dinner used to be left for him in the cellar,
and the cook having, one Friday, left him nothing but part of a herring
and some cold potatoes, she was at midnight dragged out of her bed, and
down the cellar-stairs, and so much bruised that she kept her bed for
three weeks. In order at last to get rid of him, Mr. Harris resolved to
remove, being told that if he went beyond a running stream the Cluricaun
could not follow him. The last cart, filled with empty barrels and such
like, was just moving off, when from the bung-hole of one of them
Wildbean cried out, "Here, master! here we go all together!" "What!"
said Mr. Harris, "dost thou go also?" "Yes, to be sure, master. Here we
go, all together!" "In that case, friend," replied Mr. Harris, "let the
carts be unloaded; we are just as well where we are." It is added, that
"Mr. Harris died soon after, but it is said the Cluricaun still haunts
the Harris family."

In another of these Fairy Legends, Teigue of the Lee, who haunted the
house of a Mr. Pratt, in the county of Cork, bears a strong
resemblance to the Hinzelmann of Germany. To the story, which is
exceedingly well told by a member of the society of Friends, now no
more, also the narrator of the Legend of Bottle-hill, Mr. Croker has
in his notes added some curious particulars.

A being named the Fear Dearg (_i. e._ Red Man) is also known in Munster.
A tale named The Lucky Guest, which Mr. Croker gives as taken down
_verbatim_ from the mouth of the narrator by Mr. M'Clise, the artist,
gives the fullest account of this being. A girl related that, when she
was quite a child, one night, during a storm of wind and rain, a
knocking was heard at the door of her father's cabin, and a voice like
that of a feeble old man craving admission. On the door's being opened,
there came in a little old man, about two feet and a half high, with a
red sugar-loaf hat and a long scarlet coat, reaching down nearly to the
ground, his hair was long and grey, and his face yellow and wrinkled. He
went over to the fire (which the family had quitted in their fear), sat
down and dried his clothes, and began smoking a pipe which he found
there. The family went to bed, and in the morning he was gone. In about
a month after he began to come regularly every night about eleven
o'clock. The signal which he gave was thrusting a hairy arm through a
hole in the door, which was then opened, and the family retired to bed,
leaving him the room to himself. If they did not open the door, some
accident was sure to happen next day to themselves or their cattle. On
the whole, however, his visits brought good luck, and the family
prospered, till the landlord put them out of their farm, and they never
saw the Fear Dearg more.

       *       *       *       *       *

As far as our knowledge extends, there is no being in the Irish rivers
answering to the Nix or Kelpie; but on the sea coast the people
believe in beings of the same kind as the Mermen and Mermaids. The
Irish name is Merrow,[436] and legends are told of them similar to
those of other countries. Thus the Lady of Gollerus resembles the
Mermaid-wife and others which we have already related. Instead,
however, of an entire dress, it is a kind of cap, named _Cohuleen
Driuth_, without which she cannot return to her subaqueous abode.
Other legends tell of matrimonial unions formed by mortals with these
sea-ladies, from which some families in the south claim a descent. The
Lord of Dunkerron, so beautifully told in verse by Mr. Croker, relates
the unfortunate termination of a marine amour of one of the O'Sullivan
family. The Soul-cages alone contains the adventures of a Mermau.

The Irish Pooka[437] ([Irish Uncial: puca]) is plainly the English
Pouke, Puck, and would seem, like it, to denote an evil spirit. The
notions respecting it are very vague. A boy in the mountains near
Killarney told Mr. Croker that "old people used to say that the Pookas
were very numerous in the times long ago. They were wicked-minded,
black-looking, bad things, that would come in the _form of wild colts_,
with chains hanging about them. They did great hurt to benighted
travellers." Here we plainly have the English Puck; but it is remarkable
that the boy should speak of Pookas in the plural number. In Leinster,
it was always _the_, not _a_ Pooka, that we heard named. When the
blackberries begin to decay, and the seeds to appear, the children are
told not to eat them any longer, as _the_ Pooka has dirtied on them.

The celebrated fall of the Liffey, near Ballymore Eustace, is named
Pool-a-Phooka, or The Pooka's Hole. Near Macroom, in the county of Cork,
are the ruins of a castle built on a rock, named Carrig-a-Phooka, or The
Pooka's Rock. There is an old castle not far from Dublin, called Puck's
Castle, and a townland in the county of Kildare is named Puckstown. The
common expression _play the Puck_ is the same as _play the deuce_, _play
the Devil_.

       *       *       *       *       *

The most remarkable of the Fairy-tribe in Ireland, and one which is
peculiar to the country, is the Leprechaun.[438] This is a being in
the form of an old man, dressed as he is described in one of the
following tales. He is by profession a maker of brogues; he resorts in
general only to secret and retired places, where he is discovered by
the sounds which he makes hammering his brogues. He is rich, like
curmudgeons of his sort, and it is only by the most violent threats
of doing him some bodily harm, that he can be made to show the place
where his treasure lies; but if the person who has caught him can be
induced (a thing that always happens, by the way) to take his eyes off
him, he vanishes, and with him the prospect of wealth. The only
instance of more than one Leprechaun being seen at a time is that
which occurs in one of the following tales, which was related by an
old woman, to the writer's sister and early companion, now no more.

Yet the Leprechaun, though, as we said, peculiar to Ireland, seems
indebted to England, at least, for his name. In Irish, as we have
seen, he is called _Lobaircin_, and it would not be easy to write the
English Lubberkin more accurately with Irish letters and Irish sounds.
Leprechaun is evidently a corruption of that word.[439] In the time of
Elizabeth and James, the word Lubrican was used in England to indicate
some kind of spirit. Thus Drayton gives as a part of Nymphidia's
invocation of Proserpina:

      By the mandrake's dreadful groans;
      By the Lubrican's sad moans;
      By the noise of dead men's bones
        In charnel-house rattling.

That this was the Leprechaun is, we think, clear; for in the Honest
Whore of Decker and Middleton, the following words are used of an
Irish footman:

      As for your Irish Lubrican, that spirit
      Whom by preposterous charms thy lust has raised.
                                                 Part II. i. 1.[440]

We thus have the Leprechaun as a well-known Irish fairy, though his
character was not understood, in the sixteenth century.

The two following tales we ourselves heard from the peasantry of
Kildare in our boyhood:[441]



                   _Clever Tom and the Leprechaun._

Oliver Tom Fwich-(i.e. Fitz)pathrick, as people used to call him, was
the eldest son o' a comfortable farmer, who lived nigh hand to
Morristown-Lattin, not far from the Liffey. Tom was jist turned o'
nine-an'-twinty, whin he met wid the follyin' advinthur, an' he was as
cliver, clane, tight, good-lukin' a boy as any in the whole county
Kildare. One fine day in harvist (it was a holiday) Tom was takin' a
ramble by himsilf thro' the land, an' wint sauntherin' along the sunny
side uv a hidge, an' thinkin' in himsilf, whare id be the grate harm
if people, instid uv idlin' an' goin' about doin' nothin' at all, war
to shake out the hay, an' bind and stook th' oats that was lyin' an
the ledge, 'specially as the weather was raither brokin uv late, whin
all uv a suddint he h'ard a clackin' sort o' n'ise jist a little way
fornint him, in the hidge. "Dear me," said Tom, "but isn't it now
raaly surprisin' to hear the stonechatters singin' so late in the
saison." So Tom stole an, goin' on the tips o' his toes to thry iv he
cud git a sight o' what was makin' the n'ise, to see iv he was right
in his guess. The n'ise stopt; but as Tom luked sharp thro' the
bushes, what did he see in a neuk o' the hidge but a brown pitcher
that might hould about a gallon an' a haff o' liquor; an' bye and bye
he seen a little wee deeny dawny bit iv an ould man, wid a little
motty iv a cocked hat stuck an the top iv his head, an' a deeshy
daushy leather apron hangin' down afore him, an' he pulled out a
little wooden stool, an' stud up upon it, and dipped a little piggen
into the pitcher, an' tuk out the full av it, an' put it beside the
stool, an' thin sot down undher the pitcher, an' begun to work at
puttin' a heelpiece an a bit iv a brogue jist fittin' fur himsilf.

"Well, by the powers!" said Tom to himsilf, "I aften hard tell o' the
Leprechauns, an', to tell God's thruth, I nivir rightly believed in
thim, but here's won o' thim in right airnest; if I go knowin'ly to
work, I'm a med man. They say a body must nivir take their eyes aff o'
thim, or they'll escape."

Tom now stole an a little farther, wid his eye fixed an the little man
jist as a cat does wid a mouse, or, as we read in books, the rattlesnake
does wid the birds he wants to inchant. So, whin he got up quite close
to him, "God bless your work, honest man," sez Tom. The little man
raised up his head, an' "Thank you kindly," sez he. "I wundher you'd be
workin' an the holiday," sez Tom. "That's my own business, an' none of
your's," was the reply, short enough. "Well, may be, thin, you'd be
civil enough to tell us, what you've got in the pitcher there," sez Tom.
"Aye, will I, wid pleasure," sez he: "it's good beer." "Beer!" sez Tom:
"Blud an' turf, man, whare did ye git it?" "Whare did I git it, is it?
why I med it to be shure; an' what do ye think I med it av?" "Divil a
one o' me knows," sez Tom, "but av malt, I 'spose; what ilse?" "'Tis
there you're out; I med it av haith." "Av haith!" sez Tom, burstin' out
laughin'. "Shure you don't take me to be sich an omedhaun as to b'lieve
that?" "Do as ye plase," sez he, "but what I tell ye is the raal thruth.
Did ye nivir hear tell o' the Danes?" "To be shure I did," sez Tom,
"warn't thim the chaps we gev such a lickin' whin they thought to take
Derry frum huz?" "Hem," sez the little man dhryly, "is that all ye know
about the matther?" "Well, but about thim Danes," sez Tom. "Why all th'
about thim is," said he, "is that whin they war here they taught huz to
make beer out o' the haith, an' the saicret's in my family ivir sense."
"Will ye giv a body a taste o' yer beer to thry?" sez Tom. "I'll tell ye
what it is, young man, it id be fitther fur ye to be lukin' afther yer
father's propirty thi'n to be botherin' dacint, quite people wid yer
foolish questions. There, now, while you're idlin' away yer time here,
there's the cows hav' bruk into th' oats, an' are knockin' the corn all
about."

Tom was taken so by surprise wid this, that he was jist an the very
point o' turnin' round, whin he recollicted himsilf. So, afeard that
the like might happin agin, he med a grab at the Leprechaun, an' cotch
him up in his hand, but in his hurry he ovirset the pitcher, and spilt
all the beer, so that he couldn't git a taste uv it to tell what sort
it was. He thin swore what he wouldn't do to him iv he didn't show him
whare his money was. Tom luked so wicked, an' so bloody-minded, that
the little man was quite frightened. "So," sez he, "come along wid me
a couple o' fields aff, an' I'll show ye a crock o' gould." So they
wint, an' Tom held the Leprechaun fast in his hand, an' nivir tuk his
eyes frum aff uv him, though they had to crass hidges an' ditches, an'
a cruked bit uv a bog (fur the Leprechaun seemed, out o' pure
mischief, to pick out the hardest and most conthrairy way), till at
last they come to a grate field all full o' _bolyawn buies_,[442] an'
the Leprechaun pointed to a big bolyawn, an' sez he, "Dig undher that
bolyawn, an' you'll git a crock chuck full o' goulden guineas."

Tom, in his hurry, had nivir minded the bringin' a fack[443] wid him,
so he thought to run home and fetch one, an' that he might know the
place agin, he tuk aff one o' his red garthers, and tied it round the
bolyawn. "I s'pose," sez the Leprechaun, very civilly, "ye've no
further occashin fur me?" "No," sez Tom, "ye may go away now, if ye
like, and God speed ye, an' may good luck attind ye whareivir ye go."
"Well, good bye to ye, Tom Fwichpathrick," sed the Leprechaun, "an'
much good may do ye wid what ye'll git."

So Tom run fur the bare life, till he come home, an' got a fack, an'
thin away wid him as hard as he could pilt back to the field o'
bolyawns; but whin he got there, lo an' behould, not a bolyawn in the
field, but had a red garther, the very idintical model o' his own,
tied about it; an' as to diggin' up the whole field, that was all
nonsinse, fur there was more nor twinty good Irish acres in it. So Tom
come home agin wid his fack an his shouldher, a little cooler nor he
wint; and many's the hearty curse he gev the Leprechaun ivry time he
thought o' the nate turn he sarved him.[444]



                   _The Leprechaun in the Garden._

There's a sort o' people that every body must have met wid sumtime or
another. I mane thim people that purtinds not to b'lieve in things
that in their hearts they _do_ b'lieve in, an' are mortially afeard o'
too. Now Failey[445] Mooney was one o' these. Failey (iv any o' yez
knew him) was a rollockin', rattlin', divil-may-care sort ov a chap
like--but that's neither here nor there; he was always talkin' one
nonsinse or another; an' among the rest o' his fooleries, he purtinded
not to b'lieve in the fairies, the Leprechauns, an' the Poocas, an' he
evin sumtimes had the impedince to purtind to doubt o' ghosts, that
every body b'lieves in, at any rate. Yit sum people used to wink an'
luk knowin' whin Failey was gostherin', fur it was obsarved that he
was mighty shy o' crassin' the foord o' Ahnamoe afther nightfall; an'
that whin onst he was ridin' past the ould church o' Tipper in the
dark, tho' he'd got enough o' pottheen into him to make any man stout,
he med the horse trot so that there was no keepin' up wid him, an'
iv'ry now an' thin he'd throw a sharp luk-out ovir his lift shouldher.

Well, one night there was a parcel o' the neighbours sittin' dhrinkin'
an' talkin' at Larry Reilly's public-house, an' Failey was one o' the
party. He was, as usual, gittin' an wid his nonsinse an' baldherdash
about the fairies, an' swearin' that he didn't b'lieve there was any
live things, barrin' min an' bastes, an' birds and fishes, an' sich
like things as a body cud see, an' he wint on talkin' in so profane a
way o' the good people, that som o' the company grew timid an' begun
to crass thimsilves, not knowin' what might happin', whin an ould
woman called Mary Hogan wid a long blue cloak about her, that was
sittin' in the chimbly corner smokin' her pipe widout takin' the laste
share in the conversation, tuk the pipe out o' her mouth, an' threw
the ashes out o' it, an' spit in the fire, an' turnin' round, luked
Failey straight in the face. "An' so you don't b'lieve there's sich
things as Leprechauns, don't ye?" sed she.

Well, Failey luked rayther daunted, but howsumdivir he sed nothin'.
"Why, thin, upon my throth, an' it well becomes the likes o' ye, an'
that's nothin' but a bit uv a gossoon, to take upon yer to purtind not
to b'lieve what yer father, an' yer father's father, an' his father
afore him, nivir med the laste doubt uv. But to make the matther
short, seein' 's b'lievin' they say, an' I, that might be yer
gran'mother, tell ye there is sich things as Leprechauns, an' what's
more, that I mysilf seen one o' thim,--there's fur ye, now!"

All the people in the room luked quite surprised at this, an' crowded
up to the fireplace to listen to her. Failey thried to laugh, but it
wouldn't do, nobody minded him.

"I remimber," sed she, "some time afther I married the honest man,
that's now dead and gone, it was by the same token jist a little afore
I lay in o' my first child (an' that's many a long day ago), I was
sittin', as I sed, out in our little bit o' a gardin, wid my knittin'
in my hand, watchin' sum bees we had that war goin' to swarm. It was a
fine sunshiny day about the middle o' June, an' the bees war hummin'
and flyin' backwards an' forwards frum the hives, an' the birds war
chirpin' an' hoppin' an the bushes, an' the buttherflies war flyin'
about an' sittin' an the flowers, an' ev'ry thing smelt so fresh an'
so sweet, an' I felt so happy, that I hardly knew whare I was. Well,
all uv a suddint, I heard among sum rows of banes we had in a corner
o' the gardin, a n'ise that wint tick tack, tick tack, jist fur all
the world as iv a brogue-maker was puttin' an the heel uv a pump. 'The
Lord presarve us,' sed I to mysilf, 'what in the world can that be?'
So I laid down my knittin', an' got up, an' stole ovir to the banes,
an' nivir believe me iv I didn't see, sittin' right forenint me, in
the very middle of thim, a bit of an ould man, not a quarther so big
as a new-born child, wid a little cocked hat an his head, an' a dudeen
in his mouth, smokin' away; an' a plain, ould-fashioned,
dhrab- coat, wid big brass buttons upon it, an his back, an' a
pair o' massy silver buckles in his shoes, that a'most covered his
feet they war so big, an' he workin' away as hard as ivir he could,
heelin' a little pair o' pumps. The instant minnit I clapt my two eyes
upon him I knew him to be a Leprechaun, an' as I was stout an'
foolhardy, sez I to him 'God save ye honist man! that's hard work
ye're at this hot day.' He luked up in my face quite vexed like; so
wid that I med a run at him an' cotch hould o' him in my hand, an'
axed him whare was his purse o' money! 'Money?' sed he, 'money
_annagh_! an' whare on airth id a poor little ould crathur like mysilf
git money?' 'Come, come,' sed I, 'none o' yer thricks upon
thravellers; doesn't every body know that Leprechauns, like ye, are
all as rich as the divil himsilf.' So I pulled out a knife I'd in my
pocket, an' put on as wicked a face as ivir I could (an' in throth,
that was no aisy matther fur me thin, fur I was as comely an'
good-humoured a lukin' girl as you'd see frum this to Ballitore)--an'
swore by this and by that, if he didn't instantly gi' me his purse, or
show me a pot o' goold, I'd cut the nose aff his face. Well, to be
shure, the little man did luk so frightened at hearin' these words,
that I a'most found it in my heart to pity the poor little crathur.
'Thin,' sed he, 'come wid me jist a couple o' fields aff, an' I'll
show ye whare I keep my money.' So I wint, still houldin' him fast in
my hand, an' keepin' my eyes fixed upon him, whin all o' a suddint I
h'ard a whiz-z behind me. 'There! there!' cries he, 'there's yer bees
all swarmin' an' goin' aff wid thimsilves like blazes.' I, like a fool
as I was, turned my head round, an' whin I seen nothin' at all, an'
luked back at the Leprechaun, an' found nothin' at all at all in my
hand--fur whin I had the ill luck to take my eyes aff him, ye see, he
slipped out o' my fingers jist as iv he was med o' fog or smoke, an'
the sarra the fut he iver come nigh my garden agin."


                       _The Three Leprechauns._

Mrs. L. having heard that Molly Toole, an old woman who held a few
acres of land from Mr. L., had seen Leprechauns, resolved to visit
her, and learn the truth from her own lips. Accordingly, one Sunday,
after church, she made her appearance at Molly's residence, which
was--no very common thing--extremely neat and comfortable. As she
entered, every thing looked gay and cheerful. The sun shone bright in
through the door on the earthen floor. Molly was seated at the far
side of the fire in her arm-chair; her daughter Mary, the prettiest
girl on the lands, was looking to the dinner that was boiling; and her
son Mickey, a young man of about two-and-twenty, was standing lolling
with his back against the dresser.

The arrival of the mistress disturbed the stillness that had hitherto
prevailed. Mary, who was a great favourite, hastened to the door to meet
her, and shake hands with her. Molly herself had nearly got to the
middle of the floor when the mistress met her, and Mickey modestly staid
where he was till he should catch her attention. "O then, musha! but
isn't it a glad sight for my ould eyes to see your own silf undher my
roof? Mary, what ails you, girl? and why don't you go into the room and
fetch out a good chair for the misthress to sit down upon and rest
herself?" "'Deed faith, mother, I'm so glad I don't know what I'm doin'.
Sure you know I didn't see the misthress since she cum down afore."

Mickey now caught Mrs. L.'s eye, and she asked him how he did. "By
Gorra, bravely, ma'am, thank you," said he, giving himself a wriggle,
while his two hands and the small of his back rested on the edge of
the dresser.

"Now, Mary, stir yourself, alanna," said the old woman, "and get out
the bread and butther. Sure you know the misthress can't but be hungry
afther her walk."--"O, never mind it, Molly; it's too much
trouble."--"Throuble, indeed! it's as nice butther, ma'am, as iver
you put a tooth in; and it was Mary herself that med it."--"O, then I
must taste it."

A nice half griddle of whole-meal bread and a print of fresh butter
were now produced, and Molly helped the mistress with her own hands.
As she was eating, Mary kept looking in her face, and at last said,
"Ah then, mother, doesn't the misthress luk mighty well? Upon my
faikins, ma'am, I never seen you luking half so handsome."--"Well! and
why wouldn't she luk well? And niver will she luk betther nor be
betther nor I wish her."--"Well, Molly, I think I may return the
compliment, for Mary is prettier than ever; and as for yourself, I
really believe it's young again you're growing."--"Why, God be
thanked, ma'am, I'm stout and hearty; and though I say it mysilf,
there's not an ould woman in the county can stir about betther nor me,
and I'm up ivery mornin' at the peep of day, and rout them all up out
of their beds. Don't I?" said she, looking at Mary.--"Faith, and sure
you do, mother," replied Mickey; "and before the peep of day, too; for
you have no marcy in you at all at all."--"Ah, in my young days,"
continued the old woman, "people woren't slugabeds; out airly, home
late--that was the way wid thim."--"And usedn't people to see
Leprechauns in thim days, mother?" said Mickey, laughing.--"Hould your
tongue, you saucy cub, you," cried Molly; "what do you know about
thim?"--"Leprechauns?" said Mrs. L., gladly catching at the
opportunity; "did people really, Molly, see Leprechauns in your young
days?"--"Yes, indeed, ma'am; some people say they did," replied Molly,
very composedly.--"O com' now, mother," cried Mickey, "don't think to
be goin' it upon us that away; you know you seen thim one time
yoursilf, and you hadn't the gumption in you to cotch thim, and git
their crocks of gould from thim."--"Now, Molly, is that really true
that you saw the Leprechauns?"--"'Deed, and did I, ma'am; but this
boy's always laughin' at me about thim, and that makes me rather shy
in talkin' o' thim."--"Well, Molly, _I_ won't laugh at you; so, come,
tell me how you saw them."

"Well, ma'am, you see it was whin I was jist about the age of Mary,
there. I was comin' home late one Monday evenin' from the market; for
my aunt Kitty, God be marciful to her! would keep me to take a cup of
tay. It was in the summer time, you see, ma'am, much about the middle
of June, an' it was through the fields I come. Well, ma'am, as I was
sayin', it was late in the evenin', that is, the sun was near goin'
down, an' the light was straight in my eyes, an' I come along through
the bog-meadow; for it was shortly afther I was married to him that's
gone, an' we wor livin' in this very house you're in now; an' thin
whin I come to the castle-field--the pathway you know, ma'am, goes
right through the middle uv it--an' it was thin as fine a field of
whate, jist shot out, as you'd wish to luk at; an' it was a purty
sight to see it wavin' so beautifully wid every air of wind that was
goin' over it, dancin' like to the music of a thrush, that was singin'
down below in the hidge.[446] Well, ma'am, I crasst over the style
that's there yit, and wint along fair and aisy, till I was near about
the middle o' the field, whin somethin' med me cast my eyes to the
ground, a little before me; an' thin I saw, as sure as I'm sittin'
here, no less nor three o' the Leprechauns, all bundled together like
so miny tailyors, in the middle o' the path before me. They worn't
hammerin' their pumps, nor makin' any kind of n'ise whatever; but
there they wor, the three little fellows, wid their cocked hats upon
thim, an' their legs gothered up undher thim, workin' away at their
thrade as hard as may be. If you wor only to see, ma'am, how fast
their little ilbows wint as they pulled out their inds! Well, every
one o' thim had his eye cocked upon me, an' their eyes wor as bright
as the eye of a frog, an' I cudn't stir one step from the spot for
the life o' me. So I turned my head round, and prayed to the Lord in
his marcy to deliver me from thim, and when I wint to luk at thim
agin, ma'am, not a sight o' thim was to be seen: they wor gone like a
dhrame."--"But, Molly, why did you not catch them?"--"I was afeard,
ma'am, that's the thruth uv it; but maybe I was as well widout thim. I
niver h'ard tell of a Leprechaun yit that wasn't too many for any one
that cotch him."--"Well, and Molly, do you think there are any
Leprechauns now?"--"It's my belief, ma'am, they're all gone out of the
country, cliver and clane, along wid the Fairies; for I niver hear
tell o' thim now at all."

Mrs. L. having now attained her object, after a little more talk with
the good old woman, took her leave, attended by Mary, who would see
her a piece of the way home. And Mary being asked what she thought of
the Leprechauns, confessed her inability to give a decided opinion:
her mother, she knew, was incapable of telling a lie, and yet she had
her doubts if there ever were such things as Leprechauns.

       *       *       *       *       *

The following tale of a Cluricaun, related by the writer of the Legend
of Bottle Hill, is of a peculiar character. We have never heard
anything similar of a Leprechaun.


                          _The Little Shoe._

"Now tell me, Molly," said Mr. Coote to Molly Cogan, as he met her on
the road one day, close to one of the old gateways of Kilmallock, "did
you ever hear of the Cluricaun?"--"Is it the Cluricaun? Why, thin, to
be shure; aften an' aften. Many's the time I h'ard my father, rest his
sowl! tell about 'em over and over agin."--"But did you ever see one,
Molly--did you ever see one yourself?"--"Och! no, I niver seen one in
my life; but my gran'father, that's my father's father, you know, he
seen one, one time, an' cotch him too."--"Caught him! Oh! Molly, tell
me how was that."

"Why, thin, I'll tell ye. My gran'father, you see, was out there above
in the bog, dhrawin' home turf, an' the poor ould mare was tir't
afther her day's work, an' the ould man wint out to the stable to look
afther her, an' to see if she was aitin' her hay; an' whin he come to
the stable door there, my dear, he h'ard sumthin' hammerin',
hammerin', hammerin', jist for all the wurld like a shoemaker makin' a
shoe, and whis'lin' all the time the purtiest chune he iver h'ard in
his whole life afore. Well, my gran'father he thought it was the
Cluricaun, an' he sed to himsilf, sez he, 'I'll ketch you, if I can,
an' thin I'll have money enough always.' So he opened the door very
quitely, an' didn't make a taste o' n'ise in the wurld, an' luked all
about, but the niver a bit o' the little man cud he see anywhare, but
he h'ard his hammerin' and whis'lin', an' so he luked and luked, till
at last he seen the little fellow; an' whare was he, do ye think, but
in the girth undher the mare; an' there he was, wid his little bit ov
an apron an him, an' his hammer in his hand, an' a little red
night-cap an his head, an' he makin' a shoe; an he was so busy wid his
work, an' was hammerin' an' whis'lin' so loud, that he niver minded my
gran'father, till he cotch him fast in his hand. 'Faix, I have ye
now,' says he, 'an' I'll niver let ye go till I git yer purse--that's
what I won't; so give it here at onst to me, now.' 'Stop, stop,' says
the Cluricaun; 'stop, stop,' says he, 'till I get it for ye.' So my
gran'father, like a fool, ye see, opened his hand a little, an' the
little weeny chap jumped away laughin', an' he niver seen him any
more, an' the divil a bit o' the purse did he git; only the Cluricaun
left his little shoe that he was makin'. An' my gran'father was mad
enough wid himself for lettin' him go; but he had the shoe all his
life, an' my own mother tould me she aftin seen it, an' had it in her
hand; an' 'twas the purtiest little shoe she ivir seen."--"An' did you
see it yourself, Molly?"--"Oh! no, my dear, 'twas lost long afore I
was born; but my mother tould me aftin an' aftin enough."

FOOTNOTES:

[427] Mr. Croker says, that according to the Munster peasantry the
ordinary attire of the Fairy is a black hat, green coat, white
stockings, and red shoes.

[428] In Irish as in Erse, [Irish Uncial: daine maiṫ] (_deenè mâh_).

[429] See above, p. 26.

[430] They are [Irish Uncial: sia] (_shia_), [Irish Uncial: siaḃra]
(_shifra_), [Irish Uncial: siacaire] (_shicârè_), [Irish Uncial: siġ]
(_shee_), [Irish Uncial: siġe] (_sheeè_), [Irish Uncial:
siġib](_sheeidh_) all denoting, spirit, fairy. The term [Irish Uncial:
siġ] also signifies a hag, and a hillock, and as an adjective,
spiritual.

[431] We never heard a fairy-legend from any of the Connaught-men with
whom we conversed in our boyhood. Their tales were all of
Finn-mac-Cool and his heroes.

[432] In Irish, [Irish Uncial: dia aoine] (_dhia eenè_). We are
inclined to think that he must have added, [Irish Uncial: dia
dardaoin, dia aoine] (_dhia dhardheen, dhia eenè_), _i.e._ Thursday,
Friday; for we can see no reason for omitting Thursday.

[433] See below, _Brittany_ and _Spain_, in both of which the legend
is more perfect; but it is impossible to say which is the original.
Parnell's pleasing Fairy Tale is probably formed on this Irish
version, yet it agrees more with the Breton legend.

[434] This story may remind one of the Wonderful Lamp, and others.
There is something of the same kind in the Pentamerone.

[435] _Inis_, pronounced sometimes _Inch_, (like the Hebrew _Ee_ (אי)
and the Indian _Dsib_) is either island or coast, bank of sea or river.
The Ang.-Sax. [Old English: ig] (_ee_) seems to have had the same extent
of signification, hence Chelsea, Battersea, etc., which never could have
been islands. Perhaps [Old English: þeordig] (_worthy_, _worth_) was
similar, as _werd_, _werth_, in German is an island.

[436] Mr. Croker says this is _moruach_, sea-maid; the only word we
find in O'Reilly is [Irish Uncial: muiriṁmgeaċ] (_múrirgach_). We have
met no term answering to _merman_.

[437] It is a rule of the Irish language, that the initial consonant of
an oblique case, or of a word _in regimine_, becomes aspirated; thus
_Pooka_ (nom.), _na Phooka_ (gen.), _mac_ son, _a mhic_ (_vic_) my son.

[438] In Irish [Irish Uncial: lobaircin] (_lubárkin_); the Ulster name
is Logheryman, in Irish [Irish Uncial: loċarman] (_lucharman_). For
the Cork term Cluricaun, the Kerry Luricaun and the Tipperary
Lurigadaun, we have found no equivalents in the Irish dictionaries.
The short _o_ in Irish, we may observe, is pronounced as in French and
Spanish, _i. e._ as _u_ in _but_, _cut_; _ai_ nearly as _a_ in _fall_.
It may be added, on account of the following tales, that in Kildare
and the adjoining counties the short English _u_, in _but_, _cut_,
etc., is invariably pronounced as in _pull_, _full_, while this _u_,
is pronounced as that in _but_, _cut_.

[439] The Ulster _Lucharman_ also has such an English look, that we
should be tempted to derive it from the Ang.-Sax. _lácan_, _lǽcan_, to
play. Loki _Löjemand_, or Loki Playman, is a name of the Eddaic deity
Loki in the Danish ballads.

[440] In the place of the Witch of Edmonton usually quoted with this,
_Lubrick_ is plainly the Latin _lubricus_.

[441] It will be observed that these, as well as the Young Piper in
the Appendix, are related in the character of a peasant. This was in
accordance with a frame that was proposed for the Fairy Legends, but
which proved too difficult of execution to be adopted.

[442] Lit. Yellow-stick, the ragwort or ragweed, which grows to a
great size in Ireland.

[443] A kind of spade with but one step, used in Leinster.

[444] All that is said in this legend about the beer is a pure fiction,
for we never heard of a Leprechaun drinking or smoking. It is, however,
a tradition of the peasantry, that the Danes used to make beer of the
heath. It was a Protestant farmer in the county of Cavan, that showed
such knowledge of the siege of Derry; the Catholic gardener who told us
this story, knew far better. It is also the popular belief that the
Danes keep up their claim on Ireland, and that a Danish father, when
marrying his daughter, gives her a portion in Ireland.

[445] _i. e._ Felix. On account of the Romish custom of naming after
Saints, Felix, Thaddæus, Terence, Augustine, etc., are common names
among the peasantry.

[446] In our Tales and Popular Fictions, p. 16, we noticed the
coincidence between this and a passage in an Arabic author. We did not
then recollect the following verses of Milton,

      The willows and the hazle copses green
      Shall now no more be seen
      Fanning their joyous leaves to thy soft lays.
                                            _Lycidas_, 42.

The simile of the moon among the stars in the same place, we have since
found in the Nibelungen Lied (st. 285), and in some of our old poets,
and Hammer says (Sehirin i. note 7), that it occurs even to satiety in
Oriental poetry. In like manner Camoens' simile of the mirror, mentioned
in the same place, occurs in Poliziano's Stanze i. 64.




                         SCOTTISH HIGHLANDS.

      Huar Prownie coad agus curochd,
      Agus cha dian Prownie opar tullidh.

      Brownie has got a cowl and coat,
      And never more will work a jot.
                                  STEWART.


Colonies of Gothic Fairies, it would appear, early established
themselves in the Highlands, and almost every Lowland, German, and
Scandinavian Fairy or Dwarf-tale will there find its fellow. The
Gaelic Fairies are very handsome in their persons; their usual attire
is green. They dance and sing, lend and borrow, and they make cloth
and shoes in an amazingly short space of time. They make their _raids_
upon the low country, and carry off women and children; they fetch
midwives to assist at the birth of their children, and mortals have
spent a night at the fairy revels, and next morning found that the
night had extended a hundred years. Highland fairies also take the
diversion of the chase. "One Highlander," says Mc.Culloch,[447] "in
passing a mountain, hears the tramp of horses, the music of the horn,
and the cheering of the huntsmen; when suddenly a gallant crew of
thirteen fairy hunters, dressed in green, sweep by him, the silver
bosses of their bridles jingling in the night breeze."

The Gael call the Fairies Daoine Shi',[448] (_Dheenè Shee_) and their
habitations Shians, or Tomhans. These are a sort of turrets, resembling
masses of rock or hillocks. By day they are indistinguishable, but at
night they are frequently lit up with great splendour.

Brownie, too, 'shows his honest face' in the Highlands; and the
mischievous water-Kelpie also appears in his equine form, and seeks to
decoy unwary persons to mount him, that he may plunge with his rider
into the neighbouring loch or river.

The Highlanders have nearly the same ideas as their Shetland
neighbours, respecting the seals.

The following legends will illustrate what we have stated.[449]


                        _The Fairy's Inquiry._

A clergyman was returning home one night after visiting a sick member
of his congregation. His way led by a lake, and as he proceeded he was
surprised to hear most melodious strains of music. He sat down to
listen. The music seemed to approach coming over the lake accompanied
by a light. At length he discerned a man walking on the water,
attended by a number of little beings, some bearing lights, others
musical instruments. At the beach the man dismissed his attendants,
and then walking up to the minister saluted him courteously. He was a
little grey-headed old man, dressed in rather an unusual garb. The
minister having returned his salute begged of him to come and sit
beside him. He complied with the request, and on being asked who he
was, replied that he was one of the Daoine Shi. He added that he and
they had originally been angels, but having been seduced into revolt
by Satan, they had been cast down to earth where they were to dwell
till the day of doom. His object now was, to ascertain from the
minister what would be their condition after that awful day. The
minister then questioned him on the articles of faith; but as his
answers did not prove satisfactory, and as in repeating the Lord's
Prayer, he persisted in saying _wert_ instead of _art in heaven_, he
did not feel himself justified in holding out any hopes to him. The
fairy then gave a cry of despair and flung himself into the loch, and
the minister resumed his journey.


                    _The Young Man in the Shian._

A farmer named Macgillivray, one time removed from the neighbourhood
of Cairngorm in Strathspey to the forest of Glenavon, in which the
fairies are said to reside. Late one night, as two of his sons, Donald
and Rory, were in search of some of his sheep that had strayed, they
saw lights streaming from the crevices of a fairy turret which in the
day time had only the appearance of a rock. They drew nigh to it, and
there they heard jigs and reels played inside in the most exquisite
manner. Rory was so fascinated that he proposed that they should enter
and take part in the dance. Donald did all he could to dissuade him,
but in vain. He jumped into the Shian, and plunged at once into the
whirling movements of its inhabitants. Donald was in great perplexity,
for he feared to enter the Shian. All he could do therefore was to put
his mouth to one of the crevices, and calling, as the custom was,
three times on his brother, entreating him in the most moving terms,
to come away and return home. But his entreaties were unheeded and he
was obliged to return alone.

Every means now was resorted to for the recovery of Rory, but to no
purpose. His family gave him up for lost, when a _Duin Glichd_ or Wise
man, told Donald to go to the place where he had lost his brother, a
year and a day from the time, and placing in his garments a
rowan-cross, to enter the Shian boldly, and claim him in the divine
name, and if he would not come voluntarily, to seize him and drag him
out; for the fairies would have no power to prevent him. After some
hesitation Donald assented. At the appointed time he approached the
Shian at midnight. It was full of revelry, and the merry dance was
going on as before. Donald had his terrors no doubt, but they gave
way to his fraternal affection. He entered and found Rory in the midst
of a Highland Fling, and running up to him, seized him by the collar,
repeating the words dictated by the Wise man. Rory agreed to go
provided he would let him finish his dance; for he had not been, he
assured him, more than half an hour in the place, but Donald was
inexorable, and took him home to his parents. Rory would never have
believed that his half-hour had been a twelvemonth, "did not the
calves grown now into stots, and the new-born babes now toddling about
the house, at length convince him that in his single reel he had
danced for a twelvemonth and a day."


                         _The Two Fiddlers._

Nearly three hundred years ago, there dwelt in Strathspey two fiddlers,
greatly renowned in their art. One Christmas they resolved to go try
their fortune in Inverness. On arriving in that town they took lodgings,
and as was the custom at that time, hired the bellman to go round
announcing their arrival, their qualifications, their fame, and their
terms. Soon after they were visited by a venerable-looking grey-haired
old man, who not only found no fault with, but actually offered to
double their terms if they would go with him. They agreed, and he led
them out of the town, and brought them to a very strange-looking
dwelling which seemed to them to be very like a Shian. The money,
however, and the entreaties of their guide induced them to enter it, and
their musical talents were instantly put into requisition, and the
dancing was such as in their lives they had never witnessed.

When morning came they took their leave highly gratified with the
liberal treatment they had received. It surprised them greatly to find
that it was out of a hill and not a house that they issued, and when
they came to the town, they could not recognise any place or person,
every thing seemed so altered. While they and the townspeople were in
mutual amazement, there came up a very old man, who on hearing their
story, said: "You are then the two men who lodged with my
great-grandfather, and whom Thomas Rimer, it was supposed, decoyed to
Tomnafurach. Your friends were greatly grieved on your account, but it
is a hundred years ago, and your names are now no longer known." It
was the Sabbath day and the bells were tolling; the fiddlers, deeply
penetrated with awe at what had occurred, entered the church to join
in the offices of religion. They sat in silent meditation while the
bell continued ringing, but the moment that the minister commenced the
service they crumbled away into dust.


                         _The Fairy-Labour._

Many years ago there dwelt in Strathspey a midwife of great repute.
One night just as she was going to bed, she heard a loud knocking at
the door, and on opening it she saw there a man and a grey horse,
_both out of breath_. The rider requested her to jump up behind him
and come away to assist a lady who was in great danger. He would not
even consent to her stopping to change her dress, as it would cause
delay. She mounted and away they went at full speed. On the way she
tried to learn from the rider whither she was going, but all she could
get from him was, that she would be well paid. At length he let out
that it was to a fairy-lady he was taking her. Nothing daunted,
however, she went on, and on reaching the Shian, she found that her
services were really very much needed. She succeeded in bringing a
fine boy to the light, which caused so much joy, that the fairies
desired her to ask what she would, and if it was in their power, it
should be granted. Her desire was that success might attend herself
and her posterity in all similar operations. The gift was conferred
and it continued, it was said, with her great-grandson, at the time
the collector of these legends wrote.


                    _The Fairy borrowing Oatmeal._

A fairy came one day from one of the turrets of Craig-ail-naic to the
wife of one of the tenants in Delnabo, and asked her to lend her a
firlot of oatmeal for food for her family, promising to repay it soon,
as she was every moment expecting an ample supply. The woman complied
with this request, and after, as was the custom of the country, having
regaled her with bread, cheese, and whiskey, she went, as was usual,
to see her a part of the way home. When they had reached the summit of
an eminence near the town, the _Béanshi_ told her she might take her
meal home again as she was now abundantly supplied. The woman did as
desired, and as she went along she beheld the corn-kiln of an adjacent
farm all in a blaze.


                          _The Fairy-Gift._

A farmer in Strathspey was one day engaged in sowing one of his fields
and singing at his work. A fairy damsel of great beauty came up to him
and requested him to sing for her a favourite old Gaelic song named
_Nighan Donne na Bual_. He complied, and she then asked him to give
her some of his corn. At this he demurred a little and wished to know
what she would give him in return. She replied with a significant look
that his seed would never fail him. He then gave to her liberally and
she departed. He went on sowing, and when he had finished a large
field, he found that his bag was as full and as heavy as when he
began. He then sowed another field of the same size, with the same
result, and satisfied with his day's work, he threw the bag on his
shoulder and went home. Just as he was entering the barn-door he was
met by his wife, a foolish talkative body with a tongue as long, and a
head as empty as the church bell, who, struck with the appearance of
the bag after a day's sowing, began to ask him about it. Instantly it
became quite empty. "I'll be the death of you, you foolish woman,"
roared out the farmer; "if it were not for your idle talk, that bag
was worth its weight in gold."


                           _The Stolen Ox._

The tacksman (_i. e._ tenant) of the farm of Auchriachan in Strathavon,
while searching one day for his goats on a hill in Glenlivat, found
himself suddenly enveloped in a dense fog. It continued till night came
on when he began to give himself up to despair. Suddenly he beheld a
light at no great distance. He hastened toward it, and found that it
proceeded from a strange-looking edifice. The door was open, and he
entered, but great was his surprise to meet there a woman whose funeral
he had lately attended. From her he learned that this was an abode of
the fairies for whom she kept house, and his only chance of safety, she
said, was in being concealed from them; for which purpose she hid him in
a corner of the apartment. Presently in came a troop of fairies, and
began calling out for food. An old dry-looking fellow then reminded them
of the miserly, as he styled him, tacksman of Auchriachan, and how he
cheated them out of their lawful share of his property, by using some
charms taught him by his old grandmother. "He is now from home," said
he, "in search of our allies,[450] his goats, and his family have
neglected to use the charm, so come let us have his favourite ox for
supper." The speaker was Thomas Rimer, and the plan was adopted with
acclamation. "But what are we to do for bread?" cried one. "We'll have
Auchriachan's new baked bread," replied Thomas; "his wife forgot to
cross the first bannock."[451] So said, so done. The ox was brought in
and slaughtered before the eyes of his master, whom, while the fairies
were employed about their cooking, his friend gave an opportunity of
making his escape.

The mist had now cleared away and the moon was shining. Auchriachan
therefore soon reached his home. His wife instantly produced a basket
of new-baked bannocks with milk and urged him to eat. But his mind was
running on his ox, and his first question was, who had served the
cattle that night. He then asked the son who had done it if he had
used the charm, and he owned he had forgotten it. "Alas! alas!" cried
he, "my favourite ox is no more." "How can that be?" said one of the
sons, "I saw him alive and well not two hours ago." "It was nothing
but a fairy stock," cried the father. "Bring him out here." The poor
ox was led forth, and the farmer, after abusing it and those that sent
it, felled it to the ground. The carcase was flung down the brae at
the back of the house, and the bread was sent after it, and there they
both lay untouched, for it was observed that neither cat nor dog would
put a tooth in either of them.


                          _The Stolen Lady._

John Roy, who lived in Glenbroun, in the parish of Abernethy, being out
one night on the hills in search of his cattle, met a troop of fairies,
who seemed to have got a prize of some sort or other. Recollecting that
the fairies are obliged to exchange whatever they may have with any one
who offers them anything, however low in value, for it, he flung his
bonnet to them, crying _Shuis slo slumus sheen_ (_i. e._, mine is yours
and yours is mine). The fairies dropped their booty, which proved to be
a Sassenach (English) lady whom the dwellers of the Shian of Coir-laggac
had carried away from her own country, leaving a stock in her place
which, of course, died and was buried. John brought her home, and she
lived for many years in his house. "It happened, however, in the course
of time," said the Gaelic narrator, "that the _new king_ found it
necessary to make the great roads through these countries by means of
soldiers, for the purpose of letting coaches and carriages pass to the
northern cities; and those soldiers had officers and commanders in the
same way as our fighting army have now. Those soldiers were never great
favourites in these countries, particularly during the time that our
kings were alive; and consequently it was no easy matter for them,
either officers or men, to procure for themselves comfortable quarters."
But John Roy would not keep up the national animosity to the _cottan
dearg_ (red-coats), and he offered a residence in his house to a _Saxon_
captain and his son. When there they could not take their eyes off the
English lady, and the son remarked to his father what a strong likeness
she bore to his deceased mother. The father replied that he too had been
struck with the resemblance, and said he could almost fancy she _was_
his wife. He then mentioned her name and those of some persons connected
with them. The lady by these words at once recognised her husband and
son, and honest John Roy had the satisfaction of reuniting the
long-separated husband and wife, and receiving their most grateful
acknowledgments.[452]


                          _The Changeling._

A couple of Strathspey lads who dealt in whiskey that never paid duty,
which they used to purchase in Glenlivat, and sell at Badenoch and Fort
William, were one night laying in stock at Glenlivat when they heard the
child in the cradle give a piercing cry, just as if it had been shot.
The mother, of course, blessed it, and the Strathspey lads took no
further notice, and soon after set out with their goods. They had not
gone far when they found a fine healthy child lying all alone on the
road-side, which they soon recognised as that of their friend. They saw
at once how the thing was. The fairies had taken away the real child and
left a stock, but, owing to the pious ejaculation of the mother, they
had been forced to drop it. As the urgency of their business did not
permit them to return, they took the child with them, and kept it till
the next time they had occasion to visit Glenlivat. On their arrival
they said nothing about the child, which they kept concealed. In the
course of conversation, the mother took occasion to remark that the
disease which had attacked the child the last time they were there had
never left it, and she had now little hopes of its recovery. As if to
confirm her statement, it continued uttering most piteous cries. To end
the matter at once, the lads produced the real child healthy and hearty,
and told how they had found it. An exchange was at once effected, and
they forthwith proceeded to dispose of their new charge. For this
purpose they got an old _creel_ to put him in and some straw to light
under it. Seeing the serious turn matters were likely to take, he
resolved not to await the trial, but flew up the _smoke-hole_, and when
at the top he cried out that things would have gone very differently
with them had it not been for the arrival of their guests.


                         _The Wounded Seal._

There once dwelt on the northern coast, not far from Taigh Jan Crot
Callow (_John o' Groat's House_), a man who gained his living by
fishing. He was particularly devoted to the killing of the seals, in
which he had great success. One evening just as he had returned home
from his usual occupation, he was called upon by a man on horseback who
was an utter stranger to him, but who said that he was come on the part
of a person who wished to make a large purchase of seal-skins from him,
and wanted to see him for that purpose that very evening. He therefore
desired him to get up behind him and come away without any delay. Urged
by the hope of profit he consented, and away they went with such speed
that the wind which was in their backs seemed to be in their faces. At
length they reached the verge of a stupendous precipice overhanging the
sea, where his guide bade him alight, as they were now at the end of
their journey. "But where," says he, "is the person you spoke of?"
"You'll see him presently," said the guide, and, catching hold of him,
he plunged with him into the sea. They went down and down, till at last
they came to a door which led into a range of apartments inhabited by
seals, and the man to his amazement now saw that he himself was become
one of these animals. They seemed all in low spirits, but they spoke
kindly to him, and assured him of his safety. His guide now produced a
huge _gully_ or _joctaleg_, at sight of which, thinking his life was to
be taken away, he began to cry for mercy. "Did you ever see this knife
before?" said the guide. He looked at it and saw it was his own, which
he had that very day stuck into a seal who had made his escape with it
sticking in him. He did not, therefore, attempt to deny that it had been
his property. "Well," said the guide, "that seal was my father. He now
lies dangerously ill, and as it is only you that can cure him, I have
brought you hither." He then led him into an inner room, where the old
seal lay suffering grievously from a cut in his hind quarters. He was
then desired to lay his hand on the wound, at which it instantly healed,
and the patient arose hale and sound. All now was joy and festivity in
the abode of the seals, and the guide, turning to the seal-hunter, said,
"I will now take you back to your family, but you must first take a
solemn oath never again to kill a seal as long as you live." Hard as the
condition was, he cheerfully accepted it. His guide then laid hold on
him, and they rose up, up, till they reached the surface of the sea, and
landed at the cliff. He breathed on him and they resumed the human form.
They then mounted the horse and sped away like lightning till they
reached the fisherman's house. At parting his companion left with him
such a present as made him think light of giving over his seal-hunting.


                           _The Brownies._

Two Brownies, man and woman, were attached to the ancient family of
Tullochgorm, in Strathspey. The former was named Brownie-Clod, from a
habit he had of flinging clods at passers-by; the latter was called
Maug Vuluchd (_i.e._, Hairy Mag), on account of her great quantity of
hair. She was a capital housekeeper, and used invisibly to lay out the
table in the neatest and handiest manner. Whatever was called for came
as if floating through the air. She kept a very strict hand over the
maids, with whom she was no great favourite, as she reported their
neglect of duty to their mistress. Brownie-Clod was not so pawky, and
he was constantly overreached by the servants, with whom he used to
make contracts. He, however, was too able for them on one occasion. He
had agreed with two of them to do their whole winter's threshing for
them, on condition of getting in return an old coat and a Kilmarnock
hood to which he had taken a fancy. He wrought away manfully, and they
had nothing to do but lie at their ease on the straw and look on. But
before the term was expired they laid the coat and hood for him in
the barn. The moment Brownie laid his eyes upon them he struck work,
using the words prefixed to this section of our volume.

Martyn describes the Brownie of the Western Isles as a _tall man_, and
he tells a story of his invisibly directing a person, at Sir Norman
M'Leod's, who was playing at draughts, where to place his men.


                             _The Urisk._

There is also in the Highlands a rough hairy spirit, called the Urisk.
The following legend will display his nature and character:

To the very great annoyance of a Highland miller, and to the injury of
the machinery, his mill, he found, used to be set to work at night
when there was nothing in it to grind. One of his men offered to sit
up, and try to discover who it was that did it; and, having kindled a
good turf-fire, sat by it to watch. Sleep, however, overcame him, and
when he awoke about midnight, he saw sitting opposite him a rough
shaggy being. Nothing daunted, he demanded his name, and was told that
it was Urisk. The stranger, in return, asked the man his name, who
replied that it was Myself. The conversation here ended, and Urisk
soon fell fast asleep. The man then tossed a panful of hot ashes into
his shaggy lap, which set his hair all on fire. In an agony, and
screaming with the pain, he ran to the door, and in a loud yelling
tone several of his brethren were heard to cry out, "What's the matter
with you?" "Oh! he set me on fire!" "Who?" "Myself!" "Then put it out
yourself," was the reply.[453]

FOOTNOTES:

[447] Account of the Highlands, etc. iv. 358.

[448] _Men of Peace_, perhaps the _Stille-folk_, Still-people, or
rather, merely Fairy- or Spirit-people. See above p. 364.

[449] See Stewart, The Popular Superstitions of the Highlanders.
Edinburgh, 1823. As Mr. Stewart's mode of narrating is not the very
best, we have taken the liberty of re-writing and abridging the legends.

[450] "The goats are supposed to be upon a very good understanding
with the fairies, and possessed of more cunning and knowledge than
their appearance bespeaks."--_Stewart_: see _Wales_.

[451] See above, p. 305.

[452] There is a similar legend in Scandinavia. As a smith was at work
in his forge late one evening, he heard great wailing out on the road,
and by the light of the red-hot iron that he was hammering, he saw a
woman whom a Troll was driving along, bawling at her "A little more! a
little more!" He ran out, put the red-hot iron between them, and thus
delivered her from the power of the Troll (see p. 108). He led her
into his house and that night she was delivered of twins. In the
morning he waited on her husband, who he supposed must be in great
affliction at the loss of his wife. But to his surprise he saw there,
in bed, a woman the very image of her he had saved from the Troll.
Knowing at once what she must be, he raised an axe he had in his hand,
and cleft her skull. The matter was soon explained to the satisfaction
of the husband, who gladly received his real wife and her
twins.--Thiele, i. 88. _Oral._

[453] Told, without naming his authority, by the late W. S. Rose, in
the Quarterly Review for 1825.




                             ISLE OF MAN.

      Mona once hid from those that search the main,
      Where thousand elfin shapes abide.
                                      COLLINS.


The Isle of Man, peopled by Celts, and early and frequently visited and
colonised by the Northmen, has also its Fairies, which differ little
from those of the greater islands between which it lies. An English
gentleman, named Waldron, who resided in the island in the early part of
the last century, was curious about its Fairy-lore, and he has recorded
a number of the legends which he heard.[454] His book, indeed, has been
the chief source whence Ritson, Sir Walter Scott,[455] and others, have
drawn their illustrations of English Fairy-lore in general, and the
subsequent inquiries of Mr. Train have enabled him to add but very
little to it. We will here relate some of these legends:

The great peculiarity of the Manks Fairies, according to Mr. Waldron, is
their fondness for riding, and this not on little steeds of their own,
or on the small breed of the country, but on the large English and Irish
horses, which are brought over and kept by the gentry. Nothing, it was
said, was more common than to find in the morning horses covered with
foam and sweat, and tired to death, which had been shut up at night in
the stable. One gentleman assured Mr. Waldron that three or four of his
best horses had been killed with these nocturnal exercises.

They called them the Good People, and said that their reason for
dwelling in the hills and woods was, their dislike of the vices of
towns. Hence the houses which they deigned to visit were thought to be
blest. In these houses, a tub or pail of clean water was always left
for them to bathe in. Good, however, as they were, they used to change
children. Mr. Waldron saw one of these changelings; it was nearly six
years old, but was unable to walk or even stand, or move its limbs.
Its complexion was delicate, and it had the finest hair in the world.
It never cried or spoke, and it ate scarcely anything; it rarely
smiled, but if any one called it _Fairy-elf_, it would frown and
almost look them through. Its mother, who was poor, was often obliged
to go out for whole days a-charing, and leave it by itself, and when
the neighbours would look in on it through the window, they always saw
it laughing and in great delight, whence they judged that it had
agreeable company with it, more especially as let it be left ever so
dirty, the mother on her return found it with a clean face, and its
hair nicely combed out.


                         _The Fairy-Chapman._

A man being desirous of disposing of a horse he had at that time no
great occasion for, and riding him to market for that purpose, was
accosted in passing over the mountains by a little man in a plain
dress, who asked him if he would sell his horse. "'Tis the design I am
going on," replied he: on which the other desired to know the price.
"Eight pounds," said he. "No," returned the purchaser, "I will give no
more than seven, which if you will take, here is your money." The
owner thinking he had bid pretty fair, agreed with him, and the money
being told out, the one dismounted and the other got on the back of
the horse, which he had no sooner done than both beast and rider sunk
into the earth immediately, leaving the person who had made the
bargain in the utmost terror and consternation. As soon as he had a
little recovered himself, he went directly to the parson of the
parish, and related what had passed, desiring he would give his
opinion whether he ought to make use of the money he had received or
not. To which he replied, that as he had made a fair bargain, and no
way circumvented nor endeavoured to circumvent the buyer, he saw no
reason to believe, in case it was an evil spirit, it could have any
power over him. On this assurance, he went home well satisfied, and
nothing afterwards happened to give him any disquiet concerning this
affair. This was told to Waldron by the person to whom it happened.


                         _The Fairy-Banquet._

A man one time was led by invisible musicians for several miles
together, and not being able to resist the harmony, followed till it
conducted him to a large common, where were a great number of little
people sitting round a table, and eating and drinking in a very jovial
manner. Among them were some faces whom he thought he had formerly seen,
but forbore taking any notice, or they of him, till the little people
offering him drink, one of them, whose features seemed not unknown to
him, plucked him by the coat, and forbade him whatever he did to taste
anything he saw before him, "For if you do," added he, "you will be as I
am, and return no more to your family." The poor man was much
affrighted, but resolved to obey the injunction. Accordingly, a large
silver cup, filled with some sort of liquor, being put into his hand, he
found an opportunity to throw what it contained on the ground. Soon
after, the music ceasing, all the company disappeared, leaving the cup
in his hand, and he returned home, though much wearied and fatigued. He
went the next day, and communicated to the minister of the parish all
that had happened, and asked his advice, how he should dispose of the
cup, to which the parson replied, he could not do better than to devote
it to the service of the church, and this very cup, they say, is that
which is now used for the consecrated wine in Kirk Merlugh.


                     _The Fairies' Christening._

A woman related that being great with child, and expecting every
moment the good hour, as she lay awake one night in her bed, she saw
seven or eight little women come into her chamber, one of whom had an
infant in her arms. They were followed by a man of the same size with
themselves, but in the habit of a minister. One of them went to the
pail, and finding no water in it, cried out to the others, what must
they do to christen the child? On which they replied it should be done
in beer. With that the seeming parson took the child in his arms, and
performed the ceremony of baptism, dipping his head into a great tub
of strong beer, which the woman had brewed the day before to be ready
for her lying-in. She said they baptised the infant by the name of
Joan, which made her know she was pregnant of a girl, as it proved a
few days after when she was delivered. She added, that it was common
for the fairies to make a mock christening when any person was near
her time, and that, according to what child, male or female, they
brought, such should the woman bring into the world.


                        _The Fairy-Whipping._

A woman who lived about two miles distant from Ballasalli, and used to
serve Mr. Waldron's family with butter, made him once very merry with
a story she told him of her daughter, a girl of about ten years old,
who being sent over the fields to the town for a pennyworth of tobacco
for her father, was on the top of a mountain surrounded by a great
number of little men, who would not suffer her to pass any farther.
Some of them said she should go with them, and accordingly laid hold
of her; but one, seeming more pitiful, desired they would let her
alone, which they refusing, there ensued a quarrel, and the person who
took her part fought bravely in her defence. This so incensed the
others, that to be revenged on her for being the cause, two or three
of them seized her, and pulling up her clothes, whipped her heartily;
after which, it seems, they had no farther power over her, and she ran
home directly telling what had befallen her, and showing her buttocks,
on which were the prints of several small hands. Several of the
town's-people went with her to the mountain; and she conducting them
to the spot, the little antagonists were gone, but had left behind
them proofs, as the good woman said, that what the girl had informed
them was true, for there was a great deal of blood to be seen on the
stones. This did she aver with all the solemnity possible.


                          _The Fairy-Hunt._

A young sailor coming off a long voyage, though it was late at night,
chose to land rather than lie another night in the vessel. Being
permitted to do so, he was set on shore at Douglas. It happened to be
a fine moonlight night, and very dry, being a small frost; he
therefore forbore going into any house to refresh himself, but made
the best of his way to the house of a sister he had at Kirk-Merlugh.
As he was going over a pretty high mountain, he heard the noise of
horses, the halloo of a huntsman, and the finest horn in the world. He
was a little surprised that any one pursued those kinds of sports in
the night; but he had not time for much reflection before they all
passed by him so near, that he was able to count what number there was
of them, which he said was thirteen, and that they were all dressed in
green, and gallantly mounted. He was so well pleased with the sight,
that he would gladly have followed could he have kept pace with them.
He crossed the footway, however, that he might see them again, which
he did more than once, and lost not the sound of the horn for some
miles. At length being arrived at his sister's, he tells her the
story, who presently clapped her hands for joy that he was come home
safe; "for," said she, "those you saw were _fairies_, and 'tis well
they did not take you away with them."


                     _The Fiddler and the Fairy._

A fiddler having agreed with a person, who was a stranger, for so much
money, to play to some company he should bring him to, all the twelve
days of Christmas, and received earnest for it, saw his new master
vanish into the earth the moment he had made the bargain. Nothing
could be more terrified than was the poor fiddler. He found he had
entered himself into the Devil's service, and looked on himself as
already damned; but having recourse to a clergyman, he received some
hope. He ordered him, however, as he had taken earnest, to go when he
should be called, but that whatever tunes should be called for, to
play none but psalms. On the day appointed the same person appeared,
with whom he went, but with what inward reluctance it is easy to
guess; and punctually obeying the minister's directions, the company
to whom he played were so angry, that they all vanished at once,
leaving him at the top of a high hill, and so bruised and hurt, though
he was not sensible when or from what hand he received the blows, that
he got not home without the utmost difficulty.


                         _The Phynnodderee._

The Phynnodderee, or Hairy-one, is a Manks spirit of the same kind with
the Brownie or the Kobold. He is said to have been a fairy who was
expelled from the fairy society. The cause was, he courted a pretty
Manks maid who lived in a bower beneath _the blue tree_ of Glen Aldyn,
and therefore was absent from the Fairy court during the _Re-hollys
vooar yn ouyr_, or harvest-moon, being engaged dancing in the merry glen
of Rushen. He is condemned to remain in the Isle of Man till doomsday,
in a wild form, covered with long shaggy hair, whence his name.

He is very kind and obliging to the people, sometimes driving home the
sheep, or cutting and gathering the hay, if he sees a storm coming on.
On one of these occasions, a farmer having expressed his displeasure
with him for not having cut the grass close enough to the ground, he let
him cut it himself the next year; but he went after him stubbing up the
roots so fast, that it was with difficulty that the farmer could escape
having his legs cut off. For several years no one would venture to mow
that meadow; at length a soldier undertook it, and by beginning in the
centre of the field, and cutting round, as if on the edge of a circle,
keeping one eye on the scythe, and looking out for the Phynnodderee with
the other, he succeeded in cutting the grass in safety.

A gentleman having resolved to build a large house on his property, at a
place called Sholt-e-will, near the foot of Snafield mountain, caused
the stones to be quarried on the beach. There was one large block of
white stone which he was very anxious to have, but all the men in the
parish could not move it. To their surprise, the Phynnodderee in the
course of one night conveyed all the stones that had been quarried, the
great white one included, up to the proposed site, and the white stone
is there still to be seen. The gentleman, to reward the Phynnodderee,
caused some clothes to be left for him in one of his usual haunts. When
he saw them, he lifted them up one by one, saying in Manks:

      Bayrm da'n choine, dy doogh da'n choine,
      Cooat da'n dreeym, dy doogh da'n dreeym,
      Breechyn da'n toyn, dy doogh da'n toyn,
      Agh my she lhiat ooiley, shoh cha nee lhiat Glen reagh Rushen.

      Cap for the head, alas, poor head!
      Coat for the back, alas, poor back!
      Breeches for the breech, alas, poor breech!
      If these be all thine, thine cannot be the merry glen of Rushen.

And he departed with a melancholy wail, and has never been seen since.
The old people say, "There has not been a merry world since he lost
his ground."[456]

FOOTNOTES:

[454] Description of the Isle of Man. London, 1731.

[455] In his Essay on Fairies in the Minstrelsy of the Scottish
Border, and in the notes on Peveril of the Peak.

[456] Train, Account of the Isle of Man, ii. p. 148.




                                WALES.

      It was the Druid's presage, who had long
      In Geirionydd's[457] airy temple marked
      The songs that from the Gwyllion[458] rose, of eve
      The children, in the bosom of the lakes.
                                        TALIESIN.


The oldest account we have met with of Welsh Fairies is in the
Itinerary of Giraldus Cambrensis, who, in the year 1188, accompanied
Archbishop Baldwin in his tour through Wales, undertaken for the
purpose of exciting the zeal of the people to take part in the crusade
then in contemplation.

Giraldus, who was an attentive observer of nature and of mankind, has
in this work given many beautiful descriptions of scenery, and
valuable traits of manners. He is liberal of legends of saints, but
such was the taste of his age. Among his narratives, however, he gives
the two following, which show that there was a belief in South Wales
in beings similar to the Fairies and Hobgoblins of England.


                         _Tale of Elidurus._

A short time before our days, a circumstance worthy of note occurred
in these parts, which Elidurus, a priest, most strenuously affirmed
had befallen himself. When he was a youth of twelve years,--since, as
Solomon says, "The root of learning is bitter, although the fruit is
sweet,"--and was following his literary pursuits, in order to avoid
the discipline and frequent stripes inflicted on him by his preceptor,
he ran away, and concealed himself under the hollow bank of a river;
and, after fasting in that situation for two days, two little men of
pygmy stature appeared to him, saying, "If you will come with us, we
will lead you into a country full of delights and sports." Assenting,
and rising up, he followed his guides through a path, at first
subterraneous and dark, into a most beautiful country, adorned with
rivers and meadows, woods and plains, but obscure, and not illuminated
with the full light of the sun. All the days were cloudy, and the
nights extremely dark, on account of the absence of the moon and
stars. The boy was brought before the king, and introduced to him in
the presence of the court; when, having examined him for a long time,
he delivered him to his son, who was then a boy. These men were of the
smallest stature, but very well proportioned for their size. They were
all fair-haired, with luxuriant hair falling over their shoulders,
like that of women. They had horses proportioned to themselves, of the
size of greyhounds. They neither ate flesh nor fish, but lived on milk
diet, made up into messes with saffron. They never took an oath, for
they detested nothing so much as lies. As often as they returned from
our upper hemisphere, they reprobated our ambition, infidelities, and
inconstancies. They had no religious worship, being only, as it seems,
strict lovers and reverers of truth.

The boy frequently returned to our hemisphere, sometimes by the way he
had first gone, sometimes by another; at first in company with others,
and afterwards alone, and confided his secret only to his mother,
declaring to her the manners, nature, and state of that people. Being
desired by her to bring a present of gold, with which that region
abounded, he stole, while at play with the king's son, the golden ball
with which he used to divert himself, and brought it to his mother in
great haste; and when he reached the door of his father's house, but
not unpursued, and was entering it in a great hurry, his foot stumbled
on the threshold, and, falling down into the room where his mother was
sitting, the two Pygmies seized the ball, which had dropped from his
hand, and departed, spitting at and deriding the boy. On recovering
from his fall, confounded with shame, and execrating the evil counsel
of his mother, he returned by the usual track to the subterraneous
road, but found no appearance of any passage, though he searched for
it on the banks of the river for nearly the space of a year. Having
been brought back by his friends and mother, and restored to his right
way of thinking and his literary pursuits, he attained in process of
time the rank of priesthood. Whenever David the Second, bishop of St.
David's, talked to him in his advanced state of life concerning this
event, he could never relate the particulars without shedding tears.

He had also a knowledge of the language of that nation, and used to
recite words of it he had readily acquired in his younger days. These
words, which the bishop often repeated to me, were very conformable to
the Greek idiom. When they asked for water, they said, _Udor udorum_,
which signifies "Bring water;" for Udor, in their language, as well as
in the Greek, signifies water; and Dwr also, in the British language,
signifies water. When they want salt, they say, _Halgein udorum_,
"Bring salt." Salt is called ἁλς in Greek, and Halen in British; for
that language, from the length of time which the Britons (then called
Trojans, and afterwards Britons from Brito, their leader) remained in
Greece after the destruction of Troy, became, in many instances,
similar to the Greek.[459]

       *       *       *       *       *

"If," says the learned archdeacon, "a scrupulous inquirer should ask
my opinion of the relation here inserted, I answer, with Augustine,
'admiranda fore divina miracula non disputatione discutienda;' nor do
I, by denial, place bounds to the Divine power; nor, by affirming
insolently, extend that power which cannot be extended. But on such
occasions I always call to mind that saying of Hieronymus: "Multa,"
says he, 'incredibilia reperies et non verisimilia, quæ nihilominus
tamen vera sunt.' These, and any such that might occur, I should
place, according to Augustine's opinion, among those things which are
neither to be strongly affirmed nor denied."

David Powel, who edited this work in 1585, thinks that this legend is
written in imitation of the relation of Eros the Armenian, in Plato,
or taken from Polo's account of the garden of the Old Man of the
Mountain.[460]

       *       *       *       *       *

Again Giraldus writes,--"In these parts of Penbroch it has happed, in
our times, that unclean spirits have conversed with mankind, not indeed
visibly, but sensibly; for they manifested their presence at first in
the house of one Stephen Wiriet, and some time after of William Not, by
throwing dirt and such things as rather indicate an intention of mockery
and injury. In the house of William, the spirit used to make rents and
holes in both linen and woollen garments, to the frequent loss of both
host and guest, from which injury no care and no bolts could protect
them. In the house of Stephen, which was still more extraordinary, the
spirit used to converse with people; and when they taunted him, which
they frequently did out of sport, he used to charge them openly with
those actions of theirs, from their birth, which they least wished to be
heard or known by others. If you ask the cause and reason of this
matter, I do not take on me to assign it; only this, that it, as is
said, used to be the sign of a sudden change, either from poverty to
riches, or rather from riches to desolation and poverty, as it was found
to be a little after with both of these. But this I think worthy of
remark, that places cannot be freed from illusions of this kind by the
sprinkling of holy water, not merely of the ordinary, but even of the
great kind; nor by the aid of any ecclesiastical sacrament. Nay, the
priests themselves, when coming in with devotion, and fortified as well
with the cross as with holy water, were forthwith among the first
defiled by the dirt thrown at them. From which it would appear that both
sacramentals and sacraments defend from hurtful, not harmless things,
and from injury, not from illusion."[461]



                          _The Tylwyth Teg._

In the mountains near Brecknock, says Davies,[462] there is a small
lake, to which tradition assigns some of the properties of the fabled
Avernus. I recollect a Mabinogi, or mythologic tale, respecting this
piece of water, which runs thus:--

In ancient times a door in a rock near this lake was found open upon a
certain day every year. I think it was May-day. Those who had the
curiosity and resolution to enter were conducted by a secret passage,
which terminated in a small island in the centre of the lake. Here the
visitors were surprised with the prospect of a most enchanting garden
stored with the choicest fruits and flowers, and inhabited by the
Tylwyth Têg, or Fair Family, a kind of Fairies, whose beauty could be
equalled only by the courtesy and affability which they exhibited to
those who pleased them. They gathered fruit and flowers for each of
their guests, entertained them with the most exquisite music, disclosed
to them many secrets of futurity, and invited them to stay as long as
they should find their situation agreeable. But the island was secret,
and nothing of its produce must be carried away. The whole of this scene
was invisible to those who stood without the margin of the lake. Only an
indistinct mass was seen in the middle; and it was observed that no bird
would fly over the water, and that a soft strain of music at times
breathed with rapturous sweetness in the breeze of the morning.

It happened upon one of these annual visits that a sacrilegious
wretch, when he was about to leave the garden, put a flower, with
which he had been presented, in his pocket; but the theft boded him no
good. As soon as he had touched unhallowed ground the flower vanished
and he lost his senses. Of this injury the Fair Family took no notice
at the time. They dismissed their guests with their accustomed
courtesy, and the door was closed as usual. But their resentment ran
high. For though, as the tale goes, the Tylwyth Têg and their garden
undoubtedly occupy the spot to this day, though the birds still keep
at a respectful distance from the lake, and some broken strains of
music are still heard at times, yet the door which led to the island
has never re-opened, and from the date of this sacrilegious act the
Cymry have been unfortunate.

Some time after this, an adventurous person attempted to draw off the
water, in order to discover its contents, when a terrific form arose
from the midst of the lake, commanding him to desist, or otherwise he
would drown the country.

       *       *       *       *       *

These Tylwyth Têg are, as we see, regarded as Fairies, but we think
improperly; for diminutive size is an attribute of the Fairies in all
parts of the British Isles, and Mr. Owen (in his Welsh Dictionary, _s.
v._) expressly says that such is not the case with these beings.


                       _The Spirit of the Van._

Among the mountains of Carmarthen, lies a beautiful and romantic piece
of water, named The Van Pools. Tradition relates, that after midnight,
on New Tear's Eve, there appears on this lake a being named The Spirit
of the Van. She is dressed in a white robe, bound by a golden girdle;
her hair is long and golden, her face is pale and melancholy; she sits
in a golden boat, and manages a golden oar.

Many years ago there lived in the vicinity of this lake a young
farmer, who having heard much of the beauty of this spirit, conceived
a most ardent desire to behold her, and be satisfied of the truth. On
the last night of the year, he therefore went to the edge of the lake,
which lay calm and bright beneath the rays of the full moon, and
waited anxiously for the first hour of the New Year. It came, and then
he beheld the object of his wishes gracefully guiding her golden
gondola to and fro over the lake. The moon at length sank behind the
mountains, the stars grew dim at the approach of dawn, and the fair
spirit was on the point of vanishing, when, unable to restrain
himself, he called aloud to her to stay and be his wife; but with a
faint cry she faded from his view. Night after night he now might be
seen pacing the shores of the lake, but all in vain. His farm was
neglected, his person wasted away, and gloom and melancholy were
impressed on his features. At length he confided his secret to one of
the mountain-sages, whose counsel was--a Welsh one, by the way--to
assail the fair spirit with gifts of cheese and bread! The counsel was
followed; and on Midsummer Eve the enamoured swain went down to the
lake, and let fall into it a large cheese and a loaf of bread. But all
was vain; no spirit rose. Still he fancied that the spot where he had
last seen her shone with more than wonted brightness, and that a
musical sound vibrated among the rocks. Encouraged by these signs, he
night after night threw in loaves and cheeses, but still no spirit
came. At length New Year's Eve returned. He dressed himself in his
best, took his largest cheese and seven of his whitest loaves, and
repaired to the lake. At the turn of midnight, he dropped them slowly
one by one into the water, and then remained in silent expectation.
The moon was hid behind a cloud, but by the faint light she gave, he
saw the magic skiff appear, and direct its course for where he stood.
Its owner stepped ashore, and hearkened to the young man's vows, and
consented to become his wife. She brought with her as her dower flocks
and herds, and other rural wealth. One charge she gave him, never to
strike her, for the third time he should do so she would vanish.

They married, and were happy. After three or four years they were
invited to a christening, and to the surprise of all present, in the
midst of the ceremony, the spirit burst into tears. Her husband gave
an angry glance, and asked her why she thus made a fool of herself?
She replied, "The poor babe is entering in a world of sin and sorrow,
and misery lies before it; why should I rejoice?" He gave her a push.
She warned him that he had struck her once. Again they were, after
some time, invited to attend the funeral of that very child. The
spirit now laughed, and danced, and sang. Her husband's wrath was
excited, and he asked her why she thus made a fool of herself? "The
babe," she said, "has left a world of sin and sorrow, and escaped the
misery that was before it, and is gone to be good and happy for ever
and ever. Why, then, should I weep?" He gave her a push from him, and
again she warned him. Still they lived happily as before. At length
they were invited to a wedding, where the bride was young and fair,
the husband a withered old miser. In the midst of the festivity, the
spirit burst into a copious flood of tears, and to her husband's angry
demand of why she thus made a fool of herself, she replied in the
hearing of all, "Because summer and winter cannot agree. Youth is
wedded to age for paltry gold. I see misery here, and tenfold misery
hereafter, to be the lot of both. It is the devil's compact."
Forgetful of her warnings, the husband now thrust her from him with
real anger. She looked at him tenderly and reproachfully, and said,
"You have struck me for the third and last time. Farewell!"

So saying, she left the place. He rushed out after her, and just
reached his home in time to see her speeding to the lake, followed by
all her flocks and herds. He pursued her, but in vain; his eyes never
more beheld her.[463]

       *       *       *       *       *

As far as we have been able to learn, the belief in Fairies is
confined in Wales to the southern counties of Glamorgan, Carmarthen,
and Pembroke, the parts into which the Saxons had penetrated farthest,
and where they of course had exercised most influence. In these
counties the popular belief in these beings is by no means yet
extinct, and their attributes in the creed of the Welsh peasants are
similar to those of their British and Irish kindred.

The usual name given to the fairies in these parts of Wales, is Y Dynon
Bach Têg, i. e. _The Little Fair People_. Ellyll, in the plural
Ellyllon, also signifies an Elf, from which word, indeed, it may have
been derived. The bells of the Digitalis or fox-glove are called Menyg
Ellylon, or the Elves'-gloves; in Ireland, also, they are connected with
the fairies. The toadstools or poisonous mushrooms are named Bwyd
Ellyllon, or Elves'-food. Perhaps, however, it is not the large ugly
toadstools that are so named, but those pretty small delicate fungi,
with their conical heads, which are named Fairy-mushrooms in Ireland,
where they grow so plentifully. Finally, there was formerly in the park
of Sir Robert Vaughan a celebrated old oak-tree, named Crwben-yr-Ellyll,
or The Elf's Hollow-tree. The popular belief respecting these Ellyllon
is, that they are the souls of the ancient Druids, who, being too good
for relegation to Hell, and too evil for re-admittance to Heaven, are
permitted to wander among men upon earth till the last day, when they
also will enter on a higher state of being.[464]

       *       *       *       *       *

The legends of which we will now proceed to give a specimen, were
collected and published in the latter half of the eighteenth century,
by a Welsh clergyman, who seems to have entertained no doubt whatever
of the truth of the adventures contained in them.[465]

The two daughters of a respectable farmer in the parish of Bedwellty
were one day out hay-making with their man and maid servant and a
couple of their neighbours, when on a hill, about quarter of a mile
distant, they saw a large flock of sheep. Soon after, they saw them
going up to a place half a mile off, and then going out of their sight
as if they vanished in the air. About half-an-hour before sunset, they
saw them again, but not all alike; for some saw them like sheep, some
like greyhounds, some like swine, and some like naked infants. They
appeared in the shade of the mountain between them and the sun, and
the first sight was as if they rose out of the earth. "This was a
notable appearance of the fairies, seen by credible witnesses. The
sons of infidelity are very unreasonable not to believe the
testimonies of so many witnesses of the being of spirits."

E. T. going home by night over Bedwellty Mountains, saw the fairies on
each side of him. Some of them were dancing. He also heard the sound
of a bugle-horn, as if people were hunting. He began to grow afraid,
but recollecting to have heard that if, on seeing the fairies, you
draw out your knife, they will vanish, he did so, and saw them no
more. "This the old gentleman sincerely related to me. He was a sober
man, and of the strictest veracity."

A young man having gone early one morning to a barn to feed oxen, when
he had done, lay down on the hay to rest. As he lay he heard the sound
of music approaching the barn, and presently came in a large company,
wearing striped clothes (some more gay than others), and commenced
dancing to their music. He lay quite still, thinking to escape their
notice; but a woman, better dressed than the others, came up to him
with a striped cushion, with a tassel at each corner, and put it under
his head. Some time after, a cock was heard to crow, which seemed
either to surprise or displease them, and they hastily drew the
cushion from under his head, and went away.

P. W., "an honest virtuous woman," related that one time, when she was
a little girl on her way to school, she saw the fairies dancing under
a crab-tree. As they appeared to be children of her own size, and had
small pleasant music, she went and joined in their exercise, and then
took them to dance in an empty barn. This she continued to do for
three or four years. As she never could hear the sound of their feet,
she always took off her shoes, supposing noise to be displeasing to
them. They were of small stature, looked rather old, and wore blue and
green aprons. Her grandfather, who kept school in the parish-church,
used, when going home from it late in the evening, to see the fairies
dancing under an oak, within two or three fields of the church.

The learned writer gives finally a letter to himself, from a "pious
young gentleman" of Denbighshire, dated March 24, 1772, in which he
informs him, that about fifteen years before, as himself, his sister,
and two other little girls were playing at noon of a summer's day in a
field, they saw a company of dancers, about seventy yards from them.
Owing to the rapidity of their whirling motions, they could not count
them, but guessed them at fifteen or sixteen. They were in red, like
soldiers, with red handkerchiefs spotted with yellow, on their heads.
As they were gazing and wondering at them, one of the dancers came
running towards them. The children, in a fright, made for an adjacent
stile. The girls got over, but the boy was near being caught, and on
looking back when over, he saw the red man stretching his arms after
him over the stile, which it would seem he had not the power to cross.
When they came to the house, which was close at hand, they gave the
alarm, and people went out to search the fields, but could see
nothing. The little man was very grim-looking, with a copper-<DW52>
face. His running-pace was rather slow, but he took great strides for
one of his size.

       *       *       *       *       *

The following legends were collected in 1827, in the Vale of Neath, in
Glamorganshire, by a lady with whom we became acquainted when
travelling through North Wales, in the preceding autumn.[466]

An old woman assured our fair friend, that she one time, many years
before, saw the fairies to the number of some hundreds. They were very
small, were mounted on little white horses, not bigger than dogs, and
rode four a-breast. It was almost dusk at the time, and they were not a
quarter of a mile from her. Another old woman said that her father had
often seen the fairies riding in the air on little white horses, but he
never saw them come down on the ground. He also used to hear their music
in the air. She had heard, too, of a man who had been five-and-twenty
years with the fairies, and thought he had been away only five minutes.


                      _Rhys at the Fairy-Dance._

Rhys and Llewellyn, two farmer's servants, who had been all day
carrying lime for their master, were driving in the twilight their
mountain ponies before them, returning home from their work. On
reaching a little plain, Rhys called to his companion to stop and
listen to the music, saying it was a tune to which he had danced a
hundred times, and must go and have a dance now. He bade him go on
with the horses, and he would soon overtake him. Llewellyn could hear
nothing, and began to remonstrate; but away sprang Rhys, and he called
after him in vain. He went home, put up the ponies, ate his supper,
and went to bed, thinking that Rhys had only made a pretext for going
to the ale-house. But when morning came, and still no sign of Rhys, he
told his master what had occurred. Search was then made everywhere,
but no Rhys could be found. Suspicion now fell upon Llewellyn of
having murdered him, and he was thrown into prison, though there was
no evidence against him. A farmer, however, skilled in fairy-matters,
having an idea of how things might have been, proposed that himself
and some others should accompany Llewellyn to the place where he
parted with Rhys. On coming to it, they found it green as the mountain
ash. "Hush!" cried Llewellyn, "I hear music, I hear sweet harps." We
all listened, says the narrator, for I was one of them, but could hear
nothing. "Put your foot on mine, David," said he to me (his own foot
was at the time on the outward edge of the fairy-ring). I did so, and
so did we all, one after another, and then we heard the sound of many
harps, and saw within a circle, about twenty feet across, great
numbers of little people, of the size of children of three or four
years old, dancing round and round. Among them we saw Rhys, and
Llewellyn catching him by the smock-frock, as he came by him, pulled
him out of the circle. "Where are the horses? where are the horses?"
cried he. "Horses, indeed!" said Llewellyn. Rhys urged him to go home,
and let him finish his dance, in which he averred he had not been
engaged more than five minutes. It was by main force they took him
from the place. He still asserted he had been only five minutes away,
and could give no account of the people he had been with. He became
melancholy, took to his bed, and soon after died. "The morning after,"
says the narrator, "we went to look at the place, and we found the
edge of the ring quite red, as if trodden down, and I could see the
marks of little heels, about the size of my thumb-nail."


                            _Gitto Bach._

Gitto Bach,[467] who was a fine boy, used often to ramble to the top of
the mountain to look after his father's sheep. On his return, he would
show his brothers and sisters pieces of remarkably white paper, like
crown-pieces, with letters stamped upon them, which he said were given
him by the little children with whom he used to play on the mountain.
One day he did not return, and during two whole years no account could
be got of him, and the other children were beginning to go up the
mountain, and bring back some of those white crown-pieces. At length,
one morning, as their mother opened the door, she saw Gitto sitting on
the threshold, with a bundle under his arm. He was dressed, and looked
exactly as when she last had seen him. To her inquiry of where he had
been for so long a time, he replied that it was only the day before he
had left her; and he bade her look at the pretty clothes the little
children on the mountain had given him for dancing with them to the
music of their harps. The dress in the bundle was of very white paper,
without seam or sewing. The prudent mother committed it to the flames.

"This," said the narrator, "made me more anxious than ever to see the
fairies," and his wish was gratified by a gipsy, who directed him to
find a four-leaved clover, and put it with nine grains of wheat on the
leaf of a book which she gave him. She then desired him to meet her
next night by moonlight on the top of Craig y Dinis. She there washed
his eyes with the contents of a phial which she had, and he instantly
saw thousands of fairies, all in white, dancing to the sounds of
numerous harps. They then placed themselves on the edge of the hill,
and sitting down and putting their hands round their knees, they
tumbled down one after another, rolling head-over-heels till they
disappeared in the valley.

Another old man, who was present at the preceding narration, averred
that he had often seen the fairies at waterfalls; particularly at that
of Sewyd yr Rhyd in Cwm Pergwm, Vale of Neath, where a road runs
between the fall and the rock. As he stood behind the fall, they
appeared in all the colours of the rainbow, and their music mingled
with the noise of the water. They then retired into a cavern, which
they had made in the rock, and, after enjoying themselves there,
ascended the rock, and went off through the mountains, the sounds of
their harps dying away as they receded.


                       _The Fairies Banished._

One of those old farm-houses, where the kitchen and cow-house are on
the same floor, with only a low partition between them, was haunted by
the fairies. If the family were at their meals in the kitchen, _they_
were racketing in the cow-house, and if the people were engaged about
the cows, the fairies were making a riot in the kitchen. One day, when
a parcel of reapers were at their harvest-dinner in the kitchen, the
elves, who were laughing and dancing above, threw down such a quantity
of dust and dirt as quite spoiled the dinner. While the mistress of
the house was in perplexity about it, there came in an old woman, who,
on hearing the case, said she could provide a remedy. She then told
her in a whisper to ask six of the reapers to dinner next day in the
hearing of the fairies, and only to make as much pudding as could be
boiled in an egg-shell. She did as directed, and when the fairies saw
that a dinner for six men was put down to boil in an egg-shell, there
was great stir and noise in the cow-house, and at length one angry
voice was heard to say, "We have lived long in this world; we were
born just after the earth was made, and before the acorn was planted,
and yet we never saw a harvest-dinner dressed in an egg-shell! There
must be something wrong in this house, and we will stop here no
longer." They went away and never returned.

       *       *       *       *       *

The fairies are said to take away children, and leave changelings.[468]
They also give pieces of money, one of which is found every day in the
same place as long as the finder keeps his good fortune a secret. One
peculiarity of the Cambrian fairies is, that every Friday night they
comb the goats' beards "to make them decent for Sunday."

       *       *       *       *       *

We hear not of Brownies or Kobolds in the Welsh houses now, but Puck
used to haunt Wales as well as Ireland. His Welsh name, Pwcca, is the
same as his Irish one. In Brecon there is Cwm Pwcca, or Puck's Glen,
and though an iron-foundry has in a great measure scared him from it,
yet he occasionally makes his appearance. As a man was returning one
night from his work, he saw a light before him, and thought he
discerned some one that carried it. Supposing it to be one of his
fellow-workmen with a lanthorn, he quickened his pace to come up with
him, wondering all the while how so short a man as he appeared to be
could get over the ground so fast. He also fancied he was not going
the right way, but still thought that he who had the light must know
best. At last, he came up with him, and found himself on the very
edge of one of the precipices of Cwm Pwcca, down which another step
would have carried him. The Pwcca, for it was he, sprang over the
glen, turned round, held the light above his head, and then with a
loud laugh put it out and vanished.

FOOTNOTES:

[457] A lake, on whose banks Taliesin resided.

[458] These Mr. Davies thinks correspond to the Gallicenæ of Mela: see
_Brittany_.

[459] Giraldus Cambrensis, Itinerarium Cambriæ, l. i. c. 8, translated
by Sir R. C. Hoare.

[460] Very likely indeed that Elidurus, or Giraldus either, should
know any thing of Plato or of Marco Polo, especially as the latter was
not yet born!

[461] Book i. chap. 12.

[462] Mythology and Rites of the British Druids.

[463] Abridged from "A Day at the Van Pools;" MS. of Miss Beale, the
author of "Poems" and of "The Vale of the Towey," a most delightful
volume. We have since received from our gifted friend the following
additional information. "Since writing this letter, I have heard a new
version of the last part of the Spirit of the Van. The third offence
is said to be, that she and her husband were _ploughing_; he guiding
the plough, and she driving the horses. The horses went wrong, and the
husband took up something and threw it at them, which struck her. She
seized the plough and went off, followed by the flocks and herds she
had brought with her to Van Pool, where they all vanished, and the
_mark of the ploughshare_ is shown on the mountain at this present
day. She left her children behind her, who became famous as doctors.
Jones was their name, and they lived at a place called Muddfi. In them
was said to have originated the tradition of the seventh son, or
Septimus, being born for the healing art; as for many generations,
seven sons were regularly born in each family, the seventh of whom
became the doctor, and wonderful in his profession. It is said even
now, that the Jones of Muddfi are, or were, until very recently,
clever doctors."--A. B. A somewhat different version of this legend is
given by Mr. Croker, iii. 256.

[464] For the chief part of our knowledge respecting the fairy lore of
Wales we are indebted to the third or supplemental volume of the Fairy
Legends, in which Mr. Croker, with the aid of Dr. Owen Pugh and other
Welsh scholars, has given a fuller account of the superstitions of the
people of the Principality, than is, we believe, to be found any where
else.

[465] A Relation of Apparitions of Spirits in the County of Monmouth and
the Principality of Wales, by the Rev. Edward Jones of the Tiarch.--For
our extracts from this work we are indebted to Mr. Croker.

[466] The lady's name was Williams. The legends were originally intended
for the present work, but circumstances caused them to appear in the
supplemental volume of the Irish Fairy Legends. We have abridged them.

[467] Gitto is the dim. of Griffith: _bach_ (_beg_ Ir.) is little.

[468] See _Brittany_.




                              BRITTANY.

      Mut unt este noble Barun
      Cil de Bretaine li Bretun.
                          MARIE DE FRANCE.

      Thise oldè gentil Bretons in hir dayes
      Of diverse áventurès maden layes.
                                CHAUCER.


Brittany, the ancient Armorica, retains perhaps as unmixed a
population as any part of Western Europe. Its language has been,
however, like the Welsh and the Celtic dialects, greatly affected by
the Latin and Teutonic. The ancient intercourse kept up with Wales and
Cornwall by the Bretons, who were in a great measure colonists from
these parts of Britain, caused the traditions and poetry of the latter
to be current and familiar in Little Britain, as that country was then
called. To poetry and music, indeed, the whole Celto-Cymric race seem
to have been strongly addicted; and, independently of the materials
which Brittany may have supplied for the history of Geoffrey of
Monmouth, many other true or romantic adventures were narrated by the
Breton poets in their Lais. Several of these Lais were translated into
French verse in the thirteenth century by a poetess named Marie de
France, resident at the court of the English monarchs of the house of
Plantagenet, to one of whom, probably Henry the Third, her Lais are
dedicated.[469] This circumstance may account for the Lais being
better known in England than in France. The only manuscript containing
any number of them is in the Harleian Library; for those of France
contain but five Lais. The Lai du Fresne was translated into English;
and from the Lai de Lanval and Lai de Graelent--which last by the way
is not in the Harleian Collection--Chestre made his Launfal Miles, or
Sir Launfal. Chaucer perhaps took the concluding circumstance of his
Dream from the Lai de Eliduc.

In some of these Lais we meet with what may be regarded as Fairy
machinery. The word Fée, indeed, occurs only once;[470] but in the
Lais de Gugemer, de Lanval, d'Ywenec, and de Graelent, personages are
to be met with differing in nothing from the Fays of Romance, and who,
like them, appear to be human beings endowed with superior powers.

The origin of the Breton Korrigan, as they are called, has been
sought, and not improbably, in the Gallicenæ[471] or ancient Gaul, of
whom Pomponius Mela thus writes:--"Sena,[472] in the British sea,
opposite the Ofismician coast, is remarkable for an oracle of the
Gallic God. Its priestesses, holy in perpetual virginity, are said to
be _nine_ in number. They are called Gallicenæ, and are thought to be
endowed with singular powers, so as to raise by their charms the winds
and seas, _to turn themselves into what animals they will_, to cure
wounds and diseases incurable by others, to know and predict the
future; but this they do only to navigators who go thither purposely
to consult them."[473]

We have here certainly all the attributes of the Damoiselles of the
Lais of Marie de France. The doe whom Gugemer wounds speaks with a
human voice. The lady who loved Lanval took him away into an island,
and Graelent and his mistress crossed a deep and broad river to arrive
at her country, which perhaps was also an island in the original
Breton Lai. The part most difficult of explanation is the secret
manner in which these dames used to visit their lovers; but perhaps
the key is to be found in the Lai d'Ywenec, of which, chiefly on that
account, we give an analysis. The hero of that Lai differs not in
point of power from these ladies, and as he is a real man, with the
power of assuming at will the shape of a bird, so it is likely they
were real women, and that it was in the bird-shape they entered the
chambers of their lovers. Graelent's mistress says to him,[474]

      I shall love you trewely;
      But one thing I forbid straitlý,
      You must not utter a word apérte
      Which might our love make discovérte.
      I will give unto you richlý,
      Gold and silver, clothes, and fee.
      Much love shall be between us two--
      Night and day I'll go to you:
      You'll see me come to you alwáy--
      With me laugh and talk you may.
      You shall no comrade have to see,
      Or who shall know my privacy,

             *       *       *       *       *

      Take care now that you do not boast
      Of things by which I may be lost.

The lady says to Lanval,

      When you would speak to me of ought--
      You must in no place form the thought
      Where no one could meet his amie
      Without reproach and villainie--
      I will be presently with you,
      All your commands ready to do;
      No one but you will me see,
      Or hear the words that come from me.

She also had previously imposed on the knight the obligation of secresy.

As a further proof of the identity of the Korrigan and the Gallicenæ,
it may be remarked, that in the evidently very ancient Breton poem,
Ar-Rannou, or The Series, we meet the following passage:--"There are
_nine_ Korrigen, who dance, with flowers in their hair, and robes of
white wool, around the fountain, by the light of the full moon."[475]


                           _Lai D'ywenec._

      I have in thought and purpose too,
      Of Ywenec to tellen you--
      Of whom he born was, his sire's fame,
      How first he to his mother came.
      He who did beget Ywenec
      Y-cleped was Eudemarec.

There formerly lived in Britain a man who was rich and old. He was Avoez
or governor of Caerwent on the Doglas, and lord of the surrounding
country. Desirous of having an heir to his estates, he espoused a maiden
"courteous and sage, and passing fair." She was given to him because he
was rich, and loved by him for her beauty. Why should I say more, but
that her match was not to be found between Lincoln and Ireland? "Great
sin did they who gave her him," adds the poet.

On account of her rare beauty, the jealous husband now turned all his
thoughts to keeping her safe. To this end he shut her up in his tower,
in a large room, to which no one had access but himself and his
sister, an old widow, without whose permission the young wife was
forbidden to speak to any even of her female attendants. In this tower
the suspicious husband immured his lovely bride for seven years,
during which time they had no children, nor did she ever leave her
confinement on any account. She had neither chamberlain nor huissier
to light the tapers in her chamber when she would retire, and the poor
lady passed her time weeping, sighing, and lamenting; and from grief
and neglect of herself losing all her beauty.

      The month of April was entering,
      When every bird begins to sing;
      Her lord arose at early day,
      And to the wood he takes his way.

Before he set out he called up the old dame to fasten the door after
him. This done, she took her psalter and retired to another room to
chant it. The imprisoned lady awoke in tears, seeing the brightness of
the sun, and thus began her moan:

      Alas! said she, why born was I?
      Right grievous is my destiny:
      In this towére imprisoned,
      I ne'er shall leave it till I'm dead.

She marvels at the unreasonable jealousy of her old husband, curses
her parents, and all concerned in giving her to a man not only so
unamiable, but who was of so tough a constitution that the chance of
his dying seemed infinitely remote.

      When baptised he was to be,
      In hell's rivere deep dipt was he;
      Hard are his sinews, hard each vein,
      And lively blood they all contain.
        Oft have I heard the people tell,
      That in this country there befell
      Adventures in the days of yore,
      That did to joy grieved hearts restore;
      Knights met with damsels, fair and gent,
      In all things unto their talént;
      And dames met lovers courteoús,
      Handsome, and brave, and generous;
      So that they never blamed were,
      For save themselves none saw them e'er.[476]
      If this may be, or ever was,
      Or any it befallen has,
      May God, who hath all might and power,
      My wish perform for me this hour.

Scarcely had she uttered this pious wish, when she perceived the
shadow of a large bird at a narrow window. The bird now flew into the
room. He had jesses on his legs, and appeared to be a goss-hawk.[477]
He placed himself before the lady, and in a few minutes after became a
handsome gentle knight. The lady was terrified at the sight, and
covered her head; but the knight was courteous, and addressed her,

      Lady, said he, be not thus stirred;
      A goss-hawk is a gentle bird.
      If my secréte should be obscure,
      Attend, and I will you assure;
      Maketh now of me your lovére,
      For that it is I am come here.
      Long have I loved you and admired,
      And in my heart have much desired;
      I ne'er have loved save you alone,
      And save you never shall love none;
      But I could never come to you,
      Nor from own countrie issúe,
      If you had not required me:
      Your lover now I may well be.

The lady was now re-assured: she uncovered her head, and told the
knight she would accept him as her _Dru_, if she were satisfied that
he believed in God. On this head, he assures her,

      I in the Créator believe,
      Who did from misery us relieve,
      In which us Adam our sire put,
      By eating of that bitter fruit:
      He is, and was, and ever he
      To sinners life and light will be.

And to put the matter out of all doubt, he directs her to feign
sickness, and send for the chaplain, when he undertakes to assume her
form, and receive the holy Sacrament. The dame does accordingly; and the
old woman, after many objections, at length sends for the chaplain.

      And he with all due speed did hie,
      And brought the Corpus Domini.
      The knight received the holy sign,
      And from the chalice drank the wine:[478]
      The chaplain then his way is gone--
      The old dame shut the doors anon.

The scruples of the lady being now entirely removed, she grants _le
don d'amoureuse merci_, and the bliss of the lovers is complete. At
length the knight takes his leave, and in reply to the lady's
question, of when she should see him again, he tells her that she has
only to wish for him, and the wish will be fulfilled by his
appearance;[479] but he warns her to beware of the old woman, who will
closely watch her, assuring her at the same time that a discovery will
be his certain death.

The lady now bids adieu to all sadness and melancholy, and gradually
regains all her former beauty. She desires no longer to leave her tower;
for, night or day, she has only to express a wish, and her knight is
with her. The old lord marvels greatly at this sudden change, and begins
to distrust the fidelity of his sister. On revealing his suspicions, her
replies fully satisfy him on that head, and they concert between them
how to watch the young wife, and to discover her secret. After an
interval of three days, the old lord tells his wife that the king has
sent for him, and that he must attend him, but will soon return. He sets
out, and the old woman having closed the door as usual after him, gets
behind a curtain to watch. The lady now wishes for her lover, and
instantly he is with her, and they continue together till it is time to
rise. He then departs, leaving the spy, who had seen how he came and
went, terrified at the strange metamorphosis.

When the husband, who was at no great distance, came home, his spy
informed him of the strange affair. Greatly grieved and incensed at
this, he began to meditate the destruction of his rival. He
accordingly got four pikes made, with steel-heads so sharp that

      No razor under heaven's sheen
      Was ever yet so sharp and keen.

These he set at the window through which the knight was used to enter.
Next day he feigns to go to the chase, the old woman returns to her bed
to sleep, and the lady anxiously expects "him whom she loveth loyally,"

      And says that he may come safelý,
      And with her at all leisure be.

So said, so done: the bird was at the window; but alas! too eager for
caution, he overlooked the pikes, and, flying against them, was mortally
wounded. Still he entered the chamber and threw himself on the bed,
which his blood soon filled, and thus addressed his distracted mistress:

      He said unto her--"My sweet friend,
      For you my life comes to an end;
      I often told you 't would be so,
      That your fair cheer would work us woe."
      When she heard this she swooned away,
      And long time there for dead she lay;
      Her gently to herself he brought,
      And said, that grief availeth nought;
      That she by him a son would bear,
      Valiant and wise, and debonair;
      He would dispel her sorrows all.
      Ywenec she should him call.
      He wouldè vengeance for their sake
      Upon their trait'rous enemy take.[480]


Exhausted with loss of blood, he can stay no longer. He departs; and
the lady, uttering loud cries of woe, leaps after him, unapparelled as
she is, out of the window, which was twenty feet from the ground, and
pursues him by the traces of his blood.

      Along his path strayed the dame,
      Until unto a hill she came.[481]
      Into this hill one entrance led;
      It with the blood was all sprinkléd.
      Before her she can nothing see;
      Whereat she thinketh full surelý
      Her lover thither is gone in.
      She entereth with mickle teen;
      Within it light ne found she none;
      Thorow it still she goeth on,
      Until she from the hill issúed
      In a fair meadow, rich and good.
      With blood she stained found the grass,
      At which she much dismayed was;
      The trace lay of it on the ground.
      Quite near she there a city found;
      With walls it was enclosed all.--
      There was not house, nor tower, nor hall,
      That did not seem of silver fair:
      The Mandevent[482] right wealthy are.
      Before the town lay marshes rude,
      The forest, and wild solitude.
      On the other side, toward the donjón,
      The water all around did run;
      And here the shippès did entér,
      More thannè three hundréd they were.
      The lower gate wide open lay;
      Therein the lady took her way,
      Stil following the blood, that fell
      The townè thorow to the castél.
      Unto her spaké there no one,
      Ne man nor woman found she none.
      She to the palace came; with blood
      The steps she found were all embrued;
      She entered then a low chambére;
      A knight she found fast sleeping there;
      She knew him not--she passed on--
      To a larger chamber came anon;
      A bed, and nothing more, there found,
      A knight was on it sleeping sound.
      Still farther passed on the dame;
      Unto the third chambére she came,
      Where she gan find her lover's bed.
      The posts were gold enamelled;
      I could not price the clothes aright:
      The chandeliers and tapers bright,
      Which night and day burned constantly,
      Were worth the gold of a citee.

She finds her lover at the point of death.

At seeing his wretched state the unhappy lady swoons again. The
expiring knight endeavours to console her; and, foretelling his own
death on that day, directs her to depart, lest his people in their
grief should ill treat her as the cause of his death. She, however,
protests that she will stay and die with him, as, if she returns, her
husband will put her to death. The knight repeats his consolations,
and gives her a ring, which, while she wears, her husband will retain
no remembrance of what relates to her. At the same time he gives her
his sword, which she is to keep safely and to give to her son when
grown up and become a valiant knight. He says, she then

      Unto a festival will go;
      Her lord will thither wend also;
      Unto an abbey they will come,
      Where they will see a stately tomb,
      Will learn the story of the dead,
      And how he was there buried.
      There thou the sword shalt to him reach,
      And all the ádventure then teach,
      How he was born, who was his sire;
      His deeds enough will then admire.

He then gave her a dress of fine silk, and insisted on her departure.
She is with difficulty induced to leave him, and is hardly half a
league from the place when she hears the bells tolling, and the cries
of grief of the people for the death of their lord. She faints four
times, but at length recovering retraces her steps, and returns to her
tower. Her husband makes no inquiry, and gives her no farther
uneasiness. She bare a son, as Eudemarec had foretold, and named him
Ywenec. As he grew up, there was not his peer in the kingdom for
beauty, valour, and generosity.

After Ywenec had been dubbed a knight, his supposed father was
summoned to attend the feast of St. Aaron at Carlion. He went,
accompanied by his wife and Ywenec. On their way, they stopped at a
rich abbey, where they were received with the utmost hospitality. Next
day, when they asked to depart, the abbot entreated them to stay a
little longer till he should show them the rest of the abbey. They
consented, and after dinner,

      On entering the chapter-room,
      They found a large and stately tomb,
      Covered with rich tapestry,
      Bordered with gold embroidery.
      At head and feet and sides there were
      Twenty tapers burning clear;
      Of fine gold were the chandeliers;
      Of amethyst were the censéres,
      With which they incensed alwáy,
      For great honoúr, this tomb each day.

The curiosity of the visitors was excited by the sight of this
magnificent tomb, and they learned, on inquiry, that therein lay one
of the noblest and most valiant knights that had ever lived. He had
been king of that country, and had been slain at Caerwent for the love
of a lady, leaving a vacancy in the throne which had never been since
filled, it being reserved, according to his last commands, for his son
by that lady.

When the Dame heard this, she called aloud to her son,

      "Fair son, you now have heard," she said,
      "That God hath us to this place led.
      It is your father here doth lie,
      Whom this old man slew wrongfully."

She then gave him the sword she had kept so long, relating the whole
story to him. At the conclusion she fainted on the tomb, and expired.
Filled with rage and grief, Ywenec at one blow struck off the head of
the old man, and avenged both his father and mother. The lady was
buried in the coffin with him whom she had loved, and the people
joyfully acknowledged Ywenec as king of the country.

      Long time after maden they,
      Who heard this ádventure, a Lay
      Of the grief and the doloúr
      That for love these did endure.

There are still to be seen in Brittany the rock, the cavern, the
fountain, the hole, the valley, etc., of the Fées.

The forest of Brezeliande, near Quintin, was, in the twelfth and
thirteenth centuries, regarded as the chief seat of Breton wonders. It
contained the tomb of Merlin. Robert de Wace, hearing of the wonders of
this forest, visited it; but, by his own account, to little purpose.

      La allai je merveilles querre (_chercher_),
      Vis la forêt et vis la terre;
      Merveilles quis (_cherchai_) mais ne trovai,
      Fol m'en revins, fol y allai;
      Fol y allai, fol m'en revins,
      Folie quis, por fol me tins.[483]

There were also the Fountain of Berenton and the Pe (_block_, or
_steps_) Merveilleux.

      En Bretagne ce treuve-on
      Une Fontaine et un Perron;
      Quant on gette l'iaue (_eau_) dessus
      Si vente et tonne et repluit jus (_à bas_).

Huon de Méry was more fortunate than Wace. He sprinkled the Perron
from the golden basin which hung from the oak that shaded it, and
beheld all the marvels.[484]

       *       *       *       *       *

Such is the result of our inquiries respecting the Fairy system of
the "oldè gentil Bretons." Owing to the praiseworthy labours of a
Breton gentleman of the present day,[485] we are enabled to give the
following account of it as it actually prevails in Brittany.

Our author divides the Breton fairies into two classes,--the Fays
(_Fées_) and the Dwarfs (_Nains_); of which the Breton name seems to be
Korrig or Korrigan, and Korr or Korred.[486] The former he identifies,
as we have seen, very plausibly, with the Gallicenæ of Mela; for he says
that the ancient Welsh bards declare that they reverenced a being of the
female sex named Korid-gwen, _i. e._ Korid-woman, to whom they assigned
_nine_ virgins as attendants. To this being Taliesin gives a magic vase,
the edges of which are adorned with pearl, and it contains the wondrous
water of bardic genius and of universal knowledge.

The Korrigan, our authority further states, can predict the future,
assume any form they please, move from place to place with the
rapidity of thought, cure maladies by the aid of charms which they
communicate to their favourites. Their size is said not to exceed two
feet, but their proportions are most exact; and they have long flowing
hair, which they comb out with great care. Their only dress is a long
white veil, which they wind round their body. Seen at night, or in the
dusk of the evening, their beauty is great; but in the daylight their
eyes appear red, their hair white, and their faces wrinkled; hence
they rarely let themselves be seen by day. They are fond of music, and
have fine voices, but are not much given to dancing. Their favourite
haunts are the springs, by which they sit and comb their hair. They
are said to celebrate there every returning spring a great nocturnal
festival. On the sod at its brink is spread a table-cloth white as the
driven snow, covered with the most delicious viands. In the centre is
a crystal cup, which emits such light that there is no need of lamps.
At the end of the banquet a cup goes round filled with a liquor, one
drop of which would make one as wise as God himself. At the approach
of a mortal the whole vanishes.

Like fairies in general the Korrigan steal children, against which the
remedy usually employed is, to place the child under the protection of
the Virgin, by putting a rosary or a scapulary about its neck. They
are also fond of uniting themselves with handsome young men to
regenerate, as the peasants say, their accursed race. The general
belief respecting them is, that they were great princesses who, having
refused to embrace Christianity when it was preached in Armorica by
the Apostles, were struck by the curse of God. Hence it is that they
are said to be animated by a violent hatred of religion and the
clergy. The sight of a _soutane_, or the sound of a bell, puts them to
flight; but the object of greatest abhorrence to them is the Holy
Virgin. The last trait to be noticed of these beings is, that, like
similar beings in other countries, their breath is deadly.

The reader must have observed the strong resemblance which the Korrigan
bear to the Elle-maids of Scandinavia. In like manner the Korred are
very similar to the Trolls.[487] These are usually represented as short
and stumpy with shaggy hair, dark wrinkled faces, little deep-set eyes,
but bright as carbuncles. Their voice is cracked and hollow: their hands
have claws like a cat's; their feet are horny like those of a goat. They
are expert smiths and coiners; they are said to have great treasures in
the _dolmen_[488] in which they dwell, and of which they are regarded as
the builders. They dance around them by night, and wo to the belated
peasant who, passing by, is forced to join in their roundel; he usually
dies of exhaustion. Wednesday is their holiday; the first Wednesday in
May their annual festival, which they celebrate with dancing, singing,
and music. They have the same aversion to holy things as the Korrigan;
like them, too, they can fortell events to come. The Korrid is always
furnished with a large leathern purse, which is said to be full of gold;
but if any one succeeds in getting it from him, he finds nothing in it
but hair and a pair of scissors.

The Bretons also believe in Mermaids; they name them Morgan
(_sea-women_) and Morverc'h (_sea-daughters_), and say that they draw
down to their palaces of gold and crystal at the bottom of the sea or
of ponds, those who venture imprudently too near the edge of the
water. Like the mermaids they sing and comb their golden hair. In one
of the ballads we read, "Fisher, hast thou seen the mermaid combing
her hair, yellow as gold, by the noontide sun, at the edge of the
water?" "I have seen the fair mermaid. I have also heard her singing;
her songs were plaintive as the waves."[489]

In M. Villemarqué's collection there are three ballads relating to the
Korrigan and Korred. The following is a faithful translation of the
first of them in the exact measure of the original. All the Breton
poetry is rimed, very frequently in triads or tercets.


                    _Lord Nann and the Korrigan._

      The Lord Nann and his bride so fair
      In early youth united were,
      In early youth divided were.

      The lady lay-in yesternight
      Of twins, their skin as snow was white,
      A boy and girl, that glad his sight.

      "What doth thy heart desire, loved one,
      For giving me so fair a son?
      Say, and at once it shall be done.

      "A woodcock from the pool of the glyn,
      Or roebuck from the forest green?"

      "The roebuck's flesh is savoury,
      But for it thou to the wood should'st hie."

      Lord Nann when he these words did hear,
      He forthwith grasped his oaken spear,

      And vaulting on his coal-black steed
      Unto the green-wood hied with speed.

      When he unto the wood drew nigh,
      A fair white doe he there did spy,

      And after her such chase he made,
      The ground it shook beneath their tread.

      And after her such chase made he,
      From his brows the water copiously

      And from his horse's sides ran down.
      The evening had now come on,

      And he came where a streamlet flowed
      Fast by a Korrigan's abode;

      And grassy turf spread all around.
      To quench his thirst he sprang to ground.

      The Korrig at her fount sat there
      A-combing of her long fair hair.

      She combed it with a comb of gold--
      These ladies ne'er are poor, we're told.

      "Rash man," cried she, "how dost thou dare
      To come disturb my waters fair!

      "Thou shalt unto me plight thy fay,
      Or seven years thou shalt waste away,
      Or thou shalt die ere the third day."

      "To thee my faith plight will I ne'er,
      For I am married now a year.

      "I shall not surely waste away,
      Nor shall I die ere the third day;

      "I shall not die within three days,
      But when it unto God shall please."--

      "Good mother, mine, if you love me,
      See that my bed made ready be,
      For I have ta'en a malady.

      "Let not one word to my wife be told;
      In three days I shall lie in the mould,
      A Korrigan has thus foretold."

      And when three days were past and gone,
      The young wife asked this question,--

      "My mother-in-law, now tell me why
      The bells all ring thus constantly?

      "And why the priests a low mass sing,
      All clad in white, as the bells ring?"

      "Last night a poor man died whom we
      A lodging gave through charity."

      "My mother-in-law, tell me, I pray,
      My Lord Nann whither is he gone away?"

      "My daughter, to the town he's gone,
      To see thee he will come anon."

      "Good mother-in-law, to church to fare,
      Shall I my red or blue gown wear?"

      "The custom now is, daughter dear,
      At church always in black to appear."

      As they crossed o'er the churchyard-wall,
      On her husband's grave her eye did fall.

      "Who is now dead of our family,
      That thus fresh dug our ground I see?"

      "Alas! my child, the truth can I
      Not hide: thy husband there doth lie."

      On her two knees herself she cast
      And rose no more, she breathed her last.

      It was a marvel to see, men say,
      The night that followed the day,
      The lady in earth by her lord lay,

      To see two oak-trees themselves rear
      From the new-made grave into the air;

      And on their branches two doves white,
      Who there were hopping gay and light;

      Which sang when rose the morning-ray
      And then toward heaven sped away.

This ballad is very remarkable. Its similarity to that of Sir Olof, so
celebrated in Scandinavia, and of which we have already given two
variations out of fifteen, must strike every one; in its concluding
stanzas also it resembles other Scandinavian and English ballads. On
the other hand, the White Doe and the Korrigan at the fount remind us
of the Lais of Marie de France. Our opinion on the whole is, that the
ballad belongs to Scandinavia, whence it was brought at an early
period--by the Normans, we might say only for its Christian air in
both countries--and naturalised in the usual manner. It is rather
strange that there is neither an English nor a Scottish version of it.

       *       *       *       *       *

The next lay, which is entirely composed in tercets, is the story of a
changeling. In order to recover her own child the mother is advised by
the Virgin, to whom she has prayed, to prepare a meal for ten
farm-servants in an egg-shell, which will make the Korrid speak, and
she is then to whip him well till he cries, and when he does so he
will be taken away. The woman does as directed: the Korr asks what she
is about: she tells him: "For ten, dear mother, in an eggshell! I have
seen the egg before I saw the white hen. I have seen the acorn before
I saw the tree: I have seen the acorn and I have seen the shoot: I
have seen the oak in the wood of Brézal, but never saw I such a thing
as this." "Thou hast seen too many things, my son," replied she, and
began to whip him, when one came crying, "Don't beat him, give him
back to me; I have not done yours any injury. He is king in our
country." When the woman went home she found her own child sleeping
sweetly in the cradle. He opened his eyes and said, "Ah! mother, I
have been a long time asleep!"

Among the Welsh legends above related, that of the Fairies Banished
has some resemblance to this; but M. Villemarqué says that he was told
a changeling-story by the Glamorgan peasantry, precisely the same as
the Breton legend. In it the changeling is heard muttering to himself
in a cracked voice, "I have seen the acorn before I saw the oak: I
have seen the egg before I saw the white hen: I have never seen the
like of this." It is remarkable that these words form a rimed triad or
tercet nearly the same with that in the Breton ballad,[490] whence M.
Villemarqué is led to suspect that the legend is anterior to the
seventh century, the epoch of the separation of the Britons of Wales
and Armorica. But as changelings seem to have come from the North, we
cannot consent to receive this theory. He also quotes from Geoffrey of
Monmouth's Life of Merlin, "There is in this forest," said Merlin the
Wild, "an oak laden with years: I saw it when it was beginning to grow
... I saw the acorn whence it rose, germinate and become a twig ... I
have then lived a long time." This would, in our opinion, tend to show
that this was an ordinary formula in the British language.

The third and last of those ballads tells, and not without humour, how
Paskou-Hir, _i. e._, Long-Paskou, the tailor, one Friday evening,
entered the abode of the Korred, and there dug up and carried home a
concealed treasure. They pursued him, and came into the court-yard
dancing with might and main, and singing,--

      Dilun, dimeurs, dimerc'her
      Ha diriaou, ha digwener.

      Monday, Tuesday, Wednesday,
      And Thursday, and Friday.

Finding the door secured[491] they mount the roof and break a hole
through which they get in, and resume their dance on the floor, still
singing, Monday, Tuesday, etc., and calling on the tailor to come and
join them and they would teach him a dance that would crack his
back-bone, and they end by telling him that the money of the Korr is
good for nothing.

Another version says, that it was a baker who stole the treasure, and,
more cunning than the tailor, he strewed the floor of his house with
hot ashes and cinders on which the Korred burned their feet. This made
them scamper off, but before they went they smashed all his crockery
and earthenware. Their words were, "In Iannik-ann-Trevou's house we
burnt our horny feet and made a fine mess of his crockery."

The following legend will explain the song of the Korred.


                 _The Dance and Song of the Korred._

The valley of Goel was a celebrated haunt of the Korred.[492] It was
thought dangerous to pass through it at night lest one should be forced
to join in their dances, and thus perhaps lose his life. One evening,
however, a peasant and his wife thoughtlessly did so, and they soon
found themselves enveloped by the dancing sprites, who kept singing--

        Lez y, Lez hon,
      Bas an arer zo gant hon;
        Lez on, Lez y,
      Bas an arer zo gant y.

        Let him go, let him go,
      For he has the wand of the plough;
        Let her go, let her go,
      For she has the wand of the plough.

It seems the man had in his hand the _fourche_, or short stick, which
is used as a plough-paddle in Brittany, and this was a protection, for
the dancers made way for them to go out of the ring.

When this became known, many persons having fortified themselves with
a _fourche_, gratified their curiosity by witnessing the dance of the
Korred. Among the rest were two tailors, Peric and Jean, who, being
merry fellows, dared each other to join in the dance. They drew lots,
and the lot fell upon Peric, a humpbacked red-haired, but bold stout
little fellow. He went up to the Korred and asked permission to take
share in their dance. They granted it, and all went whirling round and
round, singing

      Dilun, Dimeurs, Dimerc'her.

      Monday, Tuesday, Wednesday.

Peric, weary of the monotony, when there was a slight pause at the
last word, added

      Ha Diriaou, ha Digwener.

      And Thursday and Friday.

_Mat! mat!_ (good! good!) cried they, and gathering round him, they
offered him his choice of beauty, rank, or riches. He laughed, and
only asked them to remove his hump and change the colour of his hair.
They forthwith took hold of him and tossed him up into the air,
throwing him from hand to hand till at last he lighted on his feet
with a flat back and fine long black hair.

When Jean saw and heard of the change he resolved to try what _he_
could get from the potent Korred, so a few evenings after he went and
was admitted to the dance, which now went to the words as enlarged by
Peric. To make his addition he shouted out,

      Ha Disadarn, ha Disul.

      And Saturday and Sunday.

"What more? what more?" cried the Korred, but he only went on
repeating the words. They then asked him what he would have, and he
replied riches. They tossed him up, and kept bandying him about till
he cried for mercy, and on coming to the ground, he found he had got
Peric's hump and red hair.

It seems that the Korred were condemned to this continual dancing,
which was never to cease till a mortal should join in their dance, and
after naming all the days of the week, should add, _Ha cetu chu er
sizun_, "And now the week is ended." They punished Jean for coming so
near the end and then disappointing them.[493]

       *       *       *       *       *

We add the following circumstances from other authorities:

At Carnac, near Quiberon, says M. de Cambry, in the department of
Morbihan, on the sea-shore, is the Temple of Carnac, called in Breton
"Ti Goriquet" (_House of the Gorics_), one of the most remarkable
Celtic monuments extant. It is composed of more than four thousand
large stones, standing erect in an arid plain, where neither tree nor
shrub is to be seen, and not even a pebble is to be found in the soil
on which they stand. If the inhabitants are asked concerning this
wonderful monument, they say it is an old camp of Cæsar's, an army
turned into stone, or that it is the work of the Crions or Gorics.
These they describe as little men between two and three feet high, who
carried these enormous masses on their hands; for, though little, they
are stronger than giants. Every night they dance around the stones;
and woe betide the traveller who approaches within their reach! he is
forced to join in the dance, where he is whirled about till,
breathless and exhausted, he falls down, amidst the peals of laughter
of the Crions. All vanish with the break of day.[494]

In the ruins of Tresmalouen dwell the Courils.[495] They are of a
malignant disposition, but great lovers of dancing. At night they sport
around the Druidical monuments. The unfortunate shepherd that approaches
them must dance their rounds with them till cock-crow; and the instances
are not few of persons thus ensnared who have been found next morning
dead with exhaustion and fatigue. Woe also to the ill-fated maiden who
draws near the Couril dance! nine months after, the family counts one
member more. Yet so great is the power and cunning of these Dwarfs, that
the young stranger bears no resemblance to them, but they impart to it
the features of some lad of the village.

A number of little men, not more than a foot high, dwell under the
castle of Morlaix. They live in holes in the ground, whither they may
often be seen going, and beating on basins. They possess great
treasures, which they sometimes bring out; and if any one pass by at
the time, allow him to take one handful, but no more. Should any one
attempt to fill his pockets, the money vanishes, and he is instantly
assailed by a shower of boxes in the ear from invisible hands.

The Bretons also say that there are spirits who silently skim the
milk-pans in the dairies. They likewise speak of Sand Yan y Tad (_St.
John and Father_), who carry five lights at their finger-ends, which
they make spin round and round like a wheel.[496]

There is a species of malignant beings, called Night-washers (_Eur
cunnerez noz_), who appear on the banks of streams, and call on the
passers-by to aid them to wash the linen of the dead. If any one
refuses, they drag him into the water and break his arms.

About Morlaix the people are afraid of evil beings they call Teurst.
One of these, called Teursapouliet, appears in the likeness of some
domestic animal.[497] In the district of Vannes is a colossal spirit
called Teus,[498] or Bugelnoz, who appears clothed in white between
midnight and two in the morning. His office is to rescue victims from
the Devil. He spreads his mantle over them, and they are secure. The
Devil comes over the ocean; but, unable to endure the look of the good
spirit, he sinks down again, and, the object of the spirit
accomplished, he vanishes.

FOOTNOTES:

[469] Poésies de Marie de France, par De Roquefort. Paris, 1820. If any
one should suspect that these are not genuine translations from the
Breton, his doubts will be dispelled by reading the original of the Lai
du Laustic in the Barzan-Breiz (i. 24) presently to be noticed.

[470] See above, p. 21.

[471] The Bas-Breton _Korrigan_ or _Korrigwen_ differs, as we may see,
but little from _Gallican_. Strabo (i. p. 304) says that Demeter and
_Kora_ were worshipped in an island in these parts.

[472] Sena is supposed to be L'Isle des Saints, nearly opposite Brest.

[473] Pomp. Mela, iii. 6.

[474] It might seem hardly necessary to inform the reader that these
verses and those that follow, are our own translations, from Marie de
France. Yet some have taken them for old English verses.

[475]

      E korole nao c'horrigan,
      Bleunvek ho bleo, gwisket gloan,
      Kelc'h ar feunteun, d'al loar-gann.
                 VILLEMARQUÉ, _Barzan-Breiz_, i. 8.

The _c'h_ expresses the guttural.

[476] This manifestly alludes to Lanval or Graelent, or similar stories.

[477] It follows, in M. de Roquefort's edition,

      "Deci ne muez fu ou désis."

Of which we can make no sense, and the French translation gives no
aid. In the Harleian MS. it is

      "De cine muez fu ou de sis,"

which is more intelligible.

[478] This tends to prove that this is a translation from the Breton;
for Innocent III., in whose pontificate the cup was first refused to
the laity, died in 1216, when Henry III., to whom Marie is supposed to
have dedicated her Lais, was a child.

[479] The same was the case with the Wünschelweib (_Wish-woman_) of
German romance.

      Swenne du einêst wünschest nâch mir,
      Sô bin ich endelîchen bî dír,

says the lady to the Staufenberger. She adds,

      Wâr ich wil dâ bin ich,
      Den Wunsch hât mir Got gegeben.

He finds it to be true,

      Er wûnschte nach der frouwen sîn,
      Bî îm sô war diu schöne sîn.
                      GRIMM, _Deut. Mythol._, p. 391.


[480] In the Shâh-nâmeh, Siyawush, when he foresees his own death by
the treachery of Afrasiâb, tells his wife Ferengis, the daughter of
that monarch, that she will bear a son whom she is to name Ky Khosroo,
and who will avenge the death of his father: see Görres, Heldenbuch
von Iran, ii. 32.

[481]

      Desi k'a une hoge vint:
      En cele hoge ot une entree.

M. de Roquefort, in his Glossaire de la Langue Romaine, correctly
renders _hoge_ by _colline_. In his translation of this Lai he renders
it by _cabane_, not, perhaps, understanding how a hill could be
pervious. The story, however, of Prince Ahmed, and the romance of
Orfeo and Heurodis (see above, p. 52), are good authority on this
point: see also above, pp. 405, 408.

[482] In the Harleian MS. Mandement. M. de Roquefort confesses his total
ignorance of this people; we follow his example. May it not, however, be
connected with _manant_, and merely signify people, inhabitants?

[483] Roman de Roux, _v._ ii. 234.

[484] See Roquefort, Supplément au Glossaire de la Langue Romaine _s.
v._ Perron.

[485] Barzan-Breiz, Chants Populaires de la Bretagne, recueilles et
publiés par Th. Hersart de la Villemarqué. Paris, 1846. This is a most
valuable work and deserving to take its place with the Ballads of
Scotland, Scandinavia, and Servia, to none of which is it inferior. To
the credit of France the edition which we use is the fourth. How
different would the fate of such a work be in this country!

[486] We make this distinction, because in the ballads in which the
personage is a Fay, the word used is Korrigan or Korrig, while in that
in which the Dwarfs are actors, the words are Korr and Korred. But the
truth is, they are all but different forms of Korr. They are all the
same, singular and plural. The Breton changes its first consonant like
the Irish: see p. 371. We also meet with Crion, Goric, Couril, as
names of these beings, but they are only forms of those given above.

[487] Hence we may infer that they came originally from Scandinavia,
communicated most probably by the Normans.

[488] Stone-tables. They are called by the same name in Devon and
Cornwall; in Irish their appellation is Cromleach.

[489] Barzan-Breiz., i. xlix. 69.

[490]

            WELSH.                              BRETON.

  Gweliz mez ken gwelet derven,      Gweliz vi ken guelet iar wenn,
  Gweliz vi ken gwelet iar wenn,     Gweliz mez ken gwelet gwezen.
  Erioez ne wiliz evelhenn.          Gweliz mez ha gweliz gwial,
                                     Gweliz derven e Koat Brezal,
                                     Biskoaz na weliz kemend all.

[491] The tailor cries "Shut the door! Here are the little _Duz_ of
the night" (_Setu ann Duzigou nouz_), and St. Augustine (De Civ. Dei,
c. xxiii.) speaks of "Daemones quos _Duscios_ Galli nuncupant." It may
remind us of our own word _Deuce_.

[492] In the original the word is Korrigan, but see above, p. 431.

[493] From an article signed H--Y in a cheap publication called Tracts
for the People. The writer says he heard it in the neighbourhood of
the Vale of Goel, and it has every appearance of being genuine.
Villemarqué (i. 61) mentions the last circumstance as to the end of
the penance of the Korred.

[494] Monumens Celtiques, p. 2. An old sailor told M. de Cambry, that
one of these stones covers an immense treasure, and that these
thousands of them have been set up the better to conceal it. He added
that a calculation, the key to which was to be found in the Tower of
London, would alone indicate the spot where the treasure lies.

[495] For what follows we are indebted to the MS. communication of Dr.
W. Grimm. He quotes as his authority the _Zeitung der Gesellschafter_
for 1826.

[496] The former seems to be a house spirit, the _Goblin_, _Follet_,
or _Lutin_ of the north of France; the latter is apparently the _Ignis
Fatuus_.

[497] So the Yorkshire Bar-guest.

[498] See above, p. 438.




                           SOUTHERN EUROPE.

      O faretrate Ninfe, o agresti Pani,
      O Satiri e Silvani, o Fauni e Driadi,
      Najadi ed Amadriadi, e Semidee,
      Oreadi, e Napee, or siete sole.
                                SANAZZARO.


Under the title of Southern Europe, we comprise Greece and those nations
whose languages are derived from the Latin; Italy, Spain, and France. Of
the Fairy-system, if there ever was one, of Portugal we have met with
nothing, at least in the works of Camoens, Bernardes, and Lobo.

The reader will, in this part of our work, find little corresponding
to the Gothic Dwarfs who have hitherto been our companions. The only
one of our former acquaintances that will attend us is honest
Hob-goblin, Brownie, Kobold, Nis, or however else he may style
himself. And it is very remarkable that we shall meet with him only in
those places where the Northmen, the Visigoths or other Scandinavian
tribes settled. Whence perhaps it might be concluded that they brought
him with them to the South of Europe.




                               GREECE.

                                Ὡς τερεινα Νυμφα
                   δροσερων εσωθεν αντρων. EURIPIDES.

                                Like a tender Nymph
                         Within the dewy caves.


The Grecian mythology, like its kindred systems, abounded in
personifications.[499] Modified by scenery so beautiful, rich, and
various as Hellas presented, it in general assigned the supposed
intelligences who presided over the various parts of external nature
more pleasing attributes than they elsewhere enjoyed. They were mostly
conceived to be of the female sex, and were denominated Nymphs, a word
originally signifying a new-married woman.

Whether it be owing to soil, climate, or to an original disposition of
mind and its organ, the Greeks have above all other people possessed a
perception of beauty of form, and a fondness for representing it. The
Nymphs of various kinds were therefore always presented to the
imagination, in the perfection of female youth and beauty. Under the
various appellations of Oreades, Dryades, Naïdes, Limniades, Nereides,
they dwelt in mountains, trees, springs, lakes, the sea, where, in
caverns and grottos, they passed a life whose occupations resembled
those of females of human race. The Wood-nymphs were the companions
and attendants of the huntress goddess Artemis; the Sea-nymphs averted
shipwreck from pious navigators; and the Spring- and River-nymphs
poured forth fruitfulness on the earth. All of them were honoured with
prayer and sacrifice; and all of them occasionally 'mingled in love'
with favoured mortals.

In the Homeric poems, the most ancient portion of Grecian literature,
we meet the various classes of Nymphs. In the Odyssey, they are the
attendants of Calypso, herself a goddess and a nymph. Of the female
attendants of Circe, the potent daughter of Helios, also designated as
a goddess and a nymph, it is said,

      They spring from fountains and from sacred groves,
      And holy streams that flow into the sea.

Yet these nymphs are of divine nature, and when Zeus, the father of
the gods, calls together his council,

      None of the streams, save Ocean, stayed away,
      Nor of the Nymphs, who dwell in beauteous groves,
      And springs of streams, and verdant grassy slades.

The good Eumæus prays to the Nymphs to speed the return of his master,
reminding them of the numerous sacrifices Ulysses had offered to them.
In another part of the poem, their sacred cave is thus described:--

      But at the harbour's head a long-leafed olive
      Grows, and near to it lies a lovely cave,
      Dusky and sacred to the Nymphs, whom men
      Call Naïdes. In it large craters lie,
      And two-eared pitchers, all of stone, and there
      Bees build their combs. In it, too, are long looms
      Of stone, and there the Nymphs do weave their robes,
      Sea-purple, wondrous to behold. Aye-flowing
      Waters are there; two entrances it hath;
      That to the north is pervious unto men;
      That to the south more sacred is, and there
      Men enter not, but 'tis the Immortals' path.

Yet though thus exalted in rank, the Homeric Nymphs frequently
'blessed the bed' of heroes; and many a warrior who fought before Troy
could boast descent from a Naïs or a Nereis.

The sweet, gentle, pious, Ocean-nymphs, who in the Prometheus of
Æschylus appear as the consolers and advisers of its dignified hero,
seem to hold a nearly similar relation with man to the supernal gods.
Beholding the misery inflicted on Prometheus by the power of Zeus,
they cry,--

      May never the all-ruling
      Zeus set his rival power
        Against my thoughts;
      Nor may I ever fail
      The gods, with holy feasts
      Of sacrifices, drawing near,
      Beside the ceaseless stream
        Of father Ocëan:
      Nor may I err in words;
      But this abide with me
        And never fade away.

One of the most interesting species of Nymphs is the Dryads, or
Hamadryads, those personifications of the vegetable life of plants. In
the Homeric hymn to Aphroditè, we find the following full and accurate
description of them. Aphroditè, when she informs Anchises of her
pregnancy, and her shame to have it known among the gods, says of the
child:--

      But him, when first he sees the sun's clear light,
      The Nymphs shall rear, the mountain-haunting Nymphs,
      Deep-bosomed, who on this mountain great
      And holy dwell, who neither goddesses
      Nor women are. Their life is long; they eat
      Ambrosial food, and with the deathless frame
      The beauteous dance. With them, in the recess
      Of lovely caves, well-spying Argos-slayer
      And the Sileni mix in love. Straight pines
      Or oaks high-headed spring with them upon
      The earth man-feeding, soon as they are born;
      Trees fair and flourishing; on the high hills
      Lofty they stand; the Deathless' sacred grove
      Men call them, and with iron never cut.
      But when the fate of death is drawing near,
      First wither on the earth the beauteous trees,
      The bark around them wastes, the branches fall,
      And the Nymph's soul at the same moment leaves
      The sun's fair light.

They possessed power to reward and punish these who prolonged or
abridged the existence of their associate-tree. In the Argonautics of
Apollonius Rhodius, Phineus thus explains to the heroes the cause of
the poverty of Peræbius:--

      But he was paying the penalty laid on
      His father's crime; for one time, cutting trees
      Alone among the hills, he spurned the prayer
      Of the Hamadryas Nymph, who, weeping sore,
      With earnest words besought him not to cut
      The trunk of an oak tree, which, with herself
      Coeval, had endured for many a year.
      But, in the pride of youth, he foolishly
      Cut it; and to him and to his race the Nymph
      Gave ever after a lot profitless.

The Scholiast gives on this passage the following tale from Charon of
Lampsacus:

A man, named Rhœcus, happening to see an oak just ready to fall to the
ground, ordered his slaves to prop it. The Nymph, who had been on the
point of perishing with the tree, came to him and expressed her
gratitude to him for having saved her life, and at the same time desired
him to ask what reward he would. Rhœcus then requested her to permit
him to be her lover, and the Nymph acceded to his wishes. She at the
same time charged him strictly to avoid the society of every other
woman, and told him that a bee should be her messenger. One time the bee
happened to come to Rhœcus as he was playing at draughts, and he made a
rough reply. This so incensed the Nymph that she deprived him of sight.

Similar was the fate of the Sicilian Daphnis.[500] A Naïs loved him
and forbade him to hold intercourse with any other woman under pain of
loss of sight. Long he abstained, though tempted by the fairest maids
of Sicily. At length a princess contrived to intoxicate him: he broke
his vow, and the threatened penalty was inflicted.

FOOTNOTES:

[499] See our Mythology of Ancient Greece and Italy, where (p. 237)
most of what follows will be found, with notes.

[500] Parthenius Erotica, chap. xxix.




                                ITALY.

      Faune Nympharum fugientum amator,
      Per meos fines et aprica rura
      Lenis incedas, abeasque parvis
          Æquus alumnis.
                              HORATIUS.


Unfortunately for our knowledge of the ancient Italian mythology, the
ballad-poetry of Rome is irrecoverably lost. A similar fate has
befallen the literature of Etruria, Umbria, and other parts of the
peninsula. The powerful influence exercised by Grecian genius over the
conquerors of the Grecian states utterly annihilated all that was
national and domestic in literature. Not but that Latin poetry abounds
in mythologic matter; but it is the mythology of Greece, not of Italy;
and the reader of Virgil and Ovid will observe with surprise how
little of what he meets in their works is Italian.

So much however of the population of ancient Italy, particularly of
Latium, was Pelasgian, that it is natural to suppose a great
similarity between the religious systems of Latium and Hellas. The
Latins do not, however, appear to have believed in choirs of Nymphs.
Those we read of, such as Egeria, Anna Perenna, Juturna, are all
solitary, all dwellers of fountains, streams, and lakes. The Italian
Diana did not, like the Grecian Artemis, speed over the mountains
attended by a train of buskined nymphs. No Dryads sought to avert the
fate of their kindred trees--no Nereides sported on the waves.

Dwarfish deities they had none. We are indeed told of the Lars,
particularly the rural Lars, as answering to the Gothic Dwarfs; but no
proofs are offered except the diminutive size of their statues. This
we hold to amount to nothing. Are we to suppose the following lines of
Plautus to have been delivered by an "eyas?"

      Lest any marvel who I am, I shall
      Briefly declare it. I am the family Lar
      Of this house whence you see me coming out.
      'Tis many years now that I keep and guard
      This family; both father and grandsire
      Of him that has it now, I aye protected.
      Now his grandsire intrusted me a treasure
      Of gold, that I, unknown to all, should keep it.

             *       *       *       *       *

      He has one daughter, who, each day with wine
      Or incense, or with something, worships me.
      She gives me crowns, and I in recompense
      Have now made Euclio find the treasure out,
      That if he will, he may more readily
      Get her a match.[501]

The Lars were a portion of the Etrurian religion. The Etruscan word
Lar signifies Lord, with which it has a curious but casual
resemblance.[502] The Lars were regarded, like the Grecian heroes, as
being the souls of men who, after death, still hovered about their
former abodes, averting dangers from, and bestowing blessings on, the
inhabitants. They differed from the Penates, who were, properly
speaking, Gods, beings of a higher nature, personifications of
natural powers, the givers of abundance and wealth.

The old Italians, it appears, believed in a being, we know not of what
size, called an Incubo, that watched over treasure. "But what they say
I know not," says Petronius,[503] "but I have heard how he snatched
the cap of an Incubo and found a treasure."

       *       *       *       *       *

Respecting the Fairy mythology of the modern Italians, what we have
been able to collect is very little.

The people of Naples, we are told,[504] believe in a being very much
resembling the Incubo, whom they call the Monaciello, or Little Monk.
They describe him as a short, thick kind of little man, dressed in the
long garments of a monk, with a broad-brimmed hat. He appears to
people in the dead of the night, and beckons to them to follow him. If
they have courage to do so, he leads them to some place where treasure
is concealed. Several are said to have made sudden fortunes through
him. In the Neapolitan story-book, named the Pentamerone, of which we
shall presently give an account, we meet with a Monaciello of a very
different character from this guardian of hidden treasure.

In the second tale of the first day of that work, when the prince in
the night heard the noise made by the Fairy in his room, "he thought
it was some chamber-boy coming to lighten his purse for him, or some
Monaciello to pull the clothes off him." And in the seventh tale of
the third day of the same collection, when Corvetto had hidden himself
under the Ogre's[505] bed to steal his quilt, "he began to pull quite
gently, when the Ogre awoke, and bid his wife not to pull the clothes
that way, or she'd strip him, and he would get his death of cold."
"Why, it's you that are stripping me," replied the Ogress, "and you
have not left a stitch on me." "Where the devil is the quilt?" says
the Ogre; and putting his hand to the ground, he happened to touch the
face of Corvetto, and immediately began to shout out, "The Monaciello,
the Monaciello, hola! candles! run, run!" Corvetto, meanwhile, got off
with his prize through the window.[506]

It is quite clear that the Monaciello is the same kind of being as the
House-spirit of the Gotho-German nations. He seems to belong
peculiarly to Naples, for we have not heard of him in any other part
of Italy. Now we are to recollect that this was the very place in
which the Normans settled, and so he may be their Nis or Kobold;[507]
or, as he is so very like the Spanish Duende, he may be that being
introduced by the Aragonese, who seem to have exercised so much
influence over the language and manners of the people of Naples.

       *       *       *       *       *

The belief in Mermaids also prevailed in modern Italy. In the reign of
Roger, king of Sicily, a young man happening to be bathing in the sea
late in the evening, perceived that something was following him.
Supposing it to be one of his companions, he caught it by the hair,
and dragged it on shore. But finding it to be a maiden of great beauty
and of most perfect form, he threw his cloak about her, and took her
home, where she continued with him till they had a son. There was one
thing however which greatly grieved him, which was the reflection that
so beautiful a form should be dumb, for he had never heard her speak.
One day he was reproached by one of his companions, who said that it
was a spectre, and not a real woman, that he had at home: being both
angry and terrified, he laid his hand on the hilt of his sword, and
urged her with vehemence to tell him who or what she was, threatening
if she did not do so, to kill the child before her eyes. The spirit
only saying, that he had lost a good wife by forcing her to speak,
instantly vanished, leaving her son behind. A few years after, as the
boy was playing on the sea-shore with his companions, the spirit his
mother dragged him into the sea, where he was drowned.[508]

       *       *       *       *       *

We now come to the Fate of romance and tale.

The earliest notice that we can recollect to have seen of these potent
ladies is in the Orlando Innamorato, where we meet the celebrated Fata
Morgana, who would at first appear to be, as a personification of
Fortune, a being of a higher order.

      Ivi è una fata nomata Morgana,
      Che a le genti diverse dona l'oro;
      Quanto e per tutto il mondo or se ne spande
      Convien che ad essa prima si dimande.
                                  L. I. c. xxv. st. 5. ed. 1831.

But we afterwards find her in her proper station, subject, with the
Fate and Witches, to the redoubtable Demogorgon.[509] When Orlando, on
delivering Zilante from her, makes her swear by that awful power, the
poet says:

      Sopra ogni fata è quel Demogorgone
      (Non so se mai l'odiste raccontare)
      E giudica tra loro e fa ragione,
      E quel che piace a lui può di lor fare.
      La notte si cavalea ad un montone,
      Travarca le montagne e passa il mare,
      E _strigie_, e _fate_, e fantasime vane
      Batte con serpi vive ogni dimane.

      Se le ritrova la dimane al mondo,
      Perchè non ponno al giorno comparire,
      Tanto le batte al colpo furibondo
      Che volentier vorrien poter morire.
      Or le incatena giù nel mar profondo,
      Or sopra il vento scalze la fa gire,
      Or per il fuoco dietro a sè le mena;
      A cui dà questa, a cui quell' altra pena.
                                         L. II. c. xiii. st. 27, 28.

According to Ariosto,[510] Demogorgon has a splendid temple palace in
the Himalaya mountains, whither every fifth year the Fate are all
summoned to appear before him, and give an account of their actions.
They travel through the air in various strange conveyances, and it is
no easy matter to distinguish between their convention and a Sabbath
of the Witches.

We meet with another Fata in Bojardo,[511] the beautiful Silvanella, who
raised a tomb over Narcissus, and then dissolved away into a fountain.

When Brandamarte opens the magnificent tomb and kisses the hideous
serpent that thrusts out its head, it gradually becomes a beautiful
maiden.

      Questa era Febosilla quella fata,
      Che edificato avea l'alto palaccio
      E'l bel giardino e quella sepoltura,
      Ove un gran tempo è stata in pena dura.

      Perchè una fata non può morir mai,
      Sin che non giunge il giorno del giudizio,
      Ma ben ne la sua forma dura assai,
      Mill' anni o più, sì come io aggio indizio.
      Poi (siccome di questa io vi contai
      Qual fabbricato avea il bell' edifizio)
      In serpe si tramuta e stavvi tanto
      Che di baciarla alcun si doni il vanto.
                                       L. II. c. xxvi. st. 14, 15

The other Fate who appear in this poem are Le Fate Nera and Bianca,
the protectresses of Guidone and Aquilante; the Fata della Fonte, from
whom Mandricardo obtains the arms of Hector, and finally Alcina, the
sister of Morgana, who carries off Astolfo. Dragontina and Falerina,
the owners of such splendid gardens, may also have been Fate, though
they are not called so by the poet.

Alcina re-appears in great splendour in the Orlando Furioso, where
she is given a sister named Logistilla, and both, like Morgana in the
preceding poem, are in a great measure allegorical. We also obtain
there a glimpse of the White and Black Fate. The Maga Manto of Dante
becomes here a Fata, and we meet her in the form of a serpent; to
account for which she says,

      Nascemmo ad un punto che d' ogni altro male
      Siamo capaci fuor che della morte.
      Ma giunta è con questo essere immortale
      Condizion non men del morir forte;
      Ch' ogni settimo giorno ognuna è certa
      Che la sua forma in biscia si converta.
                                            C. xliii. st. 98.

Elsewhere (x. 52) the poet tells us that

      Morir non puote alcuna fata mai
      Fin che il Sol gira, o il ciel non muta stilo.

In the Amadigi of Bernardo Tasso the Fate appear for the last time in
Italian poetry;[512] but in greater number, and, we may say, greater
splendour than elsewhere. There are two classes of them, the beneficent
and protective, and the seductive and injurious. The terms Maga and
Incantatrice, as well as Fata, are applied to them all indifferently.
The good Fairy-ladies are Urganda, termed _La savia_ and _La
sconosciuta_,[513] the guardian of Amadigi, and the fair Oriana; Silvana
or Silvanella who stands in a similar relation to Alidoro; Lucina, also
named La Donna del Lago, another protectress of Alidoro and of his
lady-love, the fair warrior Mirinda, sister of Amadigi; Eufrosina, the
sister of Lucina; Argea, called La Reina della Fate, the protectress of
Floridante, to whom, after making him undergo various trials, she gives
her daughter Filidora in marriage; finally, Argea's sister Filidea. The
Fate whose character resembles that of Alcina are Morganetta, Nivetta,
and Carvilia, the three daughters of Morgana. Beside these then are two
Fate of neutral character, Dragontina, who formed a palace, temple and
gardens, in which, at the desire of her father, she enchanted a young
prince and his wife; and Montana, who, to avenge the fate of her lover,
slain by Alidoro, enchanted that warrior in a temple which she had
raised to the memory of the fallen.[514]

      Ma veggiam ch' io non stessi troppo a bada
      Con queste Alcine e Morgane.

The earliest collections of European Fairy-tales in prose belong to
Italy. In 1550, Straparola, a native of Caravaggio, in the Milanese,
published at Venice his Notti Piacevoli, a collection of tales, jokes,
and riddles, of which several, and those the best, are Fairy-tales.
These were translated into French in 1560-76, and seem to have been the
origin of the so well known Contes des Feés. Perrault's Puss in Boots
(_Le Chat Botté_,) and the Princess Fairstar (_Belle Etoile_,) and many
others of Madame D'Aulnoy's, who borrowed largely from the Notti
Piacevoli, are to be found in Straparola. In 1637, eighty-seven years
after the Notti Piacevoli appeared at Naples, and in the Neapolitan
dialect, the Pentamerone, the best collection of Fairy-tales ever
written.[515] The author, Giambattista Basile,[516] had spent his youth
in Candia, and then passed several years rambling through Italy. He
seems to have carefully treasured up all the tales he heard, and he
wrote and published them, under the feigned name of Gian Alesio
Abbatutis, in his native dialect, not long before his death.

In the Tales and Popular Fictions we gave some translations from the
Notti Piacevoli, the only ones in English, and they will probably
remain such, as the work is not one likely ever to be translated. In
the same work we gave two from the Pentamerone, and three (the Dragon,
Gagliuso, and the Goatface) in the former edition of the present work.
Most certainly we were the first to render any of these curious tales
into English, and we look back with a mixture of pleasure and surprise
at our success in the unaided struggle with an idiom so different from
the classic Italian.[517] We fancied that we had been the first to
make translations from it into any language, but we afterwards learned
that of the two tales in our other work, the one, Peruonto, had been
translated into French (probably by the Abbé Galiani) for the Cabinet
des Fées, the other, the Serpent into German, by M. Grimm.[518] Of
late, this most original work has been brought within the reach of
ordinary readers by two translations, the one in German by Felix
Liebrecht, who has given the work complete with few omissions; the
other in English by Mr. J. E. Taylor, who has made a selection of
thirty tales, and these most carefully expurgated, in order that
agreeably to its second title, it might form a book of amusement even
for children--a most difficult task, and in which his success has been
far greater than might have been anticipated. All our own translations
have been incorporated in it, and we can safely refer to it those who
wish to know the real character and nature of the Pentamerone.

Whatever name Basile might give his book it is quite plain that he
never could have meant it merely for children. The language alone is
proof enough on that head. It is, besides, full of learned allusions
and of keen satire, so that it could only be understood and relished
by grown persons, for whose amusement it was apparently designed; and
its tales are surely not much more extravagant than some of those in
Ariosto and the other romantic poets. It in fact never was a child's
book like the Contes de ma Mère l' Oie. It has now become very scarce;
we could not at Naples meet with a copy of it, or even with any one
who had read it.

FOOTNOTES:

[501] Aulularia, Prologue.

[502] See our Mythology of Greece and Italy, p. 543; and our Ovid's
Fasti, Excursus iv.

[503] Satyricon, ch. 38. _Sunt qui eundem_ (Hercules) _Incubonem esse
velint_. Schol. Hor. Sat. ii. 6, 13.

[504] Viessieux, Italy and the Italians, vol. i. pp. 161, 162.

[505] _L'huorco_, the Orco of Bojardo and Ariosto, probably derived
from the Latin Orcus: see Mythol. of Greece and Italy, p. 527. In this
derivation we find that we had been anticipated by Minucci in his
notes on the Malmantile Racquistato, c. ii. st. 50.

In a work, from which we have derived some information (Lettres sur les
Contes des Fées, Paris, 1826), considerable pains are taken, we think to
little purpose, to deduce the French Ogre from the Oïgours, a Tartar
tribe, who with the other tribes of that people invaded Europe in the
twelfth century. In the Glossaire de la Langue Romaine, Ogre is
explained by Hongrois. Any one, however, that reads the Pentamerone will
see that the ugly, cruel, man-eating Huorco is plainly an Ogre; and
those expert at the _tours de passe passe_ of etymology will be at no
loss to deduce Ogre from Orco. See Tales and Popular Fictions, p. 223.

[506] In another of these tales, it is said of a young man, who, on
breaking open a cask, found a beautiful maiden in it, that he stood
for a while _comme o chillo che ha visto lo Monaciello_.

[507] See Tales and Popular Fictions, chap. ix. p. 269; see also
_Spain_ and _France_.

[508] Vincentius apud Kornmann, _de Miraculis Vivorum_.

[509] This being, unknown to classic mythology, is first mentioned by
Lactantius. It was probably from Boccaccio's Genealogia Deorum that
Bojardo got his knowledge of him.

[510] I Cinque Canti, c. i. st. l. _seq._

[511] Lib. II. xvii. 56, _seq._

[512] There is, however, a Maga or Fata named Falsirena in the Adone
of Marini.

[513] La Sabia and La Desconocida of the original romance, which Tasse
follows very closely in everything relating to Amadis and Oriana.

[514] Few of our readers, we presume, are acquainted with this poem, and
they will perhaps be surprised to learn that it is, after the Furioso,
the most beautiful romantic poem in the Italian language, graceful and
sweet almost to excess. It is strange that it should be neglected in
Italy also. One cause may be its length (One Hundred Cantos), another
the constant and inartificial breaking off of the stories, and perhaps
the chief one, its serious moral tone so different from that of Ariosto.
It might be styled The Legend of Constancy, for the love of its heroes
and heroines is proof against all temptations. Mr. Panizzi's charge of
abounding in scandalous stories, is not correct, for it is in reality
more delicate than even the Faerie Queene. Ginguené, who admired it,
appreciates it far more justly.

[515] See Tales and Popular Fictions, p. 183. The Pentamerone we may
observe, was not a title given to it by the author; in like manner the
only title Fielding gave his great work was The History of a Foundling.

[516] He was brother to Adriana and uncle to Leonora Baroni, the
ladies whose musical talents Milton celebrates.

[517] Ex. gr. Fiume is _shiume_; Fiore, _shiure_; Piaggia, _chiaja_;
Piombo, _chiummo_; Biondo, _ghiunno_. There are likewise numerous
Hispanicisms. Thus _gaiola_ in Gagliuso which we all rendered
_coffin_, is the Spanish _jaula_, cage, and the meaning apparently is
that he would have the cat stuffed and put in a glass-case; in like
manner calling the eyes suns (as in _na bellezza a doje sole_) occurs
in the plays of Calderon.

[518] In the Taschenbuch für altdeutscher Zeit und Kunst, 1816.




                                SPAIN.

      Duendecillo, duendecillo,
      Quien quiera que seas ó fueras,
      El dinero que tú das
      En lo que mandares vuelve.
                       CALDERON, _La Dama Duende_.


When we inquired after the fairy-system of Spain, we were told that
there was no such thing, for that the Inquisition had long since
eradicated all such ideas. Most certainly we would not willingly be
regarded as partisans of the Holy Office, yet still we must express our
doubt of the truth of this charge. In Señor Llorente's work, as far as
we can recollect, there is no account of prosecutions for Duende-heresy;
and even to the Holy Office we should give its due. Still, with all our
diligence, our collection of Iberian fairy-lore is extremely scanty.

Our earliest authority for Spain, as for other countries, is the
celebrated marshall of Champagne, Gervase of Tilbury, who thus
relates:--


                 _The Daughter of Peter De Cabinam._

In the bishoprick of Gerunda (_i. e._ Gerona), and the province of
Catalonia, stands a mountain which the natives call Convagum. It is
very steep, and on its summit is a lake of dark water, so deep that
it cannot be fathomed. The abode of the Demons is in this lake; and if
a stone, or anything else, be thrown into it, there rises from it an
awful tempest.

Not far from this mountain, in a village named Junchera, lived a man
named Peter de Cabinam, who being one day annoyed by the crying of his
little girl, wished in his anger that the Demons might fetch her away.
The child instantly vanished--snatched away by invisible hands--and was
seen no more. Time passed on; and it was seven years after this event,
when a man belonging to the village, as he was one day rambling about
the foot of the mountain, met a man weeping bitterly, and bewailing his
hard fate. On inquiry, he said that he had now been seven years in the
mountain under the power of the Demons, who employed him as a beast of
burden. He added, that there was also a girl in the mountain, the
daughter of Peter de Cabinam of Junchera, a servant like himself; but
that they were tired of her, and would restore her to her father if he
came to claim her. When this information came to Peter de Cabinam, he
forthwith ascended the mountain, and going to the edge of the lake, he
besought the Demons to give him back his child. Like a sudden gust of
wind she came, tall in stature, but wasted and dirty, her eyes rolling
wildly, and her speech inarticulate. The father, not knowing what to do
with her, applied to the Bishop of Gerunda, who took this opportunity of
edifying his people by exhibiting the girl to them, and warning them
against the danger of wishing that the Demons had their children. Some
time after the man also was released, and from him the people learned
that at the bottom of the lake there was a large palace, with a wide
gate, to which palace the Demons repaired from all parts of the world,
and which no one could enter but themselves, and those they brought
thither.[519]


                    _Origin of the House of Haro._

As Don Diego Lopez, lord of Biscay, was one day lying in wait for the
wild boar, he heard the voice of a woman who was singing. On looking
around, he beheld on the summit of a rock a damsel, exceedingly
beautiful, and richly attired. Smitten with her charms, he proffered
her his hand. In reply, she assured him that she was of high descent,
but frankly accepted his proffered hand; making, however, one
condition--he was never to pronounce a holy name. Tradition says that
the fair bride had only one defect, which was, that one of her feet
was like that of a goat. Diego Lopez, however, loved her well, and she
bore him two children, a daughter, and a son named Iniguez Guerra.

Now it happened one day, as they were sitting at dinner, that the lord
of Biscay threw a bone to the dogs, and a mastiff and a spaniel
quarrelled about it, and the spaniel griped the mastiff by the throat,
and throttled him. "Holy Mary!" exclaimed Don Diego, "who ever saw the
like?" Instantly the lady caught hold of the hands of her children;
Diego seized and held the boy, but the mother glided through the air
with the daughter, and sought again the mountains whence she had come.
Diego remained alone with his son; and some years after, when he
invaded the lands of the Moors, he was made captive by them, and led
to Toledo. Iniguez Guerra, who was now grown up, was greatly grieved
at the captivity of his father, and the men of the land told him that
his only hope was to find his mother, and obtain her aid. Iniguez made
no delay; he rode alone to the well-known mountains, and when he
reached them, behold! his fairy-mother stood there before him on the
summit of a rock. "Come unto me," said she, "for well do I know thy
errand." And she called to her Pardalo, the horse that ran without a
rider in the mountains, and she put a bridle into his mouth, and bade
Iniguez mount him, and told him that he must not give him either food
or water, or unsaddle or unbridle him, or put shoes upon his feet, and
that in one day the demon-steed would carry him to Toledo. And Iniguez
obeyed the injunctions of his mother, and succeeded in liberating his
father; but his mother never returned.[520]

In the large collection of Spanish ballads named El Romancero
Castellano, the only one that treats of fairy-lore is the following,
which tells of the enchantment of the King of Castille's daughter by
seven fairies,[521] for a period of seven years. It is of the same
character as the fairy-tales of France and Italy.


                           _La Infantine._

      Á cazar va el caballero,
      Á cazar como solia.--
      Los perros lleva cansados,
      El falcon perdido avia.

      Arrimarase á un roble,
      Alto es á maravilla,
      En un ramo mas alto
      Viera estar una Infantina.

      Cabellos de su cabeza
      Todo aquel roble cobrian;
      "No te espantes, caballero
      Ni tengas tamaña grima.

      "Hija soy del buen rey
      Y de la reina de Castilla;
      Siete fadas me fadaron,[522]
      En brazos de una ama mia,

      "Que andase los siete años
      Sola en esta montina.[523]
      Hoy se cumplan los años
      O mañana, en aquel dia.

      "Por Dios te ruego, caballero
      Llevesme en tu compañia,
      Si quisieres por muger,
      Si no sea por amiga."

      "Espereis me vos, señora,
      Esta mañana, aquel dia;
      Iré yo tomar consejo
      De una madre que tenia."

      La niña le respondiera,
      Y estas palabras, decia:
      "O mal haya el caballero
      Que sola deja la niña!"

      El se va á tomar consejo,
      Y ella queda en la montina.
      Aconsejóle su madre
      Que la tomase por amiga.

      Quando volvió el caballero
      No la hallara en la montina.
      Vió la que la llevaban,
      Com muy grande caballeria.

      El caballero, que lo ha visto,
      En el suelo se caia.
      Desque en si hubo tornado
      Estas palabras decia:

      "Caballero que tal pierde
      Muy grandes penas merecia.
      Yo mismo seré el alcalde,
      Yo me seré la justicia,
      Que me cortan pies y manos,
      Y me arrastran por la villa."[524]


                        _Pepito el Corcovado._

Pepito el Corcovado,[525] a gay lively little hunchback, used to gain
his living by his voice and his guitar; for he was a general favourite,
and was in constant request at weddings and other festivities. He was
going home one night from one of these festive occasions, being under
engagement for another in the morning, and, as it was in the celebrated
Sierra Morena, he contrived to lose his way. After trying in vain to
find it, he wrapped his cloak about him, and lay down for the night at
the foot of a cork-tree. He had hardly, however, gone to sleep, when he
was awakened by the sound of a number of little voices singing to an old
air with which he was well acquainted,

      Lunes y Martes y Miercoles tres

over and over again. Deeming this to be imperfect, he struck in, adding,

      Jueves y Viernes y Sabado seis.

The little folk were quite delighted, and for hours the mountain rang
with

      Lunes y Martes y Miercoles tres,
      Jueves y Viernes y Sabado seis.

      Monday and Tuesday and Wednesday three,
      Thursday and Friday and Saturday, six.


They finally crowded round Pepito, and bade him ask what he would for
having completed their song so beautifully. After a little
consideration, he begged to have his hump removed. So said so done, he
was in an instant one of the straightest men in all Spain. On his
return home, every one was amazed at the transformation. The story
soon got wind, and another hunchback, named Cirillo, but unlike
Pepito, as crooked in temper as in person, having learned from him
where the scene of his adventure lay, resolved to proceed thither and
try his luck. He accordingly reached the spot, sat under the
cork-tree, and saw and heard all that Pepito had heard and seen. He
resolved also to add to the song, and he struck in with "Y Domingo
siete" (_and Sunday seven_); but whether it was the breach of rhythm,
or the mention of the Lord's Day that gave offence, he was instantly
assailed with a shower of blows or pinches, and to make his calamity
the greater, Pepito's hump was added to his own.[526]

       *       *       *       *       *

We thus may see that there are beings in Spain also answering to the
various classes of Fairies. But none of these have obtained the same
degree of reputation as the House-spirit, whose Spanish name is Duende
or Trasgo. In Torquemada's Spanish Mandeville, as the old English
version of it is named, there is a section devoted to the Duende, in
which some of his feats, such as pelting people with stones, clay, and
such like, are noticed, and in the last century the learned Father
Feijoo wrote an essay on Duendes,[527] _i.e._ on House-spirits; for he
says little of the proper Spanish Duende, and his examples are Hödiken
and the Kobolds, of which he had read in Agricola and other writers.
On the whole, perhaps, the best account of the Duende will be found in
Calderon's spritely comedy, named La Dama Duende.

In this piece, when Cosme, who pretends that he had seen the Duende
when he put out his candle, is asked by his master what he was like,
he replies:

                 Era un fraile
      Tamañito, y tenia puesto
      Un cucurucho tamaño;
      Que por estas señas creo
      Que era duende capuchino.

This _cucurucho_ was a long conical hat without a brim worn by the
clergy in general, and not by the Capuchins alone. A little before,
Cosme, when seeking to avert the appearance of the Duende, recites the
following lines, which have the appearance of being formed from some
popular charm against the House-spirit:

      Señora dama duende,
      Duelase de mi;
      Que soy niño y solo,
      Y nunca en tal me ví.

In De Solis' very amusing comedy of Un Bobo hace Ciento, Doña Ana
makes the following extremely pretty application of the popular idea
of the Duende:

      Yo soy, don Luis, una dama
      Que no conozco este duende
      Del amor, si no es por fama.

In another of his plays (_El Amor al Uso_), a lady says:

      Amor es duende importuno
      Que al mundo asombrando trae;
      Todos dicen que le ay,
      Y no le ha visto ninguno.

The lines from Calderon prefixed to this section of our work, show
that money given by the Duende was as unsubstantial as fairy-money in
general. This is confirmed by Don Quixote, who tells his rather
covetous squire, that "los tesoros de los caballeros andantes son,
como los de los Duendes, aparentes y falsos."

The Spaniards seem also to agree with the people of other countries in
regarding the Fairies as being fallen angels. One of their most
celebrated poets thus expresses himself:

      Disputase por hombres entendidos
      Si fué de _los caidos_ este duende.

Some Spanish etymologists say that Duende is a contraction of _Dueño
de casa_; others, that it comes from the Arabic _Dûar_, (dwelling) the
term used for the Arab camps on the north-coast of Africa. To us it
appears more probable that the Visigoths brought their ancient popular
creed with them to Spain[528] also, and that as Duerg became Drac in
Provence, it was converted into Duende in Spain.[529] It is further
not quite impossible that Duerg may be also the original of Trasgo, a
word for which we believe no etymon has been proposed.

FOOTNOTES:

[519] Otia Imperialia, p. 982. The Demons must have been some kind of
fairies: see above, p. 4.

[520] Related by Sir Francis Palgrave, but without giving any
authority, in the Quarterly Review, vol. xxii. See _France_.

[521] In Don Quixote (part i. chap. 50) we read of "los siete
castillos de las siete Fadas" beneath the lake of boiling pitch, and
of the fair princess who was enchanted in one of them.

[522] _Fada_ is certainly the elided part. of this verb, for the Latin
mode of elision (see above p. 7.) was retained in Spanish as well as
Italian. Thus _quedo_, _junto_, _harto_, _marchito_, _vacio_,
_enjuto_, _violento_, &c., come from _quedar_, _juntar_, _hartar_, &c.
As the Spanish, following the Latin, also frequently uses the past as
a present participle, as _un hombre atrevido_, "a daring man;" and the
same appears to take place in Italian, as _un huomo accorto_,
_saputo_, _avveduto_, _dispietato_; and even in French, as _un homme
réfléchi_, _désespéré_; may we not say that _fada_, _fata_, _fée_, is
enchant_ing_ rather than enchant_ed_?

[523] _Montina_ is a small wood.

[524] Romancero Castellano por Depping, ii. p. 198, 2nd edit. A
translation of this romance will be found in Thoms's Lays and Legends
of Spain.

[525] _i. e._ Joey the Hunchback. Pepito is the dim. of Pepe, _i. e._
José, Joseph.

[526] See Thoms's Lays and Legends of Spain, p. 83. It was related, he
says, to a friend of his by the late Sir John Malcolm, who had heard it
in Spain. It is also briefly related (probably on the same authority) in
the Quarterly Review, vol. xxii. (see above pp. 364, 438). Redi, in his
Letters, gives another form of it, in which the scene is at Benevento,
the agents are witches, and the hump is taken off, _senza verun suo
dolor_, with a saw of butter. _Y Domingo siete_ is, we are told, a
common phrase when any thing is said or done _mal à propos_.

[527] Teatro Critico, tom. ii. His object is to disprove their
existence, and he very justly says that the Duende was usually a knavish
servant who had his own reasons for making a noise and disturbing the
family. This theory will also explain the Duende-tales of Torquemada.

[528] See Tales and Popular Fictions, p. 269.

[529] The change of _r_ and _n_ is not without examples. Thus we have
αργυρον and _argentum_; _water_, English; _vand_, Danish; _vatn_,
Swedish. _Cristofero_ is _Cristofano_ in Tuscan; _homine_, _nomine_,
_sanguine_, are _hombre_, _nombre_, _sangre_, Spanish. In _Duerg_ when
_r_ became _n_, euphony changed _g_ to _d_, or _vice versâ_. The
changes words undergo when the derivation is certain, are often
curious. _Alguacil_, Spanish, is _El-wezeer_ Arab, as _Azucena_
Spanish, _Cecem_ Portuguese (white-lily) is _Sûsan_ Arab; _Guancia_
(cheek) Italian, is _Wange_ German; Ναυπακτος has become _Lépanto_. It
might not be safe to assert that the Persian _gurk_ and our _wolf_ are
the same, and yet the letters in them taken in order are all
commutable. Our _God be with you_ has shrunk to _Goodbye_, and the
Spanish _Vuestra merced_ to _Usted_, pr. _Usté_. There must, by the
way, some time or other, have been an intimate connexion between Spain
and England, so many of our familiar words seem to have a Spanish
origin. Thus _ninny_ is from _niño_; _booby_ from _bobo_; _pucker_
from _puchero_; _launch_ (a boat) from _lancha_; and perhaps _monkey_
(if not from _mannikin_) from _mono_, _monico_. We pronounce our
_colonel_ like the Spanish _coronel_.




                               FRANCE.

      Pourquoi faut-il s'émerveiller
      Que la raison la mieux sensée,
      Lasse souvent de veiller,
      Par des contes d'ogre et de fée
      Ingenieusement bercée,
      Prenne plaisir à sommeiller?
                             PERRAULT.

The Fairy mythology of France may be divided, as respects its locality,
into two parts, that of Northern and that of Southern France, the Langue
d'Oil and the Langue d'Oc. We will commence with the latter, as adjacent
to Spain. Of its mythology, Gervase of Tilbury, who resided in the
kingdom of Arles, has left us some interesting particulars, and other
authorities enable us to trace it down to the present day. Speaking of
the inhabitants of Arles, Gervase thus expresses himself:

"They also commonly assert, that the Dracs assume the human form, and
come early into the public market-place without any one being thereby
disturbed. These, they say, have their abode in the caverns of rivers,
and occasionally, floating along the stream in the form of gold rings or
cups, entice women or boys who are bathing on the banks of the river;
for, while they endeavour to grasp what they see, they are suddenly
seized and dragged down to the bottom: and this, they say, happens to
none more than to suckling women, who are taken by the Dracs to rear
their unlucky offspring; and sometimes, after they have spent seven
years there, they return to our hemisphere. These women say that they
lived with the Dracs and their wives in ample palaces, in the caverns
and banks of rivers. We have ourselves seen one of these women, who was
taken away while washing clothes on the banks of the Rhone. A wooden
bowl floated along by her, and, in endeavouring to catch it, having got
out into the deep water, she was carried down by a Drac, and made nurse
to his son below the water. She returned uninjured, and was hardly
recognised by her husband and friends after seven years' absence.

"After her return she related very wonderful things, such as that the
Dracs lived on people they had carried off, and turned themselves into
human forms; and she said that one day, when the Drac gave her an
eel-pasty to eat, she happened to put her fingers, that were greasy
with the fat, to one of her eyes and one side of her face, and she
immediately became endowed with most clear and distinct vision under
the water. When the third year of her time was expired, and she had
returned to her family, she very early one morning met the Drac in the
market-place of Beaucaire. She knew him at once, and saluting him,
inquired about the health of her mistress and the child. To this the
Drac replied, 'Harkye,' said he, 'with which eye do you see me?' She
pointed to the eye she had touched with the fat: the Drac immediately
thrust his finger into it, and he was no longer visible to any
one."[530]

       *       *       *       *       *

Respecting the Dracs, Gervase farther adds:

"There is also on the banks of the Rhone, under a guardhouse, at the
North-gate of the city of Arles, a great pool of the river.... In
these deep places, they say that the Dracs are often seen of bright
nights, in the shape of men. A few years ago there was, for three
successive days, openly heard the following words in the place outside
the gate of the city, which I have mentioned, while the figure as it
were of a man ran along the bank: 'The hour is passed, and the man
does not come.' On the third day, about the ninth hour, while that
figure of a man raised his voice higher than usual, a young man ran
simply to the bank, plunged in, and was swallowed up; and the voice
was heard no more."

The word Drac is apparently derived from Draco; but we are inclined to
see its origin in the Northern _Duerg_. We must recollect that the
Visigoths long occupied Provence and Languedoc. It is, we apprehend,
still in use. _Fa le Drac_, in Provençal, signifies _Faire le
diable_.[531] Goudelin, a Provençal poet of the seventeenth century,
begins his Castel en l'Ayre with these lines:

      Belomen qu' yeu _faré le Drac_
      Se jamay trobi dins un sac
      Cinc ô siés milante pistolos
      Espessos como de redolos.

The following curious narrative also occurs in Gervase's work, and
might seem to belong to Provence:--

"Seamen tell that one time as a ship was sailing in the Mediterranean
sea, which sea we call ours, she was surrounded by an immense number of
porpoises (_delphinos_), and that when an active young man, one of the
crew, had wounded one of them with a weapon, and all the rest of them
had rapidly sought the bottom, a sudden and awful tempest enveloped the
ship. While the sailors were in doubt of their lives, lo! one in the
form of a knight came borne on a steed on the sea, and demanded that,
for the salvation of all the rest, the person who had wounded the
porpoise should be delivered up to him. The sailors were in an agony
between their own danger and their aversion to expose their comrade to
death, which seemed to them to be most cruel, and they thought it
infamous to consult their own safety at the expense of the life of
another. At last the man himself, deeming it better that all should be
saved at the cost of one, as they were guiltless, than that such a
number of people should run the risk of destruction on account of his
folly, and lest by defending him they should become guilty, devoted
himself to the death he merited, and voluntarily mounted the horse
behind the rider, who went over the firm water, taking his road along it
as if it had been the solid land. In a short time he reached a distant
region, where he found lying in a magnificent bed the knight whom he had
wounded the day before as a porpoise. He was directed by his guide to
pull out the weapon which was sticking in the wound, and when he had
done so, _the guilty right hand gave aid to the wound_. This being done,
the sailor was speedily brought back to the ship, and restored to his
companions. Hence it is, that from that time forth sailors have ceased
to hunt the porpoises."[532]

Gervase also describes the Kobold, or House-spirit, the Esprit Follet,
or Goblin of the North of France.

"There are," says he, "other demons, commonly called Follets, who
inhabit the houses of simple country people, and can be kept away
neither by water nor exorcisms; and as they are not seen, they pelt
people as they are going in at the door with stones, sticks, and
domestic utensils. Their words are heard like those of men, but their
form does not appear. I remember to have met several wonderful stories
of them in the Vita Abbreviata, et Miraculis beatissimi Antonii."[533]

Elsewhere[534] he speaks of the beings which he says are called Lamiæ,
who, he relates, are used to enter houses suddenly, ransack the jars
and tubs, pots and pitchers, take the children out of the cradles,
light lamps or candles, and sometimes oppress those who are sleeping.

Either Gervase mistook, or the Fadas of the south of France were
regarded as beings different from mankind. The former is, perhaps, the
more likely supposition. He thus speaks of them: "This, indeed, we
know to be proved every day by men who are beyond all exception; that
we have heard of some who were lovers of phantoms of this kind,[535]
which they call Fadas; and when they married other women, they died
before consummating the marriage. We have seen most of them live in
great temporal felicity, who when they withdrew themselves from the
embraces of these Fadas, or discovered the secret, lost not only their
temporal prosperity, but even the comfort of wretched life."[536]

"In the legend of St. Armentaire, composed about 1300, by Raymond, a
gentleman of Provence, we read of the Fée Esterelle, and of the
sacrifices to her, who used to give barren women beverages to drink,
to make them fruitful; and of a stone called _La Lauza de la Fada;_
that is the Fairy-stone on which they used to sacrifice to her."[537]

Even at the present day the belief in the Fadas seems to linger in
Provence and the adjoining districts.

"On the night of the 31st of December," says Du Mege,[538] the "Fées
(_Hadas_) enter the dwellings of their worshipers. They bear good-luck
in their right, ill-luck in their left-hand. Care has been taken to
prepare for them in a clean retired room, such a repast as is suited
to them. The doors and windows are left open; a white cloth is laid on
a table with a loaf, a knife, a vessel full of water or wine, and a
cup. A lighted candle or wax taper is set in the centre of the table.
It is the general belief that those who present them with the best
food may expect all kinds of prosperity for their property and their
family; while those who acquit themselves grudgingly of their duty
toward the Fées, or who neglect to make preparations worthy of these
divinities, may expect the greatest misfortunes."

From the following passage of the Roman de Guillaume au Court-Nez it
would appear that three was the number of the Hadas.

      Coustume avoient les gens, par véritez,
      Et _en Provence_ et en autres regnez.
      Tables métoient et siéges ordenez,
      Et sur la table iij blans pains bulétez,
      Iij poz de vins et iij hénez de lès
      Et par eneoste iert li enfès posez.[539]

Some years ago a lady, named Marie Aycard, published a volume named
"Ballades et Chants populaires de la Provence," two of which seem to be
founded on popular legends. She names the one La Fée aux Cheveux Verts,
and in it relates the story of a young mariner of Marseilles who was in
the habit of rowing out to sea by himself in the evening. On one of
these occasions he felt himself drawn down by an invisible power, and on
reaching the bottom found himself at the gate of a splendid palace,
where he was received by a most beautiful fairy, only her hair was
green. She at once told him her love, to which he responded as she
wished, and after detaining him some time she dismissed him, giving him
two fishes, that he might account for his absence by saying that he had
been fishing. The same invisible power brought him back to his boat, and
he reached home at sunrise. The size and form of his fishes, such as had
never been seen, excited general wonder; but he feared the fairy too
much to reveal his secret. An invincible attraction still drew him to
the submarine palace, but at last he saw a maiden whose charms, in his
eyes, eclipsed those of the fairy. He now fled the sea-shore, but every
time he approached his mistress he received an invisible blow, and he
continually was haunted by threatening voices. At length he felt an
irresistible desire to go out again to sea. When there he was drawn down
as before to the palace, but the fairy now was changed, and saying, "You
have betrayed me--you shall die," she caused him to be devoured by the
sea-monsters. But other accounts say that she kept him with her till age
had furrowed his brow with wrinkles, and then sent him back to poverty
on earth.

The other legend named Le Lutin tells how seven little boys,
regardless of the warnings of their old grandmother, would go out at
night on various affairs. As they went along a pretty little black
horse came up to them, and they all were induced to mount on his back.
When they met any of their playmates they invited them also to mount,
and the back of the little horse, stretched so that at last he had on
him not less than thirty little boys. He then made with all speed for
the sea, and plunging into it with them they were all drowned.[540]

Passing to Auvergne we find Gregory of Tours in the sixth century thus
relating an event which happened in his youth. A man was going one
morning to the forest, and he took the precaution to have his
breakfast, which he was taking with him, blessed before he set out.
Coming to the river, before it was yet day, he drove his bullock-cart
into the ferry-boat (_in ponte qui super navem est_), and when he was
about half-way over he heard a voice saying, "Down with him! down with
him! be quick!" (_Merge, merge, ne moreris!_) to which another
replied, "I should have done it without your telling me if something
holy did not prevent me; for I would have you to know that he is
fortified with the priest's blessing, so that I cannot hurt him."[541]

Miss Costello[542] heard in Auvergne a story of a changeling, which the
mother, by the direction of the Curé, took to the market-place, where
she whipped it well, till its mother, La Fée du Grand Cascade, brought
her back her own child. She also relates at great length a legend which
she styles La Blonde de la Roche, in which a young lady, instructed by
her nurse, learns to change her form, and thus become a companion of the
Fées, who are beings of tiny dimensions. Afterwards, when she is
married, they take away her children, but she manages to recover them.

"La Tioul de las Fadas is within five and a half leagues of St. Flour,
at Pirols, a village of Haute Auvergne. It is composed of six large
rude stones, covered by a seventh, larger and more massive than the
rest; it is twelve feet long, and eight and a half wide. The tradition
relates that a Fée who was fond of keeping her sheep on the spot
occupied by this monument, resolved to shelter herself from the wind
and rain. For this purpose she went far, very far, (_bien loin, bien
loin_) in search of such masses of granite, as six yoke of oxen could
not move, and she gave them the form of a little house. She carried,
it is said, the largest and heaviest of them on the top of her
spindle, and so little was she incommoded by the weight of it, that
she continued to spin all the way."[543]

The following legend is traditional in Périgord:--

Embosomed in the forest of the canton of La Double, near the road
leading from Périgueux to Ribérac, is a monument named Roque Brun. It
consists of four enormous rocks placed two and two, so as to form an
alley ten feet long and six wide. A fifth rock, higher and thicker
than the others, closes this space on the west. The whole is covered
by a huge mass of rock, at least twelve feet by seven, and from three
to four feet thick. There can be no doubt of its being the work of
man, and it is remarkable that the stone composing it is different
from that of the soil on which it stands.[544] The tradition of the
canton, however, is, that many thousand years ago there was a Fée who
was the sovereign of the whole country, and having lost her husband in
a battle fought in this very place she resolved to bury him on the
spot. She therefore called six of her pages, and ordered them to
fetch, each one of these stones, and to place them in the order which
they still maintain. They instantly obeyed, and they carried and
arranged the huge masses as easily as if they had been only
rose-leaves. When the tomb was completed, the Fairy ascended it, and
turning to the east, she thrice cursed, in a voice of thunder, whoever
should henceforth dare even to touch this monument of her royal
spouse. Many an instance is still recorded by the peasantry of those
who dared and were punished.[545]

       *       *       *       *       *

The Fairy-lore of the North of France, at least of Normandy, is, as
was to be expected, similar to that of the other portions of the
Gotho-German race. We meet it in the _fées_ or fairies, and the
_lutins_ or _gobelins_, which answer to the Kobolds, Nisses, and such
like of those nations.[546]

The Fées are small and handsome in person; they are fond of dancing
in the night-time, and in their dances which are circular they form
the _Cercles des Fées_, or fairy-rings. If any one approaches their
dance, he is irresistibly impelled to take part in it. He is admitted
with the greatest courtesy; but as the whirling movement increases,
and goes faster and faster, his head becomes giddy, and he falls to
the ground utterly exhausted. Sometimes the _fées_ amuse themselves by
flinging him up to a great height in the air, and, if not killed by
the fall, he is found next morning full of bruises. These little
beings, it is also said, haunt solitary springs, where they wash their
linen, which they then dry by way of preference on the Druidic stones,
if at hand, and lay up in the hollows of rocks or barrows, thence
named _Chambres_ or _Grottes des Fées_. But, further, it is said of
them, like the _Lutins_, they select particular farms to which they
resort at night, and there making use of horses, harness and utensils
of all kinds, they employ themselves at various kinds of work, of
which, however, no traces remain in the morning. They are fond of
mounting and galloping the horses; their seat is on the neck, and they
tie together locks of the mane to form stirrups. Their presence,
however, always brings luck, the cattle thrive where they are, the
utensils of which they have made use, if broken are mended and made as
good as new. They are altogether most kind and obliging, and have been
known to give cakes to those to whom they have taken a fancy.

The Fées of Normandy are, like others, guilty of child-changing. A
countrywoman as she was one day carrying her child on her arm met a Fée
similarly engaged, who proposed an exchange. But she would not consent,
even though, she said, the Fée's babe were _nine times finer than her
own_. A few days after, having left her child in the house when she went
to work in the fields, it appeared to her on her return that it had been
changed. She immediately consulted a neighbour, who to put the matter to
the proof, broke a dozen eggs and ranged the shells before the child,
who instantly began to cry out, _Oh! what a number of cream-pots! Oh!
what a number of cream-pots!_ The matter was now beyond doubt, and the
neighbour next advised to make it cry lustily in order to bring its real
mother to it. This also succeeded; the Fée came imploring them to spare
her child, and the real one should be restored.

There is another kind of Fées known in Normandy by the name of _Dames
Blanches_, or White Ladies, who are of a less benevolent character.
These lurk in narrow places, such as ravines, fords and bridges, where
passengers cannot well avoid them, and there seek to attract their
attention. The Dame Blanche sometimes requires him whom she thus meets
to join her in a dance, or to hand her over a plank. If he does so she
makes him many courtesies, and then vanishes. One of these ladies
named La Dame d'Aprigny, used to appear in a winding narrow ravine
which occupied the place of the present Rue Saint Quentin at Bayeux,
where, by her involved dances, she prevented any one from passing. She
meantime held out her hand, inviting him to join her, and if he did so
she dismissed him after a round or two; but if he drew back, she
seized him and flung him into one of the ditches which were full of
briars and thorns. Another Dame Blanche took her station on a narrow
wooden bridge over the Dive, in the district of Falaise, named the
Pont d'Angot. She sat on it and would not allow any one to pass unless
he went on his knees to her; if he refused, the Fée gave him over to
the _lutins_, the cats, owls, and other beings which, under her sway,
haunt the place, by whom he was cruelly tormented.

Near the village of Puys, half a league to the north-east of Dieppe,
there is a high plateau, surrounded on all sides by large
entrenchments, except that over the sea, where the cliffs render it
inaccessible. It is named _La Cité de Limes_ or _La Camp de César_ or
simply _Le Catel_ or _Castel_. Tradition tells that the Fées used to
hold a fair there, at which all sorts of magic articles from their
secret stores were offered for sale, and the most courteous entreaties
and blandishments were employed to induce those who frequented it to
become purchasers. But the moment any one did so, and stretched forth
his hand to take the article he had selected, the perfidious Fées
seized him and hurled him down the cliffs.

Such are the accounts of the Fées still current in Normandy. To these
we may add that of Dame Abonde or Habonde, current in the middle ages.
William of Auvergne, bishop of Paris, who died in the year 1248, thus
writes:--

"Sunt et aliæ ludificationes malignorum spiritorum quas faciunt
interdum in nemoribus et locis amœnis, et frondosis arboribus, ubi
apparent in similitudine _puellarum_ aut _matronarum_ ornatu muliebri
et _candido_; interdum etiam _in stabulis, cum luminaribus cereis, ex
quibus apparent distillationes in comis et collis equorum et comæ
ipsorum diligenter tricatœ_; et audies eos, qui talia se vidisse
fatentur, dicentes veram ceram esse quæ de luminaribus hujusmodi
stillaverat. De illis vero substantiis quæ apparent in domibus quas
_dominas nocturnas_ et _principem_ earum vocant _Dominam Abundiam_ pro
eo quod domibus, quas frequentant, abundantiam bonorum temporalium
præstare putantur non aliter tibi sentiendum est neque aliter quam
quemadmodum de illis audivisti. Quapropter eo usque invaluit stultitia
hominum et insania vetularum ut vasa vini et receptacula ciborum
discooperta relinquant, et omnino nec obstruent neque claudant eis
noctibus quibus ad domos suos eas credunt adventuras; ea de causa
videlicet ut cibos et potus quasi paratos inveniant, et eos absque
difficultate apparitionis pro beneplacito sumant."[547]

Dame Abonde is also mentioned in the same century in the celebrated
Roman de la Rose as follows:--

      Qui les cine sens ainsine deçoit
      Par les fantosmes qu'il reçoit,
      Dont maintes gens par lor folie
      Cuident estre par nuit estries (_allés_)
      _Errans_ avecques _Dame Habonde_.
      Et dient que par tout le monde
      Si tiers enfant de nacion (_naissance_)
      Sunt de ceste condicion,
      Qu'ils vont trois fois en la semaine,
      Li cum destinée les maine (_mène_),
      Et par tous ces ostex (_hôtels_) se boutent,
      Ne eles ne barres ne redoutent.
      Ains sen entrent par les fendaces (_fentes_)
      Par chatieres et par crevaces.
      Et se partent des cors les ames
      Et vont avec les _bonnes dames_
      Par leur foraius et par maisons.
      Et le preuvent par tiex (_ces_) raisons:
      Que les diversités veues
      Ne sont pas eu lor liz (_lits_) venues,
      Ains (_anzi_ It.) sunt lor ames que laborent
      Et par le monde ainsinc sen corent.[548]

In these places we find that Abundia is a queen or ruler over a band
of what we may call fairies, who enter houses at night, feast there,
twist the horses' manes, etc. This may remind us at once of
Shakespeare's Queen Mab, whom, though only acquainted with Habundia
through a passage in Heywood,[549] we conjectured to have derived her
name from that of this French dame.[550] Chaucer, by the way, always
spells _habundance_ with an _h_, which may have become _m_ as it does
_n_ in Numps from Humphrey; so Edward makes Ned, Oliver Noll, etc.

       *       *       *       *       *

The Lutin or Gobelin[551] of Normandy hardly differs in any respect
from the domestic spirit of Scandinavia and Germany. He is fond of
children and horses; and if the proverb

      Ou il y a belle fille et bon vin
      Là aussi hante le lutin

lie not, of young maidens also. He caresses the children, and gives
them nice things to eat, but he also whips and pinches them if
naughty.[552] He takes great care of the horses, gallops them at
times, and _lutines_ their manes, _i.e._, _elfs_ or plaits and twists
them in an inexplicable manner. So fond, indeed, is he of this
amusement, that it is related that when one time two young girls fell
asleep in a stable, he _lutined_ their hair in such a way that they
had to cut it all off. Sometimes the Lutin takes the form of a young
villager, and struts about with great complacency. On such occasions
it is necessary to call him Bon Garçon, a thing the Norman peasant
never neglects to do. At other times he appears under the form of a
horse ready bridled and saddled. If any peasant, weary after his day's
work, is induced to mount him in order to ride home, he begins to kick
and fling and rear and bound, and ends by jerking him into a marsh or
a ditch full of water. When he takes this form he is called Le Cheval
Bayard, probably after the famous steed of the Paladin Rinaldo.

The following tradition of "_Le Lutin, ou le Fé amoureux_," is related
in the neighbourhood of Argentan:--

A Fé was fond of a pretty young _paysanne_, and used to come every
evening when she was spinning at her fireside, and take his seat on a
stool opposite to her, and keep gazing on her fair face. The
ungrateful object of this respectful attention, however, told her
husband the whole story, and in his jealous mood he resolved to have
his revenge of the amorous Lutin. Accordingly, he heated the girdel
(_galetière_) red-hot, and placed it on the seat which he used to
occupy, and then dressing himself in his wife's clothes, he sat in her
place, and began to spin as well as he could. The Fé came as usual,
and instantly perceived the change. "Where," said he, "is La-belle
belle of yesterday evening, who draws, draws, and keeps always
twirling, while you, you turn, turn, and never twirl?" He, however,
went and took his usual seat, but immediately jumped up, screaming
with pain. His companions, who were at hand, inquired the cause. "I am
burnt," cried he. "Who burned you?" cried they. "Myself," replied he;
for this the woman had told him was her husband's name. At this they
mocked at him and went away.[553]

The best way, it is said, to banish a Lutin who haunts a house, is to
scatter flax-seed in the room that he most frequents. His love of
neatness and regularity will not allow him to let it lie there, and he
soon gets tired of picking it up, and so he goes away.

A Lutin, named the Nain Rouge, haunts the coast of Normandy. He is
kind in his way to the fishermen, and often gives them valuable aid;
but he punishes those who do not treat him with proper respect. Two
fishermen who lived near Dieppe, were going one day to Pollet. On
their way they found a little boy sitting on the road-side; they asked
him what he was doing there. "I am resting myself," said he, "for I am
going to Berneville" (a village within a league of Pollet.) They
invited him to join company; he agreed, and amused them greatly with
his tricks as they went along. At last, when they came to a pond near
Berneville, the malicious urchin caught up one of them, and flung him,
like a shuttlecock, up into the air over it; but, to his great
disappointment, he saw him land safe and sound at the other side.
"Thank your patron-Saint," cried he, with his cracked voice, "for
putting it into your mind to take some holy water when you were
getting up this morning. But for that you'd have got a nice dip."[554]

A parcel of children were playing on the strand at Pollet, when Le
Petit Homme Rouge came by. They began to make game of him, and he
instantly commenced pelting them with stones at such a rate that they
found it necessary to seek refuge in a fishing-boat, where, for the
space of an hour, as they crouched under the hatches, they heard the
shower of stones falling so that they were sure the boat must be
buried under them. At length the noise ceased, and when they ventured
to peep out, not a stone was to be seen.

There is also in Normandy a kind of spirits called Lubins, which take
the form of wolves, and enter the churchyards under the guidance of a
chief, who is quite black. They are very timorous, and at the least
noise they fly, crying "_Robert est mort! Robert est mort!_" People
say of a timorous man, "_Il a peur de Lubins!_"[555]

A belief in Fées, similar to those which we have denominated Fairies of
Romance, seems to have prevailed all over France during the middle ages.

The great Bertrand Duguesclin married a lady named Tiphaine, "extraite
de noble lignée," says his old biographer; "laquelle avoit environ
vingt-quatre ans, ne onques n'avoit été mariée et éstoit bonne et
sage, et moult experte aux arts d'astronomie; aucuns disoient qu'elle
éstoit _faée_ mais non éstoit, mais éstoit ainsi inspirée et de la
Grace de Dieu."

One of the chief articles of accusation against the heroic and
unfortunate Maid of Orleans, was "Que souvent alloit à une belle
fontaine au pais de Lorraine, laquelle elle nommoit _bonne fontaine
aux Fées_ nostre Seigneur, et en icelui lieu tous ceulx de pays quand
ils avoient fiebvre ils alloient pour recouvrer garison, et la alloit
souvent la dite Jehanne la Pucelle, sous un grand arbre qui la
fontaine ombroit, et s'apparurent à elle St. Katerine et St.
Marguerite."[556] She was also asked "Si elle sçait rien de _ceux qui
vont avecq les Fées_?"[557]

Of these Fées the most celebrated is Melusina, who was married to the
Count of Lusignan. Toward the end of the fourteenth century, Jean
d'Arras collected the traditions relating to her, and composed what he
called her "Chronicle." Stephen, a Dominican of the house of Lusignan,
took up the history written by Jean D'Arras, gave it consistency, and
cast such splendour about his heroine, that several noble houses were
ambitious of showing a descent from her. Those of Luxembourg and Rohan
even falsified their genealogies for that purpose; and the house of
Sassenage, though it might claim its descent from a monarch, preferred
Melusina, and to gratify them it was feigned that when she quitted
Lusignan she retired to the grot of Sassenage, in Dauphiny.

The following is a slight sketch of the story of the fair Melusina.[558]

      Ange par la figure, et serpent par le rest
                                        DE LILLE.



                        _Legend of Melusina._

Elinas, king of Albania, to divert his grief for the death of his
wife, amused himself with hunting. One day, at the chase, he went to a
fountain to quench his thirst: as he approached it he heard the voice
of a woman singing, and on coming to it he found there the beautiful
Fay Pressina.

After some time the Fay bestowed her hand upon him, on the condition
that he should never visit her at the time of her lying-in. She had
three daughters at a birth: Melusina, Melior, and Palatina. Nathas,
the king's son by a former wife, hastened to convey the joyful tidings
to his father, who, without reflection, flew to the chamber of the
queen, and entered as she was bathing her daughters. Pressina, on
seeing him, cried out that he had broken his word, and she must
depart; and taking up her three daughters, she disappeared.

She retired to the Lost Island;[559] so called because it was only by
chance any, even those who had repeatedly visited it, could find it.
Here she reared her children, taking them every morning to a high
mountain, whence Albania might be seen, and telling them that but for
their father's breach of promise they might have lived happily in the
distant land which they beheld. When they were fifteen years of age,
Melusina asked her mother particularly of what their father had been
guilty. On being informed of it, she conceived the design of being
revenged on him. Engaging her sisters to join in her plans, they set
out for Albania: arrived there, they took the king and all his wealth,
and, by a charm, inclosed him in a high mountain, called Brandelois.
On telling their mother what they had done, she, to punish them for
the unnatural action, condemned Melusina to become every Saturday a
serpent, from the waist downwards, till she should meet a man who
would marry her under the condition of never seeing her on a Saturday,
and should keep his promise. She inflicted other judgements on her two
sisters, less severe in proportion to their guilt. Melusina now went
roaming through the world in search of the man who was to deliver her.
She passed through the Black Forest, and that of Ardennes, and at last
she arrived in the forest of Colombiers, in Poitou, where all the Fays
of the neighbourhood came before her, telling her they had been
waiting for her to reign in that place.

Raymond having accidentally killed the count, his uncle, by the
glancing aside of his boar-spear, was wandering by night in the forest
of Colombiers. He arrived at a fountain that rose at the foot of a
high rock. This fountain was called by the people the Fountain of
Thirst, or the Fountain of the Fays,[560] on account of the many
marvellous things which had happened at it. At the time, when Raymond
arrived at the fountain, three ladies were diverting themselves there
by the light of the moon, the principal of whom was Melusina. Her
beauty and her amiable manners quickly won his love: she soothed him,
concealed the deed he had done, and married him, he promising on his
oath never to desire to see her on a Saturday. She assured him that a
breach of his oath would for ever deprive him of her whom he so much
loved, and be followed by the unhappiness of both for life. Out of her
great wealth, she built for him, in the neighbourhood of the Fountain
of Thirst, where he first saw her, the castle of Lusignan. She also
built La Rochelle, Cloitre Malliers, Mersent, and other places.

But destiny, that would have Melusina single, was incensed against her.
The marriage was made unhappy by the deformity of the children born of
one that was enchanted; but still Raymond's love for the beauty that
ravished both heart and eyes remained unshaken. Destiny now renewed her
attacks. Raymond's cousin had excited him to jealousy and to secret
concealment, by malicious suggestions of the purport of the Saturday
retirement of the countess. He hid himself; and then saw how the lovely
form of Melusina ended below in a snake, gray and sky-blue, mixed with
white. But it was not horror that seized him at the sight, it was
infinite anguish at the reflection that through his breach of faith he
might lose his lovely wife for ever. Yet this misfortune had not
speedily come on him, were it not that his son, Geoffroi with the
tooth,[561] had burned his brother Freimund, who would stay in the abbey
of Malliers, with the abbot and a hundred monks. At which the afflicted
father, count Raymond, when his wife Melusina was entering his closet to
comfort him, broke out into these words against her, before all the
courtiers who attended her:--"Out of my sight, thou pernicious snake and
odious serpent! thou contaminator of my race!"

Melusina's former anxiety was now verified, and the evil that had lain
so long in ambush had now fearfully sprung on him and her. At these
reproaches she fainted away; and when at length she revived, full of the
profoundest grief, she declared to him that she must now depart from
him, and, in obedience to a decree of destiny, fleet about the earth in
pain and suffering, as a spectre, until the day of doom; and that only
when one of her race was to die at Lusignan would she become visible.

Her words at parting were these:

"But one thing will I say unto thee before I part, that thou, and
those who for more than a hundred years shall succeed thee, shall know
that whenever I am seen to hover over the fair castle of Lusignan,
then will it be certain that in that very year the castle will get a
new lord; and though people may not perceive me in the air, yet they
will see me by the Fountain of Thirst; and thus shall it be so long as
the castle stands in honour and flourishing--especially on the Friday
before the lord of the castle shall die." Immediately, with wailing
and loud lamentation, she left the castle of Lusignan,[562] and has
ever since existed as a spectre of the night. Raymond died as a hermit
on Monserrat.

The president de Boissieu says,[563] that she chose for her retreat
one of the mountains of Sassenage, near Grenoble, on account of
certain vats that are there, and to which she communicated a virtue
which makes them, at this day, one of the seven wonders of Dauphiné.
They are two in number, of great beauty, and so admirably cut in the
rock, that it is easy to see they are not the work of unaided nature.
The virtue which Melusina communicated to them was, that of
announcing, by the water they contain, the abundance or scantiness of
the crops. When there is to be an abundant harvest, it rises over the
edges, and overflows; in middling years, the vats are but half full;
and when the crops are to fail, they are quite dry. One of these vats
is consecrated to corn, the other to wine.

The popular belief was strong in France that she used to appear on
what was called the tower of Melusina as often as any of the lords of
the race of Lusignan was to die; and that when the family was extinct,
and the castle had fallen to the crown, she was seen whenever a king
of France was to depart this life. Mézeray informs us that he was
assured of the truth of the appearance of Melusina on this tower
previous to the death of a Lusignan, or a king of France, by people of
reputation, and who were not by any means credulous. She appeared in a
mourning dress, and continued for a long time to utter the most
heart-piercing lamentation.

The following passage occurs in Brantôme's Eloge of the Duke of
Montpensier, who in 1574 destroyed Lusignan, and several other
retreats of the Huguenots:

"I heard, more than forty years ago, an old veteran say, that when the
Emperor Charles V. came to France, they brought him by Lusignan for
the sake of the recreation of hunting the deer, which were there in
great abundance in fine old parks of France; that he was never tired
admiring and praising the beauty, the size, and the chef d'œuvre of
that house, built, which is more, by such a lady, of whom he made them
tell him several fabulous tales, which are there quite common, even to
the good old women who washed their linen at the fountain, whom Queen
Catherine of Medicis, mother to the king, would also question and
listen to. Some told her that they used sometimes to see her come to
the fountain to bathe in it, in the form of a most beautiful woman,
and in the dress of a widow. Others said that they used to see her,
but very rarely, and that on Saturday evening, (for in that state she
did not let herself be seen,) bathing, half her body being that of a
very beautiful lady, the other half ending in a snake: others, that
she used to appear a-top of the great tower in a very beautiful form,
and as a snake. Some said, that when any great disaster was to come on
the kingdom, or a change of reign, or a death, or misfortune among her
relatives, who were the greatest people of France, and were kings,
that three days before she was heard to cry, with a cry most shrill
and terrible, three times.

"This is held to be perfectly true. Several persons of that place, who
have heard it, are positive of it, and hand it from father to son; and
say that, even when the siege came on, many soldiers and men of honour
who were there affirmed it. But it was when the order was given to
throw down and destroy her castles that she uttered her loudest cries
and wails. This is perfectly true, according to the saying of people
of honour. Since then she has not been heard. Some old wives, however,
say she has appeared to them, but very rarely."

Jean d'Arras declares that Serville, who defended the castle of Lusignan
for the English against the Duke of Berri, swore to that prince, upon
his faith and honour, "that, three days before the surrender of the
fortress, there entered into his chamber, though the doors were shut, a
large serpent, enamelled with white and blue, which came and struck its
tail several times against the feet of the bed where he was lying with
his wife, who was not at all frightened at it, though he was very much
so; and that when he seized his sword, the serpent changed all at once
into a woman, and said to him, _How, Serville, you who have been at so
many sieges and battles, are you afraid! Know that I am the mistress of
this castle, which I have built, and that you must surrender it very
soon._ When she had ended these words she resumed her serpent-shape, and
glided away so swiftly that he could not perceive her." The author adds,
that the prince told him that other credible people had sworn to him
that they too had seen her at the same time in other places in the
neighbourhood, and in the same form.

       *       *       *       *       *

The old castle of Pirou, on the coast of the Cotentin, in Lower
Normandy, likewise owes its origin to the Fées.[564] These were the
daughters of a great lord of the country, who was a celebrated
magician. They built the castle long before the time of the invasions
of the Northmen, and dwelt there in peace and unity. But when these
pirates began to make their descents on the coast, the Fées, fearing
their violence, changed themselves into wild geese, and thus set them
at defiance. They did not, however, altogether abandon their castle;
for the elders of the place assert that every year, on the first of
March, a flock of wild geese returns to take possession of the nests
they had hollowed out for themselves in its walls. It was also said
that when a male child was born to the illustrious house of Pirou, the
males of these geese, displaying their finest grey plumage, strutted
about on the pavement in the courts of the castle; while, if it was a
girl, the females, in plumage whiter than snow, took precedence then
over the males. If the new-born maiden was to be a nun, it was
remarked that one of them did not join with the rest, but kept alone
in a corner, eating little, and deeply sighing.

The following traditions are attached to the castles of Argouges and
Rânes, in Normandy:--[565]

One of the lords of Argouges, when out hunting one day, met a bevy of
twenty ladies of rare beauty, all mounted on palfreys white as the
driven snow. One of them appeared to be their queen, and the lord of
Argouges became all at once so deeply enamoured of her, that he
offered on the spot to marry her. This lady was _fée_; she had for a
long time past secretly protected the Sire d'Argouges, and even caused
him to come off victorious in a combat with a terrible giant. As she
loved the object of her care, she willingly accepted his troth, but
under the express condition that he should never pronounce in her
presence the name of Death. So light a condition caused no
difficulty; the marriage took place under the happiest auspices, and
lovely children crowned their union. The fatal word was never heard,
and their happiness seemed without alloy. It came to pass, however,
one day at length, that the wedded pair were preparing to give their
presence at a tournament. The lady was long at her toilet, and her
husband waited for her with impatience. At length she made her
appearance. "Fair dame," said he, when he saw her, "you would be a
good person to send to fetch Death; for you take long enough to
perform what you are about."[566] Hardly had he pronounced the fatal
word when, uttering a piercing cry, as if actually struck by death,
the Fée lady disappeared, leaving the mark of her hand on the gate.
She comes every night clad in a white robe, and wanders round and
round the castle, uttering deep and continuous groans, amid which may
be heard, in funereal notes, _Death! Death!_[567]

The same legend, as we have said, adheres to the castle of Rânes,
where, however, it was on the top of a tower that the Fée vanished,
leaving, like Melusina, the mark of her foot on the battlements, where
it is still to be seen.

In explication of the former legend, M. Pluque observes, that at the
siege of Bayeux by Henry I., in 1106, Robert d'Argouges vanquished in
single combat a German of huge stature; and that the crest of the
house of Argouges is Faith, under the form of a woman naked to the
waist, seated in a bark, with the motto, or war-cry, _A la Fé!_ (i. e.
_à la foi!_) which the people pronounce _A la Fée!_

       *       *       *       *       *

So far the genuine French Fées. On the revival of learning they appear
to have fallen into neglect, till the memory of them was awakened by
the appearance of the translation of the Italian tales of Straparola,
many of which seem to have become current among the people; and in the
end of the seventeenth century, the Contes des Fées of Perrault,
Madame d'Aulnoy, and their imitators and successors, gave them vogue
throughout Europe. These tales are too well known to our readers to
require us to make any observations on them.

FOOTNOTES:

[530] _Otia Imperialia_, p. 987: see above p. 302 _et alib_.

[531] Like the Irish _Play the Puck_, above, p. 371.

[532] _Otia Imper._ p. 981: see above, p. 394. It does not appear that
the abode of these porpoise-knights was beneath the water.

[533] _Otia Imper._ p. 897. See above p. 407. Orthone, the
House-spirit, who, according to Froissart, attended the Lord of
Corasse, in Gascony, resembled Hinzelmann in many points.

[534] Ibid.

[535] _Hujusmodi larvarum._ He classes the Fadas with Sylvans and Pans.

[536] P. 989. Speaking of the wonderful horse of Giraldus de
Cabreriis; Gervase says, _Si Fadus erat, i. e._ says Leibnitz,
incantatus, ut _Fadæ, Fatæ, Fées_.

[537] Cambry, Monumens Celtiques, p. 342. The author says, that
Esterelle, as well as all the Fairies, was the moon. This we very much
doubt. He derives her name from the Breton _Escler_, Brightness,
Lauza, from _Lac'h_ (Irish _Cloch_), a flat stone.

[538] Monuments religieux des Volces Tectosages, _ap._ Mlle. Bosquet,
Normandie, etc., p. 92: see above, pp. 161, 342.

[539] See Leroux de Lincy, _ap._ Mlle. Bosquet, p. 93, who adds "In
Lower Normandy, in the arrondissement of Bayeux, they never neglect
laying a table for the protecting genius of the babe about to be born;"
see our note on Virg. Buc. iv. 63. In a collection of decrees of
Councils made by Burchard of Worms, who died in 1024, we read as
follows: "Fecisti, ut quaedam mulieres in quibusdam temporibus anni
facere solent, ut in domo tua _mensam praepares_ et tuos cibos et potum
cum _tribus cultellis_ supra mensam poneres, ut si venissent _tres illae
sorores_ quas antiqua posteritas et antiqua stultitia Parcas nominavit,
ibi reficirentur ... ut credens illas quas tu dieis esse sorores tibi
posse aut hic aut in futuro prodesse?" GRIMM. _Deut. Mythol. Anhang_, p.
xxxviii., where we are also told that these Parcæ could give a man at
his birth the power of becoming a Werwolf. All this, however, does not
prove that they were the origin of the _Fées_: see above, p. 6.

[540] This may remind us of the Neck or Kelpie above, p. 162. It seems
confirmatory of our theory respecting the Visigoths, p. 466.

[541] Greg. Tur. De Glor. Confess. ch. xxxi., _ap._ Grimm. p. 466.

[542] Pilgrimage to Auvergne, ii. p. 294, _seq._

[543] Cambry, Monuments Celtiques, p. 232.

[544] It is evidently a _cromleach_. What is said of the nature of the
stones is also true of Stonehenge.

[545] Lettres de Madame S. à sa Fille. Périgueux, 1830: by M. Jouannet
of Bordeaux.

[546] See Mlle. Bosquet, La Normandie Romanesque et Merveilleuse, and
the works there quoted by this learned and ingenious lady. What
follows is so extremely like what we have seen above of the Korrigan
of the adjacent Brittany, that we hope she has been careful not to
transfer any of their traits to her Fées.

[547] Opera i. 1036; Paris, 1674, _ap._ Grimm, Deut. Mythol. p. 263.

[548] _Ap._ Grimm, _ut sup._ Douce (Ill. of Shak. i. 382) was, we
believe, the first who directed attention to Abundia. He quotes from
an old _fabliau_:

      Ceste richesse nus abonde,
      Nos l'avons de par Dame Abonde.


[549]

      One kind of these the Italians Fatæ name;
      Fée the French; we Sybils; and the same
      Other White Nymphs; and those that have them seen,
      Night Ladies some, of which Habundia queen.
                                    _Hierarchie_, viii. p. 507.


[550] Mr. Thoms prefers a derivation from the Cymric, _Mab_, boy, child.

[551] There is no satisfactory derivation of _Lutin_, for we cannot
regard as such Grimm's _à luctu_. _Gobelin_, _Goblin_, or _Goubelin_,
is evidently the same as _Kobold_. _Follet_ (from _fol_, _fou_) and
_Farfadet_, are other names. Both _Gobelin_ and _Lutin_ were in use in
the 11th century. Orderic Vitalis, speaking of the demon whom St.
Taurin drove out of the temple of Diana, says, _Hunc vulgus Gobelinum
appellat_, and Wace (Roman de Rou, _v_ 9715) says of the familiar of
bishop Mauger who excommunicated the Conqueror

      _Ne sei s'esteit lutin ou non._


[552] Mothers also threaten their children with him. _Le gobelin vous
mangera, le gobelin vous emportera._ PÈRE L'ABBÉ, _Etymologie_, i. p.
262.

[553] In another French tale a man to deceive a Fée, put on his wife's
clothes and was minding the child, but she said as she came in, "Non,
tu ne point la belle d'hier au soir, tu ne files, ni ne vogues, ni ton
fuseau ne t'enveloppes," and to punish him she turned some apples that
were roasting on the hearth into peas. SCHREIBER _ap._ GRIMM, p. 385.

[554] See above, p. 471.

[555] Lubin may be only another form of Lutin, and connected with the
English Lob. Its likeness to _loup_ may have given occasion to the
fiction of their taking the lupine form.

[556] Chartier.

[557] See above, p. 475.

[558] Histoire de Mélusine, tirée des Chroniques de Poitou. Paris,
1698. Dobenek, des Deutschen Mittelalter und Volksglauben.

[559] _i. e._ Cephalonia, see above, p. 41.

[560] It is at this day (1698) corruptly called La Font de Sée; and
every year in the month of May a fair is held in the neighbouring
mead, where the pastry-cooks sell figures of women, _bien coiffées_,
called Merlusines.--_French Author's Note_.

[561] A boar's tusk projected from his mouth. According to Brantôme, a
figure of him, cut in stone, stood at the portal of the Mélusine
tower, which was destroyed in 1574.

[562] At her departure she left the mark of her foot on the stone of
one of the windows, where it remained till the castle was destroyed.

[563] In his poem of Melusina, dedicated to Christina of Sweden.

[564] Mlle Bosquet, _ut sup._ p. 100.

[565] Mlle. Bosquet, _ut sup._ p. 98. The castle of Argouges is near
Bayeux, that of Rânes is in the arrondissement of Argentan.

[566] This proverbial expression is to be met with in various
languages: see Grimm, Deut. Mythol. p. 802.

[567] See above, p. 458.




                           EASTERN EUROPE.

      Up the hill I went, and gazed round.
       Hoping golden maids to see;
      Trooping lovely maidens came, who
       Round the hill danced merrily.

      All the sweetest ditties singing,
       Sweetest ditties that might be;
      Bearing fragrant apple-blossoms,
       These fair maidens came to me.
                              LETTISH SONG.


Europe is inhabited on the east and north-east, from the Frozen Ocean to
the Adriatic, by two extensive races named the Finns and the Slaves. The
former dwell round the northern edge of Scandinavia by the Icy Ocean,
and on the east and south-east of the Baltic. The Majjars, or the
dominant portion of the people of Hungary, are also of Finnish origin.
The Slaves who are akin to the Gotho-German race are also widely spread.
This stem numbers among its branches the Russians, Poles, Bohemians,
Servians, and the nations dwelling north-east of the Adriatic. Our
knowledge of the popular mythology of both races is very limited.




                                FINNS.

      Bee! thou little mundane bird!
      Fly away to where I bid thee;
      O'er the moon, beneath the sun,
      Behind the lofty heaven's stars,
      Close by the Wain's axle--fly
      To the great Creator's court.
                             FINNISH RUNE.


Of the mythology of the Finnish race, the first possibly that appeared
in Europe, and one of the most widely spread in the world, our
knowledge, as we have just stated, is very slight. It appears,
however, either to have influenced that of the Gothic race, or to have
been affected by it.

The Finlanders, Laplanders, and other nations of this race, who are
neighbours of the Scandinavians and Germans, believe, like them, in
Dwarfs and Kobolds. The former they describe as having a magnificent
region under the ground, to which mortals are sometimes admitted and
are there sumptuously entertained, getting plenty of tobacco and
brandy, and other things esteemed by them delicious.

It is an article of faith with the Finns that there dwell under the
altar in every church little misshapen beings which they call
_Kirkonwaki_, _i. e._, Church-folk. When the wives of these little
people have a difficult labour they are relieved if a Christian woman
visits them and lays her hand upon them. Such service is always
rewarded by a gift of gold and silver.[568]

The Kobold of Finland is called Para (from the Swedish Bjära); he
steals the milk from other people's cows, carries and coagulates it in
his stomach, and then disgorges it into the churn of his mistress.
There is a species of mushroom, which if it be fried with tar, salt
and sulphur, and then beaten with a rod, the woman who owns the Kobold
will quickly appear, and entreat to spare him.

The Alp, or nightmare, is called Painajainen, _i. e._, Presser. It
resembles a white maid, and its brightness illumines the whole room.
It causes people to scream out wofully; it also hurts young children,
and makes them squint. The remedy against it is _steel_ or a broom
placed under the pillow. The House-spirit named Tonttu (the Swedish
Tomtegubbe) is also common in Finland.[569] The Esthonians believe
that the Neck has fish's teeth.

An Esthonian legend relates that one time a girl was stopt by a pretty
boy that had on him a handsome peasant's belt and forced to scratch
his head a little. She did so, and while she was so engaged she was,
without her knowledge, fastened to him by his belt, but the rubbing of
her hand set him to sleep. Meanwhile a woman passed by, who came up
and asked the girl what she was doing there. She told her the whole
matter, and as she was speaking she freed herself from the belt. The
boy, however, slept sounder than ever and his mouth was wide open. The
woman who had come nearer cried at once, Ha! that's a _Näkki_ (Neck,)
see his _fish's teeth_! The Neck instantly vanished.[570]

The following Esthonian legend, though the Devil is the subject,
strongly resembles some of those of France and Great Britain:--

A man who had charge of the granary of a farm-house was sitting one
day moulding buttons in lead. The Devil came by, saluted him, and
said, "What are you doing there?" "I am moulding eyes." "Eyes! could
you make me new ones?" "To be sure I could; but I have none by me at
present." "Will you then do it another time?" "That will I." "When
shall I come again?" "Whenever you please." Next day the Devil came to
get his new eyes. "Will you have them large or small?" said the man.
"Very large." The man then put a large quantity of lead down to melt,
and said, "I cannot make them for you, unless you first let me tie you
fast." He then made him lie on his back on a bench and tied him down
with good strong thick ropes. When the Devil was thus fast bound he
asked the man what his name was. "My name is Myself (_Issi_)," replied
he. "That's a good name, I know none better." The lead was now melted;
the Devil opened his eyes as wide as he could, expecting to get the
new ones. "Now, I'm going to pour it out," said the man, and he poured
the melting lead into the eyes of the Devil, who jumped up with the
bench on his back, and ran away. As he passed by some people who were
ploughing, they asked him "Who did that to you?" "Myself did it (_Issi
teggi_)," replied the Devil. The people laughed and said, "If you did
it yourself, keep it yourself." The Devil died of his new eyes, and
since then no one has seen the Devil any more.[571]

The Hungarians or Madyars (Magyars) as they call themselves, are, as we
have seen, a portion of the Finnish race. Two collections of their
popular tales have been published of late years. The editor of one of
them which we have read,[572] assures us that he took them from the lips
of an old Hungarian soldier, who knew no language but his own. We
therefore cannot but regard the tales as genuine, though the mode and
tone in which they are narrated by the editor are not always the best.
They contain no traits of popular mythology,--a circumstance not a
little remarkable, rather resembling the French and Italian Fairy tales.
Several of them, however, are very pleasing. We regret that we have not
seen the other collection, which is apparently of greater value.[573]

FOOTNOTES:

[568] Mnemosyne, Abo 1821, _ap._ Grimm, Deut. Mythol. p. 426.

[569] Rühs, Finland und seine Bewohner.

[570] Grimm, Deut. Mythol. p. 459.

[571] Grimm, Deut. Mythol. p. 979. This is the fourth place where we
have met this story. Could they have all come from the Odyssey, the hero
of which tells the Cyclops, whom he blinds, that his name is Nobody?

[572] Gaal, Märchen der Magyaren. Wien, 1822.

[573] Mailath, Magyarische Sagen Mährchen, etc., 2 vols, 8vo. Stutg.
1837.



                               SLAVES.

      Whatsoe'er at eve had raised the workmen,
      Did the Vila raze ere dawn of morning.
                            BOWRING, _Servian Popular Poetry_.


A demon, in the attire of a mourning widow, used, in the Eastern
Russia, to go through the fields at noon in harvest-time, and break
the legs and arms of the workmen, who failed, when they saw her, to
fall on their faces. There was a remedy, however, against this. Trees,
long venerated, grew in the adjacent wood, the bark of which being
laid on the wound, removed the pain and healed it.[574]

The Vends believe in a similar being; but a Vend knows that when he
converses with her for an hour together about flax and the preparation
of it, if he always contradicts her, or says the paternoster backwards
without stopping, he is secure.[575]

The Russians also believe in a species of water and wood-maids,
called Rusalki. They are of a beautiful form, with long green hair;
they swing and balance themselves on the branches of trees--bathe in
lakes and rivers--play on the surface of the water--and wring their
locks on the green meads at the water's-edge. It is chiefly at
Whitsuntide that they appear, and the people then singing and dancing,
weave garlands for them, which they cast into the stream.[576]

       *       *       *       *       *

The following is the Polish form of a legend which we have already met
with in several places:[577]

There came to a nobleman an unknown man, who called himself Iskrzycki
(_spark_ or _firestone_), and offered to engage in his service. The
contract was drawn up and signed, when the master perceived that
Iskrzycki had horse's hoofs, and he accordingly wanted to break off the
agreement; but the servant stood on his right, and declared that he
would enter on his duties, even against his master's will. From this
time forwards he took up his abode invisibly in the stove, and performed
all the tasks set him. People gradually grew accustomed to him, but at
last the lady prevailed on her lord to remove, and he hired another
estate. His people left the castle, and they had already gone the
greater part of the way, when on a bad part of the road the carriage was
near turning over, and the lady gave a loud cry of terror. Immediately a
voice answered from behind the carriage--"Never fear! Iskrzycki is with
you!" The lord and his lady now saw that there was no way of getting rid
of him, so they went back to the old house, and lived there on good
terms with their servant till the term of the engagement had arrived.

The Servian ballads, that have lately appeared,[578] have made us
acquainted with an interesting species of beings called Vilas. These
are represented as mountain-nymphs, young and beautiful, clad in
white, with long flying hair. Their voice is said to resemble that of
the woodpecker. They shoot, according to popular belief, deadly arrows
at men, and sometimes carry off children, whom their mothers in their
anger have consigned to them or the devil: yet the general character
of the Vilas is to injure none but those who intrude upon their
_kolos_, or roundels.

The Vilas sometimes appear gaily dancing their kolos beneath the
branches of the Vishnia or Vistula cherry; sometimes a Vila is
introduced comforting the sorrows of an enamoured deer; at other times
collecting storms in the heavens;[579] now foretelling to a hero his
impending death;[580] now ruthlessly casting down each night the walls
of a rising fortress, till a young and lovely female is immured within
them.[581] She usually rides a seven-year old hart, with a bridle made
of snakes.

The following are specimens of these Servian ballads:


                               _Vilas_

      Cherry! dearest Cherry!
      Higher lift thy branches,
      Under which the Vilas
      Dance their magic roundels.
      Them before Radisha
      Dew from flowers, lashes,
      Leadeth on two Vilas,
      To the third he sayeth--
      "Be thou mine, O Vila!
      Thou shalt, with my mother,
      In the cool shade seat thee;
      Soft silk deftly spinning
      From the golden distaff."[582]



                           _Deer and Vila._

      A young deer track'd his way through the lone forest
      One lonely day--another came in sadness--
      And the third dawn'd, and brought him sighs and sorrow;
      Then he address'd him to the forest Vila:
      "Young deer," she said, "thou wild one of the forest!
      Now tell me what great sorrow has oppress'd thee;
      Why wanderest thou thus in the forest lonely:
      Lonely one day--another day in sadness--
      And the third day with sighs and anguish groaning?"
        And thus the young deer to the Vila answered:
      "O thou sweet sister! Vila of the forest!
      Me has indeed a heavy grief befallen;
      For I once had a fawn, mine own beloved,
      And one sad day she sought the running water;
      She enter'd it, but came not back to bless me.
      Then, tell me, has she lost her way and wander'd?
      Was she pursued and captured by the huntsman?
      Or has she left me?--has she wholly left me--
      Loving some other deer--and I forgotten?
      Oh, if she has but lost her way, and wanders,
      Teach her to find it--bring her back to love me!
      Oh, if she has been captured by the huntsman,
      Then may a fate as sad as mine await him!
      But if she has forsaken me--if, faithless,
      She loves another deer, and I forgotten--
      Then may the huntsman speedily o'ertake her."[583]

We have already observed how almost all nations compare female beauty
to that of the beings of their legendary creed. With the Servians the
object of comparison is the lovely Vila. "She is fairer than the
mountain-Vila," is the highest praise of woman's beauty. In the ballad
of The Sister of the Kapitan Leka, it is said of the heroine
Rossandra, that in no country, either Turkey, or the land of the
Kauran, or Jowrs, was her fellow to be found. No white Bula
(Mohammedan), no Vlachin (Greek), no slender Latiness (Roman
Catholic), could compare with her,

      And who on the hills hath seen the Vila--
      E'en the Vila, brother, must to her yield.

The swiftness of the Vila also affords a subject of comparison: a
fleet horse is said to be "Vilaish," or "swift as a Vila."

       *       *       *       *       *

The Morlacchi of Dalmatia, as Sir Gardner Wilkinson informs us,[584]
believe also in the Vila. They describe her as a handsome female, who
accompanies the man who is her favourite everywhere he goes, and
causes all his undertakings to prosper. One thus favoured is termed
Vilénik. Another of their objects of belief is the Maçieh, who appears
in the form of a boy, with a cap on his head, and is always laughing.
Any one to whom he appears gets the power of commanding him. If
ordered to bring money, he usually steals it from one of the
neighbours, and if taxed with his dishonesty, he goes to the sea and
comes back dripping and with money.

FOOTNOTES:

[574] Delrio, Lib. ii. Sect. 2. Boxhorn Resp. Moscov. Pars I.

[575] Grimm, Deut. Mythol. p. 447.

[576] Mone, vol. i. p. 144. Grimm, Deut. Mythol. p. 460.

[577] Grimm, _ut sup._ p. 480.

[578] Published by Wuk and translated by Talvi and others into German,
by Bowring into English.

[579] Bowring, p. 175. _Sabejam oblake_, Cloud-gatherer, is an epithet
of the Vila, answering to the Νεφεληγερετης of the Grecian Zeus.

[580] Death of Kralwich Marko. Bowring, p. 97.

[581] The building of Skadra. Ibid. p. 64.

[582] We have made this translation from a German version in the Wiener
Jahrbücher, vol. xxx. which is evidently more faithful than Bowring's.

[583] Bowring, This version differs considerably from the German one
of Talvi. We feel quite convinced that the English translator has
mistaken the sense.

[584] Dalmatia and Montenegro, etc.




                         AFRICANS, JEWS, Etc.

      Lead from the hills the voice of riot comes,
      Where Yumboes shout and beat their Jaloff drums.
                                                        T. K.


This division of our work is somewhat miscellaneous, not being
restricted to any particular race, or to any determinate part of the
earth's surface. It contains merely such matters as appeared to us to
be worthy of note, but which we could not include in any of the
preceding sections.




                              AFRICANS.

      When evening's shades o'er Goree's isle extend,
      The nimble Yumboes from the Paps descend,
      Slily approach the natives' huts, and steal,
      With secret hand, the pounded coos-coos meal.
                                                   T. K.


The Jaloff inhabitants of the mainland of Africa, opposite the isle of
Goree, believe in a species of beings who have a striking and
surprising correspondence with the Gothic Fairies. They call them
Yumboes, and describe them as being about two feet high, of a white
colour, as every thing preternatural is in Africa. It is remarkable
that, acting on the same principle as the Greeks, who called their
Furies Eumenides, and the Scots and Irish, who style the Fairies Good
Neighbours, or Good People, the Africans call the Yumboes, Bakhna
Rakhna, or Good People. The dress of the Yumboes exactly corresponds
with that of the natives, and they imitate their actions in every
particular. They attach themselves to particular families; and
whenever any of their members die, the Yumboes are heard to lament
them, and to dance upon their graves. The Moors believe the Yumboes to
be the souls of their deceased friends.

The chief abode of the Yumboes is a subterraneous dwelling on the
Paps, the hills about three miles distant from the coast. Here they
dwell in great magnificence, and many wonderful stories are told of
those persons, particularly Europeans, who have been received and
entertained in the subterraneous residence of the Yumboes: of how they
were placed at richly furnished tables; how nothing but hands and feet
were to be seen, which laid and removed the various dishes; of the
numerous stories the underground abode consisted of; the modes of
passing from one to the other without stairs, etc., etc.

In the evening the Yumboes come down to the habitation of man, wrapped
close in their _pangs_,[585] with only their eyes and nose visible.
They steal to the huts, where the women are pounding in mortars the
coos-coos, or corn, watch till the pounders are gone for sieves to
searce the meal, and then slily creep to the mortars, take out the
meal, and carry it off in their pangs, looking every moment behind
them, to see if they are observed or pursued; or they put it into
calabashes, and arranging themselves in a row, like the monkeys,
convey it from hand to hand, till it is placed in safety.

They are also seen at night in their canoes, out fishing in the bay.
They bring their fish to land, and, going to the fires kindled by the
natives to keep away the wild beasts, they steal each as much fire as
will roast his fish. They bury palm-wine, and when it becomes sour
they drink of it till it intoxicates them, and then make a great
noise, beating Jaloff drums on the hills.[586]

FOOTNOTES:

[585] The Pang (Span. _paño_, cloth) is an oblong piece of cotton cloth,
which the natives manufacture and wear wrapped round their bodies.

[586] For the preceding account of the Yumboes we are indebted to a
young lady, who spent several years of her childhood at Gorce. What
she related to us she had heard from her maid, a Jaloff woman, who
spoke no language but Jaloff.




                                JEWS.

                        במבניך יקרבון לא רמויקיא
                                     PSALM xci. 5. _Chaldaicè_

      And the Mazikeen shall not come near thy tents.


It has long been an established article of belief among the Jews that
there is a species of beings which they call Shedeem,[587]
Shehireem,[588] or Mazikeen.[589] These beings exactly correspond to
the Arabian Jinn;[590] and the Jews hold that it is by means of them
that all acts of magic and enchantment are performed.

The Talmud says that the Shedeem were the offspring of Adam. After he
had eaten of the Tree of life, Adam was excommunicated for one hundred
and thirty years. "In all those years," saith Rabbi Jeremiah Ben
Eliezar, "during which Adam was under excommunication, he begat
spirits, demons, and spectres of the night, as it is written, 'Adam
lived one hundred and thirty years, and begat children in his likeness
and in his image,' which teaches, that till that time he had not
begotten them in his own likeness." In Berashith Rabba, R. Simon says,
"During all the one hundred and thirty years that Adam was separate
from Eve, male spirits lay with her, and she bare by them, and female
spirits lay with Adam, and bare by him."

These Shedeem or Mazikeen are held to resemble the angels in three
things. They can see and not be seen; they have wings and can fly; they
know the future. In three respects they resemble mankind: they eat and
drink; they marry and have children; they are subject to death. It may
be added, they have the power of assuming any form they please; and so
the agreement between them and the Jinn of the Arabs is complete.

Moses Edrehi, a learned Jew of Morocco, has translated into Spanish
for us several of the tales of the Mazikeen contained in the Talmud
and Rabbinical writings. We select the following as specimens; and
according to our usual custom, adhere strictly to our original.


                         _The Broken Oaths._

There was a man who was very rich, and who had but one only son. He
bestowed upon him every kind of instruction, so that he became very
learned and of great talent.

Before his death the old man gave a great entertainment, and invited
all the chief people of the city; and when the entertainment was over,
he called his son, and made him swear, in the name of the great God of
the whole universe, that he never would travel or go out of his own
country. He then left him the whole of his riches on this condition,
and made him sign a paper to that effect, with sufficient witnesses,
in the presence of all that company, and he gave the paper into the
custody of one of the principal persons.

Some years after the death of his father, there came a very large ship
from India, laden with merchandise of great value. The captain when he
arrived inquired after the father of this young man, and the people
said unto him that he was dead, but that he had left a son, and they
conducted the captain to the young man's dwelling. The captain then
said unto him, "Sir, I have brought hither much property belonging to
thy father, and as there is much property of thy father's still
remaining, if thou wilt come with me, thou wilt be able to obtain much
riches, for thou canst recover all that is owing unto thy father." He
made answer unto the captain and said, that he could not travel, as he
had taken an oath unto his father that he never would go out of the
country. The captain, however, ceased not every day to persuade him,
until at length he gave him his word that he would go with him. He
then went unto the learned Rabbin that were at that time, to see if
they would give him absolution respecting the oath he had sworn unto
his father. But they counselled him not to leave the country. But his
eagerness to acquire more riches was so great, that he would not
hearken unto the counsel of any one. So he finally took his
resolution, and went away with the captain.

Now, when they were in the midst of the sea, lo! the ship went to
pieces, and all the merchandise that was on board was lost, and all
the people were drowned, save only this young man, who got upon a
plank. And the water carried him about from one place unto another,
until it cast him upon the land. But here he was in danger of
starving, and had nothing to eat but the herbs of the field, or to
drink but the running water.

One day an exceeding large eagle drew near unto him, and seated
himself on the ground before him. As he was now reduced to despair,
and had little hopes of being able to preserve his life, and knew not
where he was, he resolved to mount this eagle, and to sit upon his
back. He accordingly mounted the bird, and the eagle flew with him
until he brought him unto a country that was inhabited, where he left
him.[591] When he saw that he was in a land where there were people,
he was greatly rejoiced, and he immediately inquired where the great
Rabbi of that country dwelt. But all the people that were there stood
mocking at him, and cursing him, and saying that he should die,
because he had broken the oath he had sworn unto his father. When he
heard this he was greatly astonished at their knowing it, but he went
to the house of the chief person among them who said unto him that he
should abide in his house until they did him justice, because in that
country they were all Mazikeen, and they wanted to kill him because he
deserved death on account of the oath to his father, which he had
broken. "Therefore," said he, "when they will sentence thee, and will
lead thee forth to punishment, cry aloud and say, I call for justice
before God and the king! The king will then do his utmost to deliver
thee out of their hands, and thou wilt remain alive."

Accordingly, when he was tried before the senate, and before their
princes and great men, he was found guilty, and sentenced to death,
according to the law of God. And when they led him forth to be slain,
he put his fingers before God, and before his majesty the king.[592]
When they heard this, they took him before the king, who examined him,
and saw that, in justice, he was worthy of death. But the king asked
him if he had studied or knew the law of Moses, or had studied the
Talmud, and various authors; and he saw that he was very learned, and
a great Rabbi, and it grieved him much that he should be put to death.
The king, therefore, begged that they would defer his execution until
the following day, for he wished to give his case a little further
consideration. At this they all held their peace, and departed.

Next day all the senators, governors, chief men, and all the people of
the city, came together to see and hear the sentence of the king, and
also to behold the death of this man, as it would be for them a very
curious sight. Now, while they were all standing there assembled, before
the king came forth from his palace to give his judgement, he called for
this man who was condemned to death, and asked him if he was willing to
remain with him and teach his children what he knew, as, in such case,
he would do his utmost to deliver him from death. He made answer that he
was willing. The king then went forth from his palace, and seated
himself upon his throne of judgement, and called all the chief men, and
all the people, and spake unto them in this sort:--

"Sirs, it is a truth that you have adjudged this man to death, which
he deserves: but there is no rule without an exception, and I believe
that this man hath not yet come to his time that he should die. For if
it was the will of God that he should die, he would have died along
with the rest of the people who were on board the same ship with him
when the ship went to pieces, and not have escaped as he hath done.
Again, if it was the will of God that he should die, he would not have
reached the land, and an eagle would not have come and brought him
hither amongst us. In like manner, God hath delivered him from you,
for he might have been slain by you. He hath thus been delivered out
of these manifold and great perils, and it therefore seemeth unto me
that he should live; as for the sin that he hath committed, in
breaking his oath, it is between him and God, who shall reward him for
it one day or other. He shall therefore be free from us; and I ordain
that no one shall touch him, or do him any evil; and whosoever
troubleth him shall be put to death."

When they heard these words of the king, they all expressed themselves
well pleased at his decision; and the man remained in the house of the
king, teaching his children. He continued in the palace for three
years, highly respected by every one, and greatly esteemed by the king
for his talents and his capacity.

Now it came to pass that the king was obliged to set forth with an
army, to war against one of the provinces of his kingdom which had
rebelled. As he was on the point to set out, he called for this man,
and gave him all the keys of his palaces and his treasures, and said
unto him, "Behold! thou mayest view every thing that is in the land
and in the palaces; but thou hast here a golden key of one palace
which thou must beware of opening, for on the day that thou openest it
I will slay thee." Then, charging the people to respect and attend to
him, the king took his leave of him and departed. When the king was
gone, he began to open and examine all the palaces, and all the
curiosities, which were such as he had never seen in his life, and all
the treasures of the greatest riches that could be in the world; in
short, he saw mountains upon mountains of diamonds of great weight,
and other things of various kinds, most admirable to behold. But when
he had seen all, he was not satisfied; he wanted to see more. And as
his desire was very great, he would open the other palace; and he
thought he should suffer no injury thereby, so that he resolved to
open it. Five or six times he drew nigh to open it, and as often he
drew back in fear: at length he took courage and opened it.

There were seven apartments, one within the other, and every apartment
was full of different rich and curious things. In the seventh
apartment was the princess, with other women, all richly dressed, and
very beautiful. When the princess saw him, she gave a sigh, and said,
"Man, it grieveth me for thee! how art thou come hither? Where is thy
regard for the advice of my father, who entreated thee not to open
this palace, when he gave thee the keys of his palaces and his
treasures, and straitly charged thee not to come hither? Know now that
my father is coming, and that he will surely slay thee. But if thou
wilt follow my counsel, and wilt espouse me, I will save thee; but
thou must give unto me thy oath, that thou wilt do it." He replied
that he would, and he sware unto her, and gave it unto her in writing.
She then said unto him, "When my father asketh thee why thou hast
opened the palace, thou shalt make answer, and say that thou desirest
to marry me, and then he will let thee escape, and not slay thee."

He had scarcely ended speaking with her, when the king entered, with
his sword drawn in his hand, to slay him. Then he threw himself on the
ground, and began to entreat him, and said that he was desirous to
marry the princess. When the king heard this, he was rejoiced that he
would remain there, and so teach his children all the knowledge he
possessed; for he was of great capacity in everything. He therefore
told him, that he would leave it to his daughter, whether she would
have him or not. The king then asked his daughter, and she replied,
"What your majesty doth for me is well done." The king then gave his
consent for her marriage with him. The contract was made, and notice
was given to all the chief persons of the city, and the wedding was
appointed to be in two months.

When the appointed time was come, all the chief men of all the
provinces of the kingdom were invited, and a great feast was made to
celebrate the marriage of the princess; and they were married to their
great joy and happiness.

On the first night of their marriage, when the husband and the wife
were alone, she said unto him, "Behold! I am not like one of you, and
thou seest that, thanks be unto God! there is no defect in my body;
if, therefore, though we have been publicly married with the consent
of my father, thou art not content to live with me as husband and
wife, thou art at liberty, and no one shall know it; but if thou art
content with all thy will, thou must swear unto me that thou wilt
never leave me." He replied, that he was well content with everything;
and he sware unto her, and wrote it down on paper, and signed it with
his hand, and gave it unto her; and they lived happily as man and wife
for many years, and they had children; and his first-born he named
Solomon, after the name of king Solomon.

Immediately after the marriage, the king caused it to be proclaimed that
his son-in-law should be the second person in the kingdom to give
judgement, and to punish such as should be deserving of punishment. This
the king did with the consent of all the great men of the country.

But, after some years, this man began to be very anxious and
melancholy; and his wife asked him many times what it was that ailed
him, but he would never tell her the cause: yet she persuaded him so
much, that at length he told it unto her, and said, that when he
looked upon his children he remembered the other children that he had,
and his other wife, and that he yearned to behold them once more. His
wife replied, "My dear husband, let not this give thee any uneasiness,
for if thou wishest to see them, thou canst see them." He answered,
"If thou wilt do me this favour and grace, I shall thank thee much."
She asked him how long he wished to stay with his wife and children,
and he answered, three months; but she said, "No; I will give thee the
space of a year, on condition, that as soon as the year is expired
thou return again unto me." He answered, "If thou show me this favour,
I will do all that thou wilt command me." She said, "Take an oath that
thou wilt keep thy word." He then sware, and wrote it down on paper,
and gave it unto her.

She then called one of her servants, and ordered him to convey him to
his own house with all the speed he could make; and in the space of a
few minutes he found himself in his own house with his wife and
children. The man then asked him if he had any commands for his lady? He
replied, "I have nothing to do with thee or thy lady. I am now with my
wife and children; I know no other, and therefore I have no message to
give." The servant then returned to his mistress; and she asked him what
his master had said, and if he had given him any message. He answered,
"Madam, if I tell thee what he hath said, thou wilt not believe me." She
then pressed him, and he told her all. She said, "It doth not signify."

He remained, then, very happy with his family; but at the end of the
year his wife sent a messenger unto him to call him back unto her, as
the year was expired. But he answered that he would not, and that he had
nothing to do with them, as he was a man, and had nothing more to say
with them. The messenger returned and told his mistress, and she sent
other messengers of greater dignity, for she said this one is not
sufficient for him. But he made the same reply that he had made unto the
first. She then sent greater still, three or four times; and at last she
was obliged to send her son Solomon. When he saw his son he embraced
him, and asked him what he wanted. He told him that his mother had sent
him, that he might come back with him, and that if he would not, she
would come and avenge herself upon him. His father replied, that he had
no mind to depart from his house; that he would stay with his wife and
children, who were human beings like himself. So when his son saw that
there was no remedy, and that he would not come with him, he returned
unto his mother, and related the whole unto her.

His mother was then obliged to go herself with her great army. When they
arrived at the city where the man dwelt, they said unto the princess
that they would go up and slay the man that was her husband, and all the
people of the city; but she answered, "No; they had not permission to
kill any one, as all the Hebrews, when they lie down to sleep at night,
make their prayers unto God to protect and guard them from all Mazikeen;
so that we have no right or permission to touch them; and if we do them
a mischief, we shall be chastised for it by the God of Israel, who
governeth the whole world. Do you, therefore, bide here without the
city, and in the morning I and my son Solomon will arise and go unto
the school of the Rabbin and the Sanhedrim, and if they will do me
justice with him, well; if not, I will avenge myself upon him and upon
them." They all made answer and said, "It is well said."

In the morning she arose with her son Solomon, and went unto the great
school, where the divine Law was taught. They were consulting, when
they heard the voice of one crying aloud, and saying, "Sirs, justice
before God, and before you, upon such a one, my husband;" and all the
people were amazed, and were in astonishment when they heard the voice
three times, and saw no one. They then sent for the man, who came unto
them and related the whole story, and said that he had no mind to go
with her. They again heard the voice, which said, "Sirs, here are his
oaths, signed by himself, which he sware and signed each time;" and
then three written papers fell before them. They read them, and asked
him if that was his signature. He said it was. They said unto him, "It
is ill done to break so many oaths," and that there was no remedy, but
that he should go with her to where he had lived so many years with
her, and where she had saved him from death, and he had had children
by her. "As for us, we advise thee to go with her, and if thou dost
not, it will not come to good; for she is not an ordinary person, but
is a princess, and merits attention, more especially as she hath right
on her side." He answered that he would give her Guet (a bill of
divorce); but she made answer, that that would not be for her honour.
In fine, he refused absolutely to go with her.

After a great deal of argument, and when she saw that there were no
means to persuade him, she said, "Sirs, I am highly obliged and grateful
to you; for I see that you do me the justice of God, and he will not
accept it. You are free, and the sin will be upon his soul. Wherefore,
sirs, since there is no remedy with him, I entreat that he will suffer
me to take leave of him, and to embrace him." He replied that she might,
and as soon as she embraced him she drew out his soul, and he died. She
then said, "Sirs, here is his son Solomon, who is one of yourselves. I
will give him sufficient riches, and he shall be heir along with the
children of his other wife, and you will make him among you a great
Rabbi; for he is of sufficient ability, as you may see if you will
examine him. Farewell." So saying, she departed with her army.[593]


                            _The Moohel._

There was once a man who was exceedingly rich, but out of all measure
avaricious, and who never had done a good deed in his life, and never
had given even the value of a farthing unto the poor.

It happened one winter's night, between the hours of twelve and one,
that a man came and knocked loudly at the door of this miser. He
opened the window, and saw a man at the door, and he asked him what it
was he wanted. He said that he wanted him to go with him to a village
twelve miles distant from the town, to circumcise a young child that
would be eight days old in the morning.

Now you must know, that this man of whom we treat was a Jew and a
Moohel, that is, one whose office it is to circumcise the young
children; and with all his avarice in money matters, he was not
avaricious in his office, for he believed in the end of the world, and
therefore he did this good action.

He accordingly agreed to go with the man, and he kindled a fire, and
put his clothes before it, and got ready the instruments he required
for performing the ceremony. He then set out along with the strange
man, whom he knew not, though it was winter, and dark and rainy; and
they went along, journeying through the wilderness. This unfortunate
Moohel, who did not know his way in the wilderness, and in the dark,
every now and then fell over the stones on the way; but they still
went on until they came to a great and lofty mountain in the midst of
the wilderness, where people never passed, and where there are no
people to be seen, but only dark, dark mountains, that fill with
terror those who look upon them.

The man who came with the Moohel now laid his hand on a great stone of
the mountain, so large that five hundred persons could not remove or
raise it; yet he raised it with only one hand. The place then opened,
and they both descended. There were many flights of steps, and it was
very deep within the earth, and below there was an entire city. They
entered then into a palace that was very large and handsome; it had
fine gardens, and there was a great deal of light, and music, and much
dancing of men and women. When they saw this Moohel approach, they
began to laugh and to mock at him; but the poor Moohel was greatly
astonished at all the things that he saw, and as he stood looking on,
he began to consider and reflect upon them; and then he saw that they
were not human beings like us, and great fear came upon him; but he
had no means of getting out, or of saving himself, so he constrained
himself, and remained quiet.

Now the man who had brought him thither was one of their commanders,
and a great personage among them. He took him then to the apartment of
the lying-in woman, that he might view the child. The man then went
away, and left him with the lying-in woman. But the woman groaned in
great affliction, and began to weep. The Moohel asked her what ailed
her? Then said the woman unto the Moohel, "How didst thou come hither?
Knowest thou in what place thou art, and amongst whom thou art?" The
Moohel replied that he did not, as he had not ventured to speak. The
woman then explained, "Thou art in the land of the Mazikeen, and all
the people that are here are Mazikeen; but I am a being like unto
thyself; for when I was yet young and little, I was once alone in a
dark place, and these people took me and brought me hither; and I was
married to this husband, who is one of their great men, and who is,
moreover, a Jew, for there are different religions among them; and I
also am a Jewess; and when this child was born, I spake unto my
husband, and entreated of him, that he would get a Moohel to
circumcise the babe; and so he brought thee hither. But thou art in
great danger here, and art lost; for thou wilt never be able to go out
from here, and wilt be like one of them. Yet, as I have compassion for
thee, and particularly as thou hast, out of kindness, come hither to
circumcise the babe, and out of humanity, I will give thee a counsel
that may be of service unto thee; and that is, when they ask thee to
eat or to drink, take good heed not to touch anything; for if thou
taste anything of theirs thou wilt become like one of them, and wilt
remain here for ever."

The husband now came in, and they went to the congregation to perform
the morning prayer. After the prayer, they returned to the house to
perform the ceremony of circumcision. The Moohel took a cup of wine,
and gave it to taste to the lying-in woman, to the babe, and to all
who were invited to the ceremony; for this is the manner and the
custom. But the man who had fetched the Moohel said unto him, "Thou
also shouldst taste." The Moohel replied, that he could not, for he
had dreamed an evil dream, and that he must fast; and by this excuse
he escaped. But he waited for him till night, and then they brought
him meat and drink; but he replied that he could not eat until he had
passed two or three days fasting. When the man who had brought him
thither saw that he would neither eat nor drink for so long a time, he
took compassion upon him, and said unto him, "What is the matter with
thee, that thou wilt neither eat nor drink?"--"Sir," replied the
Moohel, "I ask and desire no other thing but to go home unto my
family; for this week we hold a feast, and I should be with my family.
I therefore most humbly supplicate thee to take me unto my own house."
He then began to beg and entreat him most earnestly, and the woman
also entreated for him.

The man then said unto him, "Since thou desirest to go home unto thy
house, come then with me; I will give thee a present for thy trouble.
Come with me, where thou mayest see and take whatever will seem good
unto thee." The Moohel answered, "I do not wish for anything. Thanks
be to God! I am very rich--I want for nothing, but to return home unto
my family."--"Nevertheless," said he, "come with me, till I show thee
curious things that thou hast never seen in thy life." He was
accordingly persuaded; he went with him, and he showed him divers
apartments all full of silver, of gold, of diamonds, of all sorts of
precious stones, and of other curious and magnificent things, such as
he had never seen in his life.

He thus led him from one chamber to another, and continually asked him
if he wished for anything; for if he did, he might take it. But he
still refused, and would take nothing. At length they came to the last
chamber, where there was nothing but bunches of keys hanging. The
Moohel raised his eyes at seeing such a number of keys, and, lo! he
beheld a bunch of keys that was his own. He began then to reflect
deeply; and the man said unto him, "What dost thou stand gazing at? I
have shown thee many precious and curious things, and yet thou didst
not bestow so much attention upon them as upon these old keys, that
are of little worth." "Be not offended, sir," answered the Moohel,
"but these keys are so like mine, and I believe they are the same." He
took the keys and began to examine them, and to point out each key
separately to the man, who at length said unto him, "Thou art right,
they are thy keys. Know that I am lord over the hearts of the people
who never at any time do good; and as thou performest this good deed
of circumcision, and riskest thy life in dangerous journeys, and goest
with all sorts of people to do the commandment of the God of Israel,
here, take the keys! From henceforward thy heart will be opened,[594]
and will be good toward the poor, which will cause thee to live a long
and a happy life with thy family. Come now with me; I will carry thee
home to thy house and to thy family. Now shut thine eyes."

He shut his eyes, and instantly found himself in his own house amidst
his family. He then began to distribute money to all the poor that were
in the land, every week and every month. But the world is always curious
to hear novelties and strange events, and the people, and even his own
wife, as this was a very wonderful thing, pressed him and persuaded him,
until at length he was obliged to relate the whole history of what had
befallen him, from the beginning even unto the end; and it was a matter
of great delight to all the world; and they did much good to the poor,
and they all became rich, with great prosperity. And the Moohel lived
very long, and spent a great and a happy life with his family, a pattern
and an example unto the whole world.[595]


                           _The Mazik-Ass._

It came to pass in the countries of Africa, in a particular month,
during which it is the usage and the custom of the Jews to rise in the
night to say their prayers, that a servant, whose business it was to
knock at the doors, and to call up the people, found one night an ass
(_jumento_) in the street; and he mounted upon him, and went riding
along and calling up the people. And, as he rode, lo! the ass began to
swell and to increase in size, until he became three hundred yards in
height, and reached up even unto the top of the loftiest tower of the
church, upon which he set the man, and then went away; and on the
morrow the man was found sitting upon the tower. Now, thou must know
that this ass was one of the Mazikeen.

       *       *       *       *       *

The Jews have, as it were, brought us back to Asia. As we proceed
eastwards from Persia, where we commenced, India first meets our view,
but of the numerous beings of its copious and intricate mythology, no
class seems to belong to earth unless it be the Yakshas who attend on
Kuveras, the Hindoo Plutos, and have charge of his enchanted gardens
on the summit of Himalaya, and who bear some resemblance to the
Dwarfs. There are also the misshapen Pisachas, who love to dwell in
gloom; the Vidhyadharas, _i. e._, Masters of Magic, are said to
resemble the Jinn of the Arabs; and the dancing and singing Gandharvas
and Apsaresas may be compared with the Nymphs of Grecian mythology.

Eastwards still lies China. Here there is a species of beings named
Shinseën, who are said to haunt the woods and mountains, where, exempt
from the passions and the cares of life, they dwell in a state of
blissful ease; but still exercise an influence over human affairs.
Sometimes they appear as old men with long beards; at other times as
young maidens, sauntering amid rocks and woods by moonlight.[596]

We do not recollect to have met, in our reading, with any other beings
bearing a resemblance to what we term Fairies.

FOOTNOTES:

[587] שרים from שרר to lay waste, Deut. xxxii. 17.

[588] שעירים from שער horreo, Isaiah, xiii. 22.

[589] מויקין from נוק to hurt.

[590] Moses Edrehi, our informant, says that the Mazikeen are called
in the Arabic language, _znoon_ ([Illustration]), _i. e._ Jinn.

[591] Comp. Lane, Thousand and One Nights, iii. p. 91.

[592] To signify that he appealed to them.

[593] From a rabbinical book called Mahasee Yerusalemee, _i. e._ History
of a Hebrew of Jerusalem.--"Very old," says Moses Edrehi, "and known by
the Hebrews to be true." "Moreover," saith he of another tale, "it
really happened, because every thing that is written in the Jewish books
is true; for no one can print any new book without its being examined
and approved of by the greatest and chiefest Rabbin and wise men of that
time and city, and the proofs must be very strong and clear; so that all
the wonderful stories in these books are true." The Jews are not
singular in this mode of vouching for the truth of wonderful stories.

[594] The moral here is apparent.

[595] From a very ancient rabbinical book called R. H. It is needless
to point out its resemblance to German and other tales.

[596] See Davis's translation of The Fortunate Union, i. 68.




                             CONCLUSION.


Here, then, we conclude. The task which we imposed on ourselves was to
collect, arrange, classify, and give under one point of view the
various ideas and legends respecting Fairies and similar beings of the
popular creed, which lay scattered in a variety of books and a variety
of languages. We have marked resemblances, traced coincidences, and
offered etymologies. Many legends, especially German ones, we know,
exist, which are not to be found in this work; but, in general, they
offer no new traits of popular lore, and most persons will, we
apprehend, be content with what we have given.

The labours of MM. Grimm in this department of philosophy can never be
too highly praised. They have been, in fact, the creators of it; and the
German Mythology is a work of the most extensive learning, and written
in the spirit of true philosophy. And this is no light praise; for of
all subjects, Mythology appears to be the one on which imagination is
most apt to run riot. Hence, it has been frequently almost brought into
contempt by the wild vagaries of those who have presumed to write on it
without judgement of common sense. Though all may not agree with the
opinions or deductions in the preceding pages, we trust that they will
find in them no traces of ill-regulated imagination.

As works of this kind have no bearing on material enjoyments, the number
of those who will think lightly of them in these days will, of course,
not be small. But in the view of sane reason and philosophy, the subject
is by no means unimportant, nay, it is even more important than many of
higher pretensions. To trace the corruption and degradation of the pure
religion of the Gospel, has always been held to be a task worthy of the
highest intellect: we should not, therefore, despise the present one,
which is the same in kind though different in degree. We have seen that
all these legendary beings and their characters and acts are remnants of
ancient religious systems, the mental offspring of deep-thinking sages.
It is surely, then, not uninteresting to trace them to their present
form and condition. Even in a historic point of view they are not
undeserving of attention. Thus, should our theory on the subject be
correct, it is of importance to observe how the tribes around the
Baltic, when they made conquests in the Roman Empire, brought with them
the religious ideas of their forefathers, and left traces of them, which
are discernible even at the present day. Again, nothing more interests
the botanist than to find the same plants, modified by local
circumstances, growing in widely-distant regions. The interest is
similar when we find the same legends, modified also by circumstances,
springing up in distant countries, and amongst tribes and nations who
could hardly have had any communication.[597]

This work is therefore to be regarded as a part of the philosophy of
popular fiction. It is not by any means intended to be a work of mere
amusement, and those who view or represent it in that light will do it
manifest injustice. Many of the legends, no doubt, may possess
attractions even for children; but the same is true of the narratives
of Herodotus, and still more of those of the Old Testament, and
therefore should not derogate from its real importance. At the same
time, we have adopted a light and facile style, as that which we
deemed best suited to the character of the subject and the taste of
this country; but we trust that this will not lower either our subject
or ourselves in the eyes of our readers.[598]

FOOTNOTES:

[597] Under the title Similar Legends in the Index, legends of this
kind are arranged with references to the places where they occur.

[598] The legends from the German and other languages are, in general,
faithfully translated, whence the style is at times rude and negligent;
English legends are for the most part, also, merely transcribed.




                              APPENDIX.


The following tales are some of those which we contributed to the Irish
Fairy Legends. Subjoined is a selection from the verses which we have
written on various occasions, chiefly to oblige our lady-friends. They
are inserted merely to show that the writer could compose well-rimed
stanzas, while he lays no claim whatever to the title of poet.


                        _The Harvest Dinner._

It was Monday, and a fine October morning. The sun had been some time
above the mountains, and the hoar frost and the dew-drops on the
gossamers[599] were glittering in the light, when Thady Byrne, on
coming in to get his breakfast, saw his neighbour Paddy Cavenagh, who
lived on the other side of the road, at his own door tying his brogues.

"A good morrow to you, Paddy, honey," said Thady Byrne.

"Good morrow, kindly, Thady," said Paddy.

"Why, thin, Paddy, avick, it isn't your airly risin', anyhow that 'ill
do you any harm this mornin'."

"It's thrue enough for you, Thady Byrne," answered Paddy casting a
look up at the sky; "for I b'leeve it's purty late in the day. But I
was up, you see, murdherin' late last night."

"To be shure, thin, Paddy, it was up at the great dinner, yisterday,
above at the big house you wor."

"Ay was it; an' a rattlin' fine dinner we had uv it, too."

"Why, thin, Paddy, agrah, what's to ail you now, but you'd jist sit
yourself down here on this piece o' green sod, an' tell us all about
it from beginnin' to ind."

"Niver say the word twist, man; I'll give you the whole full an' thrue
account uv it, an' welcome."

They sat down on the roadside, and Paddy thus began.

"Well, you see, Thady, we'd a powerful great harvist uv it, you know,
this year, an' the min all worked like jewels, as they are; an' the
masther was in great sperits, an' he promis'd he'd give us all a grand
dinner whin the dhrawin'-in was over, an' the corn all safe in the
haggard. So this last week, you see, crown'd the business; an' on
Satherday night the last shafe was nately tied an' sint in to the
misthress, an' everything was finisht, all to the tatchin' o' the
ricks. Well, you see, jist as Larry Toole was come down from headin'
the last rick, an' we war takin' away the laddher, out comes the
misthress herself--long life to her--by the light o' the moon; an',
'Boys,' sez she, 'yez hav' finish'd the harvist bravely, an' I invite
yez all to dinner here to-morrow; an' if yez come airly, yez 'ill git
mass in the big hall, widout the throuble o' goin' up all the ways to
the chapel for it.'"

"Why, thin, did she raally say so, Paddy?"

"That she did--the divil the word o' lie in it."

"Well, go on."

"Well, if we didn't set up a shout for her, it's no matther!"

"Ay, an' a good right yez had too, Paddy, avick."

"Well, you see, yistherday mornin'--which, God be praised, was as fine
a day as iver come out of the sky--whin I tuk the beard off o' me, Tom
Conner an' I set off together for the big house. An' I don't know,
Thady, whether it was the fineness o' the day, or the thoughts o' the
good dinner we wor to have, or the kindness o' the misthress, that med
my heart so light, but I filt, anyhow, as gay as any skylark. Well,
whin we got up to the house, there was every one o' the people that's
in the work, min, women and childher, all come together in the yard;
an' a purty sight it was to luk upon, Thady: they wor all so nate an
so clane, an' so happy."

"Thrue for you, Paddy, agrah; an' a fine thing it is, too, to work wid
a raal gintleman like the masther. But till us, avick, how was it the
misthress conthrived to get the mass for yez: shure Father Miley
himself, or the codjuthor, didn't come over."

"No, in troth didn't they, but the misthress managed it betther nor all
that. You see, Thady, there's a priest, an ould friend o' the family's,
one Father Mulhall's on a visit, this fortnight past, up at the big
house. He's as gay a little man as iver spoke, only he's a little too
fond o' the dhrop,--the more's the pity,--an' it's whispered about among
the sarvints that by manes uv it he lost a parish he had down the
counthry; an' he was an his way up to Dublin, whin he stopt to spind a
few days wid his ould frinds the masther an' misthress.

"Well, you see, the misthress on Satherday, widout sayin' a single
word uv it to any livin' sowl, writes a letther wid her own hand, an'
sinds Tom Freen off wid it to Father Miley, to ax him for a loan o'
the vistmints. Father Miley, you know's a mighty ginteel man intirely,
and one that likes to obleege the quolity in anything that doesn't go
agin' his juty; an' glad he was to hav' it in his power to sarve the
misthress; an' he sint off the vistmints wid all his heart an' sowl
an' as civil a letther, Tommy Freen says, for he hard the misthress
readin' it, as ivir was pinned."

"Well, there was an alther, you see, got up in the big hall, jist
bechune the two doors--if ivir you wor in it--ladin' into the
store-room, an' the room the childher sleep in; and whin iviry thing
was ready we all come in, an' the priest gev' us as good mass iviry
taste as if we wor up at the chapel for it. The misthress an' all the
family attinded thimsilves, an' they stud jist widinside o' the
parlour-door; and it was raaly surprisin', Thady, to see how dacently
they behaved thimsilves. If they wor all their lives goin' to chapel
they cudn't have behaved thimsilves betther nor they did."

"Ay, Paddy, mavourneen; I'll be bail they didn't skit and laugh the
way some people would be doin'."

"Laugh! not thimsilves, indeed. They'd more manners, if nothin' else,
nor to do that. Well, to go an wid my story: whin the mass was ovir we
wint sthrollin' about the lawn an' place till three o'clock come, an'
thin you see the big bell rung out for dinner, an' may be it wasn't we
that wor glad to hear it. So away wid us to the long barn where the
dinner was laid out; an' 'pon my conscience, Thady Byrne, there's not
one word o' lie in what I'm goin' to tell you; but at the sight o' so
much vittles iviry taste uv appetite in the world lift me, an' I thought
I'd ha' fainted down an the ground that was undher me. There was, you
see, two rows o' long tables laid the whole linth o' the barn, an' table
cloths spred upon iviry inch o' them; an' there was rounds o' beef, an'
rumps o' beef, an' ribs o' beef, both biled an' roast, an' there was
ligs o' mootton, and han's o' pork, and pieces o' fine bacon, an' there
was cabbage an' pratees to no ind, an' a knife an' fork laid for iviry
body; an' barrils o' beer an' porther, with the cocks in iviry one o'
them, an' moogs an' porringirs in hapes. In all my born days, Thady
dear, I nivir laid eyes on sich a load o' vittles."

"By the powers o' dilph! Paddy, ahaygar, an' it _was_ a grand sight
shure enough. Tare an' ayjirs! what ill loock I had not to be in the
work this year! But go on, agra."

"Well, you see, the masther himself stud up at the ind uv one o' the
tables, an' coot up a fine piece o' the beef for us; and right
forenint him at the other ind, sot ould Paddy Byrne, for, though you
know he is a farmer himself, yet the misthress is so fond uv him--he
is sich a mighty dacint man--that she would by all manner o' manes
hav' him there. Then the priest was at the head o' th' other table,
an' said grace for us, an' thin fill to slashin' up another piece o'
the beef for us: and forenint him sot Jim Murray the stchewart; an'
shure enough, Thady, it was oursilves that played away in grand style
at the beef an' the mootton, an' the cabbage, an' all th' other fine
things. An' there was Tom Freen, and all th' other sarvints waitin'
upon us an' handin' us dhrink, jist as if we wor so many grand
gintlemin that wor dinin' wid the masther. Well, you see, whin we wor
about half doon, in walks the misthress hursilf, an' the young
masther, an' the young ladies, an' the ladies from Dublin that's down
on a visit wid the misthress, jist, as she said, to see that we wor
happy and merry ovir our dinner; an' thin, Thady, you see, widout
anybody sayin' a single word, we all stud up like one man, an' iviry
man an' boy wid his full porringer o' porther in his hand dhrank long
life an' success to the misthress and masther an' iviry one o' the
family. I don't know for others, Thady, but for mysilf, I nivir said a
prayer in all my life more from the heart; and a good right I had,
shure, and iviry one that was there, too; for, to say nothin' o' the
dinner, is there the likes uv her in the whole side o' the counthry
for goodness to the poor, whethir they're sick or they're well.
Wouldn't I mysilf, if it worn't but for her, be a lone an' desolate
man this blissed day?"

"It's thrue for you, avick, for she brought Judy through it betther
nor any docther o' thim all."

"Well, to make a long story short, we et, an' we dhrank, an' we laughed,
an' we talked, till we wor tirt, an' as soon as it grew dusk, we wor all
called agin into the hall: an' there, you see, the misthress had got
ovir Tim Connel, the blind piper, an' had sint for all the women that
could come, an' the cook had tay for thim down below in the kitchen; an'
they come up to the hall, an' there was chairs set round it for us all
to sit upon, an' the misthress come out o' the parlour, an' 'Boys,' says
she, 'I hope yez med a good dinnir, an' I've bin thinkin' uv yez, you
see, an' I've got yez plinty o' partnirs, an' it's your own faults if
yez don't spind a pleasint evinin'.' So wid that we set up another shout
for the misthress, an' Tim sthruck up, an' the masther tuk out Nilly
Mooney into the middle of the flure to dance a jig, and it was they that
futted it nately. Thin the masther called out Dinny Moran, an' dhragged
him up to one o' the Dublin young ladies, an' bid Dinny be stout an' ax
her out to dance wid him. So Dinny, you see, though he was ashamed to
make so free wid the lady, still he was afeard not to do as the masther
bid him; so, by my conscience, he bowled up to her manfully, an' hild
out the fist an' axed her out to dance wid him, an' she gev' him her
hand in a crack, an' Dinny whipt her out into the middle o' the hall,
forenint us all, an' pulled up his breeches an' called out to Tim to
blow up 'The Rocks of Cashel' for thim. An' thin _my_ jewil if you wor
but to see thim! Dinny flingin' the ligs about as if they'd fly from off
him, an' the lady now here, now there, jist for all the world as if she
was a sperit, for not a taste o' n'ise did she make on the flure that
ivir was hard; and Dinny callin' out to Tim to play it up fasther an'
fasther, an' Tim almost workin' his elbow through the bag, till at last
the lady was fairly tirt, an' Dinny thin clapt his hands an' up jumpt
Piggy Reilly, an' she attacked him bouldly, an' danced down Dinny an'
thin up got Johnny Regan an' put her down complately. An' sence the
world was a world, I b'leeve there nivir was such dancin' seen."

"The sarra the doubt uv it, avick I'm sartin'; they're all o' thim
sich rael fine dancers. An' only to think o' the lady dancin' wid the
likes o' Dinny!"

"Well, you see, poor ould Paddy Byrne, whin he hears that the womin
wor all to be there, in he goes into the parlor to the misthress, an'
axes her if he might make so bould as to go home and fetch _his_
woman. So the misthress, you see, though you know Katty Byrne's no
great favourite wid hur, was glad to obleege Paddy, an' so Katty Byrne
was there too. An' thin ould Hugh Carr axt hur out to move a minnet
wid him, an' there was Hugh, as stiff as if he dined on one o' the
spits, wid his black wig an' his long brown coat, an' his blue
stockin's, movin' about wid his hat in his hand, an' ladin' Katty
about, an' lukin' so soft upon her; an' Katty, in her stiff mob-cap,
wid the ears pinned down undher her chin, an' hur little black hat on
the top uv her head; an' she at one corner curcheyin' to Hugh, an'
Hugh at another bowin' to her, an' iviry body wundherin' at thim, they
moved it so iligantly."

"Troth, Paddy, avourneen, that was well worth goin' a mile o' ground
to see."

"Well, you see; whin the dancin' was ovir they tuk to the singin', an'
Bill Carey gev' the 'Wounded Hussar,' an' the 'Poor but Honest
So'dger,' in sich style that yi'd have h'ard him up on the top o' Slee
Roo; an' Dinny Moran an' ould Tom Freen gev' us the best songs they
had, an' the priest sung the 'Cruiskeen Laun' for us gaily, an' one o'
the young ladies played an' sung upon a thing widin in the parlor,
like a table, that was purtier nor any pipes to listen to."

"An' didn't Bill giv' yez 'As down by Banna's Banks I sthrayed?' Shure
that's one o' the best songs he has."

"An' that he did, till he med the very sates shake undher us; but a
body can't remimber iviry thing, you know. Well, where was I? Oh, ay!
You see, my dear, the poor little priest was all the night long goin'
backwards an' forwards, iviry minit, bechune the parlor an' the hall;
an' the sperits, you see, was lyin' opin on the sideboord, an' the
dear little man he cudn't, for the life uv him, keep himself from it,
so he kipt helpin' himself to a dhrop now an' a dhrop thin, till at
last he got all as one as tipsy. So thin he comes out into the hall
among us, an' goes about whisperin' to us to go home, an' not to be
keepin' the family out o' their bids. But the misthress she saw what
he was at, an' she stud up, an' she spoke out an' she said, 'Good
people,' sez she, 'nivir mind what the priest says to yez; yez are my
company, an' not his, an' yez are heartily welcum to stay as long as
yez like.' So whin he found he cud get no good uv us at all, he rowled
off wid himself to his bid; an' his head, you see, was so bothered wid
the liquor he'd bin takin', that he nivir once thought o' takin' off
his boots, but tumbled into bed wid thim upon him, Tommy Freen tould
us, whin he wint into the room to luk afther him; and divil be in Tim,
when he h'ard it but he lilts up the 'Priest in his Boots;' and, God
forgive us, we all burst out laughin', for shure who could hilp it, if
it was the bishop himsilf?"

"Troth, it was a shame for yez, anyhow. But Paddy, agrah, did yez come
away at all?"

"Why at last we did, afther another round o' the punch to the glory an'
success o' the family. And now, Thady, comes the most surprisintest part
o' the whole story. I was all alone, you see, for my woman, you know,
cudn't lave the childher to come to the dance; so, as it was a fine
moonshiny night, nothin' 'ud sarve me but I must go out into the
paddock, to luk afther poor Rainbow the plough bullock, that's got a bad
shouldher, and so by that manes, you see, I misst o' the cumpany, an'
had to go home all alone by myself. Well, you see, it was out by the
back gate I come, an' it was thin about twelve in the night, as well as
I cud jidge by the Plough, an' the moon was shinin' as bright as a
silver dish, and there wasn't a sound to be hard, barrin' the screechin'
o' the ould owl down in the ivy-wall; an' I filt it all very pleasant,
for I was sumhow rather hearty, you see, wid the dhrink I'd bin takin';
for you know, Thady Byrne, I'm a sober man."

"That's no lie for you, Paddy, avick. A little, as they say, goes a
great way wid you."

"Well, you see, an I wint whistlin' to mysilf some o' the chunes they
wor singin', and thinkin' uv any thing, shure, but the good people;
whin jist as I come to the cornir o' the plantation, an' got a sight
o' the big bush, I thought, faith, I seen sum things movin' backwards
an' for'ards, an' dancin' like, up in the bush. I was quite sartin it
was the fairies that, you know, resort to it, for I cud see, I
thought, their little red caps an' green jackits quite plain. Well, I
was thinkin', at first, o' goin' back an' gittin' home through the
fields; but, says I to myself, says I, what sh'uld I be afeard uv? I'm
an honest man that does nobody any harm; an' I h'ard mass this
mornin'; an' it's neither Holly eve nor St. John's eve, nor any other
o' their great days, an' they can do me no harm, I'm sartin. So I med
the sign o' the crass, an' an I wint in God's name, till I come right
undher the bush; and what do you think they wor, Thady, afther all?"

"Arrah, how can I till? But you wor a stout man anyhow, Paddy, agrah!"

"Why, thin, what was it but the green laves o' the ould bush, an' the
rid bunches o' the haves that war wavin' and shakin' in the moonlight.
Well on I goes till I come to the cornir o' the Crab road, whin I
happined to cast my eyes ovir tow'st the little moat in the Moatfield,
an' there, by my sowl! (God forgive me for swaerin',) I seen the
fairies in rael airnist."

"You did, thin, did you?"

"Ay, by my faith, did I, an' a mighty purty sight it was to see, too, I
can tell you, Thady. The side o' the moat, you see, that luks into the
field was opin, and out uv it there come the darlintest little calvacade
o' the purtiest little fellows you ivir laid your eyes upon. They wor
all dhrest in green huntin' frocks, wid nice little rid caps on their
heads, an' they wor all mounted on purty little, long-tailed, white
ponies, not so big as young kids, an' they rode two and two so nicely.
Well, you see, they tuk right acrass the field, jist abuv the san'pit,
an' I was wundherin' in myself what they'd do whin they come to the big
ditch, thinkin' they'd nivir git ovir it. But I'll tell you what it is,
Thady. Misther Tom and the brown mare, though they're both o' thim gay
good at either ditch or wall, they're not to be talked uv in the same
day wid thim. They tuk the ditch, you see, big as it is, in full
sthroke; not a man o' thim was shuk in his sate, nor lost his rank; it
was pop, pop, pop, ovir wid thim; and thin, hurra, away wid thim like
shot acrass the High Field, in the direction o' the ould church. Well,
my dear, while I was sthrainin' my eyes lukin' afther thim, I hears a
great rumblin' noise cumin' out o' the moat, an' whin I turned about to
luk at it, what did I see but a great ould family coach-an'-six comin'
out o' the moat, and makin' direct for the gate where I was stannin'.
Well, says I, I'm a lost man now, anyhow. There was no use at all, you
see, in thinkin' to run for it, for they wor dhrivin' at the rate uv a
hunt; so down I got into the gripe o' the ditch, thinkin' to snake off
wid mysilf while they war op'nin' the gate. But, be the laws, the gate
flew opin widout a sowl layin' a finger to it, the very instant minnet
they come up to it, an' they wheeled down the road jist close to the
spot where I was hidin', an' I seen thim as plain as I now see you; an'
a quare sight it was, too, to see; for not a morsel uv head that ivir
was, was there upon one o' the horses, nor on the coachman neither, and
yit, for all that, Thady, the Lord Lef'nint's coach cudn't ha' med a
handier nor a shorter turn nor they med out o' the gate; an' the blind
thief uv a coachman, jist as they wor makin' the wheel, was near takin'
the eye out o' me wid the lash uv his long whip, as he was cuttin' up
the horses to show off his dhrivin'. I've my doubts that the schamer
knew I was there well enough, and that he did it all a purpose. Well, as
it passed by me, I peept in at the quolity widinside, an' not a head, no
not as big as the head uv a pin, was there among the whole kit o' thim,
an' four fine futmin that war stannin' behind the coach war jist like
the rest o' thim."

"Well, to be shure, but it _was_ a quare sight."

"Well, away they wint tattherin' along the road, makin' the fire fly
out o' the stones at no rate. So whin I seen they'd no eyes, I knew it
was onpossible they could ivir see _me_, so up I got out o' the ditch,
and afther thim wid me along the road as fast as ivir I culd lay fut
to ground. But whin I got to the rise o' the hill I seen they wor a
great ways a-head o' me, an' they'd takin to the fields, an' war
makin' off for the ould church too. I thought they might have some
business o' their own there, an' that it might not be safe for
sthrangers to be goin' afther thim; so as I was by this time near my
own house, I wint in and got quietly to bid, widout sayin' anything to
the woman about it; an' long enough it was before I cud git to sleep
for thinkin' o' thim, an' that's the raison, Thady, I was up so late
this mornin'. But wasn't it a sthrange thing, Thady?"

"Faith, an' shure it was, Paddy ahayger, as sthrange a thing as ivir
was. But are you quite sartin an' shure that you seen thim?"

"Am I sartin an' shure I seen thim? Am I sartin an' shure I see the
nose there on your face? What was to ail me not to see thim? Wasn't
the moon shinin' as bright as day? An' didn't they pass widin a yard
o' me? And did ivir any one see me dhrunk, or hear me tell a lie?"

"It's thrue for you, Paddy, no one ivir did, and myself doesn't
rightly know what to say to it?"[600]


                          _The Young Piper._

There was livin', it's not very long ago, on the bordhers o' the county
Wicklow, a dacint honest couple, whose names wor Mick Flanagan and Judy
Muldoon. These poor people wor blist, as the saying is, wid four
childher, all buys: three o' them wor as fine, stout, healthy,
goodlukin' childher as ivir the sun shone upon; an' it was enough to
make any Irishman proud of the breed of his counthrymen to see thim
about one o'clock on a find summer's day stannin' at their father's
cabin-door, wid their beautiful, fine flaxen hair hangin' in curls about
their heads, an' their cheeks like two rosy apples, an' a big, laughin'
potato smokin' in their hand. A proud man, was Mick, o' these fine
childher, an' a proud woman, too, was Judy; an' raison enough they had
to be so. But it was far otherwise wid the remainin' one, which was the
ouldest; he was the most miserable, ugly, ill-conditioned brat that ivir
God put life into: he was so ill thriven, that he was nivir able to
stand alone or to lave his cradle; he had long, shaggy, matted, curly
hair, as black as the sut; his face was uv a greenish yollow colour; his
eyes wor like two burnin' coals, an' wor for ever movin' in his head, as
if they had the parpaitual motion. Before he was a twel'month ould he
had a mouth full o' great teeth; his hands wor like kite's claws, and
his legs wor no thicker nor the handle of a whip, and about as straight
as a rapin' hook; to make the matther worse, he had the gut uv a
cormorant, and the whinge, and the yelp, and the screech, and the yowl,
was never out of his mouth.

The neighbours all suspicted that he was somethin' not right, more
especialy as it was obsarved, that whin people, as they use to do in
the counthry, got about the fire, and begun to talk o' religion and
good things, the brat, as he lay in the cradle which his mother
ginerally put near the fireplace that he might be snug, used to sit
up, as they wor in the middle of their talk, and begin to bellow as if
the divil was in him in right airnest: this, as I said, led the
neighbours to think that all wasn't right wid him, an' there was a
gineral consultashion held one day, about what id be best to do wid
him. Some advised to put him out an the shovel, but Judy's pride was
up at that. A purty thing, indeed, that a child of her's shud be put
an a shovel, an' flung out on the dunghill jist like a dead kitten or
a pisoned rat; no, no, she wouldn't hear to that at all. One ould
woman, who was considhered mighty skilful an' knowin' intirely in
fairy matthers sthrongly recomminded to put the tongs in the fire, an'
to hate thim rid hot, an' thin to take his nose in thim, an' that that
id, beyant all manner o' doubt, make him tell what he was, an' whare
he come from (for the gineral suspishion was, that he was changed by
the good people); but Judy was too saft-harted, an' too fond o' the
imp, so she wouldn't giv' into this plan neither, though iverybody
said she was wrong; and may be so she was, but it's a hard thing, you
know, to blame a mother. Well some advised one thing and some another,
at last one spoke of sindin fur the priest, who was a very holy an' a
very larned man, to see it; to this Judy uv ecorse had no objection,
but one thing or another always purvinted her doing so, an' the upshot
o' the business was that the priest niver seen him at all. Well,
things wint on in the ould way for some time longer. The brat
continued yelpin' an' yowlin', an' aitin' more nor his three brothers
put together, an' playin' all sorts uv unlucky thricks, for he was
mighty mischievyously inclined, till it happened one day that Tim
Carrol, the blind piper, goin' his rounds, called in and sot down by
the fire to hav' a bit o' chat wid the woman o' the house. So afther
some time, Tim, who was no churl uv his music, yoked an the pipes an'
begun to bellows away in high style; whin the instant minnit he begun,
the young fellow, who was lyin' as still as a mouse in his cradle, sot
up, an' begun to grin an' to twist his ugly phiz, an' to swing about
his long tawny arms, an' to kick out his crucked ligs, an' to show
signs o' grate glee at the music. At last nothin' id sarve him but he
must git the pipes into his own hands, an', to humour him, his mother
axt Tim to lind thim to the child for a minnit. Tim, who was kind to
childher, readily consinted; and, as Tim hadn't his sight, Judy
herself brought thim to the cradle, an' wint to put thim an him, but
she had no need, for the youth seemed quite up to the business. He
buckled an the pipes, set the bellows undher one arm and the bag
undher th' other, an' worked thim both as knowingly as iv he was
twinty years at the thrade, an' lilted up "Sheela na Guira," in the
finest style that iver was hard.

Well, all was in amazemint; the poor woman crast herself. Tim, who, as
I tould you afore, was dark an' didn't well know who was playin,' was
in grate delight; an' whin he hard that it was a little
_prechaun_,[601] not aight years ould, that nivir seen a set of pipes
in all his days afore, he wished the mother joy iv her son; offered to
take him aff her han's iv she'd part wid him, swore he was a born
piper, a nath'ral jainus, an' declared that in a little time more, wid
the help uv a little good tachein' frum himsilf, there wouldn't be his
match in the whole counthry round. The poor woman was grately
delighted to hear all this, particklarly as what Tim sed about
nath'ral jainises put an ind to some misgivin's that war risin' in hur
mind, laist what the naybours sed about his not bein' right might be
only too thrue; an' it gratified hur too to think that her dear child
(for she raely loved the whelp) wouldn't be forced to turn out an'
big, but might airn dacent, honest bread fur himsilf. So whin Miek
come home in the evenin' frum his work, she up an' she tould him all
that happined, an' all that Tim Carrol sed; an Mick, as was nath'ral,
was very glad to hear it, for the helpless condition o' the poor
crather was a grate throuble to him; so nixt fair-day he tuk the pig
to the fair of Naas, and wid what it brought he whipt up, the nixt
holiday that come, to Dublin, an' bespoke a bran new set o' pipes o'
the proper size fur him, an' the nixt time Tom Doolan wint up wid the
cars, in about a fortnight after, the pipes come home, an' the minnit
the chap in the cradle laid eyes on thim, he squealed wid delight, an'
threw up his purty legs, an' bumped himsilf in his cradle, an' wint an
wid a grate many comical thricks; till at last, to quite him, they gev
him the pipes, an' immajetly he set to an' pulled away at "Jig
Polthog," to th' admirashin uv all that hard him.

Well, the fame uv his skill an the pipes soon spread far an' near, for
there wasn't a piper in the nixt three counties cud come near him at
all, in Ould Maudha Roo, or the Hare in the Corn, or The Fox Hunther's
Jig, or The Piper's Maggot, or any uv the fine ould Irish jigs, that
make people dance whether they will or no: an' it was surprisin' to hear
him rattle away The Fox Hunt; you'd raaly think you hard the hounds
givin' tongue, an' the tarriers yelpin' always behind, an' the huntsman
an' the whippers-in cheerin' or correctin' the dogs; it was, in short,
the very nixt thing to seein' the hunt itself. The best uv him was, he
was no way stingy uv his music, an' many's the merry dance the boys an'
the girls o' the neighbourhood used to hav' in his father's cabin; an'
he'd play up music fur thim that, they sed, used, as it wor, to put
quicksilver in their feet; an' they all declared they nivir moved so
light an' so airy to any piper's playin' that ivir they danced to.

But besides all his fine Irish music, he had one quare chune uv his own,
the oddest that iver was hard; fur the minnit he begun to play it
iverything in the house seemed disposed to dance; the plates an'
porringers used to jingle an the dhresser, the pots an' pot-hooks used
to rattle in the chimbley, an' people used even to fancy they felt the
stools movin' frum undher thim; but, howiver it might be wid the stools,
it is sartin that no one cud keep long sittin' an them, fur both ould
and young always fell to caperin' as hard as ivir they cud. The girls
complained that whin he begun this chune it always threw thim out in
their dancin', an' that they nivir cud handle their feet rightly, fur
they felt the flure like ice undher thim, an' thimsilves ready iviry
minnit to come sprawlin' an their backs or their faces; the young
bachelors that wanted to show aff their dancin' an' their new pumps, an'
their bright red or green an' yellow garthers, swore that it confused
thim so that they cud nivir go rightly through the heel-and-toe, or
cover-the-buckle, or any uv their best steps, but felt thimsilves always
bedizzied an' bewildhered, au' thin ould an' young id go jostlin' an'
knockin' together in a frightful manner an' whin the anlooky brat had
thim all in this way whirligiggin' about the flure, he'd grin an' he'd
chuckle an' he'd chather, jist fur all the world like Jocko, the monkey,
whin he's played off sum uv his roguery.[602]

The oulder he grew the worse he grew, an' by the time he was noine
year ould there was no stannin' the house for him; he was always
makin' his brothers burn or scald thimsilves, or brake their shins
ovir the pots an' stools. One time in harvist, he was left at home by
himself, an' whin his mother come in she found the cat a-horseback on
the dog wid hur face to the tail, an' hur legs tied round him, an' the
urchin playin' his quare chune to thim, so that the dog wint barking
an jumpin' about, an' puss was miowin' fur the dear life, an' slappin'
her tail backwards an' forwards, which whin it id hit agin the dog's
chaps, he'd snap at it an' bite it, an' thin there was the philliloo.
Another time the farmer Mick worked wid, a mighty dacint kind uv a
man, happened to call in, an' Judy wiped a stool wid her apron an'
axed him to sit down an rest himself afther his walk. He was sittin'
wid his back to the cradle, an' behind him was a pan o' blood, fur
Judy was makin' hog's puddin's; the lad lay quite still in his nist,
an' watched his opportunity till he got ready a hook at the ind uv a
piece o' packthread an' he conthrived to fling it so handy that it
cotcht in the bob o' the man's nice new wig, an' soused it in the pan
o' blood. Another time his mother was comin' in from milkin' the cow,
wid the pail an her head, an' the very minnit he saw her, he lilted up
his infernal chune, an' the poor woman lettin' go the pail, clapped
her hands aside an' begun to dance a jig, an' tumbled the milk all
atop uv her husband, who was bringin' in some turf to bile the supper.
In short there id be no ind to tellin' all his pranks, an' all the
mischievyous tricks he played.

Soon afther, some mischances begun to happen to the farmer's cattle; a
horse tuk the staggers, a fine vale calf died o' the black-lig, an' some
uv his sheep o' the rid wather; the cows begun to grow vicious, an' to
kick down the milkpails, an' the roof o' one ind o' the barn fell in;
an' the farmer tuk it into his head that Mick Flannagan's onlooky child
was the cause uv all the mischief. So, one day, he called Mick aside,
an' sed to him, "Mick," sez he, "you see things are not goin' on wid me
as they ought to go; an' to be plain an' honest wid you, Mick, I think
that child o' yours is the cause uv it. I am raaly fallin' away to
nothin', wid frettin', an' I can hardly sleep an my bed at night for
thinkin' o' what may happen afore the mornin'. So I'd be glad af you'd
luk out fur work somewhare else; you're as good a man as any in the
whole counthry, there's no denyin' it, an' there's no fear but you'll
have yer choice o' work." To this Mick med answer, and sed, "that he was
sorry indeed for his losses, and still sorrier that he or his shud be
thought to be the cause o' thim; that, for his own part, he wasn't quite
aisy in his mind about that child, but he had him, an' so he must keep
him;" an' he promised to luk out fur another place immajetly.

So nixt Sunday at chapil, Mick gev out that he was about lavin' the
work at John Riordan's, an' immajetly a farmer, who lived a couple o'
miles aff, an' who wanted a ploughman (the last one havin' jist left
him), come up to Mick, an' offered him a house an' garden, an' work
all the year round. Mick, who knew him to be a good employer,
immajetly closed wid him. So it was agreed that the farmer shud sind
his car to take his little bit o' furniture, an' that he shud remove
an the following Thursday.

Whin Thursday come, the car come accordin' to promise, an' Mick loaded
it, an' put the cradle wid the child an' his pipes an the top, an' Judy
sat beside it to take care uv him, laste he shud tumble out an' be kilt;
they druv the cow afore thim, the dog follied; but the cat, uv coorse,
was lift behind: an' the other three childer wint along the road,
pickin' haves and blackberries; for it was a fine day towst the latther
ind uv harvist. They had to crass a river; but as it run through the
bottom between two high banks, you didn't see it till you wor close up
an it. The young fellow was lyin' purty quite in the bottom o' the
cradle, till they come to the head o' the bridge, whin hearin' the
roarin' o' the wather (for there was a grate flood in the river, as
there was heavy rain for the last two or three days), he sot up in his
cradle, an' luked about him; an' the minnit he got a sight ov the
wather, an' found they wor goin' to take him acrass it, oh! how he did
bellow, an' how he did squeal. "Whisht, alanna," sed Judy, "there's no
fear o' yer; shure it's only ovir the stone bridge we're goin'." "Bad
luck to yer, ye ould rip," sez he, "what a purty thrick yuv played me,
to bring me here;" an' he still wint an yellin', and the farther they
got an the bridge, the loudher he yelled; till at last Mick cud hould
out no longer; so givin' him a skelp o' the whip he had in his han',
"Divil choke you, you crukked brat," sez he; "will you nivir stop
bawlin'? a body can't hear their ears for you." Well, my dear, the
instant minnit he felt the thong o' the whip, he jumped up in the
cradle, clapped the pipes undher his arm, an' lept clane ovir the
battlemints o' the bridge down into the wather. "Oh, my child! my
child!" shouted Judy; "he's clane gone for ivir frum me." Mick an' the
rest o' the childher run to the other side o' the bridge an' lukt down,
an' they seen him comin' out from undher the arch o' the bridge, sittin'
crass-liggs an the top uv a big white-headed wave, an' playin' away an
the pipes, jist as if nothin' had happened at all. The river was runnin'
very hard, so he was whirled away at a grate rate; but he played away as
fast, ay, and faster nor the river run. They set aff as hard as they cud
along the bank; but as the river med a suddint turn round the hill,
about a hundred yards below the bridge, by the time they got there he
was out o' sight, an' no one ivir led eyes an him sence; but the gineral
belief is, that he wint home wid the pipes to his own relations--the
good people--to make music fur thim.


                          _The Soul Cages._

Jack Dogherty lived on the coast of the county Clare. Jack was a
fisherman, as his father and his grandfather before him had been. Like
them, too, he lived all alone (but for the wife), and just in the same
spot, too. People used to wonder why the Dogherty family were so fond
of that wild situation, so far away from all human kind, and in the
midst of huge scattered rocks, with nothing but the wide ocean to look
upon. But they had their own good reasons for it.

The place was just, in short, the only spot on that part of the coast
where anybody could well live; there was a neat little creek, where a
boat might lie as snug as a puffin in her nest, and out from this
creek a ledge of sunken rocks ran into the sea. Now, when the
Atlantic, according to custom, was raging with a storm, and a good
westerly wind was blowing strong on the coast, many's the richly-laden
ship that went to pieces on these rocks; and then the fine bales of
cotton and tobacco, and such like things; and the pipes of wine, and
the puncheons of rum, and the casks of brandy, and the kegs of
Hollands that used to come ashore. Why, bless you! Dunbeg Bay was just
like a little estate to the Doghertys.

Not but that they were kind and humane to a distressed sailor, if ever
one had the good luck to get to land; and many a time, indeed, did
Jack put out in his little _corragh_, that would breast the billows
like any gannet, to lend a hand towards bringing off the crew from a
wreck. But when the ship was gone to pieces, and the crew were all
lost, who would blame Jack for _picking_ up all he could find? "And
who's the worse of it?" said he. "For as to the king, God bless him!
everybody knows he's rich enough already, without gettin' what's
floatin' in the say."

Jack, though such a hermit, was a good-natured, jolly fellow. No other,
sure, could ever have coaxed Biddy Mahony to quit her father's snug and
warm house in the middle of the town of Ennis, and to go so many miles
off to live among the rocks, with the seals and sea-gulls for her next
door neighbours. But Biddy knew what's what, and she knew that Jack was
the man for a woman who wished to be comfortable and happy; for, to say
nothing of the fish, Jack had the supplying of half the gentlemen's
houses of the country with the Godsends that came into the bay. And she
was right in her choice, for no woman ate, drank, or slept better, or
made a prouder appearance at Chapel on Sundays than Mrs. Dogherty.

Many a strange sight, it may well be supposed, did Jack see, and many
a strange sound did he hear, but nothing daunted him. So far was he
from being afraid of Merrows, or such like beings, that the very first
wish of his heart was fairly to meet with one. Jack had heard that
they were mighty like Christians, and that luck had always come out of
an acquaintance with them. Never, therefore, did he dimly discern the
Merrows moving along the face of the waters in their robes of mist,
but he made direct for them; and many a scolding did Biddy, in her own
quiet way, bestow upon Jack for spending his whole day out at sea, and
bringing home no fish. Little did poor Biddy know the fish Jack was
after.

It was rather annoying to Jack that, though living in a place where
the Merrows were as plenty as lobsters, he never could get a right
view of one. What vexed him more was, that both his father and
grandfather had often and often seen them; and he even remembered
hearing, when a child, how his grandfather, who was the first of the
family that had settled down at the Creek, had been so intimate with a
Merrow, that, only for fear of vexing the priest, he would have had
him stand for one of his children. This, however, Jack did not well
know how to believe.

Fortune at length began to think that it was only right that Jack
should know as much as his father and grandfather knew. Accordingly,
one day, when he had strolled a little farther than usual along the
coast to the northward, just as he was turning a point, he saw
something, like to nothing he had ever seen before, perched upon a
rock at a little distance out to sea: it looked green in the body, as
well as he could discern at that distance, and he would have sworn,
only the thing was impossible, that it had a cocked hat in his hand.
Jack stood, for a good half hour, straining his eyes and wondering at
it, and all the time the thing did not stir hand or foot. At last
Jack's patience was quite worn out, and he gave a loud whistle and a
hail, when the Merrow (for such it was) started up, put the cocked hat
on its head, and dived down, head foremost, from the rock.

Jack's curiosity was now excited, and he constantly directed his steps
toward the point; still he could never get a glimpse of the
sea-gentleman with the cocked hat; and with thinking and thinking about
the matter, he began at last to fancy he had been only dreaming. One
very rough day, however, when the sea was running mountains high, Jack
determined to give a look at the Merrow's rock, (for he had always
chosen a fine day before,) and then he saw the strange thing cutting
capers upon the top of the rock, and then diving down, and then coming
up, and then diving down again. Jack had now only to choose his time,
(that is, a good blowing day,) and he might see the man of the sea as
often as he pleased. All this, however, did not satisfy him,--"much will
have more;"--he wished now to get acquainted with the Merrow, and even
in this he succeeded. One tremendous blustery day, before he got to the
point whence he had a view of the Merrow's rock, the storm came on so
furiously that Jack was obliged to take shelter in one of the caves
which are so numerous along the coast, and there, to his astonishment,
he saw, sitting before him, a thing with green hair, long green teeth, a
red nose, and pig's eyes. It had a fish's tail, legs with scales on
them, and short arms like fins. It wore no clothes, but had the cocked
hat under its arm, and seemed engaged thinking very seriously about
something. Jack, with all his courage, was a little daunted; but now or
never, thought he; so up he went boldly to the cogitating fish-man, took
off his hat, and made his best bow.

"Your sarvint, sir," said Jack.--"Your servant, kindly, Jack Dogherty,"
answered the Merrow.--"To be shure, thin, how well your honour knows my
name," said Jack.--"Is it I not know your name, Jack Dogherty? Why, man,
I knew your grandfather long before he was married to Judy Regan, your
grandmother. Ah, Jack, Jack, I was fond of that grandfather of yours; he
was a mighty worthy man in his time. I never met his match above or
below, before or since, for sucking in a shellful of brandy. I hope, my
boy," said the old fellow, "I hope you're his own grandson."--"Never
fear me for that," said Jack; "if my mother only reared me on brandy,
'tis myself that 'ud be a suckin infant to this hour."--"Well, I like to
hear you talk so manly; you and I must be better acquainted, if it were
only for your grandfather's sake. But, Jack, that father of yours was
not the thing; he had no head at all, not he."--"I'm shure," said Jack,
"sense your honour lives down undher the wather, you must be obleeged to
dhrink a power to keep any hate in you, at all at all, in such a cruel,
damp, cowld place. Well, I often hard of Christhens dhrinkin' like
fishes;--and might I be so bould as to ax where you get the
sperits?"--"Where do you get them yourself, Jack?" said the Merrow, with
a knowing look.--"Hubbubboo," cries Jack, "now I see how it is; but I
suppose, sir, your honour has got a fine dhry cellar below to keep them
in."--"Let me alone for that," said the Merrow, with another knowing
look.--"I'm shure," continued Jack, "it must be mighty well worth the
luking at."--"You may say that, Jack, with your own pretty mouth," said
the Merrow; "and if you meet me here next Monday, just at this time of
the day, we will have a little more talk with one another about the
matter."

Jack and the Merrow parted the best friends in the world; and on
Monday they met, and Jack was not a little surprised to see that the
Merrow had two cocked hats with him, one under each arm. "Might I make
so bould as to ask you, sir," said Jack, "why yer honour brought the
two hats wid you to-day? You wouldn't, shure, be goin' to giv' me one
o' them, to keep for the curosity of the thing?"--"No, no, Jack," said
he, "I don't get my hats so easily, to part with them that way; but I
want you to come down and eat a bit of dinner with me, and I brought
you the hat to dive with."--"The Lord bless and presarve us!" cried
Jack, in amazement, "would you want me to go down to the bottom of the
salt say ocean? Shure I'd be smoothered and choked up wid the wather,
to say nothin' of bein' dhrownded! And what would poor Biddy do for
me, and what would she say?"--"And what matter what she says, you
pinkeen you? Who cares for Biddy's squalling? It's long before your
grandfather would have talked in that way. Many's the time he stuck
that same hat on his head, and dived down boldly after me, and many's
the snug bit of dinner, and good shellful of brandy, he and I had
together, below under the water."--"Is it raally, sir, and no joke?"
said Jack; "why, thin, sorra' be from me for ivir and a day afther, if
I'll be a bit a worse man nor my grandfather was! So here goes; but
play me fair now. Here's nick or nothin'!" cried Jack.--"That's your
grandfather all over," said the old fellow. "So come along, my boy,
and do as I do."

They both left the cave, walked into the sea, and then swam a piece
until they got to the rock. The Merrow climbed to the top of it, and
Jack followed him. On the far side it was as straight as the wall of a
house, and the sea looked so deep that Jack was almost cowed.

"Now, do you see, Jack," said the Merrow, "just put this hat on your
head, and mind to keep your eyes wide open. Take hold of my tail, and
follow after me, and you'll see what you'll see." In he dashed, and in
dashed Jack after him boldly. They went and they went, and Jack
thought they'd never stop going. Many a time did he wish himself
sitting at home by the fireside with Biddy; yet, where was the use of
wishing now, when he was so many miles as he thought below the waves
of the Atlantic? Still he held hard by the Merrow's tail, slippery as
it was. And, at last, to Jack's great surprise, they got out of the
water, and he actually found himself on dry land at the bottom of the
sea. They landed just in front of a nice little house that was slated
very neatly with oyster-shells; and the Merrow, turning about to Jack,
welcomed him down. Jack could hardly speak, what with wonder, and what
with being out of breath with travelling so fast through the water. He
looked about him, and could see no living things, barring crabs and
lobsters, of which there were plenty walking leisurely about on the
sand. Overhead was the sea like a sky, and the fishes like birds
swimming about in it.

"Why don't you speak, man?" said the Merrow: "I dare say you had no
notion that I had such a snug little concern as this? Are you
smothered, or choked, or drowned, or are you fretting after Biddy,
eh?" "Oh! not mysilf, indeed," said Jack, showing his teeth with a
good-humoured grin, "but who in the world 'ud ivir ha' thought uv
seein' sich a thing?" "Well, come along my lad, and let's see what
they've got for us to eat?"

Jack was really hungry, and it gave him no small pleasure to perceive a
fine column of smoke rising from the chimney, announcing what was going
on within. Into the house he followed the Merrow, and there he saw a
good kitchen, right well provided with everything. There was a noble
dresser, and plenty of pots and pans, with two young Merrows cooking.
His host then led him into the _room_, which was furnished shabbily
enough. Not a table or a chair was there in it; nothing but planks and
logs of wood to sit on, and eat off. There was, however, a good fire
blazing on the hearth--a comfortable sight to Jack. "Come, now, and I'll
show you where I keep--you know what," said the Merrow, with a sly look;
and opening a little door, he led Jack into a fine long cellar, well
filled with pipes, and kegs, and hogsheads, and barrels. "What do you
say to that, Jack Dogherty?--Eh!--May-be a body can't live snug down
under the water!" "The divil the doubt of that," said Jack, "anyhow."

They went back to the room, and found dinner laid. There was no
table-cloth, to be sure--but what matter? It was not always Jack had
one at home. The dinner would have been no discredit to the first
house in the county on a fast-day. The choicest of fish, and no
wonder, was there. Turbots, and soles, and lobsters, and oysters, and
twenty other kinds, were on the planks at once, and plenty of foreign
spirits. The wines, the old fellow said, were too cold for his
stomach. Jack ate and drank till he could eat no more: then, taking up
a shell of brandy, "Here's to your honour's good health, sir," said
he, "though beggin' your pardon, its mighty odd, that as long as we're
acquainted, I don't know your name yit." "That's true, Jack," replied
he; "I never thought of it before, but better late than never. My name
is Coomara." "Coomara! And a mighty dacint sort of a name it is, too,"
cried Jack, taking another shellful: "here's, then, to your good
health, Coomara, and may you live these fifty years." "Fifty years!"
repeated Coomara; "I'm obliged to you, indeed; if you had said five
hundred, it would have been something worth wishing." "By the laws,
sir," said Jack, "yez live to a powerful great age here undher the
wather! Ye knew my grandfather, and he's dead and gone betther nor
sixty years. I'm shure it must be a mighty healthy place to live in."
"No doubt of it; but come, Jack, keep the liquor stirring."

Shell after shell did they empty, and to Jack's exceeding surprise, he
found the drink never got into his head, owing, I suppose, to the sea
being over them, which kept their noddles cool. Old Coomara got
exceedingly comfortable, and sang several songs; but Jack, if his life
had depended on it, never could remember any of them. At length said
he to Jack, "Now, my dear boy, if you follow me, I'll show you my
curosities!" He opened a little door, and led Jack into a large room,
where Jack saw a great many odds and ends that Coomara had picked up
at one time or another. What chiefly took his attention, however, were
things like lobster-pots, ranged on the ground along the wall.

"Well, Jack, how do you like my curosities?" said old Coo. "Upon my
sowkins, sir," said Jack, "they're mighty well worth the lukin' at;
but might a body make so bould as to ax what thim things like
lobster-pots are?" "Oh, the soul-cages, is it?" "The what, sir?"
"These things here that I keep the souls in." "Arrah! what sowls,
sir?" said Jack in amazement: "shure the fish ha' got no sowls in
them?" "Oh, no," replied Coo, quite coolly, "that they haven't; but
these are the souls of drowned sailors." "The Lord presarve us from
all harm!" muttered Jack, "how in the world did you conthrive to get
thim?" "Easily enough. I've only when I see a good storm coming on, to
set a couple of dozen of these, and then, when the sailors are
drowned, and the souls get out of them under the water, the poor
things are almost perished to death, not being used to the cold; so
they make into my pots for shelter, and then I have them snug, and
fetch them home, and keep them here dry and warm; and is it not well
for them, poor souls, to get into such good quarters?"

Jack was so thunderstruck he did not know what to say, so he said
nothing. They went back into the dining-room, and had some more
brandy, which was excellent, and then, as Jack knew that it must be
getting late, and as Biddy might be uneasy, he stood up, and said he
thought it was time for him to be on the road.

"Just as you like, Jack," said Coo, "but take a _doch an durrus_ before
you go; you've a cold journey before you." Jack knew better manners than
to refuse the parting glass. "I wondher" said he, "will I ivir be able
to make out my way home." "What should ail you," said Coo, "when I show
you the way?" Out they went before the house, and Coomara took one of
the cocked hats, and put it on Jack's head the wrong way, and then
lifted him up on his shoulder that he might launch him up into the
water. "Now," says he, giving him a heave, "you'll come up just in the
same spot you came down in; and, Jack, mind and throw me back the hat."
He canted Jack off his shoulder, and up he shot like a bubble--whirr,
whirr, whiz--away he went up through the water, till he came to the very
rock he had jumped off, where he found a landing-place, and then in he
threw the hat, which sunk like a stone.

The sun was just going down in the beautiful sky of a calm summer's
evening. The evening star was seen brightly twinkling in the cloudless
heaven, and the waves of the Atlantic flashed in a golden flood of
light. So Jack, perceiving it was getting late, set off home; but when
he got there, not a word did he say to Biddy of where he had spent his
day.

The state of the poor souls cooped up in the lobster-pots, gave Jack a
great deal of trouble, and how to release them cost him a great deal
of thought. He at first had a mind to speak to the priest about the
matter; but what could the priest do, and what did Coo care for the
priest? Besides, Coo was a good sort of an old fellow, and did not
think he was doing any harm. Jack had a regard for him too, and it
also might not be much to his own credit if it were known that he used
to go dine with the Merrows under the sea. On the whole, he thought
his best plan would be to ask Coo to dinner, and to make him drunk, if
he was able, and then to take the hat and go down and turn up the
pots. It was first of all necessary, however, to get Biddy out of the
way; for Jack was prudent enough, as she was a woman, to wish to keep
the thing secret from her.

Accordingly, Jack grew mighty pious all of a sudden, and said to
Biddy, that he thought it would be for the good of both their souls if
she was to go and take her rounds at Saint John's Well, near Ennis.
Biddy thought so too, and accordingly off she set one fine morning at
day dawn, giving Jack a strict charge to have an eye to the place. The
coast being clear, away then went Jack to the rock to give the
appointed signal to Coomara, which was, throwing a big stone into the
water; Jack threw, and up sprang Coo. "Good morrow, Jack," said he;
"what do you want with me?" "Jist nothin' at all to spake about, sir,"
replied Jack; "only to come and take pot-luck wid me, now that Biddy's
out of the way; if I might make so free as to ax you, an' shure it's
myself that's afther doin' so." "It's quite agreeable, Jack, I assure
you; what's your hour?" "Any time that's most convenient to yoursilf,
sir: say one o'clock, that you may go home, if you wish it, wid the
daylight." "I'll be with you," said Coo, "never fear me."

Jack went home and dressed a noble fish dinner, and got out plenty of
his best foreign spirits, enough for that matter to make twenty men
drunk. Just to the minute came Coo, with his cocked hat under his arm.
Dinner was ready; they sat down, and ate and drank manfully. Jack
thinking of the poor souls below in the pots, plied old Coo well with
brandy, and encouraged him to sing, hoping to put him under the table,
but poor Jack forgot that he had not the sea over his own head now to
keep it cool. The brandy got into it and did his business for him, and
Coo reeled off home, leaving his entertainer as dumb as a haddock on a
Good Friday.

Jack never woke till the next morning, and then he was in a sad way.
"'Tis no use at all for me thinkin' to make that ould Rapperee dhrunk,"
said Jack; "an' how in this world can I help the poor sowls out o' the
lobster pots." After ruminating nearly the whole day, a thought struck
him. "I have it," said he, slapping his thigh; "I'll be bail Coo nivir
saw a dhrop o' raal potyeen as ould as he is, an' that's the thing to
settle him! Och! thin isn't it well that Biddy won't be home these two
days yit; I can have another twist at him." Jack asked Coo again, and
Coo laughed at him for having no better head; telling him, he'd never
come up to his grandfather. "Well, but thry me agin," said Jack, "and
I'll be bail to dhrink you dhrunk and sober, and dhrunk agin."--"Any
thing in my power," said Coo, "to oblige you."

All this dinner, Jack took care to have his own liquor watered, and to
give the strongest brandy he had to Coo. At last, says he, "Pray, sir,
did you ivir dhrink any potyeen? any raal mountain-jew?"--"No," says
Coo; "what's that, and where does it come from?"--"Oh! that's a sacret,"
said Jack, "but it's the right stuff; nivir believe me agin if it isn't
fifty times better nor brandy or rum either. Biddy's brother jist sint
me a prisent of a little dhrop, in exchange for some brandy, and as
you're an ould frind o' the family, I kep it to thrate you wid."--"Well,
let's see what sort of thing it is," said Coo.

The potyeen was the right sort. It was first-rate, and had the real
smack on it. Coo was delighted with it; he drank and he sang, and he
laughed and he danced, till he fell on the floor fas' asleep. Then Jack,
who had taken good care to keep himself sober, snapt up the cocked hat,
ran off to the rock, leaped in, and soon arrived at Coo's habitation.

All was as still as a churchyard at midnight--not a Merrow young or
old, was there. In he went and turned up the pots, but nothing did he
see, only he heard, he thought, a sort of a little whistle or chirp as
he raised each of them. At this he was surprised, till he recollected
what the priest had often said, that nobody living could see the soul,
no more than they could see the wind or the air. Having now done all
he could do for them he set the pots as they were before, and sent a
blessing after the poor souls to speed them on their journey wherever
they were going. He now began to think of returning; he put on the hat
(as was right,) the wrong way; but when he got out, he found the water
so high over his head that he had no hopes of ever getting up into it
now that he had not old Coomara to give him a lift. He walked about
looking for a ladder, but not one could he find, and not a rock was
there in sight. At last he saw a spot where the sea hung rather lower
than anywhere else, so he resolved to try there. Just as he came to
it, a big cod happened to put down his tail. Jack made a jump and
caught hold of it, and the cod, all in amazement, gave a bounce and
pulled Jack up. The minute the hat touched the water, pop away Jack
was whisked; and up he shot like a cork, dragging the poor cod, that
he forgot to let go, up with him tail foremost. He got to the rock in
no time, and without a moment's delay hurried home rejoicing in the
good deed he had done. But, meanwhile, there was fine work at home;
for our friend Jack had hardly left the house on his soul-freeing
expedition, when back came Biddy from her soul-saving one to the well.
When she entered the house and saw the things lying _thrie-na heelah_
on the table before her--"Here's a purty job," said she, "that
blackguard of mine--what ill-luck I had ivir to marry him--he's picked
up some vagabone or other, while I was prayin' for the good of his
sowl; and they've bin dhrinkin' up all the potyeen that my own brother
gev' him, and all the sperits, to be shure, that he was to have sould
to his honour." Then hearing an outlandish kind of grunt, she looked
down and saw Coomara lying under the table. "The blessed Vargin help
an' save me," shouted she, "if he hasn't made a rael baste of himself.
Well, well, well to be shure, I often hard till of a man makin' a
baste of himself wid dhrink, but I niver saw it afore! Oh hone, oh
hone,--Jack, honey, what 'ill I do wid you, or what 'ill I do widout
you? How can any dacint woman ivir think of livin' wid a baste?"

With such like lamentations, Biddy rushed out of the house, and was
going, she knew not where, when she heard the well known voice of
Jack, singing a merry tune. Glad enough was Biddy to find him safe and
sound, and not turned into a thing that was like neither fish nor
flesh. Jack was obliged to tell her all; and Biddy, though she had
half a mind to be angry with him for not telling her before, owned
that he had done a great service to the poor souls. Back they both
went most lovingly to the house, and Jack wakened up Coomara; and
perceiving the old fellow to be rather dull, he bid him not be cast
down, for 'twas many a good man's case; said it all came of his not
being used to the potyeen, and recommended him, by way of cure, to
swallow a hair of the dog that bit him. Coo, however, seemed to think
he had had quite enough: he got up, quite out of sorts, and without
having the good manners to say one word in the way of civility, he
sneaked off to cool himself by a jaunt through the salt water.

Coomara never missed the souls. He and Jack continued the best friends
in the world; and no one, perhaps, ever equalled Jack at freeing souls
from purgatory; for he contrived fifty excuses for getting into the
house below the sea, unknown to the old fellow; and then turned up the
pots, and let out the souls. It vexed him, to be sure, that he could
never see them; but as he knew the thing to be impossible, he was
obliged to be satisfied. Their intercourse continued for several
years. However, one morning, on Jack's throwing in a stone, as usual,
he got no answer. He flung another, and another; still there was no
reply. He went away, and returned the next morning; but it was to no
purpose. As he was without the hat, he could not go down to see what
had become of old Coo; but his belief was, that the old man, or the
old fish, or whatever he was, had either died, or had removed away
from that part of the country.[603]


                      _Barry of Cairn Thierna._

Fermoy, though now so pretty and so clean a town, was once as poor and
as dirty a village as any in Ireland. It had neither barracks, nor
church, nor school, nor anything to admire. Two-storied houses were
but few: its street (for it had but one) was chiefly formed of
miserable mud cabins; nor was the fine scenery around sufficient to
induce the traveller to tarry in its paltry, dirty inn, beyond the
limits actually required.

In those days it happened that a regiment of foot was proceeding from
Dublin to Cork. One company, which left Caher in the morning, had,
with 'toilsome march,' passed through Mitchelstown, tramped across the
Kilworth mountains; and, late of an October evening, tired and hungry,
reached Fermoy, the last stage but one to their quarters. No barracks,
as we have said, were then built there to relieve them; and every
voice was raised, calling to the gaping villagers for the name and
residence of the billet-master.

"Why, thin, can't ye be aisy, now, and let a body tell you," said one.
"Shure, thin, how can I answer you all at onst," said another. "Anan!"
cried a third, affecting not to understand the sergeant, who addressed
him. "Is it Mr. Consadine you want?" replied a fourth, answering, _à l'
Irlandaise_, the question, by asking another. "Bad luck to the whole
breed and seed of the sogers!" muttered a fifth villager, between his
teeth. "It's come to ate poor people that work for their bread, out of
house and home, yez are?" "Whisht, Teigue, can't you, now?" said his
neighbour, jogging the last speaker; "there's the house, gintlemen. You
see it there, yondher, forenint you, at the bottom of the sthreet, wid
the light in the winddy; or, stay, shure it's mysilf id think little of
runnin' down wid you, poor crathurs! for 'tis tirt and wairy yez must be
afther the road."--"That's an honest fellow," said several of the
dust-covered soldiers; and away scampered Ned Flynn, with all the men of
war following close at his heels.

Mr. Consadine, the billet-master, was, as may be supposed, a person of
some, and on such occasions as the present, of no small consideration
in such a place as Fermoy. He was of a portly build, and of a grave
and slow movement, suited at once to his importance and to his size.
Three inches of fair linen were at all times visible between his
waistband and waistcoat. His breeches-pockets were never buttoned;
and, scorning to conceal the bull-like proportions of his chest and
neck, his shirt-collar was generally open, as he wore no cravat; and a
flaxen bob-wig commonly sat fairly on his head, and squarely on his
forehead. Such, then, was Mr. Consadine, billet-master-general and
barony sub-constable, who was now just getting to the end of his
eighth tumbler, in company with the proctor, who at that moment had
begun to talk of coming to something like a fair settlement about his
tithes, when Ned Flynn knocked.

"See who's at the door, Nilly," said the eldest Miss Consadine, raising
her voice, and calling to the barefooted servant girl. "'Tis the sogers,
sir, is come!" cried Nelly, running back into the room without opening
the door. "I hear the jinketin of their swoords and bagnets on the
pavin'-stones."--"Divil welcome them at this hour o' the night," said
Mr. Consadine, taking up the candle, and moving off to the room on the
opposite side of the hall, which served him for an office.

Mr. Consadine's own pen, and that of his son Tom were now in full
employment. The officers were sent to the inn; the sergeants,
corporals, etc., were billeted on those who were on indifferent terms
with Mr. Consadine; for, like a worthy man as he was, he leaned as
light as he could on his friends. The soldiers had nearly all departed
for their quarters, when one poor fellow, who had fallen asleep,
leaning on his musket against the wall, was awakened by the silence,
and starting up, he went over to the table at which Mr. Consadine was
seated, hoping his worship would give him a good billet. "A good
billet, my lad," said the billet-master-general, "that you shall have,
and on the biggest house in the whole place. Do you hear, Tom! make
out a billet for this honest man upon Mr. Barry of Cairn Thierna." "On
Mr. Barry of Cairn Thierna!" said Tom, with a look of amazement. "Yes,
to be sure, on Mr. Barry of Cairn Thierna--the great Barry!" replied
his father, giving a nod. "Isn't he said to keep the grandest house in
this part of the counthry?--or stay, Tom, jist hand me over the paper,
and I'll write the billet myself."

The billet was made out accordingly; the sand glittered on the
signature and broad flourishes of Mr. Consadine, and the weary
grenadier received it with becoming gratitude and thanks. Taking up
his knapsack and firelock, he left the office, and Mr. Consadine
waddled back to the proctor to chuckle over the trick he had played on
the soldier, and to laugh at the idea of his search after Barry of
Cairn Thierna's house. Truly had he said no house could vie in
capacity with Mr. Barry's; for like Allan A-Dale's, its roof was

      The blue vault of Heaven, with its crescent so pale.

Barry of Cairn Thierna was one of the chieftains who, of old, lorded
it over the barony of Barrymore, and for some reason or other, he had
become enchanted on the mountain of Cairn Thierna, where he was known
to live in great state, and was often seen by the belated peasant.

Mr. Consadine had informed the soldier that Mr. Barry lived a little way
out of the town, on the Cork road; so the poor fellow trudged along for
some time with eyes right and eyes left, looking for the great house;
but nothing could he see only the dark mountain of Cairn Thierna before
him, and an odd cabin or two on the road-side. At last he met a man, of
whom he asked the way to Mr. Barry's. "To Mr. Barry's?" said the man;
"what Barry is it you want?" "I can't say exactly in the dark," returned
the soldier. "Mr. What's-his-name, the billet-master, has given me the
direction on my billet; but he said it was a large house, and I think he
called him the great Mr. Barry." "Why, sure, it wouldn't be the great
Barry of Cairn Thierna you're asking after?" "Aye," said the soldier,
"Cairn Thierna--that's the place. Can you tell me where it is?" "Cairn
Thierna!" repeated the man--"Barry of Cairn Thierna! I'll show you the
way, and welcome; but it's the first time in all my born days that ever
I h'ard of a soger bein' billeted on Barry of Cairn Thierna. 'Tis a
quare thing, anyhow, for ould Dick Consadin to be sindin' you up there,"
continued he; "but you see that big mountain before you--that's Cairn
Thierna. Any one will show you Mr. Barry's when you get to the top of
it, up to the big hape of stones."

The weary soldier gave a sigh as he walked forwards toward the
mountain; but he had not proceeded far when he heard the clatter of a
horse coming along the road after him, and, turning his head round, he
saw a dark figure rapidly approaching. A tall gentleman, richly
dressed, and mounted on a noble gray horse, was soon at his side, when
the rider pulled up, and the soldier repeated his inquiry after Mr.
Barry of Cairn Thierna. "Why, I'm Barry of Cairn Thierna, myself,"
said the gentleman, "and pray what's your business with me, friend."
"I have got a billet on your house, sir," replied the soldier, "from
the billet-master of Fermoy." "Did you, indeed," said Mr. Barry;
"well, then, it is not very far off; follow me and you shall be well
taken care of, depend upon it."

He turned off the road, and led his horse up the steep side of the
mountain, followed by the soldier, who was astonished at seeing the
horse proceed with so little difficulty, where _he_ was obliged to
scramble up, and could hardly find or keep his footing. When they got
to the top, there was a house, sure enough, far beyond any house in
Fermoy. It was three stories high, with fine windows, and all lighted
up within, as if it was full of grand company. There was a hall-door,
too, with a flight of stone steps before it, at which Mr. Barry
dismounted, and the door was opened to him by a servant-man, who took
his horse round to the stable. Mr. Barry, as he stood at the door,
desired the soldier to walk in, and, instead of sending him down to
the kitchen, as any other gentleman would have done, brought him into
the parlour, and desired to see his billet. "Ay," said Mr. Barry,
looking at it and smiling, "I know Dick Consadine well--he's a merry
fellow, no doubt, and, if I mistake not, has got some capital good
cows down on the inch-field of Carrickabrick; a sirloin of beef would
be no bad thing for supper, my man, eh?"

Mr. Barry then called out to some of his attendants, and desired them
to lay the cloth, and make all ready, which was no sooner done than a
smoking sirloin of beef was placed before them. "Sit down, now, my
honest fellow," said Mr. Barry, "you must be hungry after your long
day's march." The soldier with a profusion of thanks for such
hospitality, and acknowledgments for such condescension, sat down and
made, as might be expected, an excellent supper; Mr. Barry never
letting his jaws rest for want of helping until he was fairly unable
to eat more. Then the boiling water was brought in, and such a jug of
whiskey punch as was made! Take my word for it,--it did not, like
honest Robin Craig's, require to be hung out on the bush to let the
water drain out of it.

They sat together a long time, talking over the punch, and the fire
was so good, and Mr. Barry himself was so free a gentleman, and had
such fine conversation about everything in the world, far or near,
that the soldier never felt the night going over him. At last Mr.
Barry stood up, saying it was a rule with him that every one in his
house should be in bed by twelve o'clock, "And," said he, pointing to
a bundle which lay in one corner of the room, "take that to bed with
you, it's the hide of the cow I had killed for your supper; give it to
the billet-master when you go back to Fermoy, in the morning, and tell
him that Barry of Cairn Thierna sent it to him. He will soon
understand what it means, I promise you; so, good night, my brave
fellow; I wish you a comfortable sleep and every good fortune; but I
must be off and away out of this long before you are stirring." The
soldier gratefully returned his host's good wishes, and went off to
the room which was shown him, without claiming, as every one knows he
had a right to do, the second best bed in the house.

Next morning the sun awoke him. He was lying on the broad of his back,
and the skylark was singing over him in the beautiful blue sky, and
the bee was humming close to his ear among the heath. He rubbed his
eyes; nothing did he see but the dear sky, with two or three light
morning clouds floating away. Mr. Barry's fine house and soft feather
bed had melted into air, and he found himself stretched on the side of
Cairn Thierna, buried in the heath, with the cowhide which had been
given him, rolled up under his head for a pillow.[604]

"Well," said he, "this bates cockfighting, any how! Didn't I spind the
plisantest night I iver spint in my life with Mr. Barry last night?
And what in the world has becom' of the house, and the hall door with
the steps, and the very bed that was undher me?" He stood up. Not a
vestige of a house or any thing like one, but the rude heap of stones
on the top of the mountain, could he see; and ever so far off lay the
Blackwater, glittering with the morning sun, and the little quiet
village of Fermoy on its banks, from whose chimneys white wreaths of
smoke were beginning to rise upwards into the sky. Throwing the
cowhide over his shoulder, he descended, not without some difficulty,
the steep side of the mountain, up which Mr. Barry had led his horse
the preceding night with so much ease; and he proceeded along the
road, pondering on what had befallen him.

When he reached Fermoy, he went straight to Mr. Consadine's, and asked
to see him. "Well, my gay fellow," said the official Mr. Consadine,
recognising, at a glance, the soldier; "what sort of an entertainment
did you meet with from Barry of Cairn Thierna?" "The best of good
thratement, sir," replied the soldier; "and well did he spake of you,
and he disired me to give you this cowhide as a token to remimber him
by." "Many thanks to Mr. Barry for his generosity," said the
billet-master, making a low bow, in mock solemnity; "many thanks
indeed, and a right good skin it is, wherever he got it."

Mr. Consadine had scarcely finished the sentence, when he saw his
cow-boy running up the street, shouting and crying aloud, that the
best cow in the Inch-field was lost and gone, and nobody knew what had
become of her, or could give the least tidings of her.

The soldier had spread out the skin on the ground for Mr. Consadine to
see it; and the cow-boy looking at it, exclaimed--"That is her hide,
wherever she is; I'd take my Bible oath to the two small white spots,
with the glossy black about thim; and there's the very place where she
rubbed the hair off her shouldher last Martinmas." Then clapping his
hands together, he literally sang "the tune the old cow died of." This
lamentation was stopped short by Mr. Consadine: "There is no manner of
doubt about it," said he. "It was Barry that kilt my best cow, and all
he has left me is the hide o' the poor baste to comfort myself with;
but it will be a warnin' to Dick Consadine, for the rest of his life,
nivir again to play off his thricks upon thravellers."


                           _Aileen a Roon,_

                           (ELLEN MY LOVE.)

Carrol O'Daly is the Lochinvar of Ireland. He and Ellen Cavanagh were
intimate from childhood. The result was love; but Ellen's father
insisted on her marrying a wealthier suitor. On the wedding-night Carrol
came disguised as a harper, and played and sung this air, which he had
composed for the occasion. Ellen's tenderness revived in full force; she
contrived to make her father, the bridegroom, and the guests drink to
excess, and by morning she and Carrol were beyond pursuit.

The following lines were written one evening to gratify a lady who
wished to have the writer's idea of what Carrol might have sung. The
air is generally known under the name of Robin Adair:--

      What are the joys wealth and honours bestow?
      Do they endure like true love's steady glow?
            Shadows of vanity,
            Mists of the summer sky,
            Soon they disperse and fly,
                  Aileen a roon!

      Time was when Aileen tripped light as the fawn,
      Spying young Carrol approach in the dawn,
            Ere the sun's early beam
            Glittered on lake and stream,--
            Oh! that was bliss supreme,
                  Aileen a roon!

      Or when mild even's star beamed in the west,
      Bringing to nature the season of rest--
            At that sweet hour to rove,
            Down by yon spreading grove,
            Breathing forth vows of love,
                  Aileen a roon!

      Aileen forgets, but her Carrol more true,
      As these past scenes memory brings to his view.
            Heaves many a heavy sigh,
            Breaking his heart is nigh--
            And canst thou let him die?
                  Aileen a roon!


                         _Rousseau's Dream._

These verses are adapted to the well-known air. They were suggested by
a passage from Rousseau's works, quoted by Alison in his Essay on
Taste. Though real names are mentioned, the scenery and subject are
purely ideal.

      Calmly at eve shone the sun o'er Lake Leman,
      Bright in his beam lay the watery expanse,
      Softly the white sails reflected his gleaming,
      Groves, banks, and trees their slow shadows advance.
      Cool from the mountains the summer-gale breathed,
      Laden with fragrance the lake it came o'er;
      Leman, exulting, danced joyous beneath it,
      Light crisped waves gently roll to the shore.

      At that soft hour on the blue Leman rowing,
      Slowly a sage urged his bark by a grove,
      Silently musing, his lofty mind glowing,
      Viewing earth's pomp and the glories above
      As o'er the lake the long shadows extended,
      Whispering the breeze, lulled each sense to repose;
      Calm he reclined, and as slumber descended,
      Visions of bliss to his fancy arose.

      Heaven to his view seemed arrayed in new glory,
      Earth breathed forth fragrance and basked in the ray
      Clad in loose raiment, more white than the hoary
      Front of Mont Blanc, came a son of the day.
      Lightly his wand o'er the slumberer extending,
      While with new joy laughed the earth, sky, and lake;
      Love in his accents with soft pity blending,
      Shedding content, thus the bright vision spake:--

      "Hither I come, from my cloud-crowned station,
      Touched with thy grief, to shed balm o'er thy mind!
      I am the Spirit to whom, at creation,
      Charge was by Heaven o'er this region assigned.
      List to my accents, thou hunted by malice!
      Let what I utter sink deep in thy breast:
      Fly from mankind, to the lakes, hills, and valleys,
      Thus, thus alone, shall thy spirit find rest.

      "But if again to the world thou now fliest,
      Thou should return, and again meet thy foes,
      Think on this hour, when for comfort thou sighest,
      And the bright scene will dispel all thy woes."
      Gone was the vision: eve's star now was glancing,
      Cold came the breeze o'er the blue curling stream;
      Waked from his slumber, his heart with joy dancing,
      Homeward he turned, and still mused on his dream.


                     _Alexander Selkirk's Dream._

           COMPOSED ONE DAY WHEN CONFINED TO BED BY A COLD
                         AND UNABLE TO READ.

      O'er the isle of Juan Fernandez
        Cooling shades of evening spread,
      While upon the peaks of Andes
        Still the tints of day were shed.

      From the sea-beat shore returning
        Homeward hied the lonely man,
      O'er his cheerless fortune mourning,
        As through past days memory ran.

      Soon his brief repast was ended
        And he sought his lowly bed;
      Balmy slumber there descended,
        Shedding influence o'er his head.

      Then a vision full of gladness
        Came, sent forth by Him supreme
      Who his suffering servants' sadness
        Oft dispelleth in a dream.

             *       *       *       *       *

      In his view the lively dream sets
        Hills and vales in verdure bright;
      Where the gaily-prattling streamlets
        Sparkle in the morning-light.

      Hark! the holy bell is swinging,
        Calling to the house of prayer;
      Loud resounds the solemn ringing
        Through the still and balmy air.

      Youths and maids from glen and mountain
        Hasten at the hallowed sound,
      Old men rest by shady fountain,
        Children lay them on the ground.

      Now the pious throng is streaming
        Through the temple's portal low;
      Rapture in each face is beaming
        Pure devotion's genuine glow.

      Fervently the hoary pastor,
        Humbly bent before his God,
      Supplicates their heavenly Master
        Them to lead on Sion's road;

      Owns that all have widely erred
        From the true, the narrow way,
      That with Him we have no merit,
        And no claim of right can lay.

      Loud then rise in choral measure
        Hymns of gratitude and praise,
      As, inspired with solemn pleasure,
        Unto Heaven their strains they raise.

      Now the grave discourse beginneth,
        Which, ungraced by rhetoric's arts,
      Quick the rapt attention winneth,
        While it glorious truths imparts;

      While it tells how kind is Heaven
        To the race of him who fell;
      How of old the Son was given
        To redeem from pains of hell;

      How the Holy Spirit abideth
        In their hearts that hear his call;
      How our God for all provideth,
        How His mercy's over all;

      How, beyond the grave extending,
        Regions lie of endless bliss;
      How our thoughts on that world bending,
        We should careless be of this.

      Once again the raised hymn pealeth
        Notes of joy and jubilee,
      Praising Him who truth revealeth,
        Dweller of Eternity!

             *       *       *       *       *

      Night's dim shades were now retreating,
        Over Andes rose the day,
      On the hills the kids' loud bleating
        Lingering slumber chased away.

      Birds their merry notes were singing,
        Joyous at the approach of morn--
      Morn that, light and fragrance flinging,
        Earth doth cherish and adorn.

      Waked by Nature's general chorus
        Selkirk quits his lonely couch,
      While o'er heaven run colours glorious,
        Heralding the sun's approach.

      Still the vision hovers o'er him,
        Still the heavenly strains he hears,
      Setting those bright realms before him
        Where are wiped away all tears.

      All this vain and transitory
        State of mankind here on earth,
      Weighed with that exceeding glory,
        Now he deems as nothing worth.

      Low he bends in adoration,
        As the sun ascends the sky;
      Doubt and fear and lamentation
        With the night's last shadows fly.


                         _A Moonlight Scene_,

      CONCEIVED AND COMMENCED WHEN PASSING OVER PUTNEY BRIDGE ON
                  A FINE MOONLIGHT NIGHT IN SUMMER.

      The moonbeams on the lake are glancing,
      The nimble bark is now advancing,
        That for this grove is bound.
      Ye gentle clouds, ah! hear a lover,
      And hasten not the moon to cover
        And darkness pour around.

      Doth fancy sport, or do I hear her,
      As nearer still she comes and nearer,
        Cutting the billows bright?--
      How still! scarce even a light breeze flying!
      Earth, water, air, at peace are lying
        Beneath the calm moonlight.

      My heart beats high, my soul rejoices,
      Methinks I hear their merry voices--
        She soon will reach the shore.--
      Ah me! my hopes, my hopes are failing,
      Yon sable cloud is onwards sailing--
        The moon it covers o'er.

      Now o'er the lake they dubious wander,
      And on some part remote may strand her,
        Unless they aid obtain,--
      I'll wave a signal from the summit
      Of yon high bank, and haply from it
        Some guidance they may gain.

      The cloud moves on, the moonlight beameth,
      And o'er the lovely lady streameth,
        Upon her lofty stand.
      With joyful shout the boatmen greet her,
      Her anxious lover hastes to meet her,
        And eager springs to land.


                  _Lines Written in a Lady's Album._

      In those blest days, when free from care
      And happy as the birds in air,
        I roamed the hills and dales,
      By purling rills oft passed the day,
      Or on green banks recumbent lay,
        Listening the shepherds' tales,

      My fancy, rising on the wing,
      Would visions fair before me bring,
        Of castles high, and towers,
      With knights in radiant panoply,
      And ladies of the beaming eye,
        Within their fragrant bowers;

      Or lead me thence away to shades
      Of woods, and show me, in the glades,
        The cottages serene,
      Where Peace dwelt with Contend, among
      The happy, gay Arcadian throng
        That tenanted the scene.

      But whether cot or tower arose
      In vision, at the dawn or close
        Of summer-days, to me,
      The lovely form of woman still
      Shone bright by dale, by mead, by rill,
        Amid my extacy.

      I saw her robed in every grace
      With youth, with loveliness of face,
        And virtue's gentle eye;
      And from her tongue heard accents fall,
      That would the rudest heart enthral,
        And raise emotions high.

      But like the Eastern prince, who loved
      The pictured form of one that moved
        In life full many a year
      Ere he beheld the light, I deemed
      The lovely form of which I dreamed
        Would ne'er to me appear.

      And years came on, and years went by,
      And yet I never found me nigh
        My youthful vision bright.
      I said,--I might as well, I ween,
      Expect to see the Fairy-queen
        Descend, to bless my sight.

      But often, when we hope it least,
      And when our search has well nigh ceased,
        Good fortune will befall:
      So I one evening saw a maid,
      Who every grace and charm displayed
        That decked my _Ideal_.

      Her portrait here I need not show.
      For, reader, thou must surely know
        That peerless, gentle maid:
      To her these lines I consecrate;
      And if she smiles I'll deem, elate,
        My toil far overpaid.


                             _To Amanda._

    [These are the verses quoted in the Introduction to the "Tales and
    Popular Fictions." The author was very young when he wrote them;
    and Amanda was, like Beatrice and Laura, a mere _donna di mente_,
    having no real existence.]

      As when a storm in vernal skies
        The face of day doth stain,
      And o'er the smiling landscape flies,
        With mist and drizzling rain;
      If chance the sun look through the shower
        O'er flowery hill and dale,
      Reviving Nature owns his power,
        And softly sighs the gale:

      So when, by anxious thoughts oppressed,
        My soul sinks in despair,
      When smiling hope deserts my breast,
        And all is darkness there;
      If chance Amanda's form appear,
        The gloom is chased away,
      My soul once more her soft smiles cheer,
        And joy resumes his sway.

      Then, dear Amanda, since thy smile
        Has power all gloom to charm,
      Oh! ever thus my cares beguile,
        And guard my soul from harm.
      Let Hymen's bands our fates unite,
        What bliss may then be ours!--
      Our days will glide, like streamlets bright,
        O'erhung with fragrant flowers.


                               _Lines_,

                WRITTEN AT HOME IN THE SPRING OF 1842.

      Fair Tibur, once the Muses' home,
        Before us lay; around
      Was spread the plain which mighty Rome
        Oft saw with victory crowned.

      The sun rode high, the sky was clear,
        The lark poured forth his strain,
      And flowers, the firstlings of the year,
        Shed fragrance o'er the plain.

      A gentle lady turned on me
        Her bright expressive eyes,
      And bade the flame of poesy
        Within my bosom rise.

      'Twas then I felt, I felt, alas!
        How Time has dealt with me,
      And how the rays of fancy pass,
        And vanish utterly.

      For time has been when such a view
        And mandate of the fair,
      With images of brightest hue,
        Had fill'd the land and air:

      While now I strive, and strive in vain,
        To twine poetic flowers,
      Since from me Time away has ta'en
        Imagination's powers.

      Then lady, be thou gentle still,
        Let pity sway thy breast;
      Accept for deeds the fervent will
        To honour thy behest.


                            _A Farewell._

      Farewell! farewell! the parting hour
        Is come, and I must leave thee!
      Oh! ne'er may aught approach thy bower
        That might of bliss bereave thee!

      But ever a perennial rill
        Of joy, so brightly flowing,
      Keep each fair thought in fragrance still
        Within thy pure mind blowing.

      For life all charm had lost for me,
        My thoughts were only sadness,
      When fortune led me unto thee
        To taste once more of gladness.--

      I've seen the sullen shades of night
        Fair nature's face concealing,
      And marked how scattered rays of light
        Came morn's approach revealing.

      The light increased, the orb of day
        Clomb to the mountain's summit;
      And vale and plain, and stream and bay,
        Drew life and lustre from it.

      And as it towered in majesty,
        Light all around it shedding,
      It seemed a monarch, seated high,
        Bliss through his realms wide spreading.

      All nature joyed; I felt my heart
        Distend, and fill with pleasure;
      For heavenly light and warmth impart
        A bliss we cannot measure.

      This glorious sun to me art thou,
        Whose light all gloom dispelleth,
      Before whose majesty I bow
        When he his power revealeth.

      Thy golden locks, thine eyes so blue,
        Thy smile so sweetly playing,
      Were those first shafts of light that flew,
        The gloom of night warraying.

      But when, more intimately known,
        I found not only beauty,
      But genius, taste, and truth, thine own,
        Combined with filial duty:

      Then rose the sun, o'er all my soul
        In full effulgence beaming,
      And tides of joy began to roll
        Beneath his radiance gleaming.--

      Time still his noiseless course pursues
        With unremitting vigour,
      And lovely Spring each year renews
        The waste of Winter's rigour.

      Were mine the power, thus, like Time,
        To wake again life's flowers,
      And days recall of youthful prime
        Passed in the Muses' bowers;

      Then, lovely maiden! fancy-free,
        Rich in each mental treasure,
      In me thou wouldst a votary see--
        Thy will would be my pleasure.

      But while such bliss might not be mine,
        A friendship pure and holy
      I offered at the hallowed shrine,
        To which my heart turned solely.--

      When distant from thee many a mile,
        High waves between us swelling,
      I'll think upon thy lovely smile,
        Of pure emotion telling.

      The sky will show me thy blue eye;
        The whispering breeze of even
      Recall that voice, whose melody
        Oft lapped my soul in heaven!

      The sinking sun thy ringlets' gold
        Will show; but memory only
      The treasures of thy mind unfold
        To me when musing lonely.

      Oh! may I hope that memory,
        That power for ever changing,
      Will make thee sometimes think on me,
        O'er distant mountains ranging?

      Say me not nay; let Fancy cheat
        My soul with bland illusion;
      And let not Doubt my vision sweet
        Dispel by rude intrusion.


                              _Verses_,

 WRITTEN AT BATH IN 1840, FOR A LITTLE BOY WHO KEPT AN ALBUM, AND WAS
           A GREAT ADMIRER OF ROBIN HOOD AND HIS MERRY MEN.

      Had the kind Muse, young friend, on me
        Her pleasing gifts bestowed,
      And taught to tread of poesy
        The smooth and flowery road;

      Then should the deeds of Robin Hood,
        And Little John, so bold,
      And of the Friar, stout and good,
        In numbers high be told.

      The merry greenwood should resound
        With feats of archery,
      And antlered deer along should bound
        So light and gracefully!

      But vain the hopes: 'gainst Fate's decrees
        To struggle I must cease;
      I only can write histories
        Of England, Rome, and Greece.


                        _Father Cuddy's Song._

                  IN THE LEGEND OF CLOUGH NA CUDDY.

          Quam pulchra sunt ova,
          Cum alba et nova
      In stabulo scite leguntur;
          Et à Margery bella,
          Quæ festiva puella!
      Pinguis lardi cum frustis coquuntur.

          Ut belles in prato
          Aprico et lato
      Sub sole tam læte renident,
          Ova tosta, in mensa
          Mappa bene extensa,
      Nitidissima lance consident.


                             TRANSLATION.

          Oh! 'tis eggs are a treat,
          When so white and so sweet
      From under the manger they're taken,
          And by fair Margery,
          Och! 'tis she's full of glee,
      They are fried with fat rashers of bacon.

          Just like daisies all spread
          O'er a broad sunny mead,
      In the sunbeams so beauteously shining,
          Are fried eggs fair displayed
          On a dish, when we've laid
      The cloth and are thinking of dining.


                     _The Praises of Mazenderân._

                  FROM THE SHÂH-NÂMEH OF FERDOUSEE.

    [The object of this version was to give a correct idea of the
    animated anapæstic measure in which the Shâh-Nâmeh is written. Our
    knowledge of Persian was extremely slight; but a friendly
    Orientalist gave us a faithful line-for-line translation, which we
    versified, and he and Ram Mohun Roy then compared our version with
    the original.]

      His hand from the lute hath its melody drawn,
      And thus rose the song of Mazenderân:--
        May Mazenderân, the land of my birth,
      Its hills and its dales, be e'er famed o'er the earth:
      For evermore blooms in its gardens the rose,
      On its hills nods the tulip, the hyacinth blows;
      Its air ever fragrant, its earth flourishing,
      Cold or heat is not felt,--'tis perpetual spring.
      The nightingale's lays in the gardens resound;
      On the sides of the mountains the stately deer bound,
      In search evermore of their pastime and food;
      With fragrance and colour each season's bedewed;
      Its streams of rose-water unceasingly roll,
      Whose perfume doth gladness diffuse o'er the soul.
      In November, December, and January,
      Full of tulips the ground thou mayest everywhere see;
      The springs, unexhausted, flow all through the year;
      The hawk at his chase everywhere doth appear.
      The region of bliss is adorned all o'er
      With dinars, with rich stuffs, and with all costly store;
      The idol-adorers with fine gold are crowned,
      And girdles of gold gird the heroes renowned.
      Whoe'er hath not dwelt in that region so bright,
      His soul knows no pleasure, his heart no delight.

FOOTNOTES:

[599] As we have above given an etymon of _cobweb_, we will here
repeat our note on the word _gossamer_ in the Fairy Legends.

"Gossamers, Johnson says, are the long white cobwebs which fly in the
air in calm sunny weather, and he derives the word from the Low Latin
_gossapium_. This is altogether unsatisfactory. The gossamers are the
cobwebs which may be seen, particularly of a still autumnal morning,
in such numbers on the furze-bushes, and which are raised by the wind
and floated through the air, as thus exquisitely pictured by Browne in
his Britannia's Pastorals (ii. 2),

      The milk-white gossamers not upwards snowed.

Every lover of nature must have observed and admired the beautiful
appearance of the gossamers in the early morning, when covered with
dew-drops, which, like prisms, separate the rays of light, and shoot
the blue, red, yellow, and other colours of the _spectrum_, in
brilliant confusion. Of King Oberon we are told--

      A riche mantle he did wear,
      Made of tinsel gossamer,
      Bestrew'd over with a few
      Diamond drops of morning dew.

A much more probable origin of _gossamer_ than that proposed by
Johnson is suggested by what has been now stated. _Gossamer_ is, we
think, a corruption of _gorse_, or _goss samyt_, i. e. the _samyt_, or
finely-woven silken web that lies on the _gorse_ or furze. Voss, in a
note on his Luise (iii. 17), says that the popular belief in Germany
is, that the gossamers are woven by the Dwarfs.

[600] In the notes on this story Mr. Croker gives the following
letter:--

    "The accuracy of the following story I can vouch for, having heard
    it told several times by the person who saw the circumstances.

     "About twenty years back, William Cody, churn-boy to a person
     near Cork, had, after finishing his day's work, to go through six
     or eight fields to his own house, about twelve o'clock at night.
     He was passing alongside of the ditch of a large field, and
     coming near a quarry, he heard a great cracking of whips on the
     other side. He went on to a gap in the same ditch, and out rode a
     little horseman, dressed in green, and mounted in the best
     manner, who put a whip to his breast, and made him stop until
     several hundred horsemen, all dressed alike, rode out of the gap
     at full speed, and swept round a glen. When the last horseman was
     clear off, the sentinel clapt spurs to his horse, gave three
     cracks of his whip, and was out of sight in a second.

     "The person would swear to the truth of the above, as he was
     quite sober and sensible at the time. The place had always before
     the name of being very _airy_ [the Scottish _eirie_].

  "_Royal Cork Institution_,                               P. BATH.
       _June 3, 1825._"

[601] An abridgment of _Leprechaun_, see p. 371.

[602] This wonderful tune is, we fear, a transference we made from
Scandinavia. See above, p. 79.

[603] We must here make an honest confession. This story had no
foundation but the German legend in p. 259. All that is not to be
found there is our own pure invention. Yet we afterwards found that it
was well-known on the coast of Cork and Wicklow. "But," said one of
our informants, "It was things like flower-pots he kept them in." So
faithful is popular tradition in these matters! In this and the
following tale there are some traits by another hand which we are now
unable to discriminate.

[604] It is not very likely that the inventor of this legend knew
anything about the Amadigi of B. Tasso, yet in that poem we meet this
circumstance more than once. In c. ii., when night falls on the young
knight Alidoro, in the open country, he finds a pavilion pitched
beside a fountain, with lights in it, and hears a voice which invites
him to enter it. He there sups and goes to sleep in a rich bed, and on
awaking in the morning (iii. 38) finds himself lying in the open air.
Another time (c. viii) he comes to a fair inn, in a wild region, where
he is entertained and his wounds are dressed by a gentle damsel, and
on awaking in the morning he finds himself lying under a tree. The
tent and inn were the work of his protectress, the Fairy Silvana.
Another Fairy, Argea, entertains (c. xxxiii.) a king, queen, knight
and ladies, in a stately palace. At night they retire to magnificent
chambers, and in the morning they find themselves lying in a mead,
some under trees, others on the sides of a stream, with more of the
beauties of the ladies displayed than they could have desired.




                                INDEX.

    The words printed in _Italics_ are those whose origin or meaning
    is explained. The word "Fairy" is inclusive of all similar beings.

  Albrich, 206.

  Alfar, 64.

  _Alguacil_, 464.

  Amadigi, L', 454.

  Apsaresas, 510.


  Bakhna Rakhna, 495.

  Barguest, 306, 310.

  Berserkers, 74.

  Boggart, 307.

  Bogles, 316, 351.

  _Booby_, 464.

  _Boy_, 316.

  Brownie, 171, 296, 357, 395.

  _Bug_, 318.

  _Bugaboo_, 316.

  _Bugbear_, 316.

  _Bullbeggar_, 316.


  _Calcar_, 291.

  _Cauchemare_, 291.

  Cauld Lad of Hilton, 296.

  Cluricaun, 371.

  _Cobweb_, 318.

  Colepexy, 305.

  Colt-Pixy, 305.

  Crions, 440.

  Cross, 87, 134, 136, 276, 375, 391.

  Courils, 441.

  Changelings, 125, 166, 227, 300, 355, 365, 393, 398, 436, 471, 473,
               521.


  Dames Blanches, 474.

  Dame du Lac, 31.

  Daoine Shi', 384.

  Deevs, 15.

  _Deuce_, 438.

  Drac, 465.

  Duende, 462, 464.

  Duergar, 66.

  Duscii, 438.

  Dwarfs, 94, 157, 174, 206, 264.


  Eddas, 60.

  Elberich, 208.

  Elf-arrow, 352.

  Elf-bore, 307.

  Elf-queen, 331.

  Elves, 78, 281.

  Eugel, 207.


  _Fada_, 5.

  Fadas, 468.

  _Fairy_, 4.

  Fairy-bells, 363, 412.

  Fairy-butter, 309.

  Fairy-cup, 88, 109, 237, 283, 284, 399.

  Fairy-departure, 127, 223, 257, 273, 356.

  Fairy-labour, 122, 261, 275, 301, 311, 388, 488.

  Fairy-mushrooms, 303.

  Fairy-origin, 75, 147, 150, 213, 265, 363, 385, 412, 432, 464.

  Fairy-riding, 355, 384, 401, 414, 520.

  Fairy-song, 364, 438, 461.

  Fairy-wife, 19, 108, 163, 169, 370, 409, 450, 458, 480, 485.

  Fairy-land, 44.

  Faerie Queene, 56.

  Fairies, 28, 290, 350, 363, 385, 397, 412.

  Farisees, 306.

  Fary, 310.

  _Fata_, 5.

  Fate, 451.

  Fear Dearg, 369.

  Fées, 472.

  Fosse-Grim, 152.

  Friar Rush, 347.


  Gallicenæ, 420.

  Gandharvas, 510.

  Gobelins, 476.

  Goldemar, 256.

  Good People, 363, 397, 495.

  Gorics, 440.

  _Gossamer_, 513.

  Grant, 286.

  _Guancia_, 464.

  Guid Neighbours, 164, 351.


  Habundia, 474.

  _Hada_, 5.

  Hadas, 469.

  _Hag_, 290, 332.

  _Haggard_, 318.

  Havfrue, 152.

  Havmand, 152.

  _Hel-Keplein_, 207.

  Hinzelmann, 240.

  Hobgoblin, 317.

  Hödekin, 255.

  Holger Danske, 129.

  House-spirit, 139, 163, 171, 239, 265, 287, 291, 296, 307, 357, 369,
                395, 407, 449, 462, 468, 488.

  _Housle-egg_, 291.

  Huldrafolk, 79.

  Hyldemoer, 94.


  Incubo, 449.

  Iron, 25, 148, 413, 488.


  Jean de la Boliéta, 265.

  Jinn, 25.

  Jinnistân, 16.


  Kâf, 15.

  Kelpie, 360, 385.

  Kit-wi-the-Canstick, 291.

  Kleine Volk, 216.

  Klintekonger. 91.

  Kobold, 239.

  Korr, 431.

  Korred, 431.

  Korrig, 431.

  Korrigan, 420, 431.


  Lancelot du Lac, 31.

  Lars, 448.

  Laurin, 207.

  Leprechaun, 371.

  _Lob_, 318.

  _Lob's pound_, 319.

  _Lubber_, 319.

  Lubin, 478.

  Lubrican, 372.

  Luridan, 172.

  Lutin, 476.

  Luck of Eden Hall, 292.


  Mab, 331, 476.

  Maçieh, 494.

  Mazikeen, 497.

  Melusina, 479.

  Mermaids, 370, 433, 450.

  Merrow, 370, 527.

  Miölner, 70.

  Monaciello, 449.

  _Monkey_, 464.

  Morgan, 433.

  Morgana, 5.

  Morgue la Faée, 42, 46.

  Moss-people, 230.

  Napf-Hans, 265.

  Neck, 148, 178, 488.

  Neptunes, 285.

  Nickur, 162, 163.

  _Ninny_, 464.

  Nisse, 139.

  Nix, 258.

  Nökke, 148.

  Nornir, 64.

  Nymphs, 444.


  _Oaf_, 329.

  Oberon, 38, 289, 325.

  Oennereeske, 231.

  Ogier le Danois, 46.

  Oldenburg Horn, 237.

  Otnit, 208.

  _Ouph_, 329.


  _Pawkey_, 316.

  Pentamerone, Il, 455.

  Peries, 15.

  Pexy, 305.

  Phynnoderree, 402.

  Picktree Brag, 310.

  Pisachas, 510.

  Pisgies, 298.

  Pixies, 298.

  _Pixy-led_, 300.

  Poake, 317.

  Pooka, 371.

  Portunes, 285.

  Pouke, 314.

  _Proud_, 103.

  Puck, 291, 314.

  _Pucker_, 464.

  _Puckfist_, 317.

  Puckle, 316.

  Pug, 315.

  Puk, 233.

  Pwcca, 418.


  Robin Goodfellow, 287, 317.

  Robin Hood, 318.

  Runes, 98.

  Rusalki, 491.


  St. Oluf, 137.

  _St. Peter's suster_, 319.

  Scogsfru, 153.

  Scrat, Schrat, Schretel, 229.

  Seemurgh, 17.

  Shedeem, 497.

  Shellycoat, 360.

  Shian, 384.

  Shinseën, 511.

  Shoopiltie, 171.

  Skidbladni, 68.

  _Spoorn_, 291.

  Steel, _see Iron_.

  _Stout_, 103.

  Stille Volk, 216.

  Strömkarl, 152.

  Svend Fælling, 88, 128.

  Similar Legends,--(i.) 19, 163, 169, 370. (ii.) 88, 109, 237, 283,
                    284, 399. (iii.) 115, 366, 398. (iv.) 116, 232.
                    (v.) 121, 409, 450, 458, 480, 485. (vi.) 122, 261,
                    275, 301, 311, 388. (vii.) 124, 260. (viii.) 124,
                    386, 387, 415. (ix.) 127, 223, 257, 273, 356.
                    (x.) 140, 307, 369, 491. (xi.) 149, 365, 385.
                    (xii.) 220, 226, 289, 295, 352, 389. (xiii.) 228,
                    261, 287, 289, 299, 358, 395, 403. (xiv.) 302, 309,
                    311, 312, 353, 466. (xv.) 304, 438, 461. (xvi.) 313,
                    396, 477, 489.


  _Take_, 338.

  Tangie, 173.

  _Tarnkappe_, 207.

  Tirfing, 72.

  Titania, 325.

  Tomte, 139, 147.

  Trasgo, 462, 464.

  Trolls, 94, 102.

  Trows, 164.

  _Turning coat_, 300.

  Tylwyth Têg, 408.


  Umskiptinger, 160.

  _Urchin_, 319.

  Urdar-fount, 64.

  Urisk, 396.


  Vairies, 305.

  Vidhyadharas, 519.

  Vilas, 491.

  Volmar, 256.


  _Wain_, 105.

  Water-spirits, 147, 162, 163, 171, 173, 178, 258, 360, 385, 409, 433,
                 444, 450, 470.

  Wicht, Wichtlein, 216, 229.

  _Wight_, 216, 319.

  Wild-women, 234.

  _Wife Paternoster_, 319.

  _Witch_, 319.

  _Wolf's-fist_, 317.


  Yakshas, 510.

  Yggdrasil, 64.

  Yumboes, 495.




                               THE END.




         LONDON: PRINTED BY WILLIAM CLOWES AND SONS, LIMITED,
                  STAMFORD STREET AND CHARING CROSS.




Transcriber's Notes:


Obvious punctuation and spelling errors have been fixed throughout.

Old English characters have been replaced with the nearest Latin
equivalent.

Irish Uncial characters have been replaced with the nearest Latin
equivalent.

Inconsistent hyphenation is as in the original.

Inconsistent use of opening and closing quotes are as in the original.

Footnote 275: Has no anchor, left as in the original text.

Footnotes 333 and 334: These footnotes were in incorrect order in the
original text. They have been reversed in the new text.






End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Fairy Mythology, by Thomas Keightley

*** 